This is a modern-English version of Pioneers in Canada, originally written by Johnston, Harry. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.








Type of Ship Sailed in by the English Or French Pioneers in the Sixteenth Century
TYPE OF SHIP SAILED IN BY THE ENGLISH OR FRENCH PIONEERS
IN THE SIXTEENTH CENTURY

PIONEERS IN CANADA


By SIR HARRY JOHNSTON

G.C.M.G., K.C.B.

G.C.M.G., K.C.B.


WITH EIGHT COLOURED ILLUSTRATIONS
BY E. WALLCOUSINS

WITH EIGHT COLORED ILLUSTRATIONS
BY E. WALLCOUSINS

title page decoration
1912

The Pioneer Library

A standard series by Sir Harry
Johnston. Tastefully bound.

Pioneers in Australasia.
Pioneers in Canada.
Pioneers in South Africa.
Pioneers in West Africa.
Pioneers in Tropical America.
Pioneers in India.

The Pioneer Library

A classic collection by Sir Harry
Johnston. Elegantly bound.

Pioneers in Australasia.
Pioneers in Canada.
Pioneers in South Africa.
Pioneers in West Africa.
Pioneers in Tropical America.
Pioneers in India.







PREFACE


I have been asked to write a series of works which should deal with "real adventures", in parts of the world either wild and uncontrolled by any civilized government, or at any rate regions full of dangers, of wonderful discoveries; in which the daring and heroism of white men (and sometimes of white women) stood out clearly against backgrounds of unfamiliar landscapes, peopled with strange nations, savage tribes, dangerous beasts, or wonderful birds. These books would again and again illustrate the first coming of the white race into regions inhabited by people of a different type, with brown, black, or yellow skins; how the European was received, and how he treated these races of the soil which gradually came under his rule owing to his superior knowledge, weapons, wealth, or powers of persuasion. The books were to tell the plain truth, even if here and there they showed the white man to have behaved badly, or if they revealed the fact that the American Indian, the Negro, the Malay, the black Australian was sometimes cruel and treacherous.

I’ve been asked to write a series of works that focus on "real adventures" in parts of the world that are wild and not under any civilized government, or at least areas full of dangers and amazing discoveries. In these stories, the bravery and heroism of white men (and sometimes white women) stand out against the backdrop of unfamiliar landscapes inhabited by strange nations, savage tribes, dangerous animals, or extraordinary birds. These books will repeatedly illustrate the initial arrival of the white race in regions populated by people of different backgrounds, with brown, black, or yellow skin; how the Europeans were received, and how they treated the indigenous people as they gradually came under their control due to their superior knowledge, weapons, wealth, or persuasive abilities. The books aim to tell the plain truth, even if they occasionally show white individuals behaving poorly, or if they reveal that the American Indian, the Black person, the Malay, and the black Australian could sometimes be cruel and treacherous.

A request thus framed was almost equivalent to asking me to write stories of those pioneers who founded the British Empire; in any case, the first volumes of this series do relate the adventures of those who created the greater part of the British Dominions beyond the Seas, by their perilous explorations of unknown lands and waters. In many instances the travellers were all unconscious of their destinies, of the results which would arise from their actions. In some cases they would have bitterly railed at Fate had they known that the result of their splendid efforts was to be the enlargement of an empire under the British flag. Perhaps if they could know by now that we are striving under that flag to be just and generous to all types of men, and not to use our empire solely for the benefit of English-speaking men and women, the French who founded the Canadian nation, the Germans and Dutch who helped to create British Africa, Malaysia, and Australia, the Spaniards who preceded us in the West Indies, and the Portuguese in West, Central, and East Africa, in Newfoundland and Ceylon, might—if they have any consciousness or care for things in this world—be not so sorry after all that we are reaping where they sowed.

A request like that was almost like asking me to write stories about the pioneers who built the British Empire; in any case, the first volumes of this series tell the adventures of those who largely created the British Dominions overseas by risking their lives to explore unknown lands and waters. In many cases, the travelers had no idea of their destinies or the outcomes of their actions. In some situations, they would have bitterly complained about Fate if they had known that the result of their remarkable efforts would be the expansion of an empire under the British flag. Perhaps if they could see now that we are striving under that flag to be fair and generous to all people, not just to English-speaking men and women, the French who founded Canada, the Germans and Dutch who contributed to British Africa, Malaysia, and Australia, the Spaniards who came before us in the West Indies, and the Portuguese in West, Central, and East Africa, Newfoundland, and Ceylon, might—if they are aware of or care about things in this world—be less regretful that we are reaping where they sowed.

It is (as you will see) impossible to tell the tale of these early days in the British Dominions beyond the Seas, without describing here and there the adventures of men of enterprise and daring who were not of our own nationality. The majority, nevertheless, were of British stock; that is to say, they were English, Welsh, Scots, Irish, perhaps here and there a Channel Islander and a Manxman; or Nova Scotians, Canadians, and New Englanders. The bulk of them were good fellows, a few were saints, a few were ruffians with redeeming features. Sometimes they were common men who blundered into great discoveries which will for ever preserve their names from perishing; occasionally they were men of Fate, predestined, one might say, to change the history of the world by their revelations of new peoples, new lands, new rivers, new lakes, snow mountains, and gold mines. Here and there is a martyr like Marquette, or Livingstone, or Gordon, dying for the cause of a race not his own. And others again are mere boys, whose adventures come to them because they are adventurous, and whose feats of arms, escapes, perils, and successes are quite as wonderful as those attributed to the juvenile heroes of Marryat, Stevenson, and the author of The Swiss Family Robinson.

It’s impossible to tell the story of the early days in the British Dominions overseas without mentioning the adventures of enterprising and daring individuals who weren’t from our nationality. However, most of them were of British descent; that is, they were English, Welsh, Scottish, Irish, and occasionally included a Channel Islander or a Manxman, along with Nova Scotians, Canadians, and New Englanders. Most were decent people, some were saints, and a few were ruffians with redeeming qualities. Sometimes they were ordinary folks who stumbled upon great discoveries that would keep their names alive forever; other times, they were destined individuals who were meant to change the history of the world through their discoveries of new peoples, new lands, new rivers, new lakes, towering mountains, and gold mines. There were also martyrs like Marquette, Livingstone, or Gordon, who died for a cause that wasn’t their own. And then there were just young boys, whose adventures found them because they were adventurous, and whose daring exploits, escapes, dangers, and successes were just as incredible as those attributed to the young heroes of Marryat, Stevenson, and the author of The Swiss Family Robinson.

I have tried, in describing these adventures, to give my readers some idea of the scenery, animals, and vegetation of the new lands through which these pioneers passed on their great and small purposes; as well as of the people, native to the soil, with whom they came in contact. And in treating of these subjects I have thought it best to give the scientific names of the plant or animal which was of importance in my story, so that any of my readers who were really interested in natural history could at once ascertain for themselves the exact type alluded to, and, if they wished, look it up in a museum, a garden, or a natural history book.

I’ve aimed, in telling these adventures, to give my readers a sense of the landscape, animals, and plants of the new lands that these pioneers explored for various purposes, as well as the people native to those areas with whom they interacted. In discussing these topics, I thought it would be best to include the scientific names of the plants and animals that are important to my story, so that any readers interested in natural history could easily find out the exact species mentioned and, if they wanted, look it up in a museum, a garden, or a natural history book.

I hope this attempt at scientific accuracy will not frighten away readers young and old; and, if you can have patience with the author, you will, by reading this series of books on the great pioneers of British West Africa, Canada, Malaysia, West Indies, South Africa, and Australasia, get a clear idea of how the British Colonial Empire came to be founded.

I hope this effort at scientific accuracy doesn't scare off readers, both young and old. If you can be patient with the author, by reading this series of books about the great pioneers of British West Africa, Canada, Malaysia, the West Indies, South Africa, and Australasia, you’ll gain a clear understanding of how the British Colonial Empire was established.

You will find that I have often tried to tell the story in the words of the pioneers, but in these quotations I have adopted the modern spelling, not only in my transcript of the English original or translation, but also in the place and tribal names, so as not to puzzle or delay the reader. Otherwise, if you were to look out some of the geographical names of the old writers, you might not be able to recognize them on the modern atlas. The pronunciation of this modern geographical spelling is very simple and clear: the vowels are pronounced a = ah, e = eh, i = ee, o = o, ô = oh, ō = aw, ö = u in 'hurt', and u = oo, as in German, Italian, or most other European languages; and the consonants as in English.

You'll see that I've often tried to tell the story using the words of the pioneers, but in these quotes, I've used modern spelling, not just for my transcription of the English original or translation, but also for the place and tribal names, to avoid confusing or delaying the reader. Otherwise, if you were to look up some of the geographical names from the old writers, you might not recognize them on a modern map. The pronunciation of this modern geographical spelling is straightforward and clear: the vowels are pronounced a = ah, e = eh, i = ee, o = o, ô = oh, ō = aw, ö = u in 'hurt', and u = oo, like in German, Italian, or most other European languages; and the consonants are pronounced as they are in English.

H. H. JOHNSTON.

H.H. Johnston.





CONTENTS




LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS

COLOURED PLATES

BLACK-AND-WHITE ILLUSTRATIONS







List of the Chief Authorities

FROM WHOM THE PRINCIPAL FACTS AND INCIDENTS OF THIS BOOK HAVE BEEN DERIVED, IN ADDITION TO THE AUTHOR'S OWN RESEARCHES AND EXPERIENCES, AND INFORMATION SUPPLIED BY PROFESSOR R. RAMSAY WRIGHT, OF TORONTO UNIVERSITY

FROM WHOM THE MAIN FACTS AND EVENTS OF THIS BOOK HAVE BEEN OBTAINED, ALONG WITH THE AUTHOR'S OWN RESEARCH AND EXPERIENCES, AND INFORMATION PROVIDED BY PROFESSOR R. RAMSAY WRIGHT, OF TORONTO UNIVERSITY


The Saint Lawrence Basin. By Dr. S.E. DAWSON. London. 1905. Lawrence & Bullen.

The Saint Lawrence Basin. By Dr. S.E. DAWSON. London. 1905. Lawrence & Bullen.

Relation Originale du Voyage de Jacques Cartier au Canada en 1534; Documents inédits, &c. Publiés par H. MICHELANT et A. RAME. Paris. Librairie Tross. 1867.

Original Account of Jacques Cartier's Journey to Canada in 1534; Unpublished Documents, etc. Published by H. MICHELANT and A. RAME. Paris. Librairie Tross. 1867.

Voyage de Jacques Cartier au Canada en 1534, &c. Par H. MICHELANT. Paris. 1865.

Voyage of Jacques Cartier to Canada in 1534, &c. By H. MICHELANT. Paris. 1865.

Champlain's Voyages: The Publications of the Prince Society. Boston. 1878. Three volumes.

Champlain's Voyages: The Publications of the Prince Society. Boston. 1878. Three volumes.

Voyage of Verrazano, &c. By HENRY C. MURPHY. New York. 1875. (Also the Essay on the Journeys of Verrazano, by Alessandro Bacchiani, in the Bollettino della Societá Geografica Italiana. Rome. November, 1909.)

Voyage of Verrazano, &c. By HENRY C. MURPHY. New York. 1875. (Also the Essay on the Journeys of Verrazano, by Alessandro Bacchiani, in the Bollettino della Societá Geografica Italiana. Rome. November, 1909.)

Volume IX of the Proceedings and Transactions of the Royal Society of Canada. (For the History of Cape Breton and of the Beothiks of Newfoundland.)

Volume IX of the Proceedings and Transactions of the Royal Society of Canada. (For the History of Cape Breton and of the Beothiks of Newfoundland.)

The Search for the Western Sea. By Lawrence J. Burpee. London. Alston Rivers. 1908.

The Search for the Western Sea. By Lawrence J. Burpee. London. Alston Rivers. 1908.

Travels and Explorations of the Jesuit Missionaries in New France, &c. Edited by REUBEN GOLD THWAITES. Vol. LIX. Cleveland, U.S.A. Burrows Bros. 1900.

Travels and Explorations of the Jesuit Missionaries in New France, &c. Edited by REUBEN GOLD THWAITES. Vol. LIX. Cleveland, U.S.A. Burrows Bros. 1900.

Travels and Explorations in Canada and the Indian Territories between the years 1760 and 1776. By ALEXANDER HENRY, Esq. New York. 1809.

Travels and Explorations in Canada and the Indian Territories between the years 1760 and 1776. By ALEXANDER HENRY, Esq. New York. 1809.

Voyages from Montreal on the River St. Lawrence through the Continent of North America to the Frozen and Pacific Oceans, in the years 1789 and 1793, &c. &c. By ALEXANDER MACKENZIE, Esq. London. 1801.

Journeys from Montreal on the St. Lawrence River across North America to the Frozen and Pacific Oceans, in the years 1789 and 1793, &c. &c. By ALEXANDER MACKENZIE, Esq. London. 1801.

A Journey from Prince of Wales's Fort in Hudson's Bay to the Northern Ocean, &c. By SAMUEL HEARNE. London. 1795.

A Journey from Prince of Wales's Fort in Hudson's Bay to the Northern Ocean, &c. By SAMUEL HEARNE. London. 1795.

Les Bourgeois de la Compagnie du Nord-Ouest. By L.R. MASSON. Quebec. 1890. Two volumes.

The Bourgeois of the North-West Company. By L.R. MASSON. Quebec. 1890. Two volumes.

New Light on the Early History of the Greater North-West: The Manuscript Journals of Alexander Henry, Jun., and of David Thompson. Edited by ELLIOTT COUES. Three Volumes. New York. Harper. 1897.

New Light on the Early History of the Greater North-West: The Manuscript Journals of Alexander Henry, Jun., and of David Thompson. Edited by ELLIOTT COUES. Three Volumes. New York. Harper. 1897.

Sport and Travel in the Northland of Canada. By DAVID T. HANBURY. London. Edward Arnold. 1904.

Sport and Travel in the Northland of Canada. By DAVID T. HANBURY. London. Edward Arnold. 1904.

Henry Hudson the Navigator, &c. By G.M. ASHER. London. Hakluyt Society, 1860.

Henry Hudson the Navigator, etc. By G.M. ASHER. London. Hakluyt Society, 1860.

The Three Voyages of Martin Frobisher. By Rear-Admiral RICHARD COLLINSON. London. Hakluyt Society. 1867.

The Three Voyages of Martin Frobisher. By Rear-Admiral RICHARD COLLINSON. London. Hakluyt Society. 1867.

The Voyages and Works of John Davis the Navigator. By Admiral Sir ALBERT HASTINGS MARKHAM. London. Hakluyt Society. 1880.

The Voyages and Works of John Davis the Navigator. By Admiral Sir ALBERT HASTINGS MARKHAM. London. Hakluyt Society. 1880.

The Voyages of William Baffin, 1612-1622. By Sir CLEMENTS R. MARKHAM. London. 1881.

The Voyages of William Baffin, 1612-1622. By Sir CLEMENTS R. MARKHAM. London. 1881.







CHAPTER I

The White Man's Discovery of North America

So far as our knowledge goes, it is almost a matter of certainty that Man originated in the Old World—in Asia possibly. Long after this wonderful event in the Earth's history, when the human species was spread over a good deal of Asia, Europe, and Africa, migration to the American continents began in attempts to find new feeding grounds and unoccupied areas for hunting and fishing. How many thousands or hundreds of thousands of years ago it was since the first men entered America we do not yet know, any more than we can determine the route by which they travelled from Asia. Curiously enough, the oldest traces of man as yet discovered in the New World are not only in South America, but in the south-eastern parts of South America. Although the most obvious recent land connection between the Old and New Worlds is the Aleutian chain of islands connecting Kamschatka with Alaska, the ethnologist is occasionally led to think by certain evidence that there may, both earlier and later, have existed another way of reaching western America from south-eastern Asia through Pacific archipelagoes and islets now sunk below the sea. In any case it seems quite probable that men of Mongolian or Polynesian type reached America on its western coasts long before the European came from the north-east and east, and that they were helped on this long journey by touching at islands since submerged by earthquake shocks or tidal waves.

As far as we know, it's almost certain that humanity began in the Old World—possibly in Asia. Long after this amazing event in Earth’s history, when humans spread across much of Asia, Europe, and Africa, they started migrating to the Americas in search of new food sources and unoccupied areas for hunting and fishing. We still don’t know how many thousands or even hundreds of thousands of years ago the first people arrived in America, nor can we pinpoint their travel route from Asia. Interestingly, the oldest evidence of humans in the New World has been found not only in South America but specifically in the southeastern regions of South America. While the most obvious recent land connection between the Old and New Worlds is the Aleutian Islands linking Kamchatka with Alaska, some anthropologists are occasionally led to believe, based on certain evidence, that there might have been another route to western America from southeastern Asia through Pacific archipelagos and islands that are now submerged. In any case, it seems quite likely that people of Mongolian or Polynesian descent reached the western coasts of America long before Europeans came from the northeast and east, and that they were assisted on this long journey by stopping at islands that have since been submerged by earthquakes or tidal waves.

The aboriginal natives of North and South America seem to be of entirely Asiatic origin; and such resemblances as there are between the North-American Indians and the peoples of northern Europe do not arise (we believe) from any ancient colonization of America from western or northern Europe, but mainly from the fact that the North-American Indians and the Eskimo (two distinct types of people) are descended from the same human stocks as the ancient populations of the northern part of Europe and Asia.

The original inhabitants of North and South America appear to be of entirely Asian origin. The similarities between the North American Indians and the people of Northern Europe likely don't come from any ancient colonization of America by Western or Northern Europe, but mainly from the fact that North American Indians and the Eskimo (two different groups) share ancestral roots with the ancient populations of Northern Europe and Asia.

It was—we think—from the far north-west of Europe that America was first visited by the true White man, though there has been an ancient immigration of imperfect "White" men (Ainu) from Kamschatka. Three or four hundred years after the birth of Christ there were great race movements in northern and central Europe, due to an increase of population and insufficiency of food. Not only did these white barbarians (though they were not as barbarous as we were led to think by Greek and Roman literature) invade southern Europe, North Africa, and Asia Minor, but from the fourth century of the Christian era onwards they began to cross over to England and Scotland. At the same time they took more complete possession of Scandinavia, driving north before their advance the more primitive peoples like the Lapps and Finns, who were allied to the stock from which arose both the Eskimo and the Amerindian.[1] All this time the Goths and Scandinavians were either learning ideas of navigation from the Romans of the Mediterranean or the Greeks of the Black Sea, or they were inventing for themselves better ways of constructing ships; and although they propelled them mainly by oars, they used masts and sails as well.[2] Having got over the fear of the sea sufficiently to reach the coasts of England and Scotland, the Hebrides, Orkneys, and Shetlands, they became still more venturesome in their voyages from Norway, until they discovered the Faroe Archipelago (which tradition says they found inhabited by wild sheep), and then the large island of Iceland, which had, however, already been reached and settled by the northern Irish.

It is believed that America was first visited by the true White man from the far north-west of Europe, although there was an ancient migration of imperfect "White" men (Ainu) from Kamschatka. About three or four hundred years after Christ was born, there were significant population movements in northern and central Europe due to a growing population and a lack of food. These white barbarians (who were not as savage as we were led to believe by Greek and Roman writings) invaded southern Europe, North Africa, and Asia Minor, and starting in the fourth century of the Christian era, they began crossing over to England and Scotland. At the same time, they took full control of Scandinavia, pushing primitive peoples like the Lapps and Finns northward, who were related to the ancestors of both the Eskimo and the Amerindian.[1] During this time, the Goths and Scandinavians were either learning navigation techniques from Romans in the Mediterranean or Greeks in the Black Sea, or they were coming up with better ways to construct ships on their own; while they mainly used oars for propulsion, they also utilized masts and sails.[2] Having overcome their fear of the sea enough to reach the coasts of England and Scotland, as well as the Hebrides, Orkneys, and Shetlands, they became even bolder in their voyages from Norway, until they discovered the Faroe Archipelago (which tradition says was found inhabited by wild sheep), and later the larger island of Iceland, which had already been reached and settled by the northern Irish.

Iceland, though it lies so far to the north that it is partly within the Arctic Circle, is, like Norway, Scotland, and Ireland, affected by the Gulf Stream, so that considerable portions of it are quite habitable. It is not almost entirely covered with ice, as Greenland is; in fact, Iceland should be called Greenland (from the large extent of its grassy pastures), and Greenland should be called Iceland. Instead of this, however, the early Norwegian explorers called these countries by the names they still bear.

Iceland, even though it’s located so far north that it falls partly within the Arctic Circle, is, like Norway, Scotland, and Ireland, influenced by the Gulf Stream, making large parts of it quite livable. It isn't mostly covered in ice like Greenland; in fact, Iceland should really be called Greenland because of its vast grassy pastures, while Greenland should be called Iceland. However, the early Norwegian explorers named these places as they are known today.

The Norse rovers from Norway and the Hebrides colonized Iceland from the year 850; and about a hundred and thirty-six years afterwards, in their venturesome journeys in search of new lands, they reached the south-east and south-west coasts of Greenland. Owing to the glacial conditions and elevated character of this vast continental island (more than 500,000 sq. miles in area)—for the whole interior of Greenland rises abruptly from the sea-coast to altitudes of from 5000 to 11,000 ft.—this discovery was of small use to the early Norwegians or their Iceland colony. After it was governed by the kingdom of Norway in the thirteenth century, the Norse colonization of south-west Greenland faded away under the attacks of the Eskimo, until it ceased completely in the fifteenth century. When Denmark united herself with the kingdom of Norway in 1397, the Danish king became also the ruler of Iceland. In the eighteenth century the Norwegian and Danish settlements were re-established along the south-east and south-west coasts of Greenland, mainly on account of the value of the whale, seal, and cod fisheries in the seas around this enormous frozen island; and all Greenland is now regarded as a Danish possession.

The Norse explorers from Norway and the Hebrides settled in Iceland starting around 850. About 136 years later, during their adventurous quests for new territories, they arrived at the southeast and southwest coasts of Greenland. Due to the icy conditions and high terrain of this vast land (over 500,000 square miles), where the interior rises sharply from the coast to heights of 5,000 to 11,000 feet, this discovery didn't prove very useful to the early Norwegians or their Icelandic colony. Once it came under the control of Norway in the thirteenth century, Norse colonization in southwest Greenland declined due to attacks from the Inuit, until it completely disappeared in the fifteenth century. When Denmark joined with Norway in 1397, the Danish king also became the ruler of Iceland. In the eighteenth century, Norwegian and Danish settlements were re-established on the southeast and southwest coasts of Greenland, primarily because of the valuable whale, seal, and cod fisheries in the waters surrounding this massive frozen island; today, all of Greenland is considered a Danish territory.

But the adventurous Norsemen who first reached Greenland from Iceland attempted to push their investigations farther to the south-west, in the hope of discovering more habitable lands; and in this way it was supposed that their voyages extended as far as Massachusetts and Rhode Island, but in all probability they reached no farther than Newfoundland and Nova Scotia. This portion of North America they called "Vinland", more from the abundance of cranberries (vinbær) on the open spaces than the few vines to be found in the woods of Nova Scotia.[3]

But the adventurous Norsemen who first arrived in Greenland from Iceland tried to explore further southwest, hoping to find more livable lands; as a result, it was believed that their journeys went as far as Massachusetts and Rhode Island, though they likely only made it to Newfoundland and Nova Scotia. They named this part of North America "Vinland," more because of the abundance of cranberries (vinbær) in the open areas than the few vines present in the forests of Nova Scotia.[3]

This brings us down to the year 1008. The Icelandic Norsemen then ceased their investigations of the North-American Continent, and were too ignorant to realize the value of their discoveries. Their colonies on the coasts of Nova Scotia ("Vinland") and Newfoundland ("Estotiland") were attacked probably by Eskimos, at any rate by a short, thick-set, yellow-skinned ugly people whom the Norsemen called "Skræling",[4] who overcame the unfortunate settlers, murdered some, and carried off others into the interior.

This takes us to the year 1008. The Icelandic Norsemen then stopped their explorations of the North American continent and were too unaware to understand the importance of their discoveries. Their settlements along the coast of Nova Scotia ("Vinland") and Newfoundland ("Estotiland") were attacked, likely by Eskimos, but definitely by a short, stocky, yellow-skinned group that the Norsemen referred to as "Skræling,"[4] who defeated the unfortunate settlers, killed some, and took others into the interior.

But about this period, when Europe was going through that dismal era, the Dark Age which followed the downfall of the Roman Empire of the west, various impulses were already directing the attention of European adventurers to the Western Ocean, the Atlantic. One cause was the increased hold of Roman and Greek Christianity over the peoples of Europe. These Churches imposed fasts either for single days or for continuous periods. When people fasted it meant that they were chiefly denied any form of meat, and therefore must eat fish if they were not content with oil, bread, or vegetables. So that there was an enormous and increasing demand for fish, not only amongst those fortunate people who lived by the seashore, and could get it fresh whenever they liked, but among those who lived at a distance inland, and were still required to fast when the Church so directed. Of course in many parts of Europe they could get freshwater fish from the rivers or lakes. But the supply was not equal to the demand; and fish sent up from the seacoast soon went bad, so that the plan of salting and curing fish was adopted. The Norsemen found it a paying business to fish industriously in the seas round Iceland, Norway, Scotland, and Ireland, salt and cure the fish, and then carry it to more southern countries, where they exchanged it against wine, oil, clothing materials, and other goods. This led to the Venetians (who had absorbed so much of the carrying trade of the Mediterranean) sending their ships through the Straits of Gibraltar into the northern seas and trading with the Baltic for amber and salt fish. In the course of this trade some Venetians, such as Antonio Zeno, found their way to Norway and Iceland.[5] It is thought that by this means Venice became acquainted with the records of the Icelandic voyages to North America, and that her explorers thus grew to entertain the idea of a sea journey westward, or north-westward, of Britain, bringing mariners to a New World represented by the far-eastern extension of Asia.

But during this time, when Europe was experiencing that gloomy period known as the Dark Ages after the fall of the Western Roman Empire, various factors were already drawing the attention of European adventurers to the Atlantic Ocean. One reason was the stronger influence of Roman and Greek Christianity over the people of Europe. These churches enforced fasting days or extended periods of fasting. When people fasted, they mostly avoided meat, so they had to eat fish if they didn’t want just oil, bread, or vegetables. This created a huge and growing demand for fish, not only among those lucky enough to live by the sea and get it fresh whenever they wanted, but also among those living inland who still had to fast when the Church required it. Of course, in many parts of Europe, they could catch freshwater fish from rivers or lakes. But the supply didn’t meet the demand, and fish shipped from the coast often spoiled, leading to the practice of salting and curing fish. The Norsemen found it profitable to fish in the seas around Iceland, Norway, Scotland, and Ireland, salt and cure the fish, and then trade it in southern countries for wine, oil, textiles, and other goods. This led the Venetians, who dominated much of the trade in the Mediterranean, to send their ships through the Straits of Gibraltar into northern waters and trade with the Baltic for amber and salted fish. During this trade, some Venetians, like Antonio Zeno, traveled to Norway and Iceland.[5] It is believed that through this, Venice became familiar with records of the Icelandic voyages to North America, inspiring its explorers to consider a sea journey westward or north-westward from Britain, leading sailors to a New World that was thought to be part of the eastern reaches of Asia.

Christopher Columbus, the Genoese, conceived a similar idea, which also may have owed something to the tradition of the Norsemen's discovery of Vinland. But Columbus's theories were based on better evidence, such as the discovery on the coasts of the Azores archipelago, Madeira, and Portugal of strange seeds, tree trunks, objects of human workmanship, and even (it is said) the bodies of drowned savages—Amerindians—which had somehow drifted across, borne by the current of the Gulf Stream, and escaping the notice of the sharks.

Christopher Columbus, from Genoa, had a similar idea, which might have been influenced by the Norsemen's discovery of Vinland. However, Columbus's theories were supported by stronger evidence, like the unusual seeds, tree trunks, handmade objects, and even (as some say) the bodies of drowned natives—Amerindians—that had drifted over, carried by the Gulf Stream, and overlooked by sharks.

Whilst Columbus was bestirring himself to find Asia across the Atlantic, a sea pilot, JOHN CABOT (Zuan Cabota)—Genoese by birth, but a naturalized subject of Venice—came to England and offered himself to King Henry VII as a discoverer of new lands across the ocean. At first he was employed at Copenhagen to settle fishery quarrels about Iceland, and probably Cabota, or Cabot, visited Iceland in King Henry's service, and there heard of the Icelandic colonies on the other side of the Atlantic, only recently abandoned.

While Columbus was busy trying to reach Asia across the Atlantic, a sea pilot, JOHN CABOT (Zuan Cabota)—born in Genoa but a naturalized citizen of Venice—arrived in England and presented himself to King Henry VII as a discoverer of new lands across the ocean. Initially, he was hired in Copenhagen to resolve fishing disputes regarding Iceland, and it’s likely that Cabota, or Cabot, visited Iceland while serving King Henry and learned about the Icelandic colonies on the other side of the Atlantic, which had only recently been abandoned.

In 1496 King Henry VII provided money to cover some of the expense of a voyage of discovery to search for the rumoured island across the ocean. The people of Bristol were ordered to assist John Cabot, and by them he was furnished with a small sailing ship, the Matthew, and a crew of fifteen mariners. Cabot, with his two sons, Luis and Sancio, sailed for Ireland and the unknown West in May, 1497, and, after a sea voyage quite as wonderful as that of Columbus, reached the coast of Cape Breton Island (or "the New Isle", as it was first named[6]) on June 24, 1497. They found "the land excellent, and the climate temperate". The sea was so full of fish along these coasts that the mariners opined (truly) that henceforth Bristol need not trouble about the Iceland trade. Here along this "new isle" were the predestined fisheries of Britain.[7]

In 1496, King Henry VII funded part of a discovery voyage to look for the rumored island across the ocean. The people of Bristol were instructed to help John Cabot, who was provided with a small sailing ship, the Matthew, and a crew of fifteen sailors. Cabot, along with his two sons, Luis and Sancio, set sail for Ireland and the unknown West in May 1497. After a sea voyage as remarkable as Columbus's, they reached the coast of Cape Breton Island (or "the New Isle," as it was initially named[6]) on June 24, 1497. They discovered "the land excellent, and the climate temperate." The waters along these coasts were so teeming with fish that the sailors confidently believed that Bristol would no longer need to rely on the Iceland trade. Here on this "new isle" were the destined fisheries of Britain.[7]

They encountered no inhabitants, though they found numerous traces of their existence in the form of snares, notched trees, and bone netting needles. John Cabot hoisted the English flag of St. George and the Venetian standard of St. Mark; then—perhaps after coasting a little along Nova Scotia—fearful that a longer stay might cause them to run short of provisions, he turned the prow of the Matthew eastward, and reached Bristol once more about August 6, and London on August 10, 1497, with his report to King Henry VII, who rewarded him with a donation of £10. He was further granted a pension of £20 a year (which he only drew for two years, probably because he died after returning from a second voyage to the North-American coast), and he received a renewal of his patent of discovery in February, 1498. In this patent it is evidently inferred that King Henry VII assumed a sovereignty over these distant regions because of John Cabot's hoisting of the English flag on "the new Isle" (Cape Breton Island) in the preceding year.

They didn't find any people, but they did see plenty of signs that they had been there, like traps, marked trees, and bone needles used for netting. John Cabot raised the English flag of St. George along with the Venetian flag of St. Mark; then—after maybe sailing a bit along Nova Scotia—worried that staying longer might make them run low on supplies, he turned the bow of the Matthew east and returned to Bristol around August 6, and then to London on August 10, 1497, with his report for King Henry VII, who rewarded him with £10. He was also granted a yearly pension of £20 (which he only collected for two years, likely because he died after coming back from a second trip to the North American coast), and he got his discovery patent renewed in February 1498. This patent clearly suggests that King Henry VII claimed sovereignty over these distant lands because of John Cabot raising the English flag on "the new Isle" (Cape Breton Island) the previous year.

The new expedition of 1498 was a relatively important affair. The king assisted to finance the ventures of the Bristol captains, and five of his ships formed part of the little fleet. It is probable that John Cabot was in command, and almost certain that his young son Sebastian was a passenger, possibly an assistant pilot. The course followed lay much farther to the north, and brought the little sailing vessels amongst the icebergs, ice floes, polar bears, and stormy seas of Greenland and Labrador. Commercially the voyage was a failure, almost a disaster. The ships returned singly, and after a considerable interval of time. Nevertheless, some of the king's loans were repaid to him; and in 1501 a regular chartered company was formed (perhaps at Bristol), with three Bristolians and three Portuguese as directors. Henry VII not only gave a royal patent to this association, but lent more money to enable it to explore and colonize these new lands across the western sea.

The new expedition of 1498 was quite significant. The king helped finance the efforts of the Bristol captains, and five of his ships were part of the small fleet. It’s likely that John Cabot was in charge, and almost certain that his young son Sebastian was on board, probably as an assistant pilot. The route taken was much further north, taking the small sailing vessels through icebergs, ice floes, polar bears, and stormy seas of Greenland and Labrador. Commercially, the voyage was a failure, nearly a disaster. The ships returned one by one after a considerable amount of time. However, some of the king's loans were repaid; and in 1501, a regular chartered company was established (possibly in Bristol), with three directors from Bristol and three from Portugal. Henry VII not only granted a royal patent to this association but also lent more money to help it explore and settle these new lands across the western sea.

There can be little doubt that between 1498 and 1505 these Bristol ships, directed by Italian, English, and Portuguese pilots, first revealed to the civilized world of western Europe the coasts of Newfoundland, Cape Breton Island, Nova Scotia, Massachusetts, and Delaware. They must have got as far south as the State of Delaware (according to Sebastian Cabot, their southern limit was lat. 38°), because in 1505 they were able to bring back parrots ("popyngays"), as well as hawks and lynxes ("catts of the mountaigne"), for the delectation of King Henry; and parrots even at that period could not have been obtained from farther north than the latitude of New York.[8]

There’s no doubt that between 1498 and 1505, these Bristol ships, led by Italian, English, and Portuguese pilots, were the first to show the civilized world of Western Europe the coasts of Newfoundland, Cape Breton Island, Nova Scotia, Massachusetts, and Delaware. They must have traveled as far south as Delaware (according to Sebastian Cabot, their southern limit was lat. 38°) because in 1505, they managed to bring back parrots ("popyngays"), hawks, and lynxes ("catts of the mountaigne") for King Henry's enjoyment; and even back then, parrots couldn’t have been found any farther north than the latitude of New York.[8]

But after 1505 English interest in "the Newe founde launde" and the "Newe Isle" languished; the exploration of North America was taken up and carried farther by Portuguese, Bretons and Normans of France, Italians, and Spaniards.[9] It revived again under Henry VIII, owing to the irresistible attraction of the Newfoundland fisheries and the knowledge that the ships from France were returning every autumn with great supplies of fish cured and salted; for an adequate supply of salt fish was becoming a matter of great importance to the markets of western Europe. In 1527 Henry VIII sent two ships under the command of John Rut to explore the North-American coast, and Captain Rut seems to have reached the Straits of Belle Isle between Newfoundland and Labrador (then blocked with ice so that he took them for a bay), and afterwards to have passed along the east coast of Newfoundland—already much frequented by the Bretons, Normans, and Portuguese—and to have stopped at the harbour of St. John's, thence sailing as far south as Massachusetts.

But after 1505, interest in "the New Found Land" and the "New Isle" faded in England; the exploration of North America was taken over and advanced by the Portuguese, Bretons, Normans from France, Italians, and Spaniards.[9] It picked up again under Henry VIII, driven by the irresistible appeal of the Newfoundland fisheries and the realization that ships from France returned every autumn with large supplies of cured and salted fish; an adequate supply of salt fish was becoming very important for the markets of Western Europe. In 1527, Henry VIII sent two ships led by John Rut to explore the North American coast, and Captain Rut seems to have reached the Straits of Belle Isle between Newfoundland and Labrador (which was then blocked with ice, so he mistook it for a bay), and later to have traveled along the east coast of Newfoundland—already busy with Bretons, Normans, and Portuguese—and to have stopped at the harbor of St. John's, then sailing as far south as Massachusetts.

The Portuguese monarchy had begun to take possession of the Azores archipelago from the year 1432. These islands were probably known to the Phoenicians, and even to the Arabs of the Middle Ages; between the fourteenth and fifteenth centuries they had been rediscovered by Catalans, Genoese, Flemings, and Portuguese; and after 1444 the Azores began to prove very useful to the sea adventurers of this wonderful fifteenth century, as they became a shelter and a place of call for fresh water and provisions almost in the middle of the Atlantic, 800 to 1000 miles due west of Portugal. Portuguese vessels sailed northwards from the Azores in search of fishing grounds, and thus reached Iceland, which they called Terra do Bacalhao.[10] They may even before Cabot have visited in an unrecorded fashion the wonderful banks of Newfoundland—an immense area of shallow sea swarming with codfish.

The Portuguese monarchy started claiming the Azores archipelago in 1432. These islands were likely known to the Phoenicians and even to the Arabs during the Middle Ages; between the 14th and 15th centuries, they were re-discovered by Catalans, Genoese, Flemings, and Portuguese. After 1444, the Azores became very important for the sea adventurers of this remarkable 15th century, serving as a refuge and a stop for fresh water and supplies, located almost in the middle of the Atlantic, 800 to 1000 miles west of Portugal. Portuguese ships sailed north from the Azores in search of fishing grounds and reached Iceland, which they named Terra do Bacalhao.[10] They may have even visited the rich banks of Newfoundland before Cabot, possibly without any records, an enormous area of shallow waters teeming with codfish.

As soon as the news of the Cabot voyages reached the King of Portugal he arranged to send an expedition of discovery to the far north-west, perhaps to find a northern sea route to Eastern Asia. He gave the command to Gaspar Corte-Real, a Portuguese noble connected through family property with the Azores. Starting from the Azores in the summer of 1500, Corte-Real discovered Newfoundland, and called it "Terra Verde" from its dense woods of fir trees, which are now being churned into wood pulp to make paper for British books and newspapers. He then sailed along the coast of Labrador,[11] and thence crossed over to Greenland, the southern half of which he mapped with fair accuracy. His records of this voyage take particular note of the great icebergs off the coast of Greenland. His men were surprised to find that sea water frozen becomes perfectly fresh—all the salt is left out in the process. So that his two ships could supply themselves with fresh water of the purest, by hacking ice from the masses floating in these Greenland summer seas. The next year he started again, but on a more westerly course. His two ships reached the coasts of New Jersey and Massachusetts, and sailed north once more to Labrador. They captured a number of Amerindian aborigines, but only one of the two ships (with seven of these savages on board) reached Portugal; Gaspar Corte-Real was never heard of again. His brother Miguel went out in search of him, but he likewise disappeared without a trace.

As soon as the news of the Cabot voyages reached the King of Portugal, he decided to send an exploratory expedition to the far north-west, possibly to find a northern sea route to Eastern Asia. He gave command to Gaspar Corte-Real, a Portuguese noble connected through family property with the Azores. Starting from the Azores in the summer of 1500, Corte-Real discovered Newfoundland and named it "Terra Verde" because of its dense fir tree forests, which are now being turned into wood pulp to make paper for British books and newspapers. He then sailed along the coast of Labrador,[11] and crossed over to Greenland, the southern half of which he mapped fairly accurately. His records from this voyage particularly note the large icebergs off the coast of Greenland. His crew was surprised to find that sea water, when frozen, becomes perfectly fresh—all the salt is left out during the process. This allowed his two ships to gather the purest fresh water by hacking ice from the massive chunks floating in the summer seas of Greenland. The following year, he set out again, but on a more westerly route. His two ships reached the coasts of New Jersey and Massachusetts and then sailed north again to Labrador. They captured several Native American aborigines, but only one of the two ships (with seven of these captives on board) made it back to Portugal; Gaspar Corte-Real was never heard from again. His brother Miguel went out in search of him, but he also vanished without a trace.

Nevertheless these Portuguese expeditions to North America have left ineffaceable traces in the geography of the Newfoundland coast, of which (under the name of Terra Nova[12]) the governorship was made hereditary in the Corte-Real family. Cape Race for example—the most prominent point of the island—is really the Portuguese Cabo Raso—the bare or "shaved" cape—and this was by the Spaniards regarded as the westernmost limit of Portuguese sovereignty in that direction. For the Spaniards were by no means pleased at the intrusion of other nations into a New World which they desired to monopolize entirely for the Spanish Crown. They did not so much mind sharing it, along the line agreed upon in the Treaty of Tordesillas, with the Portuguese, but the ingress of the English and French infuriated them. The Basque people of the north-east corner of Spain were a hardy seafaring folk, especially bold in the pursuit of whales in the Bay of Biscay, and eager to take a share in the salt-fish trade. This desire took them in the fourteenth and fifteenth centuries to Ireland and Iceland. They began to fish off the Newfoundland coasts perhaps as early as 1525. About this time also the Emperor Charles V, King of Spain, having through one great Portuguese sea captain—Magalhães (Magellan)—discovered the passage from Atlantic to Pacific across the extremity of South America, thought by employing another Portuguese—Estevão Gomez—to find a similar sea route through North America, which would prove a short cut from Europe to China. This was the famous "North-west Passage" the search for which drew so many great and brave adventurers into the Arctic sea of America between 1500 and 1853, to be revealed at last by our fellow countrymen, but to prove useless to navigation on account of the enormous accumulation of ice.

Nevertheless, these Portuguese expeditions to North America have left lasting marks on the geography of the Newfoundland coast, of which (under the name of Terra Nova[12]) the governorship was made hereditary in the Corte-Real family. Cape Race, for example—the most prominent point of the island—is actually the Portuguese Cabo Raso—the bare or "shaved" cape—and this was viewed by the Spaniards as the westernmost boundary of Portuguese territory in that direction. The Spaniards were definitely not happy about other nations intruding into a New World they wanted to monopolize entirely for the Spanish Crown. They didn’t mind sharing it along the line set out in the Treaty of Tordesillas with the Portuguese, but the arrival of the English and French drove them crazy. The Basque people from the northeast corner of Spain were a tough seafaring group, especially daring in the pursuit of whales in the Bay of Biscay, and eager to get involved in the salt-fish trade. This ambition led them to Ireland and Iceland during the fourteenth and fifteenth centuries. They began fishing off the Newfoundland coasts as early as 1525. Around this time, Emperor Charles V, King of Spain, having discovered the route from the Atlantic to the Pacific through South America via a notable Portuguese sea captain—Magalhães (Magellan)—thought to use another Portuguese—Estevão Gomez—to find a similar sea route through North America, which would serve as a shortcut from Europe to China. This was the famous "North-west Passage," the search for which attracted many brave adventurers into the Arctic seas of America between 1500 and 1853, ultimately revealed by our fellow countrymen, but proved useless for navigation due to the massive buildup of ice.

Gomez left Corunna in the winter of 1524-5, and reached the North-American coast somewhere about Florida. He probably only began to investigate closely after he passed into the broad gulf of Maine, between Cape Cod and Nova Scotia. Here he sighted from the sea the lofty mountains of New Hampshire, and steered for the mouth of the Penobscot River (which he named the River of Deer), a title which sticks to the locality—in Deer Island—at the present day. But this being no opening of a broad strait, he passed on into the Bay of Fundy (from Portuguese word, Fundo, the bottom of a sack or passage), explored its two terminal gulfs, then returned along the coast of Nova Scotia,[13] past Cape Sable, and so to the "gut" or Canal of Canso. Gomez realized that Cape Breton was an island (we now know that it is two islands separated by a narrow watercourse), but thought that Cabot Strait was a great bay, and guessed nothing of the Gulf of St. Lawrence, and the chance of securing for Spain the possession of this mighty waterway into the heart of North America.

Gomez left Corunna in the winter of 1524-5 and reached the North American coast somewhere around Florida. He likely only started to explore in detail after entering the wide Gulf of Maine, between Cape Cod and Nova Scotia. From the sea, he saw the tall mountains of New Hampshire and headed towards the mouth of the Penobscot River (which he renamed the River of Deer), a name that still belongs to the area—in Deer Island—today. However, since this wasn’t an entry to a wide strait, he continued into the Bay of Fundy (from the Portuguese word, Fundo, meaning the bottom of a sack or passage), explored its two ending gulfs, and then returned along the coast of Nova Scotia,[13] past Cape Sable, and then to the "gut" or Canal of Canso. Gomez realized that Cape Breton was an island (which we now know is actually two islands separated by a narrow waterway), but he thought Cabot Strait was a large bay and had no idea about the Gulf of St. Lawrence and the opportunity to secure for Spain access to this vast waterway into the heart of North America.

From Cape North he crossed over to the south coast of Newfoundland, and followed this more or less till he came to Cape Race. Newfoundland was a "very cold and savage land", and Gomez decided it was no use prosecuting any farther his enquiry as to a water passage across North America, because, if it existed, it must lie in latitudes of frozen sea and be unnavigable.

From Cape North, he traveled to the south coast of Newfoundland and followed it more or less until he reached Cape Race. Newfoundland was a "very cold and harsh land," and Gomez decided it wasn't worth continuing his search for a water passage across North America because, if it existed, it would be in frozen seas and impossible to navigate.

At different places along the east coast of North America he kidnapped natives, and eventually returned to Spain (via Florida and Cuba) with a cargo of Amerindian slaves.

At various locations along the east coast of North America, he abducted natives and eventually returned to Spain (through Florida and Cuba) with a load of Amerindian slaves.

He had been preceded, by seven or eight months, in his explorations along the same coast by GIOVANNI DA VERRAZANO, a native of Florence, who as a navigator and explorer had visited the East, and had associated himself a good deal with the shipowners of Dieppe. Ever since the issue of Cabot's voyages was known—at any rate from 1504—ships from Brittany and Normandy had made their way to Cape Breton Island and Newfoundland for the cod fisheries. In 1508 a Norman named Aubert was sent out by Jean Ango—a great merchant of Dieppe of that day—to found a colony in Newfoundland. Aubert failed to do this, but he captured and brought away at least seven of the natives, no doubt of the Beothik tribe, from Newfoundland to Rouen, with their canoe, clothing, and weapons. A good many ships also went out from La Rochelle on the west coast of France, and took part in the fishing off the coast of Newfoundland: together with the ships of Brittany and Dieppe there may have been a French fishing fleet of seventy to eighty ships plying every summer season between France, Newfoundland, and Cape Breton. So that when "John from Verrazano" offered his services to Francis I to make discoveries across the ocean, which should become possessions of the French Crown, he was quickly provided with the requisite funds and ships.

He was preceded, by seven or eight months, in his explorations along the same coast by GIOVANNI DA VERRAZANO, a Florentine who, as a navigator and explorer, had visited the East and worked closely with the shipowners of Dieppe. Since the news of Cabot's voyages spread—definitely from 1504—ships from Brittany and Normandy had traveled to Cape Breton Island and Newfoundland for cod fishing. In 1508, a Norman named Aubert was sent out by Jean Ango—a prominent merchant from Dieppe at the time—to establish a colony in Newfoundland. Aubert didn't succeed in this, but he did capture and bring back at least seven natives, likely from the Beothik tribe, from Newfoundland to Rouen, along with their canoe, clothing, and weapons. Many ships also left La Rochelle on the west coast of France and participated in fishing off the coast of Newfoundland; combined with the ships from Brittany and Dieppe, there may have been a French fishing fleet of seventy to eighty ships operating every summer between France, Newfoundland, and Cape Breton. So when "John from Verrazano" offered his services to Francis I to explore new lands across the ocean for the French Crown, he was quickly supplied with the necessary funds and ships.

Verrazano started on the 17th of January, 1524, for the coast of North America, but I shall say little about his expedition here, because it resulted chiefly in the discovery and mapping of what is now the east coast of the United States. He reached as far as the south coast of Newfoundland, it is true; he also gave the names of Nova Gallia and Francesca to the coast regions of eastern North America, and distinctly intended to take possession of these on behalf of the French Crown. But his work in this direction did not lead directly to the creation of the French colony of Canada, because, when he returned from America, Francis I was at war with Spain, and could pay no attention to Verrazano's projects. His voyage is worth recording in the present volume only for these two reasons: he certainly put it into the minds of French people that they might found an empire in North America; and he inspired geographers for another hundred years with the false idea that the great North American Continent had a very narrow waist, like the Isthmus of Panama, and that the Pacific Ocean covered the greater part of what is now called the United States. This mistake arose from his looking across the narrow belts or peninsulas of sand in North Carolina and Virginia, and seeing vast stretches of open water to the west. These were found, a hundred years afterwards, to be merely large shallow lagoons of sea water, but Verrazano thought they were an extension of the Pacific Ocean.

Verrazano set out on January 17, 1524, to explore the coast of North America, but I won't go into detail about his expedition here, as it mainly resulted in the discovery and mapping of what we now know as the east coast of the United States. He did reach as far as the south coast of Newfoundland; he also named the coastal regions of eastern North America Nova Gallia and Francesca, clearly intending to claim them for the French Crown. However, his efforts in this regard did not lead directly to the establishment of the French colony in Canada because, upon his return from America, Francis I was engaged in a war with Spain and couldn’t focus on Verrazano's plans. His voyage is significant for two main reasons: it sparked the idea among the French that they could create an empire in North America, and it misled geographers for another hundred years into believing that the North American continent had a very narrow middle section, similar to the Isthmus of Panama, and that the Pacific Ocean dominated much of what is now the United States. This misconception came from his observation of the narrow stretches or peninsulas of sand in North Carolina and Virginia, where he saw vast expanses of open water to the west. These were later discovered, a hundred years down the line, to be merely large shallow lagoons of seawater, but Verrazano thought they were part of the Pacific Ocean.

Nevertheless, Verrazano's voyage developed into the French colonization of Canada, just as Cabot drew the British to Newfoundland, Columbus the Spaniards to Central and South America, and Amerigo Vespucci showed the Portuguese the way to Brazil. The modern nations of western Europe owe the inception of their great colonies in America to four Italians.

Nevertheless, Verrazano's journey led to the French colonization of Canada, just as Cabot attracted the British to Newfoundland, Columbus brought the Spaniards to Central and South America, and Amerigo Vespucci guided the Portuguese to Brazil. The modern countries of Western Europe owe the beginnings of their significant colonies in America to four Italians.


1 This is a convenient name for the race formerly called "American Indian". They are not Indians (i.e. natives of India), and they are not the only Americans, since there are now about 110,000,000 white Americans of European origin and 24,000,000 negroes and negroids. The total approximate "Amerindian" or aboriginal population of the New World at the present day is 16,000,000, of whom about 111,000 live in the Canadian Dominion, and 300,000 in the United States, the remainder in Central and South America.

1 This is a convenient name for the race formerly called "American Indian." They are not Indians (i.e., natives of India), and they are not the only Americans, since there are currently about 110,000,000 white Americans of European descent and 24,000,000 Black Americans. The total approximate "Amerindian" or indigenous population of the New World today is 16,000,000, of whom about 111,000 live in Canada and 300,000 in the United States, with the rest located in Central and South America.

2 It is doubtful whether actual masts and sails were known in America till the coming of Europeans, though the ancient Peruvians are said to have used mat sails in their canoes. But the northern Amerindians had got as far as placing bushes or branches of fir trees upright in their canoes to catch the force of the wind.

2 It's uncertain if real masts and sails were known in America before Europeans arrived, although it's said that the ancient Peruvians used mat sails in their canoes. However, the northern Native Americans had progressed to putting up bushes or fir tree branches in their canoes to harness the wind.

3 The grapes and vines so often alluded to by the early explorers of North America ripened, according to the species, between August and October. They belong to the same genus—Vitis—as that of the grape vines of the Old World, but they were quite distinct in species. Nowadays they are known as the Fox Grapes (Vitis vulpina), the Frost Grape (V. cordifolia), the V. aestivalis, the V. labruska, &c. The fruit of the Fox Grape is dark purple, with a very dusky skin and a musky flavour. The Frost Grape has a very small berry, which is black or leaden-blue when covered with bloom. It is very acid to the taste, but from all these grapes it is easy to make a delicious, refreshing drink. Champlain, however, says that the wild grapes were often quite large in size, and his men found them delicious to eat.

3 The grapes and vines frequently mentioned by the early explorers of North America ripened, depending on the species, between August and October. They belong to the same genus—Vitis—as the grapevines of the Old World, but they are quite different species. Today, they are known as the Fox Grapes (Vitis vulpina), the Frost Grape (V. cordifolia), the V. aestivalis, the V. labruska, etc. The fruit of the Fox Grape is dark purple, with a very dark skin and a musky flavor. The Frost Grape has a very small berry that is black or lead-blue when covered with bloom. It is very tart to taste, but from all these grapes, it is easy to make a delicious, refreshing drink. However, Champlain notes that the wild grapes were often quite large and that his men found them tasty to eat.

4 Perhaps from the Eastern Eskimo national name Karalit.

4 Maybe it comes from the Eastern Eskimo national name Karalit.

5 Antonio Zeno served as pilot to Earl Sinclair of the Faeroe Islands and of Roslyn, a Norman-Scottish nobleman who owed joint fealty to the kings of Norway and Scotland. Sinclair was so impressed with the stories of a "Newland" beyond Greenland that he sailed to find it about 1390, but only reached Greenland.

5 Antonio Zeno was the pilot for Earl Sinclair of the Faeroe Islands and Roslyn, a Norman-Scottish nobleman who owed loyalty to both the kings of Norway and Scotland. Sinclair was so intrigued by tales of a "Newland" beyond Greenland that he set sail to find it around 1390, but only made it to Greenland.

6 Cape Breton was not then, or for nearly two hundred years afterwards, known to be an island. It was thought to be part of the "island" (peninsula) of what we now call Nova Scotia, and the whole of this region which advances so prominently into the Atlantic was believed to be at first the great unknown "New Island" of Irish and English legends—legends based on the Norse discoveries of the eleventh century. Cape Breton was thus named by the Breton seaman who came thither soon after the Cabot expeditions to fish for cod. This large island is separated from Nova Scotia by the Gut of Canso, a strait no broader than a river.

6 Cape Breton wasn’t recognized as an island for almost two hundred years after that. People thought it was part of the "island" (peninsula) of what we now call Nova Scotia, and this whole area, which extends so prominently into the Atlantic, was initially believed to be the great unknown "New Island" of Irish and English legends—legends inspired by the Norse discoveries of the eleventh century. Cape Breton was named by the Breton sailor who arrived there shortly after the Cabot expeditions to fish for cod. This large island is separated from Nova Scotia by the Gut of Canso, a strait that's no wider than a river.

7 Dr. S.E. DAWSON (The St. Lawrence Basin) says of this voyage: "When the forest wilderness of Cape Breton listened to the voices of Cabot's little company (of Bristol mariners) it was the first faint whisper of the mighty flood of English speech which was destined to overflow the continent to the shores of another ocean...."

7 Dr. S.E. DAWSON (The St. Lawrence Basin) talks about this voyage: "When the wild forests of Cape Breton heard the voices of Cabot's small group of sailors from Bristol, it was the first quiet hint of the huge wave of English language that was meant to spread across the continent to the shores of another ocean...."

8 Almost certainly this was Conurus carolinensis, a green and orange parrakeet still found in the south-eastern States of North America, but formerly met with as far north as New York and Boston.

8 This was almost definitely Conurus carolinensis, a green and orange parakeet still found in the southeastern states of North America, but that used to be seen as far north as New York and Boston.

9 The name America probably appears for the first time in English print in the old play or masque the Four Elements, which was published about 1518. In a review of the geography of the Earth, as known at that period, a description is given of this vast New World across the Ocean: "But these new landys found lately, been called America, because only Americus did find them first". Americus was a Florentine bank clerk—Amerigo Vespucci—at Seville who gave up the counting-house for adventure, sailed with a Spanish captain to the West Indies and the mainland of Venezuela (off which he notes that he met an English sailing vessel, and this as early as 1499!), and then joined the first exploring voyage of the Portuguese to Brazil. He returned to Europe, and in a letter to a fellow countryman at Paris, written in the late autumn of 1502, he claimed to have discovered a New World across the Ocean. His clear statement about what was really the South American Continent aroused so much enthusiasm in civilized Europe that five years afterwards the New World was called after him by a German printer (Walzmüller) at the little Alsatian University of St. Dié. By 1518 the English writers and mariners were probably aware that the discoveries of Cabot, Columbus, and the Portuguese indicated the extension of "America" from the Arctic to the Antarctic, but not till about 1553 did the scholars and adventurers of England show themselves fully alive to the gigantic importance of this New World. Between 1530 and 1553 their attention was distracted from geography and over-sea adventure by the religious troubles of the Reformation.

9 The name America likely first appeared in English print in the old play or masque Four Elements, published around 1518. In a review of the Earth's geography as known at that time, there's a description of this vast New World across the ocean: "But these new lands recently found have been called America, because only Americus discovered them first." Americus was a Florentine bank clerk—Amerigo Vespucci—who lived in Seville. He abandoned banking for adventure, sailing with a Spanish captain to the West Indies and the mainland of Venezuela (where he noted meeting an English sailing vessel as early as 1499!), and then joined the first Portuguese exploration to Brazil. He returned to Europe and, in a letter to a fellow countryman in Paris written in late autumn 1502, claimed to have discovered a New World across the ocean. His clear description of what was actually the South American continent excited so much interest in civilized Europe that, five years later, the New World was named after him by a German printer (Walzmüller) at the small Alsatian University of St. Dié. By 1518, English writers and sailors were likely aware that the discoveries of Cabot, Columbus, and the Portuguese indicated the extension of "America" from the Arctic to the Antarctic, but it wasn't until around 1553 that the scholars and adventurers of England fully recognized the immense significance of this New World. Between 1530 and 1553, their attention was diverted from geography and overseas adventure by the religious conflicts of the Reformation.

10 Bacalhao in Portuguese (and a similar word in Spanish, old French, and Italian) means dried, salted fish. It comes from a Latin word meaning "a small stick", because the fish were split open and held up flat to dry by means of a cross or framework of small sticks, the Norse name "stokfiske" meant the same: stockfish or stickfish.

10 Bacalhao in Portuguese (and a similar word in Spanish, old French, and Italian) refers to dried, salted fish. It originates from a Latin word meaning "a small stick," because the fish were split open and laid flat to dry using a cross or framework of small sticks. The Norse term "stokfiske" had the same meaning: stockfish or stickfish.

11 Labrador (Lavrador in Portuguese) means a labourer, a serf. The Portuguese are supposed to have brought some Red Indians from this coast to be sold as slaves.

11 Labrador (Lavrador in Portuguese) means a worker, a servant. It’s believed that the Portuguese brought some Native Americans from this coast to sell as slaves.

12 Corte-Real's name of Terra Verde ("Greenland") was soon dropped in favour of the older English name "New Land" (Newfoundland, Terra Nova). This was at once adopted by the French seamen as "Terre Neuve".

12 Corte-Real's name for Terra Verde ("Greenland") was quickly replaced by the older English name "New Land" (Newfoundland, Terra Nova). This was immediately adopted by French sailors as "Terre Neuve".

13 The name Nova Scotia was not applied to this peninsula until 1621, by the British Government. It was at first included with New Brunswick under the Spanish name of Norumbega, and after 1603 was called by the French "Acadie".

13 The name Nova Scotia wasn't given to this peninsula until 1621 by the British Government. Initially, it was grouped with New Brunswick under the Spanish name Norumbega, and after 1603, the French referred to it as "Acadie."

[__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]






CHAPTER II

Jacques Cartier

Verrazano and Gomez, and probably the English captain, John Rut, had all sought for the opening of a strait of salt water—like Magellan's Straits in the far south—which should lead them through the great North-American continent to the regions of China and Japan. Yet in some incomprehensible way they overlooked the two broad passages to the north and south of Newfoundland—the Straits of Belle Isle and of Cabot—which would at any rate lead them into the vast Gulf of St. Lawrence, and thence to the St. Lawrence River and the Great Lakes; a natural system of waterways connected each with the other and all with the Mississippi and Missouri, the Arctic Ocean, and Hudson's Bay; nay, more, with the North Pacific also; so that with a few "portages", or carryings of canoes from one watershed to another, a traveller of any enterprise, accompanied by a sturdy crew, can cross the broad continent of North America at its broadest from sea to sea without much walking.

Verrazano, Gomez, and likely the English captain, John Rut, had all been looking for a saltwater strait—similar to Magellan's Straits in the far south—that would take them through the vast North American continent to the lands of China and Japan. Yet, in a puzzling way, they missed the two wide passages to the north and south of Newfoundland—the Straits of Belle Isle and Cabot—which would at least lead them into the vast Gulf of St. Lawrence, and from there to the St. Lawrence River and the Great Lakes; a natural system of waterways that connected everything, including the Mississippi and Missouri rivers, the Arctic Ocean, and Hudson's Bay; and even further, to the North Pacific. So, with just a few "portages," or short carries of canoes from one watershed to another, a determined traveler with a solid crew could cross the broadest part of North America from sea to sea without needing to walk much.

Estevão Gomez noticed Cabot Straits between Cape Breton and Newfoundland, but thought them only a very deep bay. John Rut and others discerned the Straits of Belle Isle as a wide recess in the coast rather than the mouth of a channel leading far inland. And yet, after thirty years of Breton, English, and Portuguese fishing operations in these waters, there must have been glimmerings of the existence of the great Gulf of St. Lawrence behind Newfoundland: and JACQUES CARTIER (or Quartier), who had probably made already one voyage to Newfoundland (besides a visit to Brazil), suspected that between Newfoundland and Labrador there lay the opening of the great sea passage "leading to China". He proposed himself to Philippe de Chabot, the Admiral of France, as the leader of a new French adventure to find the North-west Passage, was accepted by King Francis, and at the age of forty-three years set out, with two ships, from St. Malo in Brittany, on April 20, 1534, ten years after Verrazano's voyage, and reached the coast of Newfoundland after a voyage of only twenty days. As he sailed northwards, past the deeply indented fiords and bays of eastern Newfoundland (the shores of which were still hugged by the winter ice), he and his men were much impressed with the incredible numbers of the sea fowl settled for nesting purposes on the rocky islands, especially on Funk Island.[1] These birds were guillemots, puffins, great auks,[2] gannets (called by Cartier margaulx), and probably gulls and eider duck. To his sailors—always hungry and partly fed on salted provisions, as seamen were down to a few years ago—this inexhaustible supply of fresh food was a source of great enjoyment. They were indifferent, no doubt, to the fishy flavour of the auks and the guillemots, and only noticed that they were splendidly fat. Moreover, the birds attracted Polar bears "as large as cows and as white as swans". The bears would swim off from the shore to the islands (unless they could reach them by crossing the ice), and the sailors occasionally killed the bears and ate their flesh, which they compared in excellence and taste to veal.

Estevão Gomez saw Cabot Straits between Cape Breton and Newfoundland but thought it was just a very deep bay. John Rut and others recognized the Straits of Belle Isle as a wide indentation in the coast rather than the entrance to a channel that went far inland. Yet, after thirty years of fishing by Breton, English, and Portuguese crews in these waters, there must have been hints about the existence of the vast Gulf of St. Lawrence behind Newfoundland. JACQUES CARTIER (or Quartier), who probably had already made one trip to Newfoundland (besides a visit to Brazil), suspected that the great sea passage "leading to China" lay between Newfoundland and Labrador. He offered himself to Philippe de Chabot, the Admiral of France, to lead a new French expedition to find the Northwest Passage. King Francis accepted him, and at the age of forty-three, he set out from St. Malo in Brittany on April 20, 1534, ten years after Verrazano’s voyage. He reached the coast of Newfoundland after just twenty days at sea. As he sailed north past the deeply indented fjords and bays of eastern Newfoundland (whose shores were still lined with winter ice), he and his crew were very impressed by the incredible number of seabirds nesting on the rocky islands, especially Funk Island.[1] These birds included guillemots, puffins, great auks,[2] and gannets (which Cartier called margaulx), as well as probably gulls and eider ducks. To his sailors—who were always hungry and mostly ate salted provisions, as seamen had until a few years back—this endless supply of fresh food was a delight. They probably didn’t mind the fishy taste of the auks and guillemots; they only noticed how wonderfully fat they were. Additionally, the birds attracted polar bears "as large as cows and as white as swans." The bears would swim out from the shore to the islands (unless they could reach them by crossing the ice), and the sailors sometimes hunted the bears for meat, which they compared to veal in quality and taste.

Passing through the Straits of Belle Isle, Cartier's ships entered the Gulf of St. Lawrence. They had previously visited the adjoining coast of Labrador, and there had encountered their first "natives", members of some Algonkin tribe from Canada, who had come north for seal fishing (Cartier is clever enough to notice and describe their birch-bark canoes). After examining the west coast of Newfoundland, Cartier's ships sailed on past the Magdalen Islands (stopping every now and then off some islet to collect supplies of sea birds, for the rocky ground was covered with them as thickly as a meadow with grass).[3] He reached the north coast of Prince Edward Island, and this lovely country received from him an enthusiastic description. The pine trees, the junipers, yews, elms, poplars, ash, and willows, the beeches and the maples, made the forest not only full of delicious and stimulating odours, but lovely in its varied tints of green. In the natural meadows and forest clearings there were red and white currants, gooseberries, strawberries, raspberries, a vetch which produced edible peas, and a grass with a grain like rye. The forest abounded in pigeons, and the climate was pleasant and warm.

Passing through the Straits of Belle Isle, Cartier's ships entered the Gulf of St. Lawrence. They had previously visited the nearby coast of Labrador, where they met their first "natives," members of an Algonkin tribe from Canada who had come north to fish for seals (Cartier was sharp enough to notice and describe their birch-bark canoes). After exploring the west coast of Newfoundland, Cartier's ships continued past the Magdalen Islands, stopping now and then at some islets to gather supplies of seabirds, as the rocky ground was covered with them thickly, much like a meadow with grass.[3] He reached the north coast of Prince Edward Island, and he gave an enthusiastic description of this beautiful land. The pine trees, junipers, yews, elms, poplars, ash, and willows, along with the beeches and maples, made the forest not only rich in delicious and invigorating scents but also beautiful in its varied shades of green. In the natural meadows and forest clearings, there were red and white currants, gooseberries, strawberries, raspberries, a vetch that produced edible peas, and a grass with grains like rye. The forest was full of pigeons, and the climate was pleasant and warm.

Later on he coasted New Brunswick, and paused for a time over Chaleur Bay, hoping it might be the opening to the strait across the continent of which he was in search; but finding it was not, he continued northwards till he had almost rounded the Gaspé Peninsula, a course which would have led him straight away into the wonderful discovery of the St. Lawrence River, but that, being forced by bad weather into Gaspé Bay, and perhaps hindered by fog, instead of entering the St. Lawrence he sailed right across to Anticosti Island. After that, being baffled by bad weather and doubtful as to his resources lasting out, he decided to return to France through the Strait of Belle Isle.

Later, he sailed along the coast of New Brunswick and lingered for a while over Chaleur Bay, hoping it might be the entrance to the strait across the continent he was searching for. When he realized it wasn't, he continued north until he nearly completed the circumnavigation of the Gaspé Peninsula. This route would have taken him directly to the impressive St. Lawrence River, but due to bad weather pushing him into Gaspé Bay and possibly being held back by fog, instead of entering the St. Lawrence, he sailed straight over to Anticosti Island. After that, facing continued bad weather and uncertain about whether his supplies would last, he chose to head back to France via the Strait of Belle Isle.

So far he had failed to realize two of the most important things in the geography of this region: the broad southern entrance into the Gulf of St. Lawrence (subsequently called Cabot Strait), which separates Newfoundland on the north from Cape Breton Island on the south, and the broad entrance into the River St. Lawrence between Anticosti Island and the Gaspé Peninsula.

So far, he hadn’t grasped two of the most important aspects of the geography in this area: the wide southern entrance to the Gulf of St. Lawrence (later known as Cabot Strait), which separates Newfoundland to the north from Cape Breton Island to the south, and the large entrance to the St. Lawrence River between Anticosti Island and the Gaspé Peninsula.

Yet, whilst staying in Gaspé Bay, he had a very important meeting with Amerindian natives of the Huron-Iroquois stock, who had come down the River St. Lawrence from the neighbourhood of Quebec, fishing for mackerel. These bold, friendly people welcomed the French heartily, greeting them with songs and dances. But when they saw Cartier erect a great cross on the land at the entrance to Gaspé Bay (a cross bearing a shield with the arms of France and the letters "Vive le Roi de France"), they were ill at ease. It is certain that not one word could be understood in language between the two parties, for there were as yet no interpreters; but the Amerindians were probably shrewd enough to perceive that Cartier was making some claim on the land, and they explained by signs that they considered all this country belonged to themselves. Nevertheless, Cartier persuaded two youths, the sons of one of the chiefs, to go back with him to France on his ship, to learn the French language, to see what France looked like, and to return afterwards as interpreters. The boys, though they were practically kidnapped at first, were soon reconciled to going, especially when they were dressed in French clothes!

Yet, while staying in Gaspé Bay, he had a very important meeting with Amerindian natives from the Huron-Iroquois group, who had come down the St. Lawrence River from near Quebec to fish for mackerel. These bold, friendly people warmly welcomed the French, greeting them with songs and dances. However, when they saw Cartier set up a large cross on the land at the entrance to Gaspé Bay (a cross displaying a shield with the arms of France and the words "Vive le Roi de France"), they became uneasy. It’s clear that neither party could understand the other since there were no interpreters yet, but the Amerindians likely had enough insight to realize that Cartier was claiming the land. They indicated through gestures that they believed the entire area belonged to them. Nevertheless, Cartier convinced two young boys, the sons of one of the chiefs, to return with him to France on his ship to learn French, see what France was like, and then come back as interpreters. The boys, though initially practically kidnapped, soon warmed up to the idea, especially once they were dressed in French clothes!

Jacques Cartier
JACQUES CARTIER

When Cartier was on his way home he sailed in a north-easterly direction in such a way as to overlook the broad channel between the Gaspé Peninsula and Anticosti Island, but having rounded the easternmost extremity of that large island, he coasted along its northern shores until he caught sight of the opening of the Canadian channel to the west. He believed then that he had discovered the long-looked-for opening of the trans-continental passage, and sailed for France with his wonderful news.

When Cartier was heading home, he sailed northeast, navigating to overlook the wide channel between the Gaspé Peninsula and Anticosti Island. After rounding the eastern tip of that large island, he followed its northern shores until he spotted the entrance to the Canadian channel to the west. At that moment, he thought he had found the long-sought transcontinental passage and set sail for France with his exciting discovery.

On the 19th of May, 1535, Cartier started again from St. Malo with three ships, the biggest of which was only 120 tons, while the others were respectively 60 and 40 tons capacity. The crew consisted of about 112 persons, and in addition there were the two Indian youths who had been kidnapped on the previous voyage, and were now returning as interpreters. Instead, however, of reaching Newfoundland in twenty days, he spent five weeks crossing the Atlantic before he reached his rendezvous with the other ships at Blanc Sablon, on the south coast of Labrador; for the easy access to the Gulf of St. Lawrence through Cabot Strait (between Newfoundland and Cape Breton) was not yet realized. Once past Anticosti Island, the two Huron interpreters began to recognize the scenery.[4] They now explained to Cartier that he had entered the estuary of a vast river. This they said he had only to pursue in ships and boats and he would reach "Canada" (which was the name they gave to the district round about Quebec), and that beyond "Canada" no man had ever been known to reach the end of this great water; but, they added, it was fresh water, not salt, and this last piece of information much disheartened Cartier, who feared that he had not, after all, discovered the water route across North America to the Pacific Ocean. He therefore turned about and once more searched the opposite coast of Labrador most minutely, displaying, as he did so, a seamanship which was little else than marvellous, for it is a very dangerous coast, the seas are very stormy, and the look-out often hampered by a sudden rising of dense fog; there are islands and rocks (some of them almost hidden by the water) and sandbanks; but Cartier made this survey of southern Labrador without an accident.

On May 19, 1535, Cartier set off again from St. Malo with three ships; the largest was only 120 tons, while the others were 60 and 40 tons. The crew had around 112 people, plus two Indian youths who had been captured on the previous voyage and were now returning as interpreters. However, instead of reaching Newfoundland in twenty days, he took five weeks to cross the Atlantic before meeting up with the other ships at Blanc Sablon, on the south coast of Labrador. They didn’t yet realize that there was an easy route into the Gulf of St. Lawrence through Cabot Strait (between Newfoundland and Cape Breton). Once they passed Anticosti Island, the two Huron interpreters began to recognize the landscape. They told Cartier that he had entered the estuary of a vast river, and that if he continued on with his ships and boats, he would reach "Canada" (the name they used for the area around Quebec), and that beyond "Canada," no one had ever been known to reach the end of this great water. However, they added that it was fresh water, not salt, which greatly discouraged Cartier, who feared that he hadn't actually discovered a water route across North America to the Pacific Ocean. As a result, he turned around and began to thoroughly search the opposite coast of Labrador, demonstrating remarkable seamanship, as it is a very dangerous coastline with stormy seas and limited visibility due to sudden dense fog. There are islands and rocks (some almost submerged) and sandbanks, but Cartier managed to survey southern Labrador without any accidents.

At this period, some three hundred and seventy-five years ago, the northern coasts of the Gulf of St. Lawrence and of Anticosti Island swarmed with huge walruses, which were described by Cartier as sea horses that spent the night on land and the day in the water. They have long since been exterminated by the English and French seamen and settlers.

At this time, about three hundred and seventy-five years ago, the northern shores of the Gulf of St. Lawrence and Anticosti Island were filled with giant walruses, which Cartier described as sea horses that rested on land at night and spent the day in the water. They have long been wiped out by English and French sailors and settlers.

At last Cartier set sail for the south-west, intending to explore this wonderful river and to reach the kingdom of Canada. According to his understanding of the Amerindian interpreters, the waters of the St. Lawrence flowed through three great states: Saguenay, which was the mountainous Gaspé Peninsula and the opposite coast; Canada, Quebec and its neighbourhood; and Hochelaga, the region between Montreal and Lake Ontario. At the mouth of the Saguenay River, where Tadoussac is now situated, he encountered large numbers of white whales—the Beluga. These are really huge porpoises, allied to the narwhals, but without the narwhal's exaggerated tusk. When he reached the vicinity of the modern Quebec,[5] and his Amerindian interpreters found themselves at their actual home (for they were far away from home on a fishing expedition when he caught them in Gaspé Bay) there was great rejoicing; for they were able to tell their relations of the wonderful country to which they had been across the ocean. Cartier was delighted with the surroundings of "Canada" (Quebec), near which at that time was a large settlement (Stadacona) of Huron Indians under a chief named Donnacona. He decided to lay up his ships here for the winter, and to pursue the rest of his western explorations in his boats.

At last, Cartier set sail for the southwest, aiming to explore this amazing river and reach the kingdom of Canada. Based on what he understood from the Indigenous interpreters, the waters of the St. Lawrence ran through three major regions: Saguenay, which included the hilly Gaspé Peninsula and the opposite shore; Canada, which was Quebec and its surrounding area; and Hochelaga, the land between Montreal and Lake Ontario. At the mouth of the Saguenay River, where Tadoussac is now located, he encountered a large number of white whales—the Beluga. These are really large porpoises related to narwhals, but they lack the long tusk of the narwhal. When he arrived near present-day Quebec,[5] and his Indigenous interpreters found themselves back home (since they had been away on a fishing trip when Cartier captured them in Gaspé Bay), there was much celebration; they could share stories of the incredible land they had crossed the ocean to see. Cartier was thrilled with the area around "Canada" (Quebec), where there was a large settlement (Stadacona) of Huron Indians led by a chief named Donnacona. He decided to anchor his ships here for the winter and continue his western explorations using small boats.

But the Amerindians for some reason were not willing that he should go any farther, and attempted to scare him from his projects by arranging for three of their number to come down river in a canoe, dressed in dogs' skins, with their faces blackened, and with bisons' horns fastened to their heads. These devils pretended to take no notice of the French, but to die suddenly as they reached the shore, while the rest of the natives gave vent to howlings of despair and consternation. The three devils were pretending to have brought a message from a god to these Hurons of "Canada" that the country up river (Hochelaga) was so full of ice and snow that it would be death for anyone to go there.

But the Native Americans for some reason didn’t want him to go any further, and they tried to scare him off his plans by sending three of their people down the river in a canoe, dressed in dog skins, with their faces painted black and bison horns attached to their heads. These figures acted like they didn’t notice the French and pretended to suddenly drop dead when they reached the shore, while the other natives cried out in despair and panic. The three figures were pretending to bring a message from a god to these Hurons of "Canada" that the area further up the river (Hochelaga) was so covered in ice and snow that it would be deadly for anyone to go there.

However, this made little or no impression on Cartier; but he consented to leave a proportion of his party behind with the chief Donnacona as hostages, and then started up country in his boats with about seventy picked officers and men. On the 2nd of October, 1535, they reached the vicinity of the modern Montreal, the chief settlement of Hochelaga. The Huron town at the foot of the hills was circular in outline, surrounded by a stockade of three rows of upright tree trunks, which rose to its highest point in the middle, where the timbers of the inner and outward sides sloped to meet one another, the height of the central row being about 8 feet above the ground. All round the inside there was a platform or rampart on which were stored heavy stones to be hurled at any enemy who should attempt to scale the fence. The town was entered by only one doorway, and contained about fifty houses surrounding an open space whereon the towns-people made their bonfires. Each house was about 50 feet long by 12 to 15 feet wide. They were roofed with bark, and usually had attics which were storerooms for food. In the centre of each of these long houses there was a fireplace where the cooking for the whole of the house inhabitants was done. Each family had its own room, but each house probably contained five families. Almost the only furniture, except cooking pots, was mats on which the people sat and slept. The food of the people consisted, besides fish and the flesh of beavers and deer, of maize and beans. Cartier at once recognized the maize or Indian corn as the same grain ("a large millet") as that which he had seen in Brazil.

However, this had little effect on Cartier; still, he agreed to leave some of his party behind with the chief Donnacona as hostages and then set off up the river in his boats with about seventy selected officers and men. On October 2, 1535, they arrived near modern-day Montreal, the main settlement of Hochelaga. The Huron village at the base of the hills was circular in shape, surrounded by a stockade made of three rows of upright tree trunks, which peaked in the middle, where the inner and outer sides sloped to meet, with the central row about 8 feet high. Inside, there was a platform or rampart stocked with heavy stones to be thrown at any enemy trying to climb the fence. The town had just one entrance and included about fifty houses arranged around an open area where the villagers made bonfires. Each house was about 50 feet long and 12 to 15 feet wide. They were roofed with bark and typically had attics used as food storage. In the center of each long house was a fireplace for cooking for all the inhabitants. Each family had its own space, but each house likely housed five families. The only furniture, apart from cooking pots, were mats for sitting and sleeping. The people's diet included fish and the meat of beavers and deer, as well as maize and beans. Cartier immediately recognized maize or Indian corn as the same grain ("a large millet") he had seen in Brazil.

He gives a description of how they made the maize into bread (or rather "dampers", "ashcakes"); but as this is not altogether clear, it is better to combine it with Champlain's description, written a good many years later, but still at a time when the Hurons were unaffected by the white man's civilization. According to both Cartier and Champlain, the women pounded the corn to meal in a wooden mortar, and removed the bran by means of fans made of the bark of trees. From this meal they made bread, sometimes mixing with the meal the beans (Phaseolus vulgaris), which had been boiled and mashed. Or they would boil both Indian corn and beans into a thick soup, adding to the soup blueberries,[6] dried raspberries, or pieces of deer's fat. The meal derived from the corn and beans they would make into bread, baking it in the ashes.

He describes how they turned maize into bread (or rather "dampers," "ashcakes"); however, since this isn't entirely clear, it's better to combine it with Champlain's description, which was written many years later but still at a time when the Hurons were not influenced by white civilization. According to both Cartier and Champlain, women pounded the corn into meal using a wooden mortar and separated the bran with fans made from tree bark. From this meal, they made bread, sometimes mixing in beans (Phaseolus vulgaris) that had been boiled and mashed. Alternatively, they would boil both Indian corn and beans into a thick soup, adding blueberries,[6] dried raspberries, or pieces of deer fat. The meal from the corn and beans was used to make bread, which they baked in the ashes.

Or they would take the pounded Indian corn without removing the bran, and put two or three handfuls of it into an earthen pot full of water, stirring it from time to time, when it boiled, so that it might not adhere to the pot. To this was added a small quantity of fish, fresh or dry, according to the season, to give a flavour to the migane or porridge. When the dried fish was used the porridge smelt very badly in the nostrils of Europeans, but worst of all when the porridge was mixed with dried venison, which was sometimes nearly putrid! If fish was put into this porridge it was boiled whole in the mealy water, then taken out without any attempt to remove the fins, scales, or entrails, and the whole of the boiled fish was pounded up and put back into the porridge. Sometimes a great birch-bark "kettle" would be filled with water, fish, and meat, and red-hot stones be dropped in till it boiled. Then with a spoon they would collect from the surface the fat and oil arising from the fish or meat. This they afterwards mixed with the meal of roasted Indian corn, stirring it with this fat till they had made a thick soup. Sometimes, however, they were content to eat the young corn-cobs freshly roasted, which as a matter of fact (with a little salt) is one of the most delicious things in the world. Or they would take ears of Indian corn and bury them in wet mud, leaving them thus for two or three months; then the cobs would be removed and the rotted grain eaten with meat and fish, though it was all muddy and smelt horribly. Cartier also noticed that these Huron Indians had melons and pumpkins, and described their wampum or shell money.[7]

Or they would use the ground Indian corn without taking the bran out, putting two or three handfuls into a clay pot filled with water, stirring it occasionally as it boiled to keep it from sticking to the pot. They would add a small amount of fish, either fresh or dried depending on the season, to flavor the migane or porridge. When they used dried fish, the porridge smelled terrible to Europeans, but it was even worse when the porridge was mixed with dried venison, which sometimes was nearly rotten! If fish was added to the porridge, it was boiled whole in the starchy water, then taken out without trying to remove the fins, scales, or guts, and the whole boiled fish was smashed and put back into the porridge. Sometimes, they would fill a large birch-bark "kettle" with water, fish, and meat, dropping in red-hot stones until it boiled. Then, with a spoon, they would skim off the fat and oil that floated to the top from the fish or meat. They would mix this with the roasted Indian corn meal, stirring it with the fat until they made a thick soup. However, at times they were satisfied with just eating young corn-cobs fresh off the grill, which, with a little salt, is one of the most delicious things ever. Or they would take ears of Indian corn and bury them in wet mud, leaving them there for two or three months; then they would take out the cobs and eat the rotted grain with meat and fish, even though it was all muddy and smelled awful. Cartier also observed that these Huron Indians had melons and pumpkins and described their wampum or shell money.[7]

From the eminence on which the Huron city stood, Cartier obtained a splendid view of rivers and mountains and magnificent forests, and called the place then and there, in his Norman French, Mont Real, or Royal Eminence, a name which it will probably bear for all time, though the actual city of Montreal lies a few miles below.

From the high ground where the Huron city was located, Cartier got a breathtaking view of rivers, mountains, and beautiful forests. He named the place right then and there in his Norman French, Mont Real, or Royal Eminence. This name will likely stick for all time, even though the actual city of Montreal is a few miles down the river.

Montreal was the limit of Cartier's explorations on this journey. He returned thence to "Canada" or Stadacona, where his men built a fort armed with artillery, and where his ships were anchored. Here he had to stay from the middle of November, 1535, to the middle of April, 1536, his ships being shut in by the ice. The experiences of the French during these five months were mostly unhappy. At first Cartier gave himself up to the collecting of information. He noticed for the first time the smoking of tobacco,[8] and collected information about the products and features of "Canada". The Indians told him of great lakes in the far west, one of which was so vast that no man had seen the end of it. They told him that anyone travelling up the Richelieu River (as it was called sixty years later) would eventually reach a land in the south where in the winter there was no ice or snow, and where fruit and nut trees grew in abundance. Cartier thought that they were talking to him of Florida, but their geographical information can scarcely have stretched so far; they probably referred to the milder regions of New Jersey and Virginia, which would be reached by following southwards the valley of the Hudson and keeping to the lowlands of the eastern United States.

Montreal was the farthest point of Cartier's explorations on this journey. He returned to "Canada" or Stadacona, where his men built a fort equipped with artillery, and where his ships were anchored. He had to stay there from the middle of November 1535 to the middle of April 1536, as his ships were trapped by the ice. The experiences of the French during these five months were mostly unhappy. At first, Cartier focused on gathering information. He noticed for the first time the smoking of tobacco,[8] and collected details about the products and landscape of "Canada". The Indians told him about great lakes in the far west, one of which was so huge that no one had seen its edge. They said that anyone traveling up the Richelieu River (as it was called sixty years later) would eventually reach a land to the south where there was no ice or snow in winter, and where fruit and nut trees grew in abundance. Cartier thought they were talking about Florida, but their geographical knowledge probably didn't extend that far; they were likely referring to the milder regions of New Jersey and Virginia, which could be reached by following south along the Hudson Valley and sticking to the lowlands of the eastern United States.

As the winter set in with its customary Canadian severity the real trouble of the French began. They did not suffer from the cold, but they were dying of scurvy. This disease, from which the natives also suffered to some extent, was due to their eating nothing but salt or smoked provisions—forms of meat or fish. They lived, of course, shut up in the fort, and Cartier's fixed idea was to keep the Hurons from the knowledge of his misfortune, fearing lest, if they realized how the garrison was reduced, they might treacherously attack and massacre the rest; for in spite of the extravagant joy with which their arrival had been greeted, the Amerindians—notably the two interpreters who had been to France and returned—showed at intervals signs of disquiet and a longing to be rid of these mysterious white men, whose coming might involve the country in unknown misfortunes. In January and February, also, Donnacona and these two interpreters and many of the Huron men had been absent hunting in the forests, so that there was no one among the Amerindians to whom the French could turn for information regarding this strange disease. At last 25 out of the 112 who had left France were dead, and of the remainder only 10 men, including Cartier, were not grievously ill. Those who were living found it sometimes beyond their strength to bury the dead in the frozen ground, and simply placed their bodies in deep snow. Once or twice, when Cartier left the fort to go out to the ships, he met Domagaya, one of the two interpreters, and found that he also was suffering from this mysterious disease, though not nearly so badly as the French people. On the body of one young man who died of scurvy Cartier and his officers, shuddering, made investigations, opening the corpse and examining the organs to try and find the cause of death. This was on the afternoon of a day on which they had held a solemn service before a statue erected to the Virgin Mary on the shore opposite to the ships. All who were fit to walk went in procession from the fort to the statue, singing penitential psalms and the Litany and celebrating Mass.

As winter arrived with its typical intensity in Canada, the French faced serious trouble. They weren't struggling with the cold, but they were dying from scurvy. This illness, which some of the natives also experienced, came from their diet of only salt or smoked food—meat or fish. They remained confined in the fort, and Cartier was determined to keep the Hurons unaware of their troubles, fearing that if they understood how weakened the garrison was, they might secretly attack and kill the rest. Despite the exuberant welcome they had received, the Indigenous people—especially the two interpreters who had been to France and returned—occasionally showed signs of unease and a desire to be rid of these mysterious white men, who could bring unknown dangers to their land. In January and February, Donnacona, the two interpreters, and many of the Huron men had been away hunting in the forests, leaving the French without anyone among the Indigenous people to consult about this strange illness. Eventually, 25 of the 112 who had come from France had died, and of the survivors, only 10 men, including Cartier, were not seriously ill. Those who remained sometimes found it almost too difficult to bury the dead in the frozen ground and simply laid their bodies in deep snow. A couple of times, when Cartier left the fort to head to the ships, he encountered Domagaya, one of the interpreters, who was also suffering from this mysterious illness, although not nearly as severely as the French. On the body of a young man who died from scurvy, Cartier and his officers, trembling, conducted examinations, opening the corpse and inspecting the organs in an attempt to uncover the cause of death. This happened on the afternoon of a day when they had held a solemn service at a statue dedicated to the Virgin Mary on the shore across from the ships. Everyone who was able to walk participated in a procession from the fort to the statue, singing penitential psalms and the Litany and celebrating Mass.

Some days after this religious service Cartier met the interpreter, Domagaya, and to his surprise found him perfectly well and strong. He asked him for an explanation, and was told that the medicine which cured this disease was made from the leaves and bark of a tree called ameda.[9] Cartier then ventured to say that one of his servants was sick of this unknown disease, and Domagaya sent for two women, who taught the French people how to make an extract from the balsam fir for drinking, and how to apply the same liquid to the inflamed skin. The effect on the crews was miraculous. In six days all the sick were well and strong.

A few days after the religious service, Cartier ran into the interpreter, Domagaya, and was surprised to see him looking perfectly healthy and strong. He asked for an explanation, and Domagaya told him that the medicine that cured this illness was made from the leaves and bark of a tree called ameda.[9] Cartier then mentioned that one of his servants was suffering from this unknown illness, and Domagaya sent for two women who showed the French how to make a drinkable extract from the balsam fir, as well as how to apply the same liquid to the inflamed skin. The results for the crews were amazing. Within six days, all the sick were healthy and strong again.

Then came the sudden spring. Between April 15th and May 1st the ice on the river was all melted, and on the 6th May, 1536, Cartier started from the vicinity of Quebec to return to France. But before leaving he had managed to kidnap Donnacona, the chief of the Huron settlement, and six or seven other Amerindians, amongst them Tainyoanyi, one of the two interpreters who had already been to France. He seized these men, it appears, partly because he wanted hostages and had good reason to fear that the Indians meditated a treacherous attack on his ships before they could get away. He also wished for native witnesses at Court, when he reached France, to testify to the truth of his discoveries, and even more to convince the King of France that there was great profit to be obtained from giving effect to Cartier's explorations. The chief, Donnacona, was full of wonderful stories of the Saguenay region, and of the great lakes to the northwards of Quebec. Probably he was only alluding to the wealth of copper now known to exist in northern Canada, but to Cartier and the other Frenchmen it seemed as though he spoke of gold and silver, rubies, and other precious stones.

Then spring suddenly arrived. Between April 15th and May 1st, the ice on the river completely melted, and on May 6, 1536, Cartier left the area near Quebec to head back to France. Before he left, he managed to kidnap Donnacona, the chief of the Huron settlement, along with six or seven other Indigenous people, including Tainyoanyi, one of the two interpreters who had already been to France. He took these men, apparently, partly because he wanted hostages and had good reason to fear that the Indigenous people were planning a surprise attack on his ships before they could leave. He also wanted native witnesses at the Court in France to confirm his discoveries and, even more so, to persuade the King of France that there was a lot of profit to be gained from Cartier's explorations. Chief Donnacona had amazing stories about the Saguenay region and the great lakes north of Quebec. He was probably just hinting at the wealth of copper now known to exist in northern Canada, but to Cartier and the other Frenchmen, it sounded like he was talking about gold and silver, rubies, and other precious stones.

Donnacona's people howled and wept when their chief was seized; but Cartier obliged the chief to reassure them, and to say that the French had promised to bring him back after he had paid a visit to their great king, who would return him to his country with great presents. As a matter of fact, not one of these Indians rapt away by Cartier ever saw Canada again. But this was not the fault of Cartier, but of the distractions of the times which turned away the thoughts of King Francis I from American adventures. The Indians were well and kindly treated in France, but all of them died there before Cartier left St. Malo to return to Canada in 1541.

Donnacona's people cried and mourned when their chief was taken; however, Cartier made the chief reassure them, saying that the French promised to bring him back after visiting their great king, who would return him to his homeland with valuable gifts. In reality, none of the Indians taken by Cartier ever saw Canada again. But this wasn't Cartier's fault; it was due to the distractions of the times that diverted King Francis I's attention from American ventures. The Indians were treated well and kindly in France, but they all died there before Cartier left St. Malo to return to Canada in 1541.

One advantage he derived from sailing away with these hostages was (no doubt) that they could give him geographical information of importance which materially shortened the return journey. For the first time he made use of the broad strait between Anticosti Island and Gaspé Peninsula, and, better still, entered the Atlantic, not by the dangerous northern route through the straits of Belle Isle, but by means of Cabot Strait, between Newfoundland and Cape Breton Island. Of these discoveries he availed himself on his third and last voyage in 1541.

One advantage he gained from taking these hostages was that they could provide him with important geographical information that significantly reduced the return journey. For the first time, he used the wide strait between Anticosti Island and the Gaspé Peninsula, and even better, he entered the Atlantic, not through the risky northern route via the Strait of Belle Isle, but through Cabot Strait, between Newfoundland and Cape Breton Island. He utilized these discoveries on his third and final voyage in 1541.

When in that year he once more anchored his ships near Quebec he found the attitude of the Hurons changed. They enquired about their friends and relations who had been carried off five years before, and although they pretended to be reconciled to their fate when they heard (not altogether truly) that one or two were dead, and the others had become great lords in France and had married French women, they really felt a disappointment so bitter and a hostility so great that Cartier guessed their expressions of welcome to be false. However, he sent back to France two of the ships under his command and beached the other three, landed his stores, built two forts at Cap Rouge, above and below, and then started off with a few of his men and two boats to revisit the country of Hochelaga. Here he intended to examine the three rapids or "saults"—interruptions to the navigation of the St. Lawrence—which he had observed on his previous journey, and which were later named the La Chine Rapids (in the belief that they were obstacles on the river route to China). But these falls proved insuperable obstacles to his boats, and he gave up any further idea of westward exploration, returned to his forts and ships near Quebec, and there laid the foundations of a fortified town, which he called Charlesbourg Royal. Here he spent a very difficult winter, the Hurons in the neighbourhood becoming increasingly hostile, and at last, when the spring came, as he had received no relief from France, he took to his three ships, abandoned Charlesbourg Royal (having probably to do some fighting before he could get safely away) and thence sailed for France. Off the Avalon Peninsula of Newfoundland he met the other ships of the expedition which was to have occupied Canada for France. These were under the command of the Sieur de Roberval, a French nobleman, who had really been made head of the whole enterprise, with Cartier as a subordinate officer, but who, the year before, had allowed Cartier to go off to Canada and prepare the way, promising to follow immediately. The interview between Cartier and Roberval, near where the capital of Newfoundland (St. John's) now stands, was a stormy one. Roberval ordered Cartier to return at once to Charlesbourg and await his arrival. However, in the middle of the night which followed this interview, Cartier took advantage of a favourable wind and set sail for France, arriving soon afterwards at St. Malo.

When he anchored his ships near Quebec again that year, he noticed that the Hurons' attitude had changed. They asked about their friends and relatives who had been taken away five years earlier, and although they claimed to be accepting of their situation when they heard (not entirely truthfully) that one or two were dead and the others had become powerful lords in France and married French women, their real feelings were of deep disappointment and intense hostility. Cartier sensed that their greetings were insincere. Nevertheless, he sent two of his ships back to France and beached the other three, unloaded his supplies, built two forts at Cap Rouge, one above and one below, and then set off with a few of his men in two boats to revisit the country of Hochelaga. He intended to check out the three rapids, or "saults," that interrupted navigation on the St. Lawrence, which he had noted on his previous journey and which were later named the La Chine Rapids, based on the mistaken belief that they were barriers on the route to China. However, these falls proved to be impassable for his boats, leading him to abandon any further plans for westward exploration. He returned to his forts and ships near Quebec and laid the foundations for a fortified town, which he called Charlesbourg Royal. He spent a very difficult winter there, with the nearby Hurons growing increasingly hostile. Finally, when spring arrived and he hadn’t received any support from France, he took to his three ships, abandoned Charlesbourg Royal (likely having to fight his way out), and sailed back to France. Off the Avalon Peninsula of Newfoundland, he encountered the other ships of the expedition meant to establish Canada for France. These were commanded by Sieur de Roberval, a French nobleman who had actually been appointed head of the whole project, with Cartier as his subordinate. However, the year before, Roberval had let Cartier go ahead to prepare the way, promising to follow shortly after. The meeting between Cartier and Roberval, near the site of what is now St. John's, Newfoundland, was tense. Roberval ordered Cartier to return immediately to Charlesbourg and wait for him. However, in the middle of the night after this meeting, Cartier seized a favorable wind and set sail for France, reaching St. Malo shortly afterwards.

But Roberval arrived at Charlesbourg (going the roundabout way through the straits of Belle Isle, for Cartier had told him nothing of the convenient passage through Cabot Strait), and there spent the winter of 1542-3, sending his ships back to France. This winter was one of horrors. Roberval was a headstrong, passionate man, perfectly reckless of human life. He maintained discipline by ferocious sentences, putting many of his men in irons, whipping others cruelly, women as well as men, and shooting those who seemed the most rebellious. Even the Indians were moved to pity, and wept at the sight of the woes of these unhappy French men and women under the control of a bloodthirsty tyrant, and many of them dying of scurvy, or miserably weak from that disease.[10]

But Roberval arrived at Charlesbourg (taking the long way through the straits of Belle Isle, since Cartier had told him nothing about the easier route through Cabot Strait), and he spent the winter of 1542-3 there, sending his ships back to France. This winter was filled with horrors. Roberval was a stubborn, passionate man, completely reckless with human life. He enforced discipline through harsh punishments, putting many of his men in chains, whipping others cruelly, including women as well as men, and executing those who appeared the most defiant. Even the Indians were moved to pity and wept at the sight of the suffering of these unfortunate French men and women under the rule of a ruthless tyrant, with many of them dying from scurvy or suffering greatly from the illness.[10]

However, when the weather was warm again, in June, 1543, Roberval started up the St. Lawrence River in boats to reach the wonderful country of Saguenay. Apparently he met with little success, and, being relieved by French ships in the late summer of 1543, he returned to France.

However, when the weather warmed up again in June 1543, Roberval set off up the St. Lawrence River in boats to reach the amazing country of Saguenay. It seems he had little success, and after being replaced by French ships in late summer 1543, he went back to France.

Thus the splendid work achieved by Cartier seemed to have come to nothing, for neither he nor Roberval revisited America. The French settlement near Quebec was abandoned, so far as the officers of the French king were concerned, and between 1545 and about 1583, if any other Frenchman or European visited Canada it was some private adventurer who traded with the natives in furs, or Basques from France and Spain who frequented the waters of the Gulf of St. Lawrence on account of the abundance of whales, walruses, and seals. In fact, at the close of the sixteenth century, the Spanish Basques had established themselves on shore at Tadoussac and other places, and seemed likely to colonize the country.

Thus, the impressive work done by Cartier appeared to have come to nothing, as neither he nor Roberval returned to America. The French settlement near Quebec was abandoned, at least from the perspective of the French king's officers, and between 1545 and around 1583, if any other Frenchman or European visited Canada, it was usually a private adventurer trading furs with the natives, or Basques from France and Spain who came to the waters of the Gulf of St. Lawrence for the abundant whales, walruses, and seals. In fact, by the end of the sixteenth century, the Spanish Basques had settled onshore at Tadoussac and other locations, appearing likely to colonize the area.


1 Funk Island—called by Cartier "the Island of Birds"—is only about 3 miles round, and 46 feet above the sea level. It is 3 miles distant from the coast.

1 Funk Island—referred to by Cartier as "the Island of Birds"—is roughly 3 miles in circumference and stands 46 feet above sea level. It is located 3 miles away from the mainland.

2 The Great Auk (Alca impennis), extinct since about 1844 in Europe and 1870 in Labrador, once had in ancient times a geographical range from Massachusetts and Newfoundland to Iceland, Ireland, Scotland, N.E. England, and Denmark. Perhaps nowhere was it found so abundantly as on the coasts of Eastern Newfoundland and on Funk Island hard by. The Great Auk was in such numbers on the north-east coast of Newfoundland that the Amerindians of that country and of southern Labrador used it as fuel in the winter time, its body being very full of oil and burning with a splendid flame. The French seamen called it pingouin ("penguin") from its fatness, and this name was much later transferred to the real penguins of the southern seas which are quite unrelated to the auks.

2 The Great Auk (Alca impennis), which went extinct around 1844 in Europe and 1870 in Labrador, once had a range that stretched from Massachusetts and Newfoundland to Iceland, Ireland, Scotland, Northeast England, and Denmark. It was most abundant along the coasts of Eastern Newfoundland and on nearby Funk Island. The Great Auk was so plentiful on the northeast coast of Newfoundland that the Indigenous peoples of that area and southern Labrador used it as fuel in the winter because its body was rich in oil and burned with a brilliant flame. French sailors referred to it as pingouin ("penguin") due to its fatness, and this name was later applied to the true penguins of the southern seas, which are not related to auks at all.

3 On the shores of these islands they noticed "several great beasts like oxen, which have two tusks in the mouth similar to those of the elephant". These were walruses.

3 On the shores of these islands, they spotted "several large animals resembling oxen, which have two tusks in their mouths like those of an elephant." These were walruses.

4 Anticosti Island received from Cartier the name of "the Island of the Assumption of the Blessed Virgin", in consequence of his having discovered it to be an island on the feast day of that name. It did not receive its present title until the late seventeenth century.

4 Anticosti Island was named by Cartier "the Island of the Assumption of the Blessed Virgin" because he discovered it on the feast day celebrating that name. It didn't get its current name until the late seventeenth century.

5 Then called "Canada". The word Quebec (pronounced Kebek) means the narrow part of a river.

5 Then called "Canada". The word Quebec (pronounced Kebek) means the narrow part of a river.

6 The Canada Blueberry (Vaccinium canadense), called by the French bluës or bluëts. These bluës were collected and dried by the Amerindians, and made a sweet nutriment for eating in the winter.

6 The Canada Blueberry (Vaccinium canadense), referred to by the French as bluës or bluëts. These blueberries were gathered and dried by Indigenous peoples, providing a sweet food source to eat during the winter.

7 Cartier, in Hakluyt's translation, is made to say (I modernize the spelling): "They dig their grounds with certain pieces of wood as big as half a sword, on which ground groweth their corn, which they call 'offici'; it is as big as our small peason.... They have also great store of musk melons, pompions, gourds, cucumbers, peas, and beans of every colour, yet differing from ours."

Wampum, or shell money (which recalls the shell money of the Pacific Islands), consisted either of beads made from the interior parts of sea shells or land shells, or of strings of perforated sea shells. The most elaborate kind of wampum was that of the Amerindians of Canada and the eastern United States, the shell beads of which were generally white. The commoner wampum beads were black and violet. Wampum belts were made which illustrated events, dates, treaties of peace, &c, by a rude symbolism (figures of men and animals, upright lines, &c), and these were worked neatly on string by employing different-coloured beads.

7 Cartier, in Hakluyt's translation, is made to say (I modernize the spelling): "They dig their fields with pieces of wood about the size of half a sword, where their corn grows, which they call 'offici'; it is about the size of our small peas.... They also have plenty of musk melons, pumpkins, gourds, cucumbers, peas, and beans of every color, yet different from ours."

Wampum, or shell money (which is similar to the shell money of the Pacific Islands), was made from either beads created from the inner parts of sea shells or land shells, or from strands of pierced sea shells. The most intricate type of wampum came from the Indigenous peoples of Canada and the eastern United States, where the shell beads were usually white. The more common wampum beads were black and violet. Wampum belts were created to illustrate events, dates, treaties of peace, etc., using simple symbols (figures of people and animals, upright lines, etc.), and these were crafted neatly on string using beads of different colors.

8 "There groweth also a certain kind of herb whereof in summer they make a great provision for all the year, making great account of it, and only men use it; and first they cause it to be dried in the sun, then wear it about their necks wrapped in a little beast's skin made like a bag, together with a hollow piece of stone or wood like a pipe. Then when they please they make powder of it and put it in one of the ends of the said cornet or pipe, and laying a coal of fire upon it at the other end, suck so long that they fill their bodies full of smoke, till that it cometh out of their mouth and nostrils, even as out of the tunnel of a chimney. They say that this doth keep them warm and in health: they never go without some of it about them. We ourselves have tried the same smoke, and having put it in our mouths, it seemed almost as hot as pepper." The foregoing is one of the earliest descriptions of tobacco smoking in any European language, the original words being in Cartier's Norman French.

8 "There grows a certain type of herb that in summer they prepare a lot of for the whole year, valuing it highly, and it's only used by men; first, they dry it in the sun, then they wear it around their necks wrapped in a little animal skin shaped like a bag, along with a hollow piece of stone or wood resembling a pipe. When they want to, they make it into a powder and put it in one end of the pipe, and by placing a burning coal on the other end, they inhale until their bodies are filled with smoke, which comes out of their mouths and nostrils, just like smoke from a chimney. They say that this keeps them warm and healthy: they always carry some with them. We ourselves have tried smoking it, and when we put it in our mouths, it felt almost as hot as pepper." The foregoing is one of the earliest descriptions of tobacco smoking in any European language, the original words being in Cartier's Norman French.

9 This tree was the balsam fir, Abies balsamea.

9 This tree was the balsam fir, Abies balsamea.

10 A story was subsequently told of Roberval's stern treatment which had a germ of truth in it, though it has since been the foundation of many a romance. On the journey out from France it is said that Roberval took with him his niece Marguerite, a high-born lady, who was accompanied by an old companion or nurse. Marguerite was travelling with her uncle because, unknown to him, she had a lover who had sailed with him on this expedition and whom she hoped to marry. As they crossed the Atlantic these facts leaked out, and Roberval resolved to bide his time and punish his niece for her deception. As they passed the coast of Southern Labrador Marguerite and her old nurse were seized and put into a boat, Roberval ordering his sailors to row them ashore to an island, and leave them to their fate. They were given four guns with ammunition and a small supply of provisions. But, as the boat was leaving the ship, Marguerite's lover threw himself into the sea and swam to the island. Here, according to the story which Marguerite is supposed to have told afterwards, they endeavoured to live by killing the wild animals and eating their flesh; but her lover-husband died, so also did her child soon after it was born, and then the old nurse, and the unhappy Marguerite was left alone with the wild beasts, especially the white Polar bears, who thronged round her hut. Nevertheless she kept them at bay with her arquebus, and managed somehow to support an existence, until after nineteen months' isolation the ascending smoke of her fire was seen by people on one of the many fishing vessels which, by this time, frequented the coasts of Newfoundland. She was taken off the island and restored to her home in France. The island to which this tradition more especially relates is now called Grand Meccatina.

10 A story was later told about Roberval's harsh treatment, which had some truth to it, but it has since inspired many tales. It's said that Roberval traveled from France with his niece Marguerite, a noblewoman, who was accompanied by an old friend or nurse. Marguerite was with her uncle because, unbeknownst to him, she had a lover who had joined him on this expedition and whom she hoped to marry. As they crossed the Atlantic, these facts came to light, and Roberval decided to wait and punish his niece for her deception. When they reached the coast of Southern Labrador, Roberval had Marguerite and her old nurse captured and put into a boat, ordering his sailors to row them ashore to an island and leave them there. They were given four guns with ammunition and a small supply of food. However, as the boat was leaving the ship, Marguerite's lover jumped into the sea and swam to the island. According to the story Marguerite supposedly shared later, they tried to survive by hunting wild animals and eating their meat; but her lover-husband died, their child soon after it was born, and then the old nurse as well, leaving the unfortunate Marguerite alone with the wild animals, particularly the white polar bears that surrounded her hut. Nevertheless, she kept them at bay with her arquebus and somehow managed to survive until, after nineteen months of isolation, the smoke from her fire was spotted by people on fishing vessels that had started to frequent the coasts of Newfoundland. She was rescued from the island and brought back to her home in France. The island this story mainly refers to is now known as Grand Meccatina.

[__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]






CHAPTER III

Elizabethan Pioneers in North America

Except that the ships of Bristol still no doubt continued to resort to the banks of Newfoundland for fishing, and that even the captains of these ships were occasionally elected admirals of the French, Basque, Portuguese, and English fishing fleets during the summer, the English, as a nation, took no part in claiming political dominion over North America after the voyage of Captain John Rut in 1527. This was the fault of Sebastian Cabot, the son of the man who founded British America, and who had returned to England long afterwards as the Grand Pilot appointed by Edward VI to further the discovery of a northern sea passage to China. Through him the attention of adventurers for a time was diverted from America to the "discovery" of Russia (as it has been called). The efforts of Sebastion Cabot were directed towards the revelation of a north-east passage by way of Arctic Russia to the Pacific, rather than past Newfoundland and Labrador and across Arctic America.

Except that the ships from Bristol probably still went to the banks of Newfoundland for fishing, and even the captains of these ships were sometimes chosen as admirals for the French, Basque, Portuguese, and English fishing fleets during the summer, the English, as a nation, didn’t really try to claim political control over North America after Captain John Rut's voyage in 1527. This was due to Sebastian Cabot, the son of the man who started British America, who returned to England much later as the Grand Pilot appointed by Edward VI to help discover a northern sea route to China. Because of him, adventurers' focus briefly shifted from America to the "discovery" of Russia. Sebastian Cabot aimed to find a northeast passage through Arctic Russia to the Pacific, instead of navigating past Newfoundland and Labrador and across Arctic America.

But as soon as Elizabeth came to the throne the sea adventurers of Britain, freed from any subservience to Spanish wishes, developed maritime intercourse between England, Morocco, and West Africa on the one hand, and Tropical and North America on the other. Once more the discovery of the North-west Passage across America to China came into favour. MARTIN FROBISHER[1] offered himself as a discoverer, and the Earl of Warwick found the means which provided him with two small sailing vessels of 25 and 20 tons each, besides a pinnace of 10 tons.[2] Queen Elizabeth confined herself, in the way of encouragement, to waving her lily hand from her palace of Greenwich as these three little boats dropped down the Thames on the 8th of June, 1576. She also sent them "an honourable message", which no doubt reached them at Tilbury.

But as soon as Elizabeth took the throne, Britain's sea adventurers, free from Spanish influence, established trade routes between England, Morocco, and West Africa on one side, and tropical and North America on the other. The quest for the Northwest Passage across America to China gained interest again. MARTIN FROBISHER[1] put himself forward as a discoverer, and the Earl of Warwick provided the funds for two small ships of 25 and 20 tons each, along with a 10-ton pinnace.[2] Queen Elizabeth showed her support by waving from her palace in Greenwich as these three little boats set sail down the Thames on June 8, 1576. She also sent them "an honorable message," which likely reached them at Tilbury.

But the pinnace was soon swallowed up in the high seas; the seamen in the vessel of 20 tons lost heart and turned their ship homewards. Frobisher alone, in his 25-ton bark, sailed on and on across the stormy Atlantic, past the south end of Greenland, and over the great gulf that separates Greenland from Labrador. He missed the entrance to Hudson's Bay, but reached a great "island" which he named Meta Incognita[3]. Here he gathered up stones and, as he believed, minerals, besides capturing at least one Eskimo, and then returned.

But the small ship was soon lost in the rough seas; the sailors on the 20-ton vessel lost their courage and turned back. Frobisher alone, in his 25-ton ship, kept sailing across the stormy Atlantic, past the southern tip of Greenland, and over the large gulf that separates Greenland from Labrador. He missed the entrance to Hudson's Bay but reached a large "island" which he named Meta Incognita[3]. Here, he collected stones and, as he believed, minerals, along with capturing at least one Eskimo, before heading back.

One of his stones was declared by the refiners of London to contain gold. There was at once—as we should say in modern slang—a boom for these Arctic regions. Queen Elizabeth took part in it, and on the 27th of May, 1577, a considerable fleet, under the command of Frobisher, sailed past the Orkneys for the south end of Greenland. It did not reach as far as Meta Incognita, but it brought back large heaps of earth and pieces of rock, probably from northern Labrador, which almost certainly contained mica schist, and were therefore believed to be full of gold. The following year 1578, Frobisher started on his third American voyage with a fleet of fifteen vessels, mainly financed by Queen Elizabeth, and manned to a great extent by the sons of the aristocracy, besides a hundred persons who were going out as colonists. For this region of ice and snow which was believed to be a mass of gold-bearing rocks! But the result was one of bitter disappointment. The captains were bewildered by the immense icebergs, "so vast that, as they melted, torrents poured from them in sparkling waterfalls". One iceberg toppled over on to a ship and crushed it, though most of the sailors were picked up in the sea and saved. In the thick mists the greater part of the fleet blundered into Hudson's Straits, yet did not realize that they had found a passage into the heart of Canada. At last, disgusted with this land of bare rocks, ice, and snow, they filled up the ships with cargoes of stones supposed to contain gold, and straggled back to England. No gold was extracted, however, from these cargoes, and much discouragement ensued.

One of his rocks was declared by the refiners in London to contain gold. Immediately—what we'd call a boom today—everyone got excited about these Arctic regions. Queen Elizabeth got involved, and on May 27, 1577, a sizable fleet, led by Frobisher, set sail from the Orkneys towards the southern tip of Greenland. They didn't get as far as Meta Incognita, but they returned with big loads of dirt and chunks of rock, likely from northern Labrador, which were almost certainly made of mica schist and were thought to be rich in gold. The next year, 1578, Frobisher began his third voyage to America with a fleet of fifteen ships, mostly funded by Queen Elizabeth, and largely staffed by the sons of the aristocracy, along with a hundred people who were heading out as colonists. All for this icy, snowy region that was believed to be full of gold-bearing rocks! But the result was a huge letdown. The captains were confused by the massive icebergs, "so vast that as they melted, torrents poured from them in sparkling waterfalls." One iceberg tipped over onto a ship and crushed it, although most of the sailors were rescued from the sea. In the thick fog, most of the fleet stumbled into Hudson's Straits, yet they didn’t realize they had found a passage into the heart of Canada. Eventually, fed up with this land of bare rocks, ice, and snow, they filled their ships with stones they believed contained gold and made their way back to England. However, no gold was ever mined from those loads, leading to a lot of disappointment.

SIR HUMPHREY GILBERT, one of the brilliant figures of Elizabeth's reign—scholar, poet, courageous adventurer, and man of chivalry—stimulated by the discoveries of Frobisher, obtained a patent or charter in 1578, and, after several unsuccessful attempts, led an expedition of small sailing ships to Newfoundland, where he entered St. John's Bay, and in the presence of the Basque, Portuguese, and Breton fishermen took formal possession of the country for Queen Elizabeth, raising a pillar on which the arms of England were engraved as a token. He then proceeded to grant lands to the fishermen to reassure them, and loaded his ships with rocks brought from the interior mountains and supposed to contain minerals. But in his further explorations of the southern coast of Newfoundland one of the ships was lost and nearly a hundred men intended as colonists were drowned.

SIR HUMPHREY GILBERT, one of the outstanding figures of Elizabeth's reign—scholar, poet, brave adventurer, and man of honor—motivated by Frobisher's discoveries, secured a patent or charter in 1578. After several failed attempts, he led a voyage of small sailing ships to Newfoundland, where he entered St. John's Bay. In front of Basque, Portuguese, and Breton fishermen, he officially claimed the land for Queen Elizabeth by raising a pillar engraved with the arms of England as a symbol. He then granted lands to the fishermen to put them at ease and filled his ships with rocks from the interior mountains, believed to contain minerals. However, during his further explorations along the southern coast of Newfoundland, one of the ships sank, and nearly a hundred would-be colonists drowned.

Gilbert then determined to return to England in his small frigate of 10 tons named the Squirrel. He was accompanied by a larger vessel, the Golden Hinde, but refused to leave the men on the Squirrel to their fate. Consequently, between the Azores and the north coast of Spain, when the Squirrel was overwhelmed by the heavy seas, Sir Humphrey Gilbert perished together with all on board.

Gilbert then decided to go back to England in his small 10-ton frigate called the Squirrel. He had a larger ship, the Golden Hinde, with him but wouldn’t abandon the crew on the Squirrel to their fate. As a result, between the Azores and the northern coast of Spain, when the Squirrel was hit by severe waves, Sir Humphrey Gilbert lost his life along with everyone on board.

In spite, however, of the disappointing results of Gilbert's attempt to found a colony in Newfoundland, the importance of the cod fishery and the ivory tusks and oil of the walruses drew ever more and more ships from Bristol and Devonshire to the coasts of that great island and to the Gulf of St. Lawrence beyond. In 1592 the English adventurers got as far west as Anticosti Island (in a ship from Bristol), and in 1597 there is the first record of English ships (from London—the Hopewell and the Chancewell) sailing up the St. Lawrence River, perhaps as far west as Quebec.

Despite the disappointing outcome of Gilbert's attempt to establish a colony in Newfoundland, the significance of the cod fishery, along with the ivory tusks and oil from walruses, attracted more and more ships from Bristol and Devonshire to the shores of that vast island and to the Gulf of St. Lawrence beyond. In 1592, English adventurers reached as far west as Anticosti Island (in a ship from Bristol), and in 1597, there is the first record of English ships (from London—the Hopewell and the Chancewell) navigating up the St. Lawrence River, possibly as far west as Quebec.

In 1602, stimulated by Sir Walter Raleigh,[4] Bartholomew Gosnold sailed direct to the coast of North America south of the Newfoundland latitudes, and anchored his bark off the coast of Massachusetts on the 26th of March, 1602. Failing to find a good harbour here, he stood out for the south and definitely discovered and named Cape Cod, not far from the modern city of Boston. From Cape Cod he made his way to the Elizabeth Islands in Buzzard's Bay, and here he built a storehouse and fort, and may be said to have laid the foundations of the future colony of New England. He brought back with him a cargo of sassafras root, which was then much esteemed as a valuable medicine and a remedy for almost all diseases.

In 1602, driven by Sir Walter Raleigh,[4] Bartholomew Gosnold sailed directly to the coast of North America, south of Newfoundland's latitudes, and anchored his ship off the coast of Massachusetts on March 26, 1602. Not finding a suitable harbor there, he headed south and officially discovered and named Cape Cod, not far from today’s Boston. From Cape Cod, he traveled to the Elizabeth Islands in Buzzard's Bay, where he built a storehouse and a fort, laying the groundwork for the future colony of New England. He returned with a cargo of sassafras root, which was highly valued at the time as a medicine and a cure for nearly all ailments.

Subsequent expeditions of English ships explored and mapped the coast of Maine, and took on board Amerindians for exhibition in England. Their adventures, together with those of the colonists farther south, led to the creation of chartered companies, and to the great British colonies of New England, New York, Virginia, the Carolinas, and Georgia, which were to become in time the United States of America—a vast field of adventure which we cannot follow farther in this book.

Subsequent voyages of English ships explored and mapped the coast of Maine, and they brought Native Americans back to England for exhibitions. Their journeys, along with those of the settlers further south, resulted in the establishment of chartered companies and the large British colonies of New England, New York, Virginia, the Carolinas, and Georgia, which eventually became the United States of America—a vast area of exploration that we can’t cover further in this book.

As regards Newfoundland, James I, in 1610, granted a patent to a Bristol merchant for the foundation there of a colony, and although this attempt, and another under Sir George Calvert (Lord Baltimore) in 1616, came almost to nothing through the attacks of the French and the dislike of the crews of the fishing vessels to permanent settlers who might interfere with the fishing industry, the English colonization of Newfoundland to some extent caught hold, so that in 1650 there were about two thousand colonists of English descent along the east and south-east coasts of the island. But settlement was prohibited within six miles of the shore, to please the fishermen, and this regulation checked for more than two hundred years the colonization of Newfoundland.

Regarding Newfoundland, James I, in 1610, granted a patent to a Bristol merchant to establish a colony there. Although this effort and another by Sir George Calvert (Lord Baltimore) in 1616 nearly failed due to attacks from the French and the fishing crews' resistance to permanent settlers who might interfere with the fishing industry, English colonization in Newfoundland took root to some extent. By 1650, there were about two thousand colonists of English descent along the east and southeast coasts of the island. However, settlement was banned within six miles of the shore to accommodate the fishermen, and this regulation hindered the colonization of Newfoundland for over two hundred years.

Nova Scotia as a British colony also came into being as another result of these adventurous British expeditions to North America in the reign of James I. Under the name of Acadie this region had been declared to be a portion of New France by De Monts and Champlain in 1604-14. But the English colonists in 1614 drove the French out of the peninsula of Nova Scotia on the plea that it was a part of the discoveries made by the Cabots on behalf of the British Crown. In 1621 James I gave a grant of all this territory to Sir William Alexander under the name of Nova Scotia, and both Charles I and Cromwell encouraged settlement in this beautiful region. When Charles II ceded it to France in 1667 the English and Scottish colonists who were residing there, and the English settlers of New England, refused to recognize the effects of the Treaty of Bréda, and so harassed the French in the years which followed that in 1713 Nova Scotia was, together with Newfoundland, recognized as belonging to Great Britain. The French colonists were allowed to remain, but during the course of the eighteenth century they combined with the Amerindians (who liked the French and disliked the British) and made the position of the British colonists so precarious that they were finally expelled and obliged to transfer themselves to Louisiana and Canada. This was the departure of the Acadians so touchingly described by Longfellow.

Nova Scotia became a British colony as a result of adventurous British expeditions to North America during the reign of James I. This area, known as Acadie, was declared part of New France by De Monts and Champlain between 1604 and 1614. However, in 1614, English colonists expelled the French from the Nova Scotia peninsula, claiming it was part of the territories discovered by the Cabots for the British Crown. In 1621, James I granted all this territory to Sir William Alexander, naming it Nova Scotia, and both Charles I and Cromwell supported settlement in this beautiful region. When Charles II ceded it to France in 1667, the English and Scottish colonists living there, along with the English settlers from New England, refused to accept the Treaty of Bréda's terms and continued to challenge the French. Eventually, in 1713, Nova Scotia, along with Newfoundland, was recognized as British territory. The French colonists were permitted to stay, but throughout the eighteenth century, they allied with the Amerindians, who favored the French over the British, making the situation for British colonists increasingly difficult. Ultimately, they were forced to relocate to Louisiana and Canada. This marked the poignant departure of the Acadians described by Longfellow.

The British had become tenacious of their rights over the east coast of Newfoundland, because from the middle of the seventeenth century onwards they were becoming increasingly interested in the whale fisheries and the fur trade of the lands bordering on Hudson's Bay, and would not tolerate any blocking of the sea route thither by the French.

The British had become determined to assert their rights over the east coast of Newfoundland, as from the mid-seventeenth century onward, they grew more interested in the whale fisheries and the fur trade in the lands around Hudson's Bay, and would not accept any obstruction of the sea route to those areas by the French.

In the explorations of Arctic America, Frobisher's expeditions had been succeeded by those of JOHN DAVIS, who in the course of three voyages, beginning in June, 1585, passed the entrance of Hudson's Straits and reached a point as far north as 72° 41', a lofty granite island, which he named Sanderson's Hope. He saw beyond him a great sea, free, large, very salt, and blue, unobstructed by ice and of an unsearchable depth, and believed that he had completely discovered the eastern entrance of the North-West Passage.

In the exploration of Arctic America, Frobisher's expeditions were followed by those of JOHN DAVIS, who, during three voyages starting in June 1585, passed the entrance of Hudson's Straits and reached as far north as 72° 41', a tall granite island that he named Sanderson's Hope. He saw a vast sea beyond, which was open, large, very salty, and blue, unobstructed by ice and of unknown depth, and he believed he had fully discovered the eastern entrance to the North-West Passage.

Icebergs and Polar Bears
ICEBERGS AND POLAR BEARS

HENRY HUDSON, the great English navigator, who had made two voyages (1607-8) for the English-Moscovy Company to discover a north-east passage to India, past Siberia, commanded a third experiment in 1609 at the expense of the Dutch East India Company. He was to discover the North-West Passage. For this purpose he entered the river now named the Hudson, but soon found it was only a river; though he returned to Holland with such an encouraging account of the surrounding country that the Dutch a little later on, founded on the banks of the Hudson River their colony of New Amsterdam (afterwards the State of New York). In 1610 Hudson accepted a British commission to sail beyond where Davis and Frobisher had passed, and once more seek for the north-west passage to China. Instead he found the way into Hudson's Bay. Here his men, alarmed at the idea of being lost in these regions of ice and snow, mutinied against him, placed him and those who were faithful to him in a boat, and cast them off, themselves returning to England with the news of his discovery. Hudson was never heard of again, and, strange to say, the mutineers apparently received no punishment.

HENRY HUDSON, the famous English navigator, who had made two voyages (1607-8) for the English-Muscovy Company to find a northeast passage to India through Siberia, led a third expedition in 1609 funded by the Dutch East India Company. His mission was to discover the North-West Passage. To achieve this, he entered the river now known as the Hudson, but quickly realized it was just a river. However, he returned to Holland with such a positive report about the surrounding area that the Dutch soon established their colony of New Amsterdam along the banks of the Hudson River (which later became the State of New York). In 1610, Hudson accepted a British commission to sail beyond where Davis and Frobisher had gone and once again search for the northwest passage to China. Instead, he discovered the entrance to Hudson's Bay. There, his crew, fearing they would get lost in the icy and snowy regions, mutinied against him, put him and his loyal men in a boat, and set them adrift while they returned to England with news of his discovery. Hudson was never heard from again, and oddly enough, the mutineers seemed to face no consequences.

Between 1602 and 1668, English adventurers from London and Bristol, notable amongst whom were WILLIAM BAFFIN, LUKE FOX, and CAPTAIN JAMES, mapped the coasts of Hudson's Bay and Baffin's Bay and brought to the notice of merchants in England the abundance of whales in these Arctic waters, and of fur-bearing beasts and fur-trading Indians in the region of Hudson's Bay.

Between 1602 and 1668, English adventurers from London and Bristol, including WILLIAM BAFFIN, LUKE FOX, and CAPTAIN JAMES, mapped the coasts of Hudson's Bay and Baffin's Bay. They alerted merchants in England about the large number of whales in these Arctic waters, as well as the presence of fur-bearing animals and fur-trading Indigenous people in the Hudson's Bay area.

This last point was most forcibly presented to Charles II and his Government by a disappointed French Canadian, Pierre Esprit Radisson, whose adventures will later on be described. Radisson, conceiving himself to be badly treated by the French Governor of Canada, crossed over to England with his brother-in-law, Chouart, and the two were warmly taken up by Prince Rupert of Bavaria, the cousin of Charles II. They were sent out by Prince Rupert in command of an expedition financed by him and a number of London merchants, and in 1669 the New England captain, Gillam, returned to England with Chouart and the first cargo of furs from Hudson's Bay. This cargo so completely met the expectations of those who had promoted the venture that it led in 1670 to the foundation of the Governor and Company of Adventurers of England trading into Hudson's Bay, a company chartered by Charles II and presided over by Prince Rupert, and an association which proved to be the germ of British North America, of the vast three-quarters of the present Dominion of Canada.

This last point was strongly emphasized to Charles II and his government by a frustrated French Canadian, Pierre Esprit Radisson, whose adventures will be detailed later. Radisson, feeling mistreated by the French Governor of Canada, crossed over to England with his brother-in-law, Chouart. The two were warmly received by Prince Rupert of Bavaria, a cousin of Charles II. Prince Rupert sent them out to lead an expedition funded by him and several London merchants. In 1669, the New England captain, Gillam, returned to England with Chouart and the first shipment of furs from Hudson's Bay. This shipment exceeded the expectations of those who had supported the initiative, leading in 1670 to the establishment of the Governor and Company of Adventurers of England trading into Hudson's Bay. This company was chartered by Charles II, headed by Prince Rupert, and became the foundation of British North America, covering a large portion of what is now the Dominion of Canada.


1 The name was also spelt Furbusher, and in other ways. He became Sir Martin Frobisher over the wars of the Armada, and died Lord High Admiral of England in 1592.

1 The name was also spelled Furbusher, among other variations. He became Sir Martin Frobisher during the Armada wars and passed away as Lord High Admiral of England in 1592.

2 It may be of interest to set forth the kind of rations shipped in those Elizabethan times for the food of the sailors. According to Frobisher's accounts these consisted of salted beef, salt pork, salt fish, biscuit, meal for making bread, dried peas, oatmeal, rice, cheese, butter, beer, and wine, with brandy for emergencies. As regards beer, the men were to have a ration of 1 gallon a day each. Altogether it may be said that these rations were superior in variety—and no doubt in quality—to the food given to seamen in the British merchant marine in the nineteenth century.

2 It might be interesting to outline the types of rations that were shipped during the Elizabethan era for sailors' food. According to Frobisher's accounts, these included salted beef, salt pork, salt fish, biscuits, flour for making bread, dried peas, oatmeal, rice, cheese, butter, beer, and wine, along with brandy for emergencies. As for beer, the men received a daily ration of 1 gallon each. Overall, it can be said that these rations had more variety—and likely better quality—than the food provided to sailors in the British merchant marine during the nineteenth century.

3 We now know Meta Incognita to be the southernmost peninsula of the vast Baffin Island.

3 We now know Meta Incognita to be the southernmost peninsula of the vast Baffin Island.

4 In 1584, Sir Walter Raleigh, the half-brother of Sir Humphrey Gilbert, financed an expedition to sail to the coast of North America in a more southerly direction. In this way was founded the (afterwards abandoned) colony of Roanoke, in North Carolina. It was to this region that Queen Elizabeth applied the title of Virginia, which some years afterwards was transferred to the first English colony on the James River.

4 In 1584, Sir Walter Raleigh, the half-brother of Sir Humphrey Gilbert, funded an expedition to sail to the coast of North America, aiming for a more southern route. This led to the establishment of the (later abandoned) colony of Roanoke in North Carolina. It was in this area that Queen Elizabeth assigned the title of Virginia, which a few years later was transferred to the first English colony on the James River.

[__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]






CHAPTER IV

Champlain and the Foundation of Canada

From the first voyage of Cartier onwards, Canada was called intermittently New France, and its possibilities were not lost sight of by a few intelligent Frenchmen on account of the fur trade. Amongst these was Amyard de Chastes, at one time Governor of Dieppe, who got into correspondence with the adventurers who had settled as fur traders at Tadoussac, prominent amongst whom was Du Pont-Gravé. De Chastes dispatched with Pont-Gravé a young man whose acquaintance he had just made, SAMUEL CHAMPLAIN.[1] This was the man who, more than any other, created French Canada.

From Cartier's first voyage onward, Canada was sometimes referred to as New France, and a few insightful Frenchmen recognized its potential, particularly due to the fur trade. One of these was Amyard de Chastes, a former Governor of Dieppe, who started a correspondence with the adventurers settled as fur traders at Tadoussac, notably Du Pont-Gravé. De Chastes sent with Pont-Gravé a young man he had just met, SAMUEL CHAMPLAIN.[1] This was the man who, more than anyone else, helped shape French Canada.

Champlain had had already a most adventurous life. He was born about 1567, at Brouage, in the Saintonge, opposite to the Island of Héron, on the coast of western France. From his earliest years he had a passion for the sea, but he also served as a soldier for six years. His father had been a sea captain, and his uncle as an experienced navigator was commissioned by the King of Spain to transport by sea to that country the remainder of the Spanish soldiers who had been serving in Brittany. The uncle took his nephew with him. Young Champlain when in Spain managed to ingratiate himself so much with the Spanish authorities that he was actually commissioned as a captain to take a king's ship out to the West Indies. No sooner did he reach Spanish America than he availed himself of the first chance to explore it. For two years he travelled over Cuba, and above all Mexico. He visited the narrowest part of Central America and conceived the possibility of making a trans-oceanic canal across the Panama isthmus.

Champlain had already lived a very adventurous life. He was born around 1567 in Brouage, Saintonge, opposite the Island of Héron on the western coast of France. From a young age, he was passionate about the sea, but he also served as a soldier for six years. His father was a sea captain, and his uncle, an experienced navigator, was commissioned by the King of Spain to transport the remaining Spanish soldiers from Brittany. The uncle took his nephew along. Young Champlain managed to win over the Spanish authorities in Spain so much that he was actually appointed as a captain to take a royal ship to the West Indies. As soon as he arrived in Spanish America, he jumped at the first opportunity to explore it. For two years, he traveled across Cuba and especially Mexico. He visited the narrowest part of Central America and imagined the possibility of creating a trans-oceanic canal across the Panama isthmus.

When he got back to France he placed before Henry IV a report on Spanish Central America, together with a project for making a canal at Panama. Henry IV was so pleased with his work and enterprise that he gave him a pension and the title of Geographer to the King. Shortly afterwards he met Governor de Chastes at Dieppe, and was by him sent out to Canada. The ship which carried Champlain, PONT-GRAVÉ,[2] the SIEUR DE MONTS,[3] and other French adventurers (together with two Amerindian interpreters whom Pont-Gravé had brought from Canada to learn French) arrived at Tadoussac on May 24, 1603.

When he returned to France, he presented a report on Spanish Central America to Henry IV, along with a plan for building a canal at Panama. Henry IV was so impressed with his work and initiative that he granted him a pension and the title of Geographer to the King. Soon after, he met Governor de Chastes in Dieppe, who sent him to Canada. The ship that took Champlain, PONT-GRAVÉ,[2] the SIEUR DE MONTS,[3] and other French adventurers (along with two Indigenous interpreters that Pont-Gravé had brought from Canada to learn French) arrived at Tadoussac on May 24, 1603.

Champlain lost no time in commencing his explorations. Tadoussac was at the mouth of an important river, called by the French the Saguenay, a name which they also applied to the mysterious and wonderful country through which it flowed in the far north; a country rich in copper and possibly other precious metals. Champlain ascended the Saguenay River for sixty miles as far as the rapids of Chicoutima. The Amerindians whom he met here told him of Lake St. John, lying at a short distance to the west, and that beyond this lake and the many streams which entered it there lay a region of uplands strewn with other lakes and pools; and farther away still began the sloping of the land to the north till the traveller sighted a great arm of the salt sea, and found himself amongst tribes (probably the Eskimo) who ate raw flesh, and to the Indians appeared absolute savages.[4] This was probably the first allusion, recorded by a European, to the existence of Hudson's Bay, that huge inlet of the sea, which is one of the leading features in the geography of British North America.

Champlain wasted no time starting his explorations. Tadoussac was at the mouth of an important river known by the French as the Saguenay, which they also called the mysterious and amazing land it flowed through in the far north; a land rich in copper and possibly other valuable metals. Champlain traveled up the Saguenay River for sixty miles to the rapids of Chicoutimi. The Indigenous people he met there told him about Lake St. John, located a short distance to the west, and said that beyond this lake and the many streams that fed into it, there was an area of highlands filled with more lakes and ponds; and even farther away, the land began to slope to the north until travelers could see a great arm of the salt sea, where they encountered tribes (likely the Eskimo) who ate raw meat and seemed completely savage to the Indians.[4] This was probably the first mention recorded by a European of Hudson's Bay, the massive sea inlet that is one of the main features in the geography of British North America.

The Montagnais Indians round about Tadoussac received Champlain with great protestations of friendship, and at the headquarters of their principal chief or "Sagamore" celebrated this new friendship and alliance with a feast in a very large hut. The banquet, as usual, was preceded by a long address from the Sagamore in answer to the description of France, given by one of the Indian interpreters. The address was accompanied by the solemn smoking of tobacco, and at every pause in this grave oration the natives present shouted with one voice: "Ho! ho! ho!" The repast consisted of elk's meat (which struck the Frenchmen as being like beef), also the flesh of bear, seal, beaver, and wild fowl. There were eight or ten stone boilers or cauldrons full of meats in the middle of the great hut, separated each six feet from each other, and each one having its own fire. Every native used a porringer or vessel made of birch bark. When the meat was cooked a man in authority distributed it to each person. But Champlain thought the Indians ate in a very filthy manner. When their hands were covered with fat or grease they would rub them on their own heads or on the hair of their dogs. Before the meat was cooked each guest arose, took a dog, and hopped round the boilers from one end of the great hut to the other. Arriving in front of the chief, the Montagnais Indian feaster would throw his dog violently to the ground, exclaiming: "Ho! ho! ho!" after which he returned to his place.

The Montagnais Indians around Tadoussac welcomed Champlain with strong expressions of friendship, and at the headquarters of their main chief or "Sagamore," they celebrated this new friendship and alliance with a feast in a large hut. As usual, the banquet began with a lengthy speech from the Sagamore in response to the description of France provided by one of the Indian interpreters. The speech was marked by the ceremonial smoking of tobacco, and at every pause in this serious oration, the natives present shouted in unison: "Ho! ho! ho!" The meal included elk meat (which the Frenchmen thought tasted like beef), as well as bear, seal, beaver, and wild birds. There were eight or ten stone boilers full of food set up in the middle of the large hut, spaced about six feet apart, each with its own fire. Each native used a bowl or vessel made from birch bark. Once the meat was cooked, a designated man distributed it to everyone. However, Champlain found that the Indians ate in a very messy way. When their hands were greasy, they would wipe them on their heads or on their dogs. Before the meat was served, each guest would stand up, grab a dog, and hop around the boilers from one end of the hut to the other. When they reached the front of the chief, the Montagnais Indian would throw their dog down hard and shout: "Ho! ho! ho!" before returning to their spot.

At the close of the banquet every one danced, with the skulls of their Iroquois enemies slung over their backs. As they danced they slapped their knees with their hands, and shouted: "Ho! ho! ho!" till they were out of breath.

At the end of the banquet, everyone danced with the skulls of their Iroquois enemies slung over their backs. As they danced, they slapped their knees with their hands and shouted, "Ho! ho! ho!" until they were out of breath.

The huts of these Indians were low and made like tents, being covered with the bark of the birch tree. An opening about a foot of the top was left uncovered to admit light and to allow the smoke to escape. Though low, the huts were sometimes quite large, and would accommodate ten families. These slept higgledy-piggledy on skins, with their dogs amongst them. The dogs in appearance were something like what we know as Eskimo dogs, and also rather resembled the Chinese chow, with broad heads and rather short muzzles, prick ears, and a tail inclined to curl over the back. "All these people have a very cheerful disposition, laughing often, yet at the same time they are somewhat phlegmatic. They talk very deliberately, as if desiring to make themselves well understood, and, stopping suddenly, they reflect for a long time, when they resume their discourse."

The huts of these Native Americans were low and tent-like, covered with birch bark. An opening about a foot from the top was left uncovered to let in light and allow smoke to escape. Although low, the huts could be quite spacious, accommodating up to ten families. They slept haphazardly on animal skins, with their dogs cuddled up among them. The dogs looked somewhat like what we know as Eskimo dogs, and also resembled Chinese chow dogs, with broad heads, short muzzles, pointed ears, and tails that curled over their backs. "These people are very cheerful, often laughing, but at the same time, they are somewhat unemotional. They speak very deliberately, as if wanting to ensure they're understood, and after pausing suddenly, they reflect for a long time before picking up their conversation again."

They were agile, well-proportioned people, who in the summertime went about nearly naked, but in the winter were covered with good furs of elk, otter, beaver, bear, seal, and deer. The colour of their skin was usually a pale olive, but the women for some reason made themselves much darker-skinned than the men by rubbing their bodies with pigments which turned them to a dark brown. At times they suffered very much from lack of food, being obliged then to frequent the shore of the river or gulf to obtain shellfish. When pressed very hard by famine they would eat their dogs (their only domestic animal) and even the leather of the skins with which they clothed themselves. In the autumn they were much given to fishing for eels, and they dried a good deal of eel flesh, to last them through the winter. During the height of the winter they hunted the beaver, and later on the elk. Though they ate wild roots and fruits whenever they could obtain them, they do not seem to have cultivated any grain or vegetables. In the early spring they were sometimes dying of hunger, and looked so thin and haggard that they were mere walking skeletons. They were then ready to eat carrion that was putrid, so that it is little wonder that they suffered much from scurvy.

They were agile, well-proportioned people who spent the summer almost naked but wore warm furs from elk, otter, beaver, bear, seal, and deer in the winter. Their skin was usually a light olive color, but the women often darkened their skin significantly more than the men by rubbing their bodies with pigments that turned them dark brown. Sometimes they struggled severely with food shortages, often heading to the river or gulf to gather shellfish. When famished, they would eat their dogs (their only domestic animal) and even the leather from the skins they wore. In the fall, they focused on fishing for eels and dried a lot of eel meat to last through the winter. During the depth of winter, they hunted beavers and later elks. Though they gathered wild roots and fruits when available, they didn’t seem to farm any grains or vegetables. In early spring, they sometimes faced starvation, appearing so thin and haggard that they looked like walking skeletons. At that point, they were willing to eat decaying carcasses, which is not surprising given that they suffered greatly from scurvy.

Yet the rivers and the gulf abounded in fish, and as soon as the waters were unlocked by the melting of the ice in April, the surviving Indians rapidly grew fat and well, and of course the late summer and the autumn brought them nuts (hickory and other kinds of walnut, and hazel nuts), wild cherries, wild plums, raspberries, strawberries, gooseberries, blackberries, currants,[5] cranberries, and grapes.

Yet the rivers and the gulf were full of fish, and as soon as the ice melted in April, the surviving Native Americans quickly got healthy and plump. Naturally, late summer and autumn brought them nuts (like hickory, walnuts, and hazelnuts), wild cherries, wild plums, raspberries, strawberries, gooseberries, blackberries, currants,[5] cranberries, and grapes.

Champlain observed amongst them for the first time the far-famed Amerindian snowshoes, which he compares very aptly for shape to a racquet used in tennis.

Champlain saw for the first time the legendary Amerindian snowshoes, which he accurately compared in shape to a tennis racket.

Champlain next visited the site of Stadacona, but there was no longer any settlement of Europeans at that place, nor were the native Amerindians the descendants of the Hurons that had received Jacques Cartier. For the first time the name Quebec (pronounced Kebek) is applied to this point where the great River St. Lawrence narrows before dividing to encircle the Isle of Orleans. In fact, Quebec meant in the Algonkin speech a place where a river narrows; for a tribe of the great Algonkin family, the Algonkins, allied to the tribes of Maine and New Brunswick, had replaced the Hurons as the native inhabitants of this region.

Champlain then visited the site of Stadacona, but there was no longer any European settlement there, nor were the native Amerindians the descendants of the Hurons who had welcomed Jacques Cartier. For the first time, the name Quebec (pronounced Kebek) was given to the point where the great St. Lawrence River narrows before splitting to surround the Isle of Orleans. In fact, Quebec meant in Algonquin language a place where a river narrows; a tribe of the larger Algonquin family, the Algonkins, who were allied with the tribes of Maine and New Brunswick, had taken the place of the Hurons as the native inhabitants of this area.

On the shore of Quebec he noticed "diamonds" in some slate rocks—no doubt quartz crystals. Proceeding on up the River St. Lawrence he observed the extensive woods of fir and cypress (some kind of Thuja or Juniper), the undergrowth of vines, "wild pears", hazel nuts, cherries, red currants and green currants, and "certain little radishes of the size of a small nut, resembling truffles in taste, which are very good when roasted or boiled". As they advanced towards the interior the country became increasingly mountainous on the south (the green mountains of New Hampshire), and was more and more beautiful—"the pleasantest land yet seen". Landing on the south bank of the St. Lawrence, west of the entrance of the river of the Iroquois (the Richelieu), he found magnificent forests, which, besides the trees already mentioned, included oaks, chestnuts, maples, pines, walnut-like nut trees,[6] aspens, poplars, and beeches; with climbing hops and vines, strawberries trailing over the ground, and raspberry canes and currant bushes "growing in the thick grass". These splendid woods on the islands and banks of the broad river were full of game: elks,[7] wapiti deer, Virginian deer, bears, porcupines, hares, foxes, beavers, otters, and musk rats, besides many animals he could not recognize.

On the shore of Quebec, he noticed "diamonds" in some slate rocks—no doubt quartz crystals. As he continued up the St. Lawrence River, he saw the vast forests of fir and cypress (some type of Thuja or Juniper), along with underbrush of vines, "wild pears," hazelnuts, cherries, red currants, and green currants, as well as "some small radishes the size of a small nut, tasting like truffles, which are very tasty when roasted or boiled." As they moved inland, the land became increasingly mountainous to the south (the green mountains of New Hampshire) and more and more beautiful—"the most pleasant land yet seen." Arriving on the south bank of the St. Lawrence, west of the entrance to the Iroquois River (the Richelieu), he encountered magnificent forests, which, in addition to the trees already mentioned, included oaks, chestnuts, maples, pines, walnut-like nut trees,[6] aspens, poplars, and beeches; with climbing hops and vines, strawberries sprawling on the ground, and raspberry canes and currant bushes "growing in the thick grass." These beautiful woods on the islands and banks of the wide river were teeming with wildlife: elks,[7] wapiti deer, Virginian deer, bears, porcupines, hares, foxes, beavers, otters, and muskrats, along with many animals he couldn’t identify.

At last his little expedition in "a skiff and canoe" had to draw into the bank, warned by the noise that they were approaching a great fall of water—the La Chine or St. Louis Rapids. Champlain wrote: "I saw, to my astonishment, a torrent of water descending with an impetuosity such as I have never before witnessed.... It descends as if in steps, and at each descent there is a remarkable boiling, owing to the force and swiftness with which the water traverses the fall, which is about a league in length.... The territory on the side of the fall where we went overland consists, so far as we saw it, of very open wood, where one can go with his armour without much difficulty."

At last, his little journey in "a skiff and canoe" had to pull up to the shore, alerted by the noise that they were nearing a major waterfall—the La Chine or St. Louis Rapids. Champlain wrote: "I was astonished to see a torrent of water cascading down with a force I had never seen before.... It drops in steps, and at each step, there's a remarkable boiling due to the power and speed with which the water moves over the falls, which is about a league long.... The land on the side of the falls where we traveled on land consists, from what we could see, of very open woods, where one can walk with their armor without much trouble."

From the Algonkin Indians in the neighbourhood of these St. Louis Rapids, and also from those living near Quebec, Champlain obtained a good deal of geographical information to add to his own observations. He was given an idea, more or less correct, of Lake Ontario, the Falls of Niagara, Lake Erie and Lake Huron, and perhaps also of Lake Superior, a sea so vast, said the Amerindians, that the sun set on its horizon. This sheet of water, Champlain calculated, must be 1200 miles distant to the west, and therefore identical with the "Mer du sud" (Pacific Ocean), which all North-American explorers for three centuries wished to reach.

From the Algonquin Indians near these St. Louis Rapids, as well as those living close to Quebec, Champlain gathered a lot of geographical information to complement his own observations. He got a somewhat accurate understanding of Lake Ontario, the Niagara Falls, Lake Erie, Lake Huron, and possibly Lake Superior, which the Native Americans described as so vast that the sun set on its horizon. Champlain estimated that this body of water was about 1,200 miles to the west and therefore the same as the "Mer du sud" (Pacific Ocean), which all North American explorers had been trying to reach for three centuries.

After collecting much information about possible copper mines in the regions north and south of the Lower St. Lawrence, and of silver[8] in New Brunswick or Nova Scotia, and a terrible story which he more than half believed about a monster of prodigious size, the Gougou,[9] Champlain set sail for France at the end of August, 1603.

After gathering a lot of information about potential copper mines in the areas north and south of the Lower St. Lawrence, and about silver[8] in New Brunswick or Nova Scotia, along with a frightening tale he somewhat believed about a massive creature called the Gougou,[9] Champlain set off for France at the end of August, 1603.

In April, 1604, Champlain accompanied the Sieur de Monts (who had succeeded the dead Amyard de Chastes as head of a chartered fur-trading association) in a fresh expedition to North America, together with a hundred and twenty artisans and several noblemen. They were to occupy the lands of "Cadie" (Acadia, Nova Scotia), Canada, and other places in New France. De Monts thought Tadoussac and Quebec too cold in wintertime, and preferred the sunnier east coast regions. He aimed indeed at colonizing what is now New England.

In April 1604, Champlain joined Sieur de Monts, who had taken over from the deceased Amyard de Chastes as the head of a chartered fur-trading company, on a new expedition to North America, along with 120 craftsmen and several noblemen. They were set to settle in the lands of "Cadie" (Acadia, Nova Scotia), Canada, and other areas in New France. De Monts believed that Tadoussac and Quebec were too cold in the winter and preferred the sunnier regions along the east coast. He was indeed focused on colonizing what is now New England.

On the way to Nova Scotia, the expedition was nearly wrecked on Sable Island, about one hundred and twenty miles south of Cape Breton Island, and noticed there the large red cattle run wild from the bulls and cows landed on Sable Island by the Portuguese some sixty years earlier. (The Portuguese of the fifteenth and sixteenth centuries deserved well of humanity for the generous way in which they left cattle, goats, pigs, and rabbits to run wild on desert islands and serve as provender for shipwrecked mariners like Robinson Crusoe.) Champlain also speaks of the "fine large black foxes" which he and other voyagers noticed on Sable Island. How they came there is a mystery, unless the island had once been part of the mainland.

On the way to Nova Scotia, the expedition almost got wrecked on Sable Island, about one hundred and twenty miles south of Cape Breton Island, and saw the large red cattle that had gone wild from the bulls and cows released on Sable Island by the Portuguese around sixty years earlier. (The Portuguese of the fifteenth and sixteenth centuries did a great service to humanity by generously leaving cattle, goats, pigs, and rabbits to roam freely on deserted islands, providing food for shipwrecked sailors like Robinson Crusoe.) Champlain also mentions the "fine large black foxes" that he and other travelers spotted on Sable Island. How they ended up there is a mystery, unless the island was once part of the mainland.

This same Sable Island had been the scene of an extraordinary experiment at the end of the previous century. In 1598 the Marquis de la Roche, given a commission to colonize New France, sailed in a small ship for North America with sixty convicts from French prisons as colonists. He landed them on Sable Island, and went away to look for some good site for his colony. But then a storm arose, and his little ship was literally blown back to France. The convicts, abandoned thus, built themselves shelters out of the driftwood of wrecks; killed and ate the cattle and caught fish. They made themselves warm clothes out of the skins of the seals which frequented the island coast in thousands. But these convicts quarrelled and fought among themselves so fiercely that when at last a ship from Normandy came to take them away, there were only twelve left—twelve shaggy men with long tangled hair and beards; and, a legend says, in addition a Franciscan monk who had been landed on the island with them as a kind of missionary or chaplain, and who had been so heartbroken at their bloody quarrels and horrible deeds that when the Norman ship arrived to take the castaways back to France, the Franciscan refused to go with them, believing himself to be dying and wishing to end his life undisturbed. So he was left behind. But after the ship had sailed away he slowly mended, grew well and strong, and cultivated eagerly his little garden. For food he ate the whelks, mussels, and oysters that were so abundant on the shore. Occasionally ships (then as now) were wrecked on Sable Island in stormy weather, and the good monk ministered to the mariners who reached the shore. Also he was visited, ever and again, by the Breton fishing boats, which brought him supplies of necessaries and the bread and wine for celebrating Mass. Long after his death his spirit was thought to haunt the desolate island.

This same Sable Island was the site of an incredible experiment at the end of the last century. In 1598, the Marquis de la Roche, tasked with colonizing New France, sailed to North America in a small ship with sixty convicts from French prisons as settlers. He dropped them off on Sable Island and went off to search for a suitable spot for his colony. But then a storm hit, and his little ship was literally blown back to France. The abandoned convicts built shelters from the driftwood of shipwrecks, killed and ate the cattle, and caught fish. They made warm clothes from the skins of the seals that frequented the island's shores in large numbers. But these convicts quarreled and fought among themselves so intensely that when a ship from Normandy finally came to take them away, only twelve remained—twelve scruffy men with long, tangled hair and beards; and, according to legend, a Franciscan monk who had been dropped off on the island with them as a sort of missionary or chaplain. He was so heartbroken by their violent conflicts and terrible actions that when the Norman ship arrived to rescue the survivors, the Franciscan chose to stay behind, believing he was dying and wanting to end his life in peace. So he was left there. But after the ship sailed away, he gradually recovered, grew healthy and strong, and eagerly tended to his little garden. For food, he ate the whelks, mussels, and oysters that were plentiful on the shore. Occasionally, ships (then as now) were wrecked on Sable Island during storms, and the kind monk helped the sailors who made it to the shore. He was also visited from time to time by Breton fishing boats that brought him supplies, including bread and wine for celebrating Mass. Long after his death, people thought his spirit haunted the deserted island.

Champlain and his companions passed on from Sable Island to the south-east coast of Nova Scotia, noticing as they landed here and there the abundance of rabbits[10] and sea birds, especially the Great Auk, of which they killed numbers with sticks, cormorants (whose fishy eggs they ate with enjoyment), puffins, guillemots, gulls, terns, scissorbills, divers, ospreys, buzzards, and falcons; and no doubt the typical American white-tailed sea eagles, ravens, ducks, geese, curlews, herons, and cranes. Here and there they found the shore "completely covered with sea wolves"—seals, of course, probably the common seal and the grey seal. Of these they captured as many as they wanted, for the seals, like most of the birds, were quite unafraid of man.

Champlain and his companions moved from Sable Island to the southeast coast of Nova Scotia, noticing as they landed that there was an abundance of rabbits[10] and sea birds, especially the Great Auk, of which they killed many with sticks, along with cormorants (whose fishy eggs they enjoyed eating), puffins, guillemots, gulls, terns, scissorbills, divers, ospreys, buzzards, and falcons; and no doubt the typical American white-tailed sea eagles, ravens, ducks, geese, curlews, herons, and cranes. Here and there, they found the shore "completely covered with sea wolves"—seals, probably the common seal and the grey seal. They captured as many as they wanted since the seals, like most of the birds, were quite unafraid of humans.

They then explored the Bay of Fundy, and, after zig-zagging about, decided to fix on the harbour of St. John's (New Brunswick) as the site for their colony. The future capital of New France, therefore, was begun on La Sainte Croix (Dochet) Island, near the mouth of the wonderful tidal estuary of the Uigudi (Ouygoudy) River.

They then explored the Bay of Fundy and after moving around a bit, decided to choose the harbor of St. John's (New Brunswick) as the location for their colony. Thus, the future capital of New France was started on La Sainte Croix (Dochet) Island, close to the mouth of the amazing tidal estuary of the Uigudi (Ouygoudy) River.

Here they passed the winter, but suffered so badly from scurvy[11] that, when in the spring of 1605 Du Pont Gravé arrived from Brittany with supplies, the remnant of the colony was removed to the opposite coast of Nova Scotia to Port Royal (afterwards named by the English Annapolis[12]). The French seem to have fallen in love with this place from the very first. Nevertheless here they suffered from scurvy during the winter as elsewhere. Before moving over here, however, Champlain, together with De Monts, had explored the west of New England south of New Brunswick as far as Plymouth, just south of Boston.

Here they spent the winter but suffered greatly from scurvy[11]. When Du Pont Gravé arrived from Brittany in the spring of 1605 with supplies, what was left of the colony was moved to the opposite coast of Nova Scotia to Port Royal (later named Annapolis by the English[12]). The French seemed to fall in love with this place right from the start. However, they still struggled with scurvy during the winter just like elsewhere. Before relocating here, though, Champlain and De Monts had explored the western part of New England, south of New Brunswick, all the way to Plymouth, just south of Boston.

Off the coast of Maine (Richmond's Island) they encountered agricultural Amerindians of a new tribe, the Penobskot probably, who cultivated a form of rank narcotic tobacco (Nicotiana rustica), which they called Petun. (A variety of this has produced the handsome garden flower Petunia, whose Latin name is derived from this native word Petun.) They also grew maize or Indian corn, planting very carefully three or four seeds in little mounds three feet apart one from the other, the soil in between being kept clear of weeds. The American farmers of to-day cannot adopt any better method.

Off the coast of Maine (Richmond's Island), they met a group of agricultural Native Americans, likely the Penobscot, who grew a potent form of tobacco (Nicotiana rustica) that they called Petun. (A variety of this has led to the beautiful garden flower Petunia, which gets its Latin name from the native word Petun.) They also cultivated corn, carefully planting three or four seeds in small mounds spaced three feet apart, keeping the soil between them clear of weeds. Today's American farmers couldn't find a better method.

The islands round about Portland (Maine) were matted all over with wild red currants, so that the eye could scarcely discern anything else. Attracted by this fruit, clouds of wild pigeons had assembled[13]. They manifested hardly any fear of the French, who captured large numbers of them in snares, or killed them with guns. The natives of southern Maine fled with dismay on sighting the French ships, for they had never before seen sailing vessels, but later on they timidly approached the French ships in a canoe, then landed and went through a wild dance on the shore to typify friendliness. Champlain took with him some drawing paper and a pencil or crayon, together with a quantity of knives and ship's biscuit. Landing alone, he attracted the natives towards him by offering them biscuits, and having gathered them round him (being of course as much unable to understand their speech as they were French), he proceeded to ask questions by means of certain drawings, chiefly the outlines of the coast. The savages at once seized his idea, and taking up his pencil drew on the paper an accurate outline of Massachusetts Bay, adding also rivers and islands unknown to the French. They went on by further intelligent signs to supply information. For instance, they placed six pebbles at equal distances to intimate that Massachusetts Bay was occupied by six tribes and governed by as many chiefs. By drawings of growing maize and other plants they intimated that all these people lived by agriculture.

The islands around Portland (Maine) were covered with wild red currants, making it hard to see anything else. Attracted by this fruit, flocks of wild pigeons gathered. They showed little fear of the French, who caught many of them in traps or shot them with guns. The local people of southern Maine were terrified when they saw the French ships, as they had never seen sailing vessels before. Eventually, they cautiously approached the French ships in a canoe, then landed and performed a wild dance on the shore to show they meant no harm. Champlain brought some drawing paper and a pencil or crayon, along with a supply of knives and ship's biscuits. Landing alone, he attracted the natives by offering them biscuits, and once they gathered around him (though neither side understood the other's language), he began asking questions using drawings, mainly outlines of the coastline. The natives quickly grasped his idea, took his pencil, and sketched an accurate outline of Massachusetts Bay, adding rivers and islands the French didn't know about. They further communicated intelligent information using symbols; for example, they placed six pebbles at equal distances to indicate that Massachusetts Bay was inhabited by six tribes, each governed by its own chief. Through drawings of growing corn and other crops, they indicated that all these people depended on agriculture.

Champlain thought Massachusetts (in his first voyage) a most attractive region in the summer, what with the blue water of the enclosed arms of the sea, the lofty forest trees, and the fields of Indian corn and other crops.

Champlain found Massachusetts (on his first voyage) a truly appealing area in the summer, with the blue waters of the sheltered bays, the tall forest trees, and the fields of corn and other crops.

When these French explorers reached the harbour of Boston, the islands and mainland were swarming with the native population. The Amerindians were intensely interested in the arrival of the first sailing vessel they had ever seen. Although it was only a small barque, its size was greater than any canoe known to them. As it seemed to spread huge white wings and to glide silently through the water without the use of paddles or oars, it filled them with surprise and admiration. They manned all their canoes[14] and came out in a flotilla to express their honour and reverence for the wonderful white men. But when the French took their leave, it was equally obvious that the natives experienced a sense of relief, for they were disquieted as well as filled with admiration at the arrival of these wonderful beings from an unknown world.

When these French explorers arrived at the harbor of Boston, the islands and mainland were bustling with the local population. The Native Americans were very curious about the first sailing ship they had ever seen. Even though it was just a small barque, it was larger than any canoe they knew. As it seemed to stretch out huge white wings and glide quietly through the water without paddles or oars, it amazed and impressed them. They took all their canoes[14] and came out in a flotilla to show their respect and admiration for the incredible white men. However, when the French departed, it was clear that the natives also felt a sense of relief, as they were both unsettled and in awe of the arrival of these extraordinary people from an unknown world.

Champlain describes the wigwams or native huts as being cone-shaped, heavily thatched with reeds, with an opening at the top of the roof for the smoke to escape. Inside the huts was a low bed raised a foot from the ground and made of short posts driven into the ground, with a surface made of boards split from trees. On these boards were laid either the dressed skins of deer or bear, or thick mattresses made of reeds or rushes. The beds were large enough for several people to lie on. Champlain describes the huts as being full of fleas, and likewise the persons of the nearly naked Indians, who carried these fleas out with them into the fields when they were working, so that the Frenchmen by stopping to talk to the natives became covered with fleas to such an extent that they were obliged to change their clothes.

Champlain describes the wigwams, or native huts, as cone-shaped structures, heavily thatched with reeds, featuring an opening at the top of the roof for smoke to escape. Inside, there was a low bed raised a foot off the ground, made of short posts driven into the ground, with a surface made of boards split from trees. On these boards were laid either dressed deer or bear skins, or thick mattresses made from reeds or rushes. The beds were big enough for several people to lie on. Champlain notes that the huts were infested with fleas, as were the nearly naked Indians, who carried these fleas out into the fields while they worked, causing the Frenchmen, when they stopped to talk to the natives, to become so covered in fleas that they had to change their clothes.

In the fields were cultivated not only maize, but beans similar to the beans grown by the natives of Brazil, vegetable marrows or pumpkins, Jerusalem artichokes[15], radishes, and tobacco. The woods were filled with oaks, walnut trees[16], and the red "cedar" of North America, really a very large juniper, the foliage of which in the summertime often assumes a reddish colour, together with the trunk. This Virginian juniper or "red cedar" is now quite a common tree in England. In warm weather it exhales a delicious aromatic scent.

In the fields, they grew not just corn, but also beans similar to those cultivated by the natives of Brazil, squashes or pumpkins, Jerusalem artichokes[15], radishes, and tobacco. The woods were filled with oaks, walnut trees[16], and the red "cedar" of North America, which is actually a large juniper. Its foliage often turns a reddish color in the summer, along with its trunk. This Virginian juniper, or "red cedar," is quite common in England now. In warm weather, it gives off a delightful aromatic scent.

All these natives of the Massachusetts coast were described by Champlain as being almost naked in the summertime, wearing at most a small piece of leather round the waist, and a short robe of spun hemp which hung down over the shoulders. Their faces were painted red, black and yellow. The men pulled out any hairs which might come on the chin, and thus were beardless. They were armed with pikes, clubs, bows, and arrows. The pikes were probably made of wood with the ends hardened by being burnt to a point in the fire, and the arrow tips were made of the sharp termination of the tail of the great king-crab[17].

All these native people of the Massachusetts coast were described by Champlain as being almost naked in the summer, wearing at most a small piece of leather around the waist and a short robe made of spun hemp that hung over their shoulders. Their faces were painted red, black, and yellow. The men removed any body hair that might grow on their chins, so they were beardless. They were armed with pikes, clubs, bows, and arrows. The pikes were likely made of wood with the ends hardened by being burned to a point in the fire, and the arrow tips were made from the sharp end of the tail of the great king crab[17].

These Massachusetts "Indians" described to Champlain a wonderful bird which at some seasons of the year they caught in snares and ate. This Champlain at once guessed was the wild turkey, now, of course, quite extinct in that region. This wild turkey of the eastern half of North America (including southern Canada) was quite a distinct form from the Mexican bird, which last is the origin of our domestic turkey.

These Massachusetts "Indians" told Champlain about a remarkable bird that they caught in traps and ate during certain times of the year. Champlain immediately suspected it was the wild turkey, which is now completely extinct in that area. This wild turkey from the eastern part of North America (including southern Canada) was quite different from the Mexican bird, which is the ancestor of our domestic turkey.

In July, 1606, as De Monts had not returned from France, and the little colony at Port Royal was without supplies, they decided to leave two Frenchmen in charge of the local chief of the Mikmak Indians, and find their way along the coast to Cape Breton, where they might get a fishing vessel to take them back to France. But after travelling in an open boat—a chaloupe—round the coast of Nova Scotia they met another small boat off Cape Sable, under the charge of the secretary of De Monts, and learnt that Lieutenant-General DE POUTRINCOURT[18] (one of the great names amongst the pioneers of Canada, and the man who had really chosen Port Royal for the French headquarters at Nova Scotia) had already returned from France with fresh supplies. Consequently, Champlain and his companions returned to Port Royal, and all set to work with eagerness to develop the settlement. Champlain relates in his book how he created vegetable gardens, trout streams and ponds, and a reservoir of salt water for sea fish; but he was soon off again on a fresh journey of exploration, because De Monts was not satisfied with Nova Scotia on account of the cold in winter. Accordingly Champlain examined the whole coast round the Bay of Fundy, and down to Cape Cod, and the islands of Martha's Vineyard and Nantucket. But in this region, already visited in past times by French, Spanish, and English ships, they found the natives treacherous and hostile. An unprovoked attack was made on the French after they landed, and several of the seamen were killed with arrows.

In July 1606, since De Monts hadn't returned from France and the small colony at Port Royal was out of supplies, they decided to leave two Frenchmen in charge of the local chief of the Mikmak Indians and make their way along the coast to Cape Breton, where they could find a fishing vessel to take them back to France. However, after traveling in an open boat—a chaloupe—around the coast of Nova Scotia, they encountered another small boat off Cape Sable, captained by De Monts' secretary, and learned that Lieutenant-General DE POUTRINCOURT[18] (one of the key figures among the pioneers of Canada, and the person who had actually chosen Port Royal as the French headquarters in Nova Scotia) had already returned from France with fresh supplies. As a result, Champlain and his companions went back to Port Royal and eagerly started to develop the settlement. Champlain describes in his book how he created vegetable gardens, trout streams, ponds, and a saltwater reservoir for sea fish; but he soon set off again on a new exploration journey because De Monts was not happy with Nova Scotia due to the cold winters. Therefore, Champlain explored the entire coast around the Bay of Fundy down to Cape Cod, and the islands of Martha's Vineyard and Nantucket. However, in this area, which had already been visited in the past by French, Spanish, and English ships, they found the locals treacherous and hostile. The French were attacked without provocation after they landed, and several of the sailors were killed by arrows.

On the 24th of May, 1607, a small barque of six or seven tons burden (fancy crossing the wide Atlantic from Brittany to Nova Scotia in a ship of that size at the present day!) arrived outside Port Royal from France, with an abrupt notification that De Monts' ten years' monopoly and charter were cancelled by Henry IV, and that all the colony was to be withdrawn and brought back to France. Henry IV took this action simply because De Monts attempted to make his monopoly a real one,[19] and stop the ships of fur traders who were trading with the Amerindians of Cape Breton without his licence. These fur traders of Normandy then complained bitterly that because De Monts was a Protestant he was allowed not only to have this monopoly, but to endanger the spiritual welfare of the savages by spreading his false doctrines! So King Henry IV, volatile and capricious, like most of the French kings, cancelled a charter which had led to such heroic and remarkable results.

On May 24, 1607, a small barque weighing six or seven tons (imagine trying to cross the wide Atlantic from Brittany to Nova Scotia in a ship that size today!) arrived outside Port Royal from France, delivering the shocking news that De Monts' ten-year monopoly and charter were cancelled by Henry IV, and that the entire colony was to be withdrawn and brought back to France. Henry IV took this step simply because De Monts tried to enforce his monopoly and prevent fur traders from trading with the Amerindians of Cape Breton without his permission. These fur traders from Normandy then complained bitterly that because De Monts was a Protestant, he was allowed to have this monopoly and was jeopardizing the spiritual welfare of the natives by spreading his false beliefs! So, King Henry IV, unpredictable and temperamental like most French kings, cancelled a charter that had led to such heroic and remarkable outcomes.

The greater part of the little colony had to leave Port Royal and make its way in small boats along the Nova Scotia coasts till they reached Cape Breton Island. Here fishing vessels conveyed them back to Brittany. It was in this boat journeying along the coast of Nova Scotia that Champlain discovered Halifax Harbour, then called by the Indian name of Shebuktu. As they passed along this coast with its many islands, they feasted on ripe raspberries, which grew everywhere "in the greatest possible quantity".

Most of the small colony had to leave Port Royal and travel in small boats along the Nova Scotia coast until they reached Cape Breton Island. There, fishing vessels took them back to Brittany. It was during this boat trip along the Nova Scotia coast that Champlain discovered Halifax Harbour, which was then known by the Indian name Shebuktu. As they passed along this coast with its many islands, they enjoyed feasting on ripe raspberries, which grew everywhere "in the greatest possible quantity."

Poutrincourt, however, had succeeded in taking back with him samples of the corn, wheat, rye, barley, and oats which had been so successfully grown on the island of Sainte Croix and at Port Royal, and also presented to that monarch five brent-geese[20] which he had reared up from eggs hatched under a hen. The king was so delighted at these presents that he once more veered about and gave to De Monts the monopoly of the fur trade for one more year, in order to enable him to renew his colonies in New France.

Poutrincourt, however, managed to bring back samples of the corn, wheat, rye, barley, and oats that had been successfully grown on the island of Sainte Croix and at Port Royal. He also presented the king with five brent geese[20] that he had raised from eggs hatched under a hen. The king was so pleased with these gifts that he changed his mind again and granted De Monts the monopoly on the fur trade for another year, allowing him to revitalize his colonies in New France.

The Sieur de Monts was again appointed by Henry IV Lieutenant-General in New France. The latter engaged Champlain as his lieutenant, and also sent out Du Pont Gravé in command of the second vessel, as head of the trading operations. This time, on the advice of Champlain, the expedition made its way directly to the St. Lawrence River, stopping first at Tadoussac, where Du Pont Gravé proceeded to take very strong measures with the Basque seamen, who were infringing his monopoly by trading with the natives in furs. Apparently they were still allowed to continue their whale fishery.

The Sieur de Monts was once again appointed by Henry IV as Lieutenant-General in New France. He hired Champlain as his lieutenant and also sent Du Pont Gravé in charge of the second ship, leading the trading operations. This time, following Champlain's advice, the expedition headed straight to the St. Lawrence River, first stopping at Tadoussac, where Du Pont Gravé took strict actions against the Basque sailors who were violating his monopoly by trading furs with the natives. It seemed they were still permitted to continue their whale fishing.

Once more Champlain heard from the Montagnais Indians of the great Salt Sea to the north of Saguenay, in other words, the southern extension of Hudson's Bay; and in his book he notes that the English in these latter years "had gone thither to find their way to China". However, he kept his intent fixed on the establishment of a French colony along the St. Lawrence, and may be said to have founded the city of Quebec (the site of which was then covered with nut trees) on the 4th of July, 1608. Then his enterprise was near being wrecked by a base conspiracy got up between a surgeon and a number of French artisans, who believed that by seizing and killing Champlain, and then handing over the infant settlement to the Spanish Basques, they might enable these traders and fishermen with their good strong ships to overcome Du Pont Gravé, and seize the whole country. Naturally (they believed) the Basques would reward the conspirators, who would thus at a stroke become rich men. They none of them wished to go to France, but would live here independent of outside interference. A conspirator, however, revealed the plot to Champlain as he was planting one of the little gardens which he started as soon as he had been in a place a few days. He went about his business very discreetly, arrested all the leading conspirators, gave them a fair trial, had the ringleader executed by Pont Gravé, and sent three others back to France. After this he settled down at Quebec for the winter, taking care, however, in the month of October, to plant seeds and vines for coming up in the spring.

Once again, Champlain heard from the Montagnais Indians about the great Salt Sea north of Saguenay, which refers to the southern extension of Hudson's Bay. In his book, he mentions that the English in recent years "had gone there to find their way to China." However, he remained focused on creating a French colony along the St. Lawrence and can be said to have founded the city of Quebec (which was then covered with nut trees) on July 4, 1608. His project almost fell apart due to a despicable conspiracy by a surgeon and several French workers who thought that by seizing and killing Champlain and then handing over the fledgling settlement to the Spanish Basques, they could help these traders and fishermen with their strong ships defeat Du Pont Gravé and take control of the entire area. They believed that the Basques would reward them, making them rich in the process. None wanted to return to France; they preferred to live there free from outside interference. However, a conspirator spilled the beans to Champlain while he was planting one of the small gardens he started a few days after arriving. He handled the situation discreetly, arrested all the main conspirators, gave them a fair trial, had the leader executed by Pont Gravé, and sent three others back to France. After that, he settled in Quebec for the winter but made sure to plant seeds and vines in October for the spring.

In the summer of 1609 Champlain, apparently with the idea of thus exploring the country south of the St. Lawrence, decided to accompany a party of Algonkins and Hurons from Georgian Bay and the neighbourhood of Montreal, who were bent on attacking the Iroquois confederacy in the Mohawk country at the headwaters of the Hudson River. He was accompanied by two French soldiers—Des Marais and La Routte—and by a few Montagnais Indians from Tadoussac.

In the summer of 1609, Champlain, apparently looking to explore the area south of the St. Lawrence, decided to join a group of Algonkins and Hurons from Georgian Bay and around Montreal who were planning to launch an attack on the Iroquois confederacy in the Mohawk territory at the headwaters of the Hudson River. He was accompanied by two French soldiers—Des Marais and La Routte—and a few Montagnais Indians from Tadoussac.

The Hurons[21] were really of the same group (as regards language and descent) as the Iroquois (Irokwá), but in those days held aloof from the five other tribes who had formed a confederacy[22] and alliance under the name of Ongwehonwe—"Superior Men". The Iroquois (Mohawks, Oneidas, Onondagas, Kayugas, and Senekas) dominated much of what is now New York State, and from the mountain country of the Adirondaks and Catskills descended on the St. Lawrence valley and the shores of Lakes Ontario and Huron to rob and massacre.

The Hurons[21] were actually part of the same group (in terms of language and ancestry) as the Iroquois (Irokwá), but back then they kept their distance from the five other tribes that had formed a confederacy[22] and alliance known as Ongwehonwe—"Superior Men." The Iroquois (Mohawks, Oneidas, Onondagas, Cayugas, and Senecas) controlled much of what is today New York State, and they descended from the mountain regions of the Adirondacks and Catskills into the St. Lawrence valley and along the shores of Lakes Ontario and Huron to pillage and kill.

The route into the enemy's country lay along the Richelieu River and across Lake Champlain to its southern end, in sight of the majestic snow-crowned Adirondak Mountains. On the way the allies stopped at an island, held a kind of review, and explained their tactics to Champlain. They set no sentries and kept no strict watch at night, being too tired; but during the daytime the army advanced as follows: The main body marched in the centre along the warpath; a portion of the troops diverged on either side to hunt up food for the expedition; and a third section was told off for "intelligence" work, namely, they ran on ahead and roundabout to locate the enemy, looking out especially along the rivers for marks or signals showing whether friends or enemies had passed that way. These marks were devised by the chiefs of the different tribes, and were duly communicated to the war leaders of tribes in friendship or alliance, like our cipher codes; and equally they were changed from time to time to baffle the enemy. Neither hunters nor main body ever got in front of the advance guard, lest they should give an alarm. Thus they travelled until they got within two days or so of the enemies' headquarters; thenceforward they only marched by night, and hid in the woods by day, making no fires or noise, and subsisting only on cooked maize meal.

The route into the enemy's territory followed the Richelieu River and crossed Lake Champlain to its southern tip, where the impressive snow-capped Adirondack Mountains could be seen. Along the way, the allies stopped at an island to hold a sort of review and explain their tactics to Champlain. They didn’t set any sentries or maintain a strict watch at night since they were too exhausted; however, during the day, the army advanced as follows: The main group marched in the center along the warpath; some troops branched out on either side to gather food for the mission; and a separate section was assigned to "intelligence" work, meaning they sprinted ahead and around to find the enemy, especially watching the rivers for signs or signals indicating whether friends or foes had passed through. These marks were created by the leaders of different tribes and were communicated to the war leaders of allied tribes, similar to our cipher codes; they were also changed periodically to confuse the enemy. Neither the hunters nor the main group ever went ahead of the advance guard to avoid raising any alarms. They traveled this way until they were about two days away from the enemy's headquarters; from then on, they only marched at night and hid in the woods during the day, making no fires or noise, and surviving only on cooked maize meal.

At intervals the soothsayers accompanying the army were consulted for signs and omens; and when the war-chiefs decided on their plan of campaign they summoned all the fighting men to a smooth place in a wood, cut sticks a foot long (as many as there were warriors), and each leader of a division "put the sticks in such order as seemed to him best, indicating to his followers the rank and order they were to observe in battle. The warriors watched carefully this proceeding, observing attentively the outline which their chief had made with the sticks. Then they would go away and set to placing themselves in such order as the sticks were in. This manoeuvre they repeated several times, and at all their encampments, without needing a sergeant to maintain them in the proper order they were able to keep accurately the positions assigned to them" (Champlain).

At intervals, the soothsayers with the army were asked for signs and omens. When the war chiefs decided on their strategy, they gathered all the warriors in a clear area of the woods, cut sticks about a foot long (equal to the number of fighters), and each division leader arranged the sticks in the order they thought was best, showing their followers the rank and sequence they needed to follow in battle. The warriors closely watched this process, paying close attention to how their leader arranged the sticks. Then, they would leave and position themselves in the same formation as the sticks. They practiced this several times at all their camps, and without needing a sergeant to keep them in line, they could accurately maintain their assigned positions (Champlain).

The Hurons who were accompanying Champlain frequently questioned him as to his dreams, they themselves having a great belief in the value of dreams as omens and indications of future events. One day, when they were approaching the country of the Iroquois, Champlain actually did have a dream. In this he imagined that he saw the Iroquois enemies drowning in a lake near a mountain. Moved to pity in his dream he wished to help them, but his savage allies insisted that they must be allowed to die. When he awoke he told the Amerindians of his dream, and they were greatly impressed, as they regarded it as a good omen.

The Hurons who were with Champlain often asked him about his dreams because they believed strongly in the significance of dreams as signs and predictions of what was to come. One day, as they were nearing the territory of the Iroquois, Champlain actually had a dream. In this dream, he envisioned the Iroquois enemies drowning in a lake next to a mountain. Feeling sympathy in his dream, he wanted to help them, but his savage allies insisted that they should be allowed to perish. When he woke up, he shared his dream with the Indigenous people, and they were very impressed, seeing it as a positive sign.

Near the modern town of Ticonderoga the Hurons and Algonkins of Georgian Bay and Ottawa met a party of Iroquois, probably of the Mohawk tribe. The Iroquois had built rapidly a stockade in which to retreat if things should go badly with them, but the battle at first began in the old heroic style with as much ceremony as a French duel. First the allies from the St. Lawrence asked the Iroquois what time it would suit them to begin fighting the next day; then the latter replied: "When the sun is well up, if you don't mind? We can see better then to kill you all." Accordingly in the bright morning the Hurons and Algonkins advanced against the circular stockade of the Iroquois, and the Iroquois marched out to fight in great pomp, their leaders wearing plumed headdresses. With this exception both parties fought quite naked, and armed only with bows and arrows.

Near the modern town of Ticonderoga, the Hurons and Algonkins from Georgian Bay and Ottawa encountered a group of Iroquois, likely from the Mohawk tribe. The Iroquois quickly built a stockade to retreat to if the situation turned against them, but the battle began traditionally, with as much formality as a French duel. First, the allies from the St. Lawrence asked the Iroquois when they would like to start fighting the next day; the Iroquois replied, "When the sun is up, if that works for you? We can see better then to take you all out." So, in the bright morning, the Hurons and Algonkins advanced toward the circular stockade of the Iroquois, who marched out to battle with great flair, their leaders wearing feathered headdresses. Aside from this, both sides fought completely naked and were armed only with bows and arrows.

"I marched twenty paces in advance of the rest" (wrote Champlain) "till I was within about thirty paces of the Iroquois.... I rested my musket against my cheek, and aimed directly at one of the three chiefs. With the same shot two fell to the ground, and one of their men was so wounded that he died some time afterwards. I had loaded my musket with four balls. When they saw I had shot so favourably for them, they (the Algonkins and Hurons) raised such loud cries that one could not have heard it thunder.

"I walked twenty steps ahead of everyone else" (wrote Champlain) "until I was about thirty steps away from the Iroquois... I rested my gun against my cheek and aimed directly at one of the three chiefs. With that one shot, two of them fell to the ground, and one of their men was wounded severely enough that he died later. I had loaded my gun with four bullets. When they saw I had shot so favorably for them, the Algonkins and Hurons let out such loud cries that you couldn't even hear the thunder."

"Meantime the arrows flew on both sides. The Iroquois were greatly astonished that two men had been so quickly killed, though they were equipped with armour woven from copper thread and with wood, which was proof against their arrows."

"Meanwhile, arrows were flying from both sides. The Iroquois were very surprised that two men had been killed so quickly, even though they were wearing armor made from copper thread and wood, which should have been resistant to their arrows."

Whilst Champlain was loading to fire again one of his two companions fired a shot from the woods, whereupon the Iroquois took to flight, abandoning their camp and fort. As they fled they threw off their armour of wooden boards and cotton cloth.

While Champlain was getting ready to shoot again, one of his two companions fired a shot from the woods, which caused the Iroquois to run away, leaving their camp and fort behind. As they fled, they discarded their armor made of wooden boards and cotton cloth.

As to the way in which the Hurons tortured their Iroquois prisoners, Champlain writes of one instance.

As for how the Hurons tortured their Iroquois prisoners, Champlain describes one example.

"They commanded him (the prisoner) to sing, if he had courage, which he did, but it was a very sad song." The Hurons kindled a fire, and when it was well alight they each took a brand from the blaze, the end of which was red-hot, and with this burnt the bodies of their prisoners tied to stakes. Every now and then they stopped and threw water over them to restore them from fainting. Then they tore out their finger nails and applied fire to the extremities of the fingers. After that they tore the scalps off their heads, and poured over the raw and bleeding flesh a kind of hot gum. Then they pierced the arms of the prisoners near the wrists, and drew up their sinews with sticks inserted underneath, trying to tear them out by force, and, if failing, cutting them. One poor wretch "uttered such terrible cries that it excited my pity to see him treated in this manner, yet at other times he showed such firmness that one would have said he suffered scarcely any pain at all".

"They ordered him (the prisoner) to sing, if he had the guts, which he did, but it was a really sad song." The Hurons started a fire, and once it was burning well, they each took a stick from the flames, the end of which was glowing red, and used it to burn the bodies of their prisoners tied to stakes. Every now and then, they would stop and throw water on them to bring them back from fainting. Then they ripped off their fingernails and applied fire to the tips of their fingers. After that, they pulled the scalps off their heads and poured a kind of hot gum over the raw and bleeding flesh. Then they pierced the prisoners' arms near the wrists and pulled their sinews with sticks inserted underneath, trying to yank them out forcefully and, if that didn’t work, cutting them. One poor soul "let out such awful cries that it made me feel pity to see him treated this way, yet at other times he showed such strength that you would think he felt hardly any pain at all."

In this case Champlain, seeing that the man could not recover from his injuries, drew apart and shot him dead, "thus putting an end to all the tortures he would have suffered".

In this case, Champlain, realizing that the man couldn't recover from his injuries, stepped back and shot him dead, "thus putting an end to all the tortures he would have suffered."

But the savage Hurons were not yet satisfied. They opened the corpse and threw its entrails into the lake. Then they cut off head, arms, and legs, and cut out the heart; this they minced up, and endeavoured to force the other prisoners to eat it.

But the brutal Hurons were still not satisfied. They opened the corpse and tossed its insides into the lake. Then they severed the head, arms, and legs, and removed the heart; they chopped it up and tried to make the other prisoners eat it.

With those of his allies who were Montagnais Indians from Tadoussac, Champlain returned to that place. As they neared the shore the Montagnais women undressed themselves, jumped into the river, and swam to the prows of the canoes, from which they took the heads of the slain Iroquois. These they hung about their necks as if they had been some costly chain, singing and dancing meanwhile.

With his allies, the Montagnais Indians from Tadoussac, Champlain returned to that area. As they got close to the shore, the Montagnais women stripped off their clothes, jumped into the river, and swam to the fronts of the canoes, where they took the heads of the slain Iroquois. They hung these around their necks like a fancy necklace, singing and dancing all the while.

However, in spite of these and other horrors, Champlain had "separated from his Upper Canadian allies with loud protestations of mutual friendship", promising to go again into their country and assist them with continued "fraternal" relations.

However, despite these and other horrors, Champlain had "separated from his Upper Canadian allies with loud protestations of mutual friendship," promising to return to their territory and support them with ongoing "fraternal" relations.

From this expedition Champlain learned much regarding the geography of eastern North America, and he brought back with him to France, to present to King Henry IV, two scarlet tanagers—one of the commonest and most beautiful birds of the eastern United States—a girdle of porcupine quills made from the Canadian porcupine, and the head of a gar-pike caught in Lake Champlain.[23]

From this expedition, Champlain learned a lot about the geography of eastern North America. He brought back to France to show King Henry IV two scarlet tanagers—one of the most common and beautiful birds in the eastern United States—a girdle made of porcupine quills from the Canadian porcupine, and the head of a gar-pike caught in Lake Champlain.[23]

On Champlain's return from France in 1610 (he and other Frenchmen and Englishmen of the time made surprisingly little fuss about crossing the North Atlantic in small sailing vessels, in spite of the storms of spring and autumn) he found the Iroquois question still agitating the minds of the Algonkins, Montagnais, and Hurons. Representatives of these tribes were ready to meet this great captain of the Mistigosh or Matigosh[24] (as they called the French), and implored him to keep his promise to take part in another attack on the dreaded enemy of the Adirondak heights. Apparently the Iroquois (Mohawks) this time had advanced to meet the attack, and were ensconced in a round fortress of logs built near the Richelieu River.[25] The Algonkins and their allies on this expedition were armed with clubs, swords, and shields, as well as bows and arrows. The swords of copper(?) were really knife blades attached to long sticks like billhooks. Before the barricade, as usual, both parties commenced the fight by hurling insults at each other till they were out of breath, and shouting "till one could not have heard it thunder". The circular log barricade, however, would never have been taken by the Algonkins and their allies but for the assistance of Champlain and three or four Frenchmen, who with their musketry fire at short range paralysed the Iroquois. Champlain and one other Frenchman were wounded with arrows in the neck and arm, but not seriously. The victory of the allies was followed by the usual torture of prisoners, which Champlain made a slight—only slight—attempt to prevent.

On Champlain's return from France in 1610 (he and other Frenchmen and Englishmen of the time didn’t make much of a deal about crossing the North Atlantic in small sailing ships, despite the storms in spring and autumn), he found the Iroquois issue still troubling the Algonkins, Montagnais, and Hurons. Representatives from these tribes were ready to meet this great captain of the Mistigosh or Matigosh[24] (as they called the French) and urged him to keep his promise to participate in another attack against the feared enemy of the Adirondack heights. It seemed that the Iroquois (Mohawks) had come out to face the attack and were settled in a round fortress of logs built near the Richelieu River.[25] The Algonkins and their allies on this expedition were armed with clubs, swords, and shields, as well as bows and arrows. The copper swords were actually knife blades attached to long sticks like billhooks. As usual, both sides started the fight by throwing insults at each other until they were out of breath, shouting "until you couldn't hear thunder." However, the Algonkins and their allies would never have taken the circular log barricade without the help of Champlain and three or four Frenchmen, who paralyzed the Iroquois with musket fire at close range. Champlain and another Frenchman were wounded by arrows in the neck and arm, but not seriously. The allies' victory was followed by the usual torture of prisoners, which Champlain made only a slight—just a slight—effort to prevent.

But results far more serious arose from these two skirmishes with the Iroquois in 1609 and 1610. The Confederacy of the Five Nations (afterwards six) realized that they had been attacked unprovoked by the dominant white men of the St. Lawrence, called by the Montagnais Mistigosh, and by the Iroquois Adoresetūi ("men of iron", from their armour). They became the bitter enemies of the French, and tendered help first to the Dutch to establish themselves in the valley of the Hudson, and secondly to the English. In the great Colonial wars of the early eighteenth century the Iroquois were invaluable allies to the British forces, Colonial and Imperial, and counted for much in the struggle which eventually cost France Nova Scotia, New Brunswick, Maine, the two Canadas, and Louisiana. On the other hand, the French alliance with the Hurons, Algonkins, and Montagnais, begun by this brotherhood-in-arms with Champlain, secured for France and the French such widespread liking among the tribes of Algonkin speech, and their allies and friends, that the two Canadas and much of the Middle West, together with Michigan, Wisconsin, and Illinois, became French in sympathy without any war of conquest. When the French dominion over North America fell, in 1759, with the capture of Quebec by Wolfe's army, tribes of Amerindians went on fighting for five years afterwards to uphold the banner and the rule of the beloved French king.

But much more serious consequences came from these two skirmishes with the Iroquois in 1609 and 1610. The Confederacy of the Five Nations (later six) realized they had been attacked without provocation by the dominant European settlers of the St. Lawrence, called Mistigosh by the Montagnais and Adoresetūi ("men of iron," because of their armor) by the Iroquois. They became fierce enemies of the French and first offered help to the Dutch to establish themselves in the Hudson Valley, then to the English. During the major Colonial wars of the early eighteenth century, the Iroquois were invaluable allies to the British forces, both Colonial and Imperial, contributing significantly in the conflict that ultimately cost France Nova Scotia, New Brunswick, Maine, the two Canadas, and Louisiana. On the other hand, the French alliance with the Hurons, Algonkins, and Montagnais, which began with this brotherhood-in-arms with Champlain, secured such widespread favor for France and the French among the Algonkin-speaking tribes and their allies that the two Canadas and much of the Midwest, including Michigan, Wisconsin, and Illinois, became sympathetic to France without any need for conquest. When French control over North America ended in 1759 with the capture of Quebec by Wolfe's army, groups of Indigenous peoples continued to fight for five more years to uphold the banner and rule of their beloved French king.

On Champlain's next visit to Canada, in 1610, he handed over to the Algonkin Indians a French youth named Étienne Brulé (see p. 88), to be taught the Algonkin language (the use of which was spread far and wide over north-east America), and, further, sent a Huron youth to France to be taught French. Between 1611 and 1616 he had explored much of the country between Montreal (the foundations of which city he may be said to have laid on May 29, 1611, for his stockaded camp is now in the centre of it) and Lakes Huron and Ontario, especially along the Ottawa River, that convenient short cut (as a water route) between the St. Lawrence at Sault St. Louis (Montreal) and Lakes Huron and Superior. With short portages you can get in canoes from Montreal to the waters of Hudson Bay, or to Lake Winnipeg and the base of the Rocky Mountains.

On Champlain's next trip to Canada in 1610, he gave a French young man named Étienne Brulé to the Algonkin Indians to learn their language, which was widely spoken across northeast America. He also sent a Huron youth to France to learn French. Between 1611 and 1616, he explored much of the land between Montreal (which he effectively founded on May 29, 1611, as his fortified camp is now at the city's center) and Lakes Huron and Ontario, especially along the Ottawa River, which serves as a convenient shortcut (as a water route) between the St. Lawrence at Sault St. Louis (Montreal) and Lakes Huron and Superior. With a few short portages, you can travel by canoe from Montreal to Hudson Bay or to Lake Winnipeg and the base of the Rocky Mountains.

In exploring this "River of the Algonkins" (as he called it), Champlain was nearly drowned between two rocks, and much hurt, from over bravery and want of knowledge of how to deal with a canoe on troubled water; but on June 4, 1613, he stood on the site of the modern city of Ottawa—the capital of the vast Canadian Dominion—and gazed at the marvellous Rideau or Curtain Fall, where the Rideau River enters the Ottawa. But the air was resonant with the sound of falling water. Three miles above the falls of the Gatineau and the Rideau, the main Ottawa River descended with a roar and a whirl of white foam and rainbow-tinted mist into the chasm called the Chaudière or Kettle. On a later occasion he describes the way in which the Algonkins propitiated the Spirit of the Chasm:

In exploring this "River of the Algonkins" (as he called it), Champlain almost drowned between two rocks and got hurt, due to overconfidence and not knowing how to handle a canoe in rough water. But on June 4, 1613, he stood where the modern city of Ottawa—the capital of the vast Canadian Dominion—now is, and admired the stunning Rideau or Curtain Fall, where the Rideau River joins the Ottawa. The air was filled with the sound of crashing water. Three miles upstream from the Gatineau and Rideau Falls, the main Ottawa River thundered and swirled with white foam and mist tinted with rainbows into the chasm known as the Chaudière or Kettle. On another occasion, he described how the Algonkins honored the Spirit of the Chasm:

"Continuing our way, we came to the Chaudière Falls, where the savages carried out their customary ceremony. After transporting their canoes to the foot of the fall they assemble in one spot, where one of them takes up a collection on a wooden platter, into which each person puts a bit of tobacco. The collection having been made, the plate is placed in the midst of the troop, and all dance about it, singing after their style. Then one of the captains makes an harangue, setting forth that for a long time they have been accustomed to make this offering, by which means they are ensured protection against their enemies, that otherwise misfortune would befall them from the evil spirit. This done, the maker of the harangue takes the plate and throws the tobacco into the midst of the cauldron (the chasm of foaming water), whereupon they all together raise a loud cry. These poor people are so superstitious, that they would not believe it possible for them to make a prosperous journey without observing this ceremony at this place; for sometimes their enemies (Iroquois) await them at this portage, not venturing to go any farther on account of the difficulty of the journey. Consequently they are occasionally surprised and killed by the Iroquois at this place (the south bank of the Ottawa)."

"Continuing on our journey, we reached the Chaudière Falls, where the locals performed their traditional ceremony. After moving their canoes to the base of the falls, they gathered in one spot, where one person collected offerings on a wooden plate, and each individual put a bit of tobacco in it. Once the collection was done, the plate was placed in the center of the group, and everyone danced around it, singing in their own style. Then one of the leaders gave a speech, explaining that they had long been accustomed to making this offering, which they believed ensured protection against their enemies and helped them avoid misfortune caused by evil spirits. After this, the speaker took the plate and threw the tobacco into the churning water of the cauldron, at which point they all let out a loud cry. These people are so superstitious that they think it’s impossible to have a successful journey without performing this ceremony at this spot, since sometimes their enemies (the Iroquois) wait for them at this portage, not daring to travel further because of the journey's challenges. As a result, they are occasionally ambushed and killed by the Iroquois right here on the south bank of the Ottawa."

Above the Chaudière Champlain met the Algonkin chief, Tessouat, and thus described the burial places of his tribe:

Above the Chaudière, Champlain met the Algonquin chief, Tessouat, and described the burial sites of his tribe:

"On visiting the island I observed their cemeteries, and was struck with wonder as I saw sepulchres of a shape like shrines, made of pieces of wood fixed in the ground at a distance of about three feet from each other, and intersecting at the upper end. On the intersections above they place a large piece of wood, and in front another upright piece on which is carved roughly, as would be expected, the figure of the male or female interred. If it is a man, they add a shield, a sword attached to a handle after their manner, a mace, and bow and arrows. If it is a chief, there is a plume on his head, and some other matachia or embellishment. If it is a child, they give it a bow and arrow, if a woman or girl, a boiler, an earthen vessel, a wooden spoon, and an oar. The entire sepulchre is six or seven feet long at most, and four wide; others are smaller. They are painted yellow and red, with various ornaments as neatly done as the carving. The deceased is buried with his dress of beaver or other skins which he wore when living, and they lay by his side all his possessions, as hatchets, knives, boilers, and awls, so that these things may serve him in the land whither he goes; for they believe in the immortality of the soul, as I have elsewhere observed. These carved sepulchres are only made for the warriors, for in respect to others they add no more than in the case of women, who are considered a useless class, accordingly but little is added in their case."

"During my visit to the island, I noticed their cemeteries and was amazed by the graves that looked like shrines. They are made of pieces of wood stuck in the ground about three feet apart, crossing at the top. At the intersections, they place a large piece of wood, and in front of it, there's another upright piece with a rough carving of the person buried there. If it's a man, they add a shield, a sword with a handle made in their style, a mace, and a bow and arrows. If it's a chief, there’s a plume on his head and some other decorations. For a child, they include a bow and arrow, and for a woman or girl, they add a boiler, an earthen vessel, a wooden spoon, and an oar. The entire grave is about six or seven feet long at most and four feet wide; some are smaller. They are painted yellow and red, with various decorations as neatly done as the carvings. The deceased is buried in their clothing made of beaver or other skins that they wore when alive, and all their possessions, like hatchets, knives, boilers, and awls, are placed beside them so that they can use these items in the afterlife. They believe in the immortality of the soul, as I've noted elsewhere. These carved graves are only made for warriors; in the case of others, like women, who are seen as less important, very little is added."

In the summer of 1615 Champlain, returning from France, made his way up the Ottawa River, and, by a short portage, to Lake Nipissing, thence down French River to the waters of Lake Huron. On the banks of the French River he met a detachment of the Ottawa tribe (of the Algonkin family). These people he styled the Cheveux Relevés, because the men's hair was gathered up and dressed more carefully and becomingly on the top of the head than (he says) could at that time be done by a hairdresser in France. This arrangement of the hair gave the men a very handsome appearance, but here their toilet ended, for they wore no clothes whatever (in the summertime), making up for this simplicity by painting their faces in different colours, piercing their ears and nostrils and decorating them with shell beads, and tattooing their bodies and limbs with elaborate patterns.

In the summer of 1615, Champlain returned from France and made his way up the Ottawa River, then took a short portage to Lake Nipissing, and from there went down the French River to the waters of Lake Huron. On the banks of the French River, he encountered a group from the Ottawa tribe (part of the Algonkin family). He called these people the Cheveux Relevés because the men styled their hair neatly and elegantly on the top of their heads, which, he noted, was something that a hairdresser in France couldn't accomplish at that time. This hairstyle made the men look very attractive, but that was as far as their grooming went, as they wore no clothing during the summertime. They compensated for this simplicity by painting their faces in various colors, piercing their ears and nostrils, decorating themselves with shell beads, and tattooing their bodies and limbs with intricate patterns.

These Ottawas carried a club, a long bow and arrows, and a round shield of dressed leather, made (wrote Champlain) "from the skin of an animal like the buffalo".[26] The chief of the party explained many things to the white man by drawing with a piece of charcoal on the white bark of the birch tree. He gave him to understand that the present occupation of his band of warriors was the gathering of blueberries, which would be dried in the sun, and could then be preserved for eating during the winter.

These Ottawas carried a club, a longbow and arrows, and a round shield made of leather, crafted (as Champlain noted) "from the skin of an animal like the buffalo."[26] The chief of the group explained a lot to the white man by drawing with a piece of charcoal on the white bark of the birch tree. He conveyed that the current activity of his band of warriors was gathering blueberries, which would be dried in the sun and preserved for winter consumption.

From French River, Champlain passed southwards to the homeland of the Hurons, which lay to the east of what Champlain called "the Fresh Water Sea" (Lake Huron). This country he describes in enthusiastic terms. The Hurons, like the other Iroquois tribes (and unlike the hunting races to the north of them), were agriculturists, and cultivated pumpkins, sunflowers,[27] beans and Indian corn.

From French River, Champlain traveled south to the home of the Hurons, located east of what he referred to as "the Fresh Water Sea" (Lake Huron). He describes this land with great enthusiasm. The Hurons, similar to other Iroquois tribes (and different from the hunting groups to the north), were farmers and grew pumpkins, sunflowers,[27] beans, and corn.

The Hurons persuaded Champlain to go with them to attack the Iroquois tribe of the Senekas (Entuhónorons) on the south shores of Lake Ontario. On the way thither he noticed the abundance of stags and bears, and, near the lake, of cranes, white and purple-brown.[28]

The Hurons convinced Champlain to join them in attacking the Iroquois tribe of the Senecas (Entuhónorons) on the southern shores of Lake Ontario. On the way there, he noticed the large number of deer and bears, and, near the lake, cranes, both white and purple-brown.[28]

On the southern shores of the lake[29] were large numbers of chestnut trees, "whose fruit was still in the burr. The chestnuts are small but of a good flavour." The southern country was covered with forests, with very few clearings. After crossing the Oneida River the Hurons captured eleven of the Senekas, four women, one girl, three boys, and three men. The people had left the stockade in which their relations were living to go and fish by the lake shore. One of the Huron chiefs—the celebrated Iroquet, who had been so much associated with Champlain from the time of his arrival—proceeded at once to cut off the finger of one of these women prisoners. Whereupon Champlain, firmer than in years gone by, interposed and reprimanded him, pointing out that it was not the act of a warrior such as he declared himself to be, to conduct himself with cruelty towards women "who had no defence but their tears, so that one should treat them with humanity on account of their helplessness and weakness". Champlain went on to say that this act was base and brutal, and that if he committed any more of such cruelties he, Champlain, "would have no heart to assist or favour them in the war". To this Iroquet replied that their enemies treated them in the same manner, but that since this was displeasing to the Frenchmen he would not do anything more to women, but he would not promise to refrain from torturing the men.

On the southern shores of the lake[29] were many chestnut trees, "whose fruit was still in the burr. The chestnuts are small but have a good flavor." The southern area was filled with forests, with very few clearings. After crossing the Oneida River, the Hurons captured eleven Senekas—four women, one girl, three boys, and three men. The people had left the stockade where their relatives were living to go fish by the lakeshore. One of the Huron chiefs— the well-known Iroquet, who had been closely associated with Champlain since he arrived—immediately began to cut off the finger of one of the women prisoners. Champlain, stronger than he had been in the past, intervened and reprimanded him, pointing out that it was not the behavior of a warrior, as Iroquet claimed to be, to act cruelly toward women "who had no defense but their tears, so they should be treated with humanity because of their helplessness and weakness." Champlain went on to say that this action was cowardly and brutal, and that if he committed any more such cruelties, he, Champlain, "would have no heart to assist or support them in the war." Iroquet replied that their enemies treated them the same way, but since this was displeasing to the Frenchmen, he would not harm women anymore, but he wouldn’t promise to stop torturing the men.

However, in the subsequent fighting which occurred when they reached the six-sided stockade of the Senekas (a strong fortification which faced a large pond on one side, and was surrounded by a moat everywhere else except at the entrance), the Hurons and Algonkins showed a great lack of discipline. Champlain and the few Frenchmen with him, by using their arquebuses, drove the enemy back into the fort, but not without having some of their Indian allies wounded or killed. Champlain proposed to the Hurons that they should erect what was styled in French a cavalier—a kind of box, with high, loopholed sides, which was erected on a tall scaffolding of stout timbers. This was to be carried by the Hurons to within a pike's length of the stockade. Four French arquebusiers then scrambled up into the cavalier and fired through the loopholes into the huts of the Seneka town. Meantime the Hurons were to set fire, if possible, to the wooden stockade. They managed the whole business so stupidly that the fire produced no effect, the flames being blown in the opposite direction to that which was desired. The brave Senekas threw water on to the blazing sticks and put out the fire. Champlain was wounded by an arrow in the leg and knee. The reinforcement of the five hundred Hurons expected by the allies did not turn up. The Hurons with Champlain lost heart, and insisted on retreating. Only the dread of the French firearms prevented the retreat being converted into a complete disaster. Whenever the Senekas came near enough to get speech with the French they asked them "why they interfered with native quarrels".

However, in the fighting that happened when they reached the six-sided stockade of the Senekas (a strong fortification facing a large pond on one side and surrounded by a moat everywhere except at the entrance), the Hurons and Algonkins showed a serious lack of discipline. Champlain and the few Frenchmen with him used their arquebuses to push the enemy back into the fort, but not without some of their Indian allies getting wounded or killed. Champlain suggested to the Hurons that they build what was called in French a cavalier—a kind of box with high, loopholed sides, which would be set up on a tall scaffolding of strong timbers. This was to be carried by the Hurons to within a pike's length of the stockade. Four French arquebusiers then climbed into the cavalier and fired through the loopholes into the huts of the Seneka town. Meanwhile, the Hurons were supposed to set fire, if possible, to the wooden stockade. They managed the whole operation so poorly that the fire had no effect; the flames were blown in the wrong direction. The brave Senekas threw water on the burning logs and extinguished the fire. Champlain was wounded by an arrow in the leg and knee. The expected reinforcement of five hundred Hurons did not arrive. The Hurons with Champlain lost their resolve and insisted on retreating. Only the fear of the French firearms stopped the retreat from turning into a total disaster. Whenever the Senekas came close enough to speak with the French, they asked them "why they interfered with native quarrels."

Champlain being unable to walk, the Hurons made a kind of basket, similar to that in which they carried their wounded. In this he was so crowded into a heap, and bound and pinioned, that it was as impossible for him to move "as it would be for an infant in his swaddling clothes". This treatment caused him considerable pain after he had been carried for some days; in fact he suffered agonies while fastened in this way on to the back of a savage.

Champlain, unable to walk, was placed in a sort of basket made by the Hurons, similar to the one they used to carry their wounded. He was so tightly packed in and restrained that it was as impossible for him to move "as it would be for an infant in his swaddling clothes." This treatment caused him a lot of pain after being carried for several days; in fact, he endured great suffering while being fastened like this on the back of a warrior.

He was afterwards obliged to pass the winter of 1615-6 in the Huron country. At that time it swarmed with game. Amongst birds, there were swans, white cranes, brent-geese, ducks, teal, the redbreasted thrush (which the Americans call "robin"), brown larks (Anthus), snipe, and other birds too numerous to mention, which Champlain seems to have brought down with his fowling-piece in sufficient quantities to feed the whole party whilst waiting for the capture of deer on a large scale.

He was later forced to spend the winter of 1615-16 in the Huron country. At that time, it was full of wildlife. Among the birds, there were swans, white cranes, brent geese, ducks, teal, the red-breasted thrush (which Americans call "robin"), brown larks (Anthus), snipe, and many other birds too numerous to list. Champlain seemed to have hunted enough with his shotgun to feed the whole group while waiting to catch deer on a larger scale.

Meanwhile, many of the Indians were catching fish, "trout and pike of prodigious size". When they desired to secure a large number of deer, they would make an enclosure in a fir forest in the form of the two converging sides of a triangle, with an open base. The two sides of these traps were made of great stakes of wood closely pressed together, from 8 to 9 feet high; and each of the sides was 1000 yards long. At the point of the triangle there was a little enclosure. The Hurons were so expeditious in this work that in less than ten days these long fences and the "pound" or enclosure at their convergence were finished. They then started before daybreak and scattered themselves in the woods at a considerable distance behind the commencement of these fences, each man separated from his fellow by about 80 yards. Every Huron carried two pieces of wood, one like a drumstick and the other like a flat, resonant board. They struck the flat piece of wood with the drumstick and it made a loud clanging sound. The deer who swarmed in the forest, hearing this noise, fled before the savages, who drove them steadily towards the converging fences. As they closed up, the Hurons imitated very cleverly the yapping of wolves. This frightened the deer still more, so that they huddled at last into the final enclosure, where they were so tightly packed that they were completely at the men's mercy. "I assure you," writes Champlain, "there is a singular pleasure in this chase, which takes place every two days, and has been so successful that in thirty-eight days one hundred and twenty deer were captured. These were made good use of, the fat being kept for the winter to be used as we do butter, and some of the flesh to be taken to their homes for their festivities."

Meanwhile, many of the Indigenous people were catching fish, "trout and pike of huge size." When they wanted to secure a lot of deer, they would create a trap in a fir forest shaped like the two converging sides of a triangle, with an open base. The two sides of these traps were made of large wooden stakes tightly pressed together, standing 8 to 9 feet high; each side was 1000 yards long. At the tip of the triangle, there was a small enclosure. The Hurons were so quick with this task that in less than ten days these long fences and the "pound" or enclosure at their meeting point were completed. They then set out before dawn and spread themselves out in the woods at a significant distance behind the start of these fences, with each person about 80 yards apart. Each Huron carried two pieces of wood, one resembling a drumstick and the other a flat, resonant board. They struck the flat piece of wood with the drumstick, creating a loud clanging sound. The deer that filled the forest, upon hearing this noise, fled away from the hunters, who pushed them steadily toward the converging fences. As they closed in, the Hurons cleverly mimicked the yapping of wolves. This startled the deer even more, causing them to crowd into the final enclosure, where they were so tightly packed that they were completely at the men’s mercy. "I assure you," writes Champlain, "there is a unique thrill in this hunt, which occurs every two days, and has been so successful that in thirty-eight days one hundred and twenty deer were captured. These were put to good use, the fat being preserved for winter just like butter, and some of the meat taken home for their celebrations."

Champlain himself, in the winter of 1615, pursuing one day a remarkable bird "which was the size of a hen, had a beak like a parrot and was entirely yellow, except for a red head and blue wings, and which had the flight of the partridge"—a bird I cannot identify—lost his way in the woods. For two days he wandered in the wilderness, sustaining himself by shooting birds and roasting them. But at last he found his way back to a river which he recognized, and reached the camp of the Hurons, who were extremely delighted at his return. Had they not found him, or had he not come back of himself, they told him that they could never again have visited the French for fear of being held responsible for his death.

Champlain himself, in the winter of 1615, was one day chasing an unusual bird "about the size of a hen, with a parrot-like beak, completely yellow except for a red head and blue wings, and that flew like a partridge"—a bird I can’t identify—when he got lost in the woods. For two days, he wandered through the wilderness, living off the birds he shot and roasted. Eventually, he found his way back to a river he recognized and reached the Huron camp, where everyone was incredibly happy to see him return. They told him that if they hadn’t found him or if he hadn’t made it back on his own, they would never have been able to visit the French again for fear of being blamed for his death.

By the month of December of this year (1615) the rivers, lakes, and ponds were all frozen. Hitherto, Champlain had had to walk when he could not travel in a canoe, and carry a load of twenty pounds, while the Indians carried a hundred pounds each. But now the water was frozen the Hurons set to work and made their sledges. These were constructed of two pieces of board, manufactured from the trunks of trees by the patient use of a stone axe and by the application of fire. These boards were about 6 inches wide, and 6 or 7 feet long, curved upwards at the forward end and bound together by cross pieces. The sides were bordered with strips of wood, which served as brackets to which was fastened the strap that bound the baggage upon the sledge. The load was dragged by a rope or strap of leather passing round the breast of the Indian, and attached to the end of the sledge. The sledge was so narrow that it could be drawn easily without impediment wherever an Indian could thread his way over the snow through the pathless forests.

By December of this year (1615), all the rivers, lakes, and ponds were frozen. Until now, Champlain had to walk when he couldn't travel by canoe and carry a load of twenty pounds, while the Indians carried a hundred pounds each. But now that the water was frozen, the Hurons got to work making their sledges. These were made from two pieces of board, shaped from tree trunks using a stone axe and fire. The boards were about 6 inches wide and 6 or 7 feet long, curved up at the front, and held together with crosspieces. The sides were lined with strips of wood, which served as brackets for the straps that secured the baggage on the sledge. The load was pulled by a leather rope or strap that went around the Indian's chest and connected to the back of the sledge. The sledge was narrow enough that it could be pulled easily without any obstacles wherever an Indian could navigate through the snow in the untamed forests.

The rest of the winter and early spring Champlain spent alone, or in company with Father Joseph Le Caron (one of the Recollet missionaries), visiting the Algonkin and Huron tribes in the region east of Lake Huron. He has left this description of the modern country of Simcoe, the home, three hundred years ago, of the long-vanished Hurons[30]; and gives us the following particulars of their home life. The Huron country was a pleasant land, most of it cleared of forest. It contained eighteen villages, six of which were enclosed and fortified by palisades of wood in triple rows, bound together, on the top of which were galleries provided with stores of stones, and birch-bark buckets of water; the stones to throw at an enemy, and the water to extinguish any fire which might be put to the palisades. These eighteen villages contained about two thousand warriors, and about thirty thousand people in all. The houses were in the shape of tunnels, and were thatched with the bark of trees. Each lodge or house would be about 120 feet long, more or less, and 36 feet wide, with a 10-foot passage-way through the middle from one end to the other. On either side of the tunnel were placed benches 4 feet high, on which the people slept in summer in order to avoid the annoyance of the fleas which swarmed in these habitations. In winter time they slept on the ground on mats near the fire. In the summer the cabins were filled with stocks of wood to dry and be ready for burning in winter. At the end of each of these long houses was a space in which the Indian corn was preserved in great casks made of the bark of trees. Inside the long houses pieces of wood were suspended from the roof, on to which were fastened the clothes, provisions, and other things of the inmates, to keep them from the attacks of the mice which swarmed in these villages. Each hut might be inhabited by twenty-four families, who would maintain twelve fires. The smoke, having no proper means of egress except at either end of the long dwelling, and through the chinks of the roof, so injured their eyes during the winter season that many people lost their sight as they grew old.

The rest of the winter and early spring, Champlain spent alone or with Father Joseph Le Caron (one of the Recollet missionaries), visiting the Algonkin and Huron tribes in the area east of Lake Huron. He left this description of what is now Simcoe, the home of the long-gone Hurons three hundred years ago, and shares the following details about their daily life. The Huron region was a pleasant place, mostly cleared of forest. It had eighteen villages, six of which were enclosed and fortified with wooden palisades in triple rows. On top, there were platforms stocked with stones for throwing at enemies and birch-bark buckets of water to put out any fires that might be set to the palisades. These eighteen villages housed about two thousand warriors and roughly thirty thousand people in total. The houses were tunnel-shaped and thatched with tree bark. Each lodge was about 120 feet long, give or take, and 36 feet wide, with a 10-foot passage running through the center from one end to the other. On either side of the tunnel, there were benches 4 feet high where people slept in summer to avoid the bothersome fleas that infested these homes. In winter, they slept on mats on the ground near the fire. During the summer, the cabins were packed with wood to dry and be ready for burning in winter. At the end of each long house, there was a space where Indian corn was stored in large barrels made of tree bark. Inside the long houses, pieces of wood were hung from the roof to hold clothes, food, and other belongings, keeping them safe from the mice that swarmed the villages. Each hut could accommodate twenty-four families, maintaining twelve fires. The smoke, having no proper way to escape except at either end or through cracks in the roof, damaged their eyes during the winter, causing many people to lose their sight as they aged.

"Their life", writes Champlain, "is a miserable one in comparison with our own, but they are happy amongst themselves, not having experienced anything better, nor imagining that anything more excellent could be found."

"Their life," writes Champlain, "is pretty miserable compared to ours, but they are happy within their community, not having experienced anything better, nor can they imagine that anything more excellent exists."

These Amerindians ordinarily ate two meals a day, and although Champlain and his men fasted all through Lent, "in order to influence them by our example", that was one of the practices they did not copy from the French.

These Native Americans typically had two meals a day, and even though Champlain and his men fasted throughout Lent, "to set an example for them," that was one practice they did not adopt from the French.

The Hurons of this period painted their faces black and red, mixing the colours with oil made from sunflower seed, or with bears' fat. The hair was carefully combed and oiled, and sometimes dyed a reddish colour; it might be worn long or short, or only on one side of the head. The women usually dressed theirs in one long plait. Sometimes it was done up into a knot at the back of the head, bound with eelskin. The men were usually dressed in deerskin breeches, with gaiters of soft leather. The shoes ("Moccasins") were made of the skin of deer, bears, or beavers. In addition to this the men in cold weather wore a great cloak. The edges of these cloaks would often be decorated with bands of brown and red colour alternating with strips of a whitish-blue, and ornamented with bands of porcupine quills. These, which were originally white or grey in colour, had been previously dyed a fine scarlet with colouring matter from the root of the bed-straw (Galium tinctorum). The women were loaded with necklaces of violet or white shell beads, bracelets, ear-rings, and great strings of beads falling below the waist. Sometimes they would have plates of leather studded with shell beads and hanging over the back.

The Hurons during this time painted their faces black and red, mixing the colors with oil made from sunflower seeds or with bear fat. Their hair was carefully styled and oiled, and sometimes dyed reddish; it could be worn long or short, or just on one side of the head. Women typically wore their hair in one long braid. Sometimes it was gathered into a bun at the back, tied with eelskin. The men usually wore deerskin pants, with soft leather gaiters. Their shoes, called "Moccasins," were made from deer, bear, or beaver skin. In cold weather, men wore a large cloak. The edges of these cloaks were often decorated with alternating bands of brown and red with strips of a whitish-blue, and adorned with bands of porcupine quills. These quills, originally white or gray, were dyed a vibrant scarlet using color from the root of the bed-straw (Galium tinctorum). Women were adorned with necklaces made of violet or white shell beads, bracelets, earrings, and long strings of beads that hung below the waist. Sometimes they had leather plates studded with shell beads that draped over their backs.

Samuel de Champlain; Alexander Henry the Elder
SAMUEL DE CHAMPLAIN and ALEXANDER HENRY THE ELDER

In 1616 Champlain returned to France, but visited Quebec in 1617 and 1618. During the years spent at Quebec, which followed his explorations of 1616, he was greatly impeded in his work of consolidating Canada as a French colony by the religious strife between the Catholics and Huguenots, and the narrow-minded greed of the Chartered company of fur-trading merchants for whom he worked. But in 1620 he came back to Canada as Lieutenant-Governor (bringing his wife with him), and after attending to the settlement of a violent commercial dispute between fur-trading companies he tried to compose the quarrel between the Iroquois and the Algonkins, and brought about a truce which lasted till 1627.

In 1616, Champlain returned to France but visited Quebec in 1617 and 1618. During his time in Quebec, following his explorations in 1616, he faced significant challenges in his efforts to establish Canada as a French colony due to the religious conflicts between Catholics and Huguenots, as well as the greedy interests of the fur-trading company he worked for. However, in 1620, he returned to Canada as Lieutenant-Governor (bringing his wife with him), and after settling a violent commercial dispute between fur-trading companies, he worked to mediate the conflict between the Iroquois and the Algonkins, resulting in a truce that lasted until 1627.

In 1628 came the first English attack on Canada. A French fleet was defeated and captured in the Gulf of St. Lawrence, and in the following year Champlain, having been obliged to surrender Quebec (he had only sixteen soldiers as a garrison, owing to lack of food), voyaged to England more or less as a prisoner of state in the summer of 1629. He found, on arriving there, that the cession of Quebec was null and void, peace having been concluded between Britain and France two months before the cession. Charles I remained true to his compact with Louis XIII, and Quebec and Nova Scotia were restored to French keeping. In 1633 Champlain returned to Canada as Governor, bringing with him a considerable number of French colonists. It is from 1633 that the real French colonization of Canada begins: hitherto there had been only one family of settlers in the fixed sense of the word; the other Frenchmen were fur traders, soldiers, and missionaries. But Champlain only lived two years after his triumphant return, and died at Quebec on Christmas Day, 1635.

In 1628, the first English attack on Canada took place. A French fleet was defeated and captured in the Gulf of St. Lawrence, and the following year, Champlain was forced to surrender Quebec (he only had sixteen soldiers for a garrison due to food shortages). He traveled to England more or less as a state prisoner in the summer of 1629. Upon arriving, he discovered that the transfer of Quebec was invalid, as peace had been established between Britain and France two months prior to the transfer. Charles I honored his agreement with Louis XIII, and Quebec and Nova Scotia were returned to French control. In 1633, Champlain returned to Canada as Governor, bringing a significant number of French colonists with him. It is from 1633 that the real French colonization of Canada begins: before this, there had only been one family of settlers in the true sense; the other Frenchmen were fur traders, soldiers, and missionaries. However, Champlain only lived two years after his successful return and died in Quebec on Christmas Day, 1635.

His character has been so well summed up by Dr. S.E. Dawson, in his admirable book on the Story of the St. Lawrence Basin, that I cannot do better than quote his words:

His character has been perfectly summarized by Dr. S.E. Dawson in his outstanding book on the Story of the St. Lawrence Basin, so I can do no better than quote his words:

"Champlain was as much at home in the brilliant court of France as in a wigwam on a Canadian lake, as patient and politic with a wild band of savages on Lake Huron as with a crowd of grasping traders in St. Malo or Dieppe. Always calm, always unselfish, always depending on God, in whom he believed and trusted, and thinking of France, which he loved, this single-hearted man resolutely followed the path of his duty under all circumstances; never looking for ease or asking for profit, loved by the wild people of the forest, respected by the courtiers of the king, and trusted by the close-fisted merchants of the maritime cities of France."

"Champlain felt equally at home in the dazzling court of France as he did in a wigwam on a Canadian lake. He was just as patient and diplomatic with a group of wild people on Lake Huron as he was with a bunch of greedy traders in St. Malo or Dieppe. Always calm, always selfless, and always relying on God, whom he believed in and trusted, while thinking of France, which he loved, this devoted man steadfastly followed his duty in every situation. He never sought comfort or asked for profit, loved by the native people of the forest, respected by the king’s courtiers, and trusted by the stingy merchants of France’s coastal cities."


1 Afterwards the Sieur de Champlain. The title of Sieur (from the Latin Senior) is the origin of the English "sir", and is about equivalent to an English baronetcy.

1 After that, Sieur de Champlain. The title of Sieur (derived from the Latin Senior) is the source of the English "sir" and is roughly equivalent to an English baronet.

2 Correctly written this was François Gravé, Sieur du Pont.

2 This was correctly written as François Gravé, Sieur du Pont.

3 The full name was Pierre du Guast, Sieur de Monts. Including de Champlain and de Poutrincourt, who will be described later, we have here the four great heroes who founded French Canada.

3 The full name was Pierre du Guast, Lord of Monts. Including de Champlain and de Poutrincourt, who will be described later, we have here the four great heroes who established French Canada.

4 The real name for this remarkable people, the Eskimo, is, in Alaska and Arctic North America, Innuit, and in Labrador and Greenland, Karalit. Eskimo (in French, Esquimaux) is said to be a corruption of the Montagnais-Indian word, Eskimantsik, meaning "eaters of raw flesh".

4 The true name for this amazing group of people, known as the Eskimo, is, in Alaska and Arctic North America, Inuit, and in Labrador and Greenland, Karalit. The term Eskimo (in French, Esquimaux) is thought to be a distorted version of the Montagnais-Indian word, Eskimantsik, which means "eaters of raw meat".

5 The wild currants so often mentioned by the early explorers of Canada are often referred to as red, green, and blue. The blue currants are really the black currant, now so familiar to our kitchen gardens (Ribes nigrum). This, together with the red currant (Ribes rubrum), grows throughout North America, Siberia, and eastern Europe. The unripe fruit may have been the green currants alluded to by Champlain, or these may have been the white variety of our gardens. The two species of wild strawberry which figure so frequently in the stories of these early explorers are Fragaria vesca and F. virginiana. From the last-named is derived the cultivated strawberry of Europe. The wild strawberries of North America were larger than those of Europe. Champlain does not himself allude to gooseberries (unless they are his groseilles vertes), but later travellers do. Three or more kinds of gooseberry grow wild in Canada, but they are different from the European species. The blueberry so often Mentioned by Champlain (bluëts or bluës) was Vaccinium canadense.

5 The wild currants frequently mentioned by the early explorers of Canada are commonly known as red, green, and blue. The blue currants are actually black currants, which are quite familiar in our kitchen gardens (Ribes nigrum). This, along with the red currant (Ribes rubrum), is found throughout North America, Siberia, and eastern Europe. The unripe fruit may have been the green currants that Champlain referred to, or they could have been the white variety from our gardens. The two species of wild strawberry that appear often in the accounts of these early explorers are Fragaria vesca and F. virginiana. The cultivated strawberry of Europe is derived from the latter. The wild strawberries in North America were larger than those found in Europe. Champlain doesn’t specifically mention gooseberries (unless he was referring to his groseilles vertes), but later travelers do. Three or more types of gooseberry grow wild in Canada, but they differ from the European species. The blueberry that Champlain frequently mentioned (bluëts or bluës) was Vaccinium canadense.

6 Of the genera Juglans and Carya.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Of the genera Juglans and Carya.

7 The huge deer of the genus Alces. Elk is the old Scandinavian name. Moose, derived from the Kri language, is the Canadian term, "Elk" being misapplied to the wapiti (red) deer. Champlain calls the elk orignac, its name in Algonkin.

7 The large deer from the genus Alces. Elk is the old Scandinavian term. Moose, which comes from the Kri language, is the Canadian name, while "Elk" is incorrectly used for the wapiti (red) deer. Champlain refers to the elk as orignac, its name in Algonquin.

8 Or lead mixed with silver. The local natives used this ore, which was white when beaten, for their arrowheads.

8 Or lead mixed with silver. The local natives used this ore, which turned white when hammered, for their arrowheads.

9 The Gougou dwelt on the small island of Miscon, to the east of the Bay of Chaleurs. It had the form of a woman but was about a hundred feet high. Its habit was to catch and devour men and women, whom it first placed in a pocket capacious enough to hold a small ship. Its roarings and hissings could be heard at times coming from the island of Miscon, where the Gougou lay concealed. Even a Frenchman, the Sieur Prévert, had heard these noises. Probably this islet had a whirlpool communicating with a cavern into which fishermen were sucked by the current.

9 The Gougou lived on the small island of Miscon, east of the Bay of Chaleurs. It looked like a woman but was about a hundred feet tall. It would catch and eat men and women, placing them in a pocket big enough to hold a small ship. Its roars and hisses could sometimes be heard coming from the island of Miscon, where the Gougou was hidden. Even a Frenchman, Sieur Prévert, had heard these sounds. It’s likely that this islet had a whirlpool connected to a cave that fishermen were pulled into by the current.

10 There are no real rabbits in America. This was probably the Polar Hare (Lepus timidus glacialis), or the common small varying hare (L. americanus).

10 There are no actual rabbits in America. This was probably the Polar Hare (Lepus timidus glacialis), or the common small varying hare (L. americanus).

11 How awful was this "mal de terre" or scurvy amongst the French settlers may be seen from this description of Champlain: "There were produced in the mouths of those who had it great pieces of superfluous and drivelling flesh, which got the upper hand to such an extent that scarcely anything but liquid could be taken. Their teeth became very loose and could be pulled out with the fingers without its causing them pain.... Afterwards a violent pain seized their arms and legs, which remained swollen and very hard, all spotted as if with fleabites; and they could not walk on account of the contraction of the muscles.... They suffered intolerable pains in the loins, stomach, and bowels, and had a very bad cough and short breath.... Out of seventy-nine who composed our party, thirty-five died and twenty were on the point of death (when spring began in May)."

Scurvy is said to be a disease of the blood caused by a damp, cold, and impure atmosphere combined with absence of vegetable food and a diet of salted or semi-putrid meat or fish, such as was so often the winter food of Amerindians and of the early French pioneers in Canada. We have already noted Cartier's discovery of the balsam remedy.

11 How terrible was this "mal de terre" or scurvy among the French settlers, as described by Champlain: "In the mouths of those affected, large pieces of excess and rotting flesh appeared, to the point where they could hardly consume anything but liquid. Their teeth became very loose and could be pulled out with fingers without causing them pain... Subsequently, they experienced intense pain in their arms and legs, which became swollen and very hard, covered in spots like flea bites; they were unable to walk due to the muscle contractions... They endured unbearable pain in their lower back, stomach, and intestines, along with a severe cough and shortness of breath... Out of the seventy-nine in our group, thirty-five died and twenty were on the brink of death when spring began in May."

Scurvy is said to be a blood disease caused by a damp, cold, and unclean atmosphere, along with a lack of fresh vegetables and a diet mainly consisting of salted or semi-rotting meat or fish, which was often the winter diet for Indigenous peoples and early French settlers in Canada. We have already noted Cartier's discovery of the balsam remedy.

12 From Queen Anne.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ From Queen Anne's era.

13 The pigeons referred to by Champlain were probably the Passenger pigeon (Ectopistes) which at one time was extraordinarily abundant in parts of North America, though it has now been nearly killed out by man. It would arrive in flocks of millions on its migratory journeys in search of food.

13 The pigeons mentioned by Champlain were likely the Passenger pigeon (Ectopistes), which used to be extremely plentiful in some areas of North America, but has now been nearly wiped out by humans. They would show up in flocks of millions during their migrations to find food.

14 It is interesting to learn from his accurate notes that in Massachusetts (and from thence southwards) there were no more bark canoes, but that the canoes were "dug-outs"—trunks of tall trees burnt and chipped till they were hollowed into a narrow vessel of considerable length.

14 It's interesting to see from his detailed notes that in Massachusetts (and further south), there were no more bark canoes; instead, the canoes were "dug-outs"—hollowed-out trunks of tall trees that were burned and carved until they became long, narrow vessels.

15 This tuber, which is a well-known and very useful vegetable in England, comes from the root of a species of sunflower (Helianthus tuberosus). It has nothing to do with the real artichoke, which is a huge and gorgeous thistle, and it has equally nothing to do with Jerusalem. The English people have always taken a special delight in mispronouncing and corrupting words in order to produce as much confusion as possible in their names for things. Jerusalem is a corruption of Girasole, which is the Italian name given to this sunflower with the edible roots, because its flower is supposed always to turn towards the sun. The Jerusalem artichoke was originally a native of North America.

15 This tuber, which is a well-known and very useful vegetable in England, comes from the root of a type of sunflower (Helianthus tuberosus). It has nothing to do with the actual artichoke, which is a large and beautiful thistle, and it’s also not related to Jerusalem at all. The English have always enjoyed mispronouncing and twisting words to create as much confusion as possible in their names for things. Jerusalem is a distorted version of Girasole, which is the Italian name for this sunflower with edible roots, because its flower is believed to always face the sun. The Jerusalem artichoke originally comes from North America.

16 These walnut trees were afterwards known in modern American speech as hickories, butter-nuts, and pig-nuts, all of which are allied to, but distinct from, the European walnut.

16 These walnut trees later became known in contemporary American language as hickories, butter-nuts, and pig-nuts, which are all related to but different from the European walnut.

17 Limulus polyphemus. This extraordinary crustacean is one of the oldest of living animals in its history, as it is closely related to the Xiphosura and even the Trilobites of the Primary Epoch, which existed millions of years ago. In a rough way it is a kind of connecting link between the Crustacea, or crabs and lobsters, and the Scorpions and spiders.

17 Limulus polyphemus. This remarkable crustacean is one of the oldest living animals today, as it is closely related to the Xiphosura and even the Trilobites from the Paleozoic Era, which lived millions of years ago. In general, it serves as a kind of bridge between crabs and lobsters (the Crustacea) and scorpions and spiders.

18 Jean de Biencourt, the Sieur de Poutrincourt and Baron de Saint-Just, were his full titles.

18 Jean de Biencourt, the Lord of Poutrincourt and Baron of Saint-Just, were his full titles.

19 You will observe that neither the French nor the English sovereigns of the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries went to much personal expense over the creation of colonies. They simply gave a charter or a monopoly, which cost them nothing, but which made other people pay.

19 You'll notice that neither the French nor the English rulers of the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries spent much of their own money on setting up colonies. They just issued a charter or a monopoly, which didn’t cost them anything, but required others to foot the bill.

20 Branta canadensis, a handsome black-and-brown goose with white markings, which the French pioneers in Canada styled "outarde" or "bustard", and whose eggs were considered very good eating.

20 Branta canadensis, a striking black-and-brown goose with white markings, which French settlers in Canada referred to as "outarde" or "bustard," and whose eggs were regarded as a tasty delicacy.

21 Huron was a French name given to the westernmost group of the Iroquois family (see p. 159). The Huron group included the Waiandots, the Eries or Erigas, the Arendáronons, and the Atiwándoronk or "neutral" nation. The French sometimes called all these Huron tribes "the good Iroquois". Iroquois was probably pronounced "Irokwá", and seems to have been derived from a word like Irokosia, the name of the Adirondack mountain country.

21 The Huron was a French name given to the westernmost group of the Iroquois family (see p. 159). The Huron group included the Waiandots, the Eries or Erigas, the Arendáronons, and the Atiwándoronk or "neutral" nation. The French sometimes referred to all these Huron tribes as "the good Iroquois." Iroquois was likely pronounced "Irokwá," and seems to have come from a word like Irokosia, the name of the Adirondack mountain region.

22 The confederacy was founded about 1450 by the great Hiawatha (of Longfellow's Poem), himself an Onondaga from south of Lake Ontario, but backed by the Mohawks only, in the beginning of his work.

22 The confederacy was founded around 1450 by the great Hiawatha (from Longfellow's poem), who was an Onondaga from south of Lake Ontario, but initially supported only by the Mohawks during his efforts.

23 Unconsciously, no doubt, he brought away with him to the King of France one of the most remarkable freshwater fish living on the North-American continent, for the gar-pike belongs, together with the sturgeon and its allies, to an ancient type of fish the representatives of which are found in rock formations as ancient as those of the Secondary and Early Tertiary periods. Champlain may be said to have discovered this remarkable gar-pike (Lepidosteus osseus), which is covered with bony scales "so strong that a poniard could not pierce them". The colour he describes as silver-grey. The head has a snout two feet and a half long, and the jaws possess double rows of sharp and dangerous teeth. These teeth were used by the natives as lancets with which to bleed themselves when they suffered from inflammation or headache. Champlain declares that the gar-pike often captures and eats water birds. It would swim in and among rushes or reeds and then raise its snout out of the water and keep perfectly still. Birds would mistake this snout for the stump of a tree and would attempt to alight on it; whereupon the fish would seize them by the legs and pull them down under the water.

23 Without realizing it, he took with him to the King of France one of the most remarkable freshwater fish found in North America, because the gar-pike, along with the sturgeon and its relatives, belongs to an ancient type of fish whose representatives are seen in rock formations as old as the Secondary and Early Tertiary periods. Champlain can be said to have discovered this impressive gar-pike (Lepidosteus osseus), which is covered in bony scales "so strong that a dagger could not pierce them." He describes its color as silver-grey. Its head features a snout that is two and a half feet long, and its jaws contain double rows of sharp, dangerous teeth. Natives used these teeth as lancets to bleed themselves when they experienced inflammation or headaches. Champlain states that the gar-pike often captures and eats water birds. It would swim among the rushes or reeds and then lift its snout out of the water, remaining completely still. Birds would mistake this snout for a tree stump and try to land on it, at which point the fish would grab them by the legs and pull them underwater.

24 Spelt by Champlain with a "ch" instead of sh.

24 Spelled by Champlain with a "ch" instead of sh.

25 Then called the Rivière des Iroquois.

Then called the Iroquois River.

26 This was the first intimation probably that any European sent home for publication regarding the existence of the bison in North America, though the Spanish explorers nearly a hundred years before Champlain must have met with it in travelling through Louisiana, Texas, and northern Mexico. The bison is not known ever to have existed near Hudson Bay, or in Canada proper (basin of the St. Lawrence). South of Canada it penetrated to Pennsylvania and the Susquehanna River, but not farther eastward.

26 This was probably the first notification any European sent back for publication about the existence of bison in North America, although Spanish explorers almost a hundred years before Champlain must have encountered them while traveling through Louisiana, Texas, and northern Mexico. Bison are not known to have ever existed near Hudson Bay or in Canada itself (the St. Lawrence basin). South of Canada, they reached Pennsylvania and the Susquehanna River, but not any further east.

27 The Amerindians of the Lake regions made much use of the sunflowers of the region (Helianthus multiflorus). Besides this species of sunflower already mentioned, which furnishes tubers from its roots (the "Jerusalem" artichoke) others were valued for their seeds, and some or all of these are probably the originals of the cultivated sunflower in European gardens. The largest of these was called Soleille by the French Canadians. It grew in the cultivated fields of the Amerindians to seven or eight feet in height, with an enormous flower. The seeds were carefully collected and boiled. Their oil was collected then from the water and was used to grease the hair. This same Huron country (the Simcoe country of modern times) was remarkable for its wild fruits. There was the Canada plum (Prunus americana), the wild black cherry (Prunus serotina), the red cherries (P. pennsylvanica), the choke cherry (P. virginiana), wild apples (Pyrus coronaria), wild pears (a small berry-like pear called "poire" by the French: Pyrus canadensis), and the may-apple (Podophyllum peltatum). Champlain describes this may-apple as of the form and colour of a small lemon with a similar taste, but having an interior which is very good and almost like that of figs. The may-apples grow on a plant which is two and a half feet high, with not more than three or four leaves like those of the fig tree, and only two fruits on each plant.

27 The Native Americans of the Lake regions made extensive use of the sunflowers found there (Helianthus multiflorus). In addition to this particular sunflower, which produces tubers from its roots (known as the "Jerusalem" artichoke), others were valued for their seeds, and some or all of these likely served as the ancestors of the cultivated sunflowers in European gardens. The largest was called Soleille by the French Canadians. It grew in the fields tended by the Native Americans to seven or eight feet tall, featuring an enormous flower. The seeds were carefully harvested and boiled. The oil was then extracted from the water and used to grease hair. This same Huron region (now known as Simcoe County) was famous for its wild fruits. These included the Canada plum (Prunus americana), wild black cherry (Prunus serotina), red cherries (P. pennsylvanica), choke cherry (P. virginiana), wild apples (Pyrus coronaria), wild pears (a small, berry-like pear referred to as "poire" by the French: Pyrus canadensis), and may-apple (Podophyllum peltatum). Champlain described this may-apple as being the size and color of a small lemon with a similar flavor, but having a very tasty interior that's almost like that of figs. The may-apples grow on a plant that reaches about two and a half feet tall, with only three or four leaves resembling those of the fig tree, and each plant bears just two fruits.

28 The cranes of Canada—so often alluded to by the French explorers as "Grues"—are of two species, Grus canadensis, with its plumage of a purple-grey, and Grus americanus, which is pure white (see p. 139).

28 The cranes of Canada—frequently mentioned by French explorers as "Grues"—are of two species, Grus canadensis, which has a purple-grey plumage, and Grus americanus, which is completely white (see p. 139).

29 Lakes Ontario and Huron were probably first actually reached by Father Le Caron, a Recollett missionary who came out with Champlain in 1615 (see p. 90), and by Étienne Brulé, Champlain's interpreter.

29 Lakes Ontario and Huron were likely first truly reached by Father Le Caron, a Recollett missionary who traveled with Champlain in 1615 (see p. 90), and by Étienne Brulé, Champlain's interpreter.

30 They were almost completely exterminated by the Iroquois confederacy between thirty and forty years after Champlain's visit.

30 They were nearly wiped out by the Iroquois confederacy about thirty to forty years after Champlain's visit.

[__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]






CHAPTER V

After Champlain: from Montreal to the Mississippi

A very remarkable series of further explorations were carried out as the indirect result of Champlain's work. In 1610 he had allowed a French boy of about eighteen years of age, named ÉTIENNE BRULÉ, to volunteer to go away with the Algonkins, in order to learn their language. Brulé was taken in hand by Iroquet,[1] a chief of the "Little Algonkins", whose people were then occupying the lands on either side of the Ottawa River, including the site of the now great city of Ottawa. After four years of roaming with the Indians, Brulé was dispatched by Champlain with an escort of twelve Algonkins to the headwaters of the Suskuehanna, far to the south of Lake Ontario, in order to warn the Andastes[2] tribe of military operations to be undertaken by the allied French, Hurons, and Algonkins against the Iroquois. This enabled Brulé to explore Lake Ontario and to descend the River Suskuehanna as far south as Chesapeake Bay, a truly extraordinary journey at the period. This region of northern Virginia had just been surveyed by the English, and was soon to be the site of the first English colony in North America.[3]

A remarkable series of further explorations was carried out as a result of Champlain's work. In 1610, he allowed a French boy about eighteen years old, named ÉTIENNE BRULÉ, to volunteer to go with the Algonkins to learn their language. Brulé was taken under the wing of Iroquet,[1] a chief of the "Little Algonkins," whose people occupied the lands on both sides of the Ottawa River, including the site of what is now the great city of Ottawa. After four years of traveling with the Indians, Champlain sent Brulé with an escort of twelve Algonkins to the headwaters of the Susquehanna, far south of Lake Ontario, to warn the Andastes[2] tribe about military operations planned by the allied French, Hurons, and Algonkins against the Iroquois. This allowed Brulé to explore Lake Ontario and journey down the Susquehanna River as far south as Chesapeake Bay, a truly extraordinary trip for that time. This area of northern Virginia had just been surveyed by the English and was about to become the site of the first English colony in North America.[3]

In attempting to return to the valley of the St. Lawrence in 1616, with his Andaste guides, Brulé lost his way, and to avoid starvation surrendered himself to the Seneka Indians (the westernmost clan of the Iroquois) against whom the recent warlike operations of the French were being directed. Discovering his nationality, the Senekas decided to torture him before burning him to death at the stake. As they tore off his clothes they found that he was wearing an Agnus Dei medal next his skin. Brulé told them to be careful, as it was a medicine of great power which would certainly kill them. By a coincidence, at that very moment a terrific thunderstorm burst from a sky which until recently had been all sunshine. The Senekas were so scared by the thunder and lightning that they believed Brulé to be a person of supernatural powers. They therefore released him, strove to heal such slight wounds as he had incurred, and carried him off to their principal town, where he became a great favourite. After a while they gave him guides to take him north into the country of the Hurons.

In trying to return to the St. Lawrence Valley in 1616 with his Andaste guides, Brulé got lost, and to avoid starving, he gave himself up to the Seneca Indians (the westernmost group of the Iroquois) against whom the French had recently been fighting. When they discovered his nationality, the Seneca decided to torture him before burning him at the stake. As they stripped off his clothes, they found that he was wearing an Agnus Dei medal against his skin. Brulé warned them to be careful, saying it was a powerful medicine that would surely kill them. Coincidentally, at that exact moment, a massive thunderstorm erupted from a sky that had just been sunny. The Seneca were so frightened by the thunder and lightning that they thought Brulé had supernatural powers. As a result, they let him go, tried to heal his minor wounds, and took him to their main village, where he became very popular. After some time, they provided him with guides to take him north to the land of the Hurons.

His further adventures led him to discover Lake Superior and the way thither through the Sault Ste. Marie, and to reach a place probably not far from the south coast of Hudson Bay, in which there was a copper mine. Then he explored the Montagnais country north of Quebec, and even at one time (in 1629) entered the service of the English, who had captured Quebec and Tadoussac from the French. When the English left this region Brulé travelled again to the west and joined the Hurons once more.

His further adventures took him to Lake Superior and the route there through Sault Ste. Marie, and he got to a place probably not far from the southern coast of Hudson Bay, where there was a copper mine. Then he explored the Montagnais region north of Quebec, and even at one point (in 1629) joined the English, who had taken Quebec and Tadoussac from the French. When the English left the area, Brulé traveled west again and reconnected with the Hurons.

His licentious conduct amongst his Indian friends seems to have roused them to such a pitch of anger that in 1632 they murdered him, then boiled and ate his body. But immediately afterwards misfortune seemed to fall on the place. The Hurons were terrified at what they had done, and thought they heard or saw in the sky the spirits of the white relations of Brulé—some said the sister, some the uncle—threatening their town (Toanche), which they soon afterwards burnt and deserted.

His reckless behavior with his Indian friends seems to have provoked them to such a level of rage that in 1632 they killed him, then boiled and ate his body. But right after that, misfortune appeared to strike the area. The Hurons were horrified by what they had done and thought they saw or heard the spirits of Brulé's white relatives in the sky—some said it was his sister, others his uncle—threatening their town (Toanche), which they soon afterwards burned and abandoned.

In 1615 Champlain, returning from France, had brought out with him friars of the Récollet order.[4] These were the pioneer missionaries of Canada, prominent amongst whom was FATHER LE CARON, and these Récollets traversed the countries in the basin of the St. Lawrence between Lake Huron and Cape Breton Island, preaching Christianity to the Amerindians as well as ministering to the French colonists and fur traders. One of these Récollet missionaries died of cold and hunger in attempting to cross New Brunswick from the St. Lawrence to the Bay of Fundy, and another—Nicholas Viel—was the first martyr in Canada in the spread of Christianity, for when travelling down the Ottawa River to Montreal he was thrown by the pagan Hurons (together with one of his converts) into the waters of a rapid since christened Sault le Récollet. Another Récollet, Father d'Aillon, prompted by Brulé, explored the richly fertile, beautiful country known then as the territory of the Neutral nation, that group of Huron-Iroquois Amerindians who strove to keep aloof from the fierce struggles between the Algonkins and Hurons on the one hand and the eastern Iroquois clans on the other. This region, which lies between the Lakes Ontario, Erie, and Huron, is the most attractive portion of western Canada. Lying in the southernmost parts of the Dominion, and nearly surrounded by sheets of open water, it has a far milder climate than the rest of eastern Canada.

In 1615, Champlain, returning from France, brought along friars from the Récollet order.[4] These were the first missionaries in Canada, among whom FATHER LE CARON was notable. The Récollets traveled through the areas around the St. Lawrence River, from Lake Huron to Cape Breton Island, sharing Christianity with the Indigenous peoples and serving the French colonists and fur traders. One of these missionaries died from cold and hunger while trying to cross New Brunswick from the St. Lawrence to the Bay of Fundy. Another, Nicholas Viel, became the first martyr in Canada for Christianity; he was thrown into the rapids of the Ottawa River by the pagan Hurons, along with one of his converts, at a spot later named Sault le Récollet. Another Récollet, Father d'Aillon, encouraged by Brulé, explored the rich and beautiful territory known then as the land of the Neutral nation, a group of Huron-Iroquois Indigenous people who tried to stay out of the intense conflicts between the Algonkins and Hurons on one side and the eastern Iroquois clans on the other. This area, located between Lakes Ontario, Erie, and Huron, is the most appealing part of western Canada. Being in the southernmost part of the Dominion and almost surrounded by open water, it enjoys a much milder climate compared to the rest of eastern Canada.

In 1626 the Jesuit order supplanted the Récollets, and commenced a campaign both of Christian propaganda and of geographical exploration which has scarcely finished in the Canada of to-day.

In 1626, the Jesuit order replaced the Récollets and began a campaign of both Christian outreach and geographical exploration that continues in present-day Canada.

In 1627 the war between the Iroquois Confederacy and the Huron and Algonkin tribes recommenced, and this, together with the British capture of Quebec and other portions of Canada, put a stop for several years to the work of exploration. This was not resumed on an advanced scale till 1634, when Champlain, unable himself, from failing health, to carry out his original commission of seeking a direct passage to China and India across the North-American continent, dispatched a Norman Frenchman named JEAN NICOLLET to find a way to the Western Sea. Nicollet, as a very young man, had lived for years amongst the Amerindian tribes, especially amongst the Nipissings near the lake of that name. Being charged, amongst other things, with the task of making peace between the Hurons and the tribes dwelling to the west of the great lakes, Nicollet discovered Lake Michigan. He was so convinced of the possibility of arriving at the Pacific Ocean, and thence making his way to China, that in the luggage which he carried in his birch-bark canoe was a dress of ceremony made of Chinese damask silk embroidered richly with birds and flowers. He was on his way to discover the Winnebago Indians, or "Men of the Sea", of whom Champlain had heard from the Hurons, with whom they were at war. But the great water from which they derived their name was not in this instance a sea, but the Mississippi River. The Winnebago Indians were totally distinct from the Algonkins or the Iroquois, and belonged to the Dakota stock, from which the great Siou confederation[5] was also derived.

In 1627, the war between the Iroquois Confederacy and the Huron and Algonquin tribes resumed. Along with the British capture of Quebec and other parts of Canada, this halted exploration efforts for several years. It wasn't until 1634 that exploration picked up again on a larger scale. Champlain, unable to continue his original mission to find a direct route to China and India across North America due to declining health, sent a Norman Frenchman named Jean Nicollet to seek a way to the Western Sea. Nicollet had spent many years as a young man living among the Native American tribes, particularly the Nipissings near the lake that bears their name. Tasked with making peace between the Hurons and the tribes west of the Great Lakes, Nicollet discovered Lake Michigan. He was so convinced he could reach the Pacific Ocean and then China that he carried a ceremonial outfit made of Chinese damask silk richly embroidered with birds and flowers in his birch-bark canoe. He sought to find the Winnebago Indians, or "Men of the Sea," of which Champlain had heard from the Hurons, who were at war with them. However, the "great water" they referred to was not a sea, but the Mississippi River. The Winnebago Indians were entirely different from the Algonquin or Iroquois tribes and belonged to the Dakota lineage, which also included the great Sioux Confederation[5].

Nicollet advanced to meet the Winnebagos clad in his Chinese robe and with a pistol in each hand. As he drew near he discharged his pistols, and the women and children fled in terror, for all believed him to be a supernatural being, a spirit wielding thunder and lightning. However, when they recovered from their terror the Winnebagos gave him a hearty welcome, and got up such lavish feasts in his honour, that one chief alone cooked 120 beavers at a single banquet.

Nicollet approached the Winnebagos wearing his Chinese robe, with a pistol in each hand. As he got closer, he fired his pistols, and the women and children ran away in fear, convinced he was a supernatural being, a spirit bringing thunder and lightning. However, once they calmed down, the Winnebagos welcomed him warmly and organized such extravagant feasts in his honor that one chief alone cooked 120 beavers for a single banquet.

Nicollet certainly reached the water-parting between the systems of the St. Lawrence and the Mississippi, and under that name—Misi-sipi—"great water"—he heard through the Algonkin Indians of a mighty river lying three days' journey westward from his last camp. Winnebago (from which root is also derived the names of the Lakes Winnipeg and Winnipegosis much farther to the north-west) meant "salt" or "foul" water. Both terms might therefore be applied to the sea, and also to the lakes and rivers which, in the minds of the Amerindians, were equally vast in length or breadth.

Nicollet definitely reached the divide between the St. Lawrence and Mississippi river systems, and under that name—Misi-sipi—meaning "great water"—he learned from the Algonkin Indians about a huge river located three days' journey west of his last camp. Winnebago (from which the names of Lakes Winnipeg and Winnipegosis farther to the northwest are also derived) meant "salt" or "bad" water. Both terms could therefore refer to the sea, as well as to the lakes and rivers that, in the minds of the Indigenous peoples, were similarly immense in size.

From 1648 to 1653 the whole of the Canada known to the French settlers and explorers was convulsed by the devastating warfare carried on by the Iroquois, who during that period destroyed the greater part of the Algonkin and Huron clans. The neutral nation of Lake Erie (the Erigas) was scattered, and between the shores of Lakes Michigan and Huron and Montreal the country was practically depopulated, except for the handfuls of French settlers and traders who trembled behind their fortifications. Then, to the relief and astonishment of the French, one of the Iroquois clans—the Onondaga—proposed terms of peace, probably because they had no more enemies to fight of their own colour, and wished to trade with the French.

From 1648 to 1653, the entire area of Canada known to the French settlers and explorers was thrown into chaos due to the brutal warfare conducted by the Iroquois, who during this time wiped out most of the Algonkin and Huron clans. The neutral nation of Lake Erie (the Erigas) was dispersed, and the region between the shores of Lakes Michigan and Huron and Montreal was almost entirely depopulated, except for a few French settlers and traders who were fearful behind their fortifications. Then, to the surprise and relief of the French, one of the Iroquois clans—the Onondaga—offered peace terms, likely because they had run out of enemies to fight and wanted to trade with the French.

The fur trade of the Quebec province had attracted an increasing number of French people (men bringing their wives) to such settlements as Tadoussac and Three Rivers. Amongst these were the parents of PIERRE ESPRIT RADISSON. This young man went hunting near Three Rivers station and was captured in the woods by Mohawks (Iroquois) who carried him off to one of their towns and intended to burn him alive. Having bound him at a stake, they proceeded to tear out some of his finger nails and shoot arrows at the less vital parts of his body. But a Mohawk woman was looking on and was filled with pity at the sufferings of this handsome boy. She announced her intention of adopting him as a member of her family, and by sheer force of will she compelled the men to release him. After staying for some time amongst the Mohawks he escaped, but was again captured just as he was nearing Three Rivers. Once more he was spared from torture at the intercession of his adopted relations. He then made an even bolder bid for freedom, and fled to the south, up the valley of the Richelieu and the Hudson, and thus reached the most advanced inland post of Dutch America—then called Orange, now Albany—on the Hudson River. From this point he was conveyed to Holland, and from Holland he returned to Canada.

The fur trade in Quebec had drawn more and more French settlers (men bringing their wives) to places like Tadoussac and Three Rivers. Among them were the parents of PIERRE ESPRIT RADISSON. This young man went hunting near the Three Rivers station and was captured in the woods by Mohawks (Iroquois), who took him to one of their villages and planned to burn him alive. They tied him to a stake, began to tear out some of his fingernails, and shot arrows at the less vital parts of his body. But a Mohawk woman watching felt sorry for this handsome boy. She decided to adopt him as part of her family, and through sheer determination, she forced the men to let him go. After staying with the Mohawks for a while, he escaped but was recaptured just as he was nearing Three Rivers. Yet again, he was saved from torture thanks to his adopted family. He then made an even bolder attempt for freedom, fleeing south, up the Richelieu and the Hudson valleys, and eventually reached the furthest inland post of Dutch America—then called Orange, now Albany—on the Hudson River. From there, he was taken to Holland, and from Holland, he returned to Canada.

Soon after his return he joined two Jesuit fathers who were to visit a mission station of the Jesuits amongst the Onondagas (Iroquois) on a lakelet about thirty miles south-east of the present city of Rochester. The Iroquois (whose language Radisson had learnt to speak) received them with apparent friendliness, and there they passed the winter. But in the spring Radisson found out that the Onondaga Iroquois were intending to massacre the whole of the mission. Instructed by him, the Jesuits pretended to have no suspicions of the coming attack, but all the while they were secretly building canoes at their fort. As soon as they were ready for flight, and the sun of April had completely melted the ice in the River Oswego, the French missionaries invited the Onondagas to a great feast, no doubt making out that it was part of the Easter festivities sanctioned by the Church. They pointed out to their guests that from religious motives as well as those of politeness it was essential that the whole of the food provided should be eaten, "nothing was to be left on the plate". They set before their savage guests an enormous banquet of maize puddings, roast pigs, roast ducks, game birds, and fish of many kinds, even terrapins, or freshwater turtles. The Iroquois ate and ate until even their appetites were satisfied. Then they began to cry off; but the missionaries politely insisted, and even told them that in failing to eat they were neglecting their religious duties. To help them in this respect they played hymn and psalm tunes on musical instruments. At last the Onondagas were gorged to repletion, and sank into a stertorous slumber at sunset. Whilst they slept, the Jesuits, their converts, and Radisson got into the already prepared canoes and paddled quickly down the Oswego River far beyond pursuit.

Soon after he got back, he teamed up with two Jesuit priests who were set to visit a mission station of the Jesuits among the Onondagas (Iroquois) on a small lake about thirty miles southeast of what is now the city of Rochester. The Iroquois, whose language Radisson had learned to speak, welcomed them with apparent friendliness, and they spent the winter there. However, in the spring, Radisson discovered that the Onondaga Iroquois planned to massacre the entire mission. Following his guidance, the Jesuits pretended to be unaware of the upcoming attack, while secretly they worked on building canoes at their fort. Once the canoes were ready for their escape and the sun in April had completely melted the ice in the Oswego River, the French missionaries invited the Onondagas to a big feast, making it seem like a part of the Easter celebrations approved by the Church. They pointed out to their guests that for both religious and polite reasons, it was essential that the whole meal be consumed, insisting that "nothing should be left on the plate." They served their savage guests an enormous feast of corn puddings, roast pigs, roast ducks, game birds, and various kinds of fish, even turtles. The Iroquois ate and ate until even they were full. Then they started to refuse more food, but the missionaries politely insisted and even told them that by not eating, they were neglecting their religious obligations. To assist with this, they played hymn and psalm melodies on musical instruments. Eventually, the Onondagas were completely stuffed and fell into a deep sleep at sunset. While they slept, the Jesuits, their converts, and Radisson climbed into the already prepared canoes and paddled swiftly down the Oswego River far away from any pursuit.

Radisson next joined his brother-in-law, Medard Chouart, and after narrowly escaping massacre by the Iroquois (once more on the warpath along the Ottawa River) reached the northern part of Lake Huron, and Green Bay on the north-west of Lake Michigan. From Green Bay they travelled up the Fox River and across a portage to the Wisconsin, which flows into the Mississippi. Down this river they sped, meeting people of the great Siou confederation and Kri (Cree) Indians, these last an Algonkin nation roaming in the summertime as far north as Hudson's Bay, until at length they reached the actual waters of the Mississippi, first of all white men. Returning then to Lake Michigan, the shores of which seemed to them an earthly paradise with a climate finer than Italy, they journeyed northwards into Lake Huron, and thence north-westwards through the narrow passages of St. Mary's River into Lake Superior. The southern coast of Lake Superior was followed to its westernmost point, where they made a camp, and from which they explored during the winter (in snowshoes) the Wisconsin country and collected information regarding the Mississippi and its great western affluent the Missouri. The Mississippi, they declared, led to Mexico, while the other great forked river in the far west was a pathway, perhaps, to the Southern Sea (Pacific).

Radisson then joined his brother-in-law, Medard Chouart, and after narrowly escaping a massacre by the Iroquois (who were once again on the warpath along the Ottawa River), they reached the northern part of Lake Huron and Green Bay on the northwest side of Lake Michigan. From Green Bay, they traveled up the Fox River and made a portage to the Wisconsin River, which flows into the Mississippi. They quickly moved down this river, encountering people from the great Sioux confederation and Cree Indians, who were an Algonquin nation that roamed as far north as Hudson's Bay during the summer. Eventually, they reached the actual waters of the Mississippi, becoming the first white men to do so. They then returned to Lake Michigan, which they found to be like an earthly paradise with a climate better than Italy's. They journeyed north into Lake Huron and then northwest through the narrow channels of St. Mary's River into Lake Superior. They followed the southern coast of Lake Superior to its westernmost point, where they set up camp and spent the winter exploring the Wisconsin area in snowshoes, gathering information about the Mississippi and its major tributary, the Missouri. They concluded that the Mississippi led to Mexico, while the other major forked river in the far west might be a route to the Southern Sea (Pacific).

The Jesuits, on the other hand, were convinced that Hudson's Bay (or the "Bay of the North") was at no great distance from Lake Superior (which was true) and that it must communicate to the north-west with the Pacific Ocean or the sea that led to China.

The Jesuits, however, believed that Hudson's Bay (or the "Bay of the North") was not far from Lake Superior (which was accurate) and that it must connect to the northwest with the Pacific Ocean or the sea that led to China.

In 1661, without the leave of the French Governor of Canada, who wanted them to take two servants of his own with them and to give him half the profits of the venture, Chouart and Radisson hurried away to the west, picked up large bodies of natives who were returning to the regions north of Lake Huron, with them fought their way through the ambushed Iroquois, and once more navigated the waters of Lake Superior. Once again they started for the Mississippi basin and explored the country of Minnesota, coming thus into contact with native tribes which lived on the flesh of the bison. In Minnesota they met a second time the Kri or Kinistino Indians of north-central Canada, and joined one of their camps in the spring of 1662, somewhere to the west of Lake Superior. With Kri guides they started away to the north and north-east, no doubt by way of the Lake of the Woods, the English River, Lake St. Joseph, and the Albany River, thus reaching the salt sea at James Bay, the southernmost extension of Hudson Bay. Or they may have proceeded by an even shorter route, though with longer portages for canoes, through Lake Nipigon to the Albany.

In 1661, without permission from the French Governor of Canada, who wanted them to take two of his servants with them and give him half the profits, Chouart and Radisson quickly left for the west. They gathered large groups of native people returning to the areas north of Lake Huron, fought their way through Iroquois ambushes, and once again navigated the waters of Lake Superior. They set out for the Mississippi basin and explored the region of Minnesota, encountering native tribes that depended on bison for food. In Minnesota, they met the Kri or Kinistino Indians from north-central Canada again and joined one of their camps in the spring of 1662, somewhere west of Lake Superior. With the help of Kri guides, they headed north and northeast, likely passing through the Lake of the Woods, the English River, Lake St. Joseph, and the Albany River, eventually reaching the saltwater at James Bay, the southernmost part of Hudson Bay. Alternatively, they might have taken a shorter route, though with longer canoe portages, through Lake Nipigon to the Albany.

The summer of 1662 they passed on the islands and shores of James Bay hunting "buffalo"[6] with the Indians. Then, in 1663, travelling back along the same route they had followed in the previous year, they regained Lake Superior, and so passed by the north of Lake Huron to the Ottawa River and the St. Lawrence. But on their return to Three Rivers they were arrested by the French Governor, D'Avaugour, who condemned them to imprisonment and severe fines. The courts of France gave them no redress, and in their furious anger Chouart and Radisson went over to the English, offered their services to England, and so brought about the creation of the Hudson Bay Company.

In the summer of 1662, they spent time on the islands and shores of James Bay hunting "buffalo" [6] with the Indigenous people. Then, in 1663, while traveling back along the same route they had taken the previous year, they reached Lake Superior and continued north of Lake Huron to the Ottawa River and the St. Lawrence. However, upon returning to Three Rivers, they were arrested by the French Governor, D'Avaugour, who sentenced them to imprisonment and hefty fines. The courts in France offered them no help, and in their rage, Chouart and Radisson switched sides to the English, offered their services to England, and ultimately helped establish the Hudson Bay Company.

Radisson's journey from England to Hudson Bay has been treated of in an earlier chapter: it is preferable to follow out to its finish the great, western impulse of the French, which led them to neglect for a time the doings of the British on the east coast of North America and in the sub-Arctic regions of Hudson Bay.

Radisson's trip from England to Hudson Bay was discussed in an earlier chapter: it's better to fully explore the significant western movement of the French, which caused them to overlook the activities of the British on the east coast of North America and in the sub-Arctic areas of Hudson Bay for a while.

From 1660 onwards the Jesuit missionaries again took up vigorously that work of Christianizing the Amerindians which had been so completely checked by the frightful ravages of the Iroquois between 1648 and 1654.

From 1660 on, the Jesuit missionaries eagerly resumed their efforts to convert the Indigenous peoples, which had been severely disrupted by the terrible attacks from the Iroquois between 1648 and 1654.

By 1669 the Jesuits had three permanent stations in western Canada. The first was the mission station at Sault Ste. Marie, the second was the station of Ste. Esprit, on Lake Superior (not far from the modern town of Ashland), and the third was the station of St. François Xavier at the mouth of the Fox River, on Green Bay, Lake Michigan.

By 1669, the Jesuits had three permanent locations in western Canada. The first was the mission station at Sault Ste. Marie, the second was the station of Ste. Esprit on Lake Superior (not far from the current town of Ashland), and the third was the station of St. François Xavier at the mouth of the Fox River, on Green Bay, Lake Michigan.

As regards some of the sufferings which these missionaries had to go through when travelling across Canada in the winter, I quote the following from The Relations of the Jesuits (p. 35):—

As for some of the hardships these missionaries faced while traveling across Canada in the winter, I quote the following from The Relations of the Jesuits (p. 35):—

"I [Father de Crépieul] set out on the 16th of January, 1674, from the vicinity of Lake St. John, near the Saguenay River, with an Algonkin captain and two Frenchmen. We started after Mass, and walked five long leagues on snowshoes with much trouble, because the snow was soft and made our snowshoes very heavy. At the end of five leagues, we found ourselves on a lake four or five leagues long all frozen over, on which the wind caused great quantities of snow to drift, obscuring the air and preventing us from seeing where we are going. After walking another league and a half with great difficulty our strength began to fail. The wind, cold, and snow were so intolerable that they compelled us to retrace our steps a little, to cut some branches of fir which might in default of bark serve to build a cabin. After this we tried to light a fire, but were unable to do so. We were thus reduced to a most pitiful condition. The cold was beginning to seize us to an extraordinary degree, the darkness was great, and the wind blew fearfully. In order to keep ourselves from dying with cold, we resumed our march on the lake in spite of our fatigue, without knowing whither we were going, and all were greatly impeded with the wind and snow. After walking a league and a half we had to succumb in spite of ourselves and stop where we were. The danger we ran of dying from cold caused me to remember the charitable Father de Noue, who in a similar occasion was found dead in the snow, kneeling and with clasped hands.... We therefore remained awake during the rest of the night.... On the following morning two Frenchmen arrived from Father Albanel's cabin very opportunely, and kindled a great fire on the snow.... After this we resumed our journey on the same lake, and at last reached the spot where Father Albanel was.... A serious injury, caused by the fall of a heavy load upon his loins, prevented him from moving, and still more, from performing a missionary's duties."

"I [Father de Crépieul] set out on January 16, 1674, from the area around Lake St. John, near the Saguenay River, with an Algonkin captain and two Frenchmen. We left after Mass and walked five long leagues on snowshoes, struggling because the snow was soft and made our snowshoes very heavy. After five leagues, we found ourselves on a frozen lake about four or five leagues long, where the wind caused a lot of snow to drift, obscuring our view and making it hard to see where we were going. After walking another league and a half with great difficulty, we started to tire. The wind, cold, and snow were unbearable, forcing us to turn back a little to cut some fir branches that might serve to build a shelter. Then we tried to start a fire but couldn’t. We found ourselves in a dire situation. The cold was becoming unbearable, it was very dark, and the wind was howling. To avoid freezing, we continued our march on the lake despite our exhaustion, with no idea where we were going, and the wind and snow severely hampered us. After walking another league and a half, we had to stop against our will. The fear of freezing made me think of the compassionate Father de Noue, who was found dead in the snow, kneeling with clasped hands during a similar situation.... So we stayed awake for the rest of the night.... The next morning, two Frenchmen arrived from Father Albanel's cabin just in time and started a big fire on the snow.... After that, we continued our journey on the same lake and finally arrived at the place where Father Albanel was.... A serious injury, caused by a heavy load falling on his lower back, prevented him from moving, and even more, from carrying out his missionary duties."

One of the Jesuit fathers, Allouez, in founding the station of St. François Xavier on Green Bay, Lake Michigan, had gained further information about the wonderful Mississippi, which he called "Messi Sipi". He also thoroughly explored Lake Nipigon, to the north of Lake Superior. In 1669 two missionaries, named Dollier de Casson and Galinée, started from the seminary of St. Sulpice (Montreal) to reach the great tribes of the far west, supposed to be eager to learn of Christianity and known to be much more tractable than the Iroquois. These two missionaries, in their expedition of seven canoes and twenty-one Amerindians, were accompanied by a remarkable young man commonly known as La Salle, but whose real name was Robert Cavalier.[7]

One of the Jesuit priests, Allouez, while establishing the St. François Xavier mission at Green Bay on Lake Michigan, gained more insights about the amazing Mississippi, which he referred to as "Messi Sipi." He also thoroughly explored Lake Nipigon, located north of Lake Superior. In 1669, two missionaries, Dollier de Casson and Galinée, set out from the St. Sulpice seminary in Montreal to connect with the great tribes in the far west, who were thought to be eager to learn about Christianity and were known to be much easier to engage than the Iroquois. These two missionaries embarked on their journey with seven canoes and twenty-one Indigenous people, accompanied by an exceptional young man commonly known as La Salle, whose real name was Robert Cavalier.[7]

Before leaving Lake Ontario, they actually passed the mouth of the Niagara River and heard the falls, but had not sufficient curiosity to leave their canoes and walk a short distance to see them. The wonderful cascades of Niagara, where the St. Lawrence leaving Lake Erie plunges 328 feet down into Lake Ontario (which is not much above sea level), remained nearly undiscovered and undescribed until the year 1678, when they were visited by Father Hennepin. Near the western end of Lake Ontario the two Sulpician missionaries met another Frenchman, Jolliet, who had come down to Lake Superior by way of the Detroit passage, which is really the portion of the St. Lawrence connecting Lake Huron with Lake Erie. Jolliet told the missionary de Casson of a great tribe in the far west, the Pottawatomies, who had asked for missionaries, and who were of Algonkin stock. La Salle, on the other hand, was determined to make for the rumoured Ohio River, which lay somewhere to the south-west of Lake Erie.

Before leaving Lake Ontario, they actually passed the mouth of the Niagara River and heard the falls, but didn’t have enough curiosity to leave their canoes and walk a short distance to see them. The amazing cascades of Niagara, where the St. Lawrence River leaves Lake Erie and plunges 328 feet down into Lake Ontario (which is not much above sea level), remained mostly undiscovered and undescribed until the year 1678, when Father Hennepin visited them. Near the western end of Lake Ontario, the two Sulpician missionaries met another Frenchman, Jolliet, who had come down to Lake Superior via the Detroit passage, which is really the part of the St. Lawrence that connects Lake Huron with Lake Erie. Jolliet informed missionary de Casson about a great tribe in the far west, the Pottawatomies, who had requested missionaries and were of Algonkin descent. La Salle, on the other hand, was determined to head for the rumored Ohio River, which was located somewhere to the southwest of Lake Erie.

The two Sulpicians wintered in "the earthly paradise" to the north of Lake Erie, passing a delightful six months there in the amazing abundance of game and fish. They then met with various disasters to their canoes, and consequently gave up their western journey, passing northwards through Detroit and Lake St. Clair into Lake Huron, and thence to the Jesuit mission station of the Sault Ste. Marie. Here they were received rather coldly, as being rivals in the mission field and in exploration. They in their turn accused the Jesuits of thinking mainly, if not entirely, of the foundation of French colonies, and very little of evangelizing the natives.

The two Sulpicians spent the winter in what was called "the earthly paradise" north of Lake Erie, enjoying a wonderful six months filled with plenty of game and fish. However, they encountered several problems with their canoes and ultimately decided to abandon their journey westward. Instead, they traveled north through Detroit and Lake St. Clair into Lake Huron, eventually reaching the Jesuit mission station at Sault Ste. Marie. There, they were met with a somewhat cool reception, as they were seen as competitors in both the mission and exploration efforts. In response, they accused the Jesuits of being primarily, if not solely, focused on establishing French colonies rather than on converting the natives.

JOLLIET, a Canadian by birth,[8] was dispatched by the Viceroy of Canada in 1672 to explore the far west. Two years—1670—previously the French Government had for the first time adopted a really definite policy about Canada, and had taken formal possession of the Lake region and of all the territories lying between the lakes and the Mississippi. A great assembly of Indians was held at Sault Ste. Marie, near the east end of Lake Superior; and here a representative of the French Government, accompanied by numerous missionaries and by Jolliet, read a proclamation of the sovereignty of King Louis XIV of France and Navarre. Below a tall cross was erected a great shield bearing the arms of France. Father Allouez addressed the Indians in the Algonkin language, and told them of the all-powerful Louis XIV, who "had ten thousand commanders and captains, each as great as the Governor of Quebec". He reminded them how the troops of this king had beaten the unconquerable Iroquois, of how he possessed innumerable soldiers and uncountable ships; that at times the ground of France shook with the discharge of cannon, while the blaze of musketry was like the lightning. He pictured the king covered with the blood of his enemies and riding in the middle of his cavalry, and ordering so many of his enemies to be slain that no account could be kept of the number of their scalps, whilst their blood flowed in rivers. The Amerindians being what they were, addicted to warfare, and only recognizing the right of the strongest, it may be that this gospel of force was not quite so shocking and unchristian as it reads to us nearly 250 years afterwards, though it jars very much as coming from the lips of a missionary of Christianity. However, it must be remembered that but for the valour of the French soldiers in the awful period between 1648 and 1666 (when the Mohawks received a thorough and well-deserved thrashing) many of the tribes addressed on this occasion by the Jesuit missionaries would have been completely exterminated; the Iroquois would have depopulated much of north-eastern America. It is obvious, indeed, from our study of the conditions of life amongst the Amerindians, that one reason why the New World was so poorly populated at the time of its discovery by Europeans was the wars of extermination between tribe and tribe; for America between the Arctic regions and Tierra del Fuego is marvellously well supplied with natural food products—game, fish, fruits, nuts, roots, and grain—much more so than any area of similar extent in the Old World.

JOLLIET, a Canadian by birth,[8] was sent by the Viceroy of Canada in 1672 to explore the far west. Two years earlier, in 1670, the French Government had finally established a clear policy regarding Canada and had formally claimed the Lake region along with all the lands between the lakes and the Mississippi. A large gathering of Indigenous people took place at Sault Ste. Marie, near the eastern end of Lake Superior; here, a representative of the French Government, accompanied by many missionaries and Jolliet, read a proclamation asserting the sovereignty of King Louis XIV of France. A tall cross was erected alongside a large shield displaying the arms of France. Father Allouez spoke to the Indigenous peoples in Algonquin, telling them about the powerful Louis XIV, who "had ten thousand commanders and captains, each as significant as the Governor of Quebec." He reminded them how the king's troops had defeated the seemingly unbeatable Iroquois, emphasizing that he had countless soldiers and ships. At times, the ground in France quaked from cannon fire, while the flash of muskets resembled lightning. He depicted the king drenched in the blood of his enemies, leading his cavalry and commanding so many foes to be killed that no record could be kept of their scalps, while their blood flowed like rivers. Given that the Indigenous peoples were accustomed to warfare and recognized only the strongest, it's possible that this message of power was not as shocking or un-Christian as it seems to us nearly 250 years later, despite being jarring coming from a missionary's mouth. However, we must remember that, without the bravery of French soldiers during the terrible period between 1648 and 1666 (when the Mohawks received a significant and well-deserved defeat), many of the tribes the Jesuit missionaries spoke to would have faced total destruction; the Iroquois would have wiped out much of northeastern America. It is evident from studying the living conditions of the Indigenous peoples that one reason the New World was so sparsely populated at the time of European discovery was the wars of annihilation between tribes; for America, from the Arctic regions to Tierra del Fuego, is incredibly rich in natural food resources—game, fish, fruits, nuts, roots, and grains—far more than any similarly sized area in the Old World.

Jolliet was to be accompanied on his westward expedition by Father JACQUES MARQUETTE,[9] a Jesuit missionary who had become well acquainted with the tribes visiting Lake Superior, and had learnt the Siou dialect of the Illinois people. On May 17, 1673, Jolliet and Marquette started from the Straits of Michili-Makinak with only two bark canoes and five Amerindians. They coasted along the north coast of Lake Michigan, passed into Green Bay, and thence up the River Fox. They were assisted by the Maskutins, or Fire Indians, and were given Miami guides. Thence the natives assisted them to transport their canoes and baggage over the very short distance that separates the upper waters of the Fox River from the Wisconsin River, and down the Wisconsin they glided till they reached the great Mississippi. The Governor of Quebec, who had sent Jolliet on this mission, believed that the Great River of the west would lead them to the Gulf of California, which was then called the Vermilion Sea by the Spaniards, because it resembled in shape and colour the Red Sea.

Jolliet was joined on his westward journey by Father JACQUES MARQUETTE,[9] a Jesuit missionary who was familiar with the tribes visiting Lake Superior and had learned the Siou dialect of the Illinois people. On May 17, 1673, Jolliet and Marquette set off from the Straits of Michili-Makinak with just two bark canoes and five Native Americans. They traveled along the north shore of Lake Michigan, entered Green Bay, and then went up the Fox River. They were helped by the Maskutins, or Fire Indians, and received guidance from Miami locals. The natives also assisted them in carrying their canoes and supplies over the short distance that separated the upper waters of the Fox River from the Wisconsin River, and they smoothly navigated down the Wisconsin until they reached the great Mississippi. The Governor of Quebec, who had sent Jolliet on this mission, believed that the Great River to the west would take them to the Gulf of California, which at the time was referred to as the Vermilion Sea by the Spaniards, due to its shape and color resembling the Red Sea.

"On the 17th of June (1673)", writes Father Marquette, "we safely entered the Mississippi with a joy that I cannot express. Its current is slow and gentle, the width very unequal. On its banks there are hardly any woods or mountains. The islands are most beautiful, and they are covered with fine trees. We saw deer and cattle (bison), geese, and swans. From time to time we came upon monstrous fish, one of which struck our canoe with such violence that I thought it was a great tree. On another occasion we saw on the water a monster with the head of a tiger, a sharp nose like that of a wild cat, with whiskers and straight erect ears. The head was grey, and the neck quite black (possibly a lynx).... We found that turkeys had taken the place of game, and the pisikiou, or wild cattle, that of the other animals."

"On June 17, 1673," writes Father Marquette, "we safely entered the Mississippi River with a joy I can’t fully express. The current is slow and gentle, and the width varies greatly. There are hardly any woods or mountains along its banks. The islands are stunning and covered with beautiful trees. We spotted deer and bison, geese, and swans. Occasionally, we encountered giant fish, one of which hit our canoe so hard that I thought it was a huge tree. Another time, we saw a creature in the water with the head of a tiger, a pointed nose like a wildcat, whiskers, and straight, upright ears. The head was grey, and the neck was quite black (possibly a lynx).... We discovered that turkeys had replaced the usual game, and the pisikiou, or wild cattle, had taken the place of other animals."

Father Marquette, of course, by his wild cattle means the bison, of which he proceeds to give an excellent description. He adds: "They are very fierce, and not a year passes without their killing some savages. When attacked, they catch a man on their horns if they can, toss him in the air, throw him on the ground, then trample him under foot and kill him. If a person fires at them from a distance with either a bow or a gun, he must immediately after the shot throw himself down and hide in the grass, for if they perceive him who has fired they run at him and attack him."

Father Marquette, of course, refers to the bison when he mentions wild cattle, and he provides a great description of them. He adds: "They are very aggressive, and not a year goes by without them killing some natives. When they’re attacked, they can catch a person on their horns, toss them in the air, slam them down to the ground, and then stomp on them to kill them. If someone shoots at them from a distance with either a bow or a gun, they must immediately drop down and hide in the grass afterward, because if the bison spot the person who fired, they will charge at and attack them."

Soon after entering the Mississippi, Marquette noticed some rocks which by their height and length inspired awe. "We saw upon one of them two painted monsters which at first made us afraid, and upon which the boldest savages dare not long rest their eyes. They are as large as a calf; they have horns on their heads like those of deer, a horrible look, red eyes, a beard like a tiger's, a face somewhat like a man's, a body covered with scales, and so long a tail that it winds all round the body and ends like that of a fish. Green, red, and black are the three colours composing the picture. Moreover, these two monsters are so well painted that we cannot believe that any savage is their author, for good painters in France would find it difficult to paint so well, and, besides, they are so high up on the rock that it is difficult to reach that place conveniently to paint them."[10]

Soon after entering the Mississippi, Marquette noticed some rocks that were so tall and long they inspired awe. "We saw two painted creatures on one of them that frightened us at first, and even the bravest natives dared not look at them for long. They’re about the size of a calf, with deer-like horns, terrifying looks, red eyes, a tiger-like beard, a face somewhat resembling a human's, a body covered in scales, and a tail so long it wraps around their body and ends like a fish. The picture is made up of green, red, and black. Additionally, these two creatures are painted so well that we can't believe a native could have done it, as even skilled painters in France would find it hard to match this level of artistry, plus they're positioned high up on the rock where it's tough to reach them for painting."[10]

As the Jolliet expedition paddled down the Mississippi—ever so easily and swiftly—a marvellous panorama unfolded itself before the Frenchmen's fascinated gaze. Immense herds of bison occasionally appeared on the river banks, flocks of turkeys flew up from the glades and roosted in the trees and on the river bank. Everywhere the natives seemed friendly, and Father Marquette was usually able to communicate with them through his knowledge of the Illinois Algonkin dialect, which the Siou understood.

As the Jolliet expedition paddled down the Mississippi—smoothly and quickly—a stunning view opened up before the Frenchmen's captivated eyes. Huge herds of bison occasionally appeared along the riverbanks, flocks of turkeys took off from the clearings and perched in the trees and on the riverbank. Everywhere, the locals seemed friendly, and Father Marquette was usually able to talk to them thanks to his understanding of the Illinois Algonkin dialect, which the Siou understood.

Indians Hunting Bison
INDIANS HUNTING BISON

On their first meeting with the Mississippi Indians, the French explorers were not only offered the natives' pipes to smoke in token of peace, but an old man amongst the latter uttered these words to Jolliet: "How beautiful the sun is, O Frenchman, when thou comest to visit us. Our village awaits thee, and thou shalt enter all our cabins in peace."... "There was a crowd of people," writes Marquette; "they devoured us with their eyes, but nevertheless preserved profound silence. We could, however, hear these words addressed to us from time to time in a low voice: 'How good it is, my brothers, that you should visit us'.

On their first meeting with the Mississippi Indians, the French explorers were offered pipes to smoke as a gesture of peace, and an old man among the group said to Jolliet, "How beautiful the sun is, O Frenchman, when you come to visit us. Our village awaits you, and you will enter all our cabins in peace."... "There was a crowd of people," writes Marquette; "they stared at us but kept a deep silence. We could, however, hear these words spoken to us from time to time in a quiet voice: 'How good it is, my brothers, that you should visit us.'

"... The council was followed by a great feast, consisting of four dishes, which had to be partaken of in accordance with all their fashions. The first course was a great wooden platter full of sagamité, that is to say, meal of Indian corn boiled in water, and seasoned with fat. The Master of the Ceremonies filled a spoon with sagamité three or four times, and put it to my mouth as if I were a little child. He did the same to Monsieur Jollyet. As a second course he caused a second platter to be brought, on which were three fish. He took some pieces of them, removed the bones therefrom, and, after blowing upon them to cool them, he put them in our mouths as one would give food to a bird. For the third course, they brought a large dog that had just been killed, but, when they learned that we did not eat this meat, they removed it from before us. Finally, the fourth course was a piece of wild ox, the fattest morsels of which were placed in our mouths.... We thus pushed forward and no longer saw so many prairies, because both shores of the river are bordered with lofty trees. The cotton wood, elm and bass wood are admirable for their height and thickness. There are great numbers of wild cattle whom we hear bellowing. We killed a little parroquet, with a red and yellow head and green body.... We have got down to near the 33° of latitude.... We heard from afar savages who were inciting one another to attack us by their continual yelling. They were armed with bows and arrows, hatchets, clubs, and shields.... Part of them embarked in great wooden canoes, some to ascend, others to descend the river in order to surround us on all sides.... Some young men threw themselves into the water and seized my canoe, but the current compelled them to return to land. One of them hurled his club, which passed over without striking us. In vain I showed the calumet (pipe of peace), and made them signs that we were not coming to war against them. The alarm continued; they were already preparing to pierce us with arrows from all sides when God suddenly touched the hearts of the old men who were standing at the water's edge, who checked the ardour of their young men.... Whereon we landed, not without fear on our part. First we had to speak by signs, because none of them understood the six languages which I spoke. At last we found an old man who could speak a little Illinois. We informed them that we were going to the sea.

"... The council was followed by a big feast, consisting of four dishes, which we had to eat according to their customs. The first course was a large wooden platter filled with sagamité, which is Indian corn meal boiled in water and seasoned with fat. The Master of Ceremonies filled a spoon with sagamité three or four times and held it to my mouth as if I were a little kid. He did the same for Monsieur Jollyet. For the second course, he brought out another platter with three fish. He took some pieces, removed the bones, and after blowing on them to cool them down, he fed us like one would feed a bird. For the third course, they brought in a large dog that had just been killed, but when they found out we didn't eat that meat, they took it away. Finally, the fourth course was a piece of wild ox, and the fattiest bits were put into our mouths.... We moved on, and the view changed as we no longer saw so many prairies because both sides of the river were lined with tall trees. The cottonwood, elm, and basswood trees were impressive for their height and thickness. There were many wild cattle whose bellowing we could hear. We caught a small parakeet with a red and yellow head and green body.... We had reached close to 33° latitude.... From a distance, we heard savages encouraging each other to attack us with their constant yelling. They were armed with bows and arrows, hatchets, clubs, and shields.... Some of them got into large wooden canoes, some to go upstream and others downstream, trying to surround us on all sides.... Some young men jumped into the water and grabbed my canoe, but the current made them go back to shore. One of them threw his club, but it missed us. I tried to show the calumet (pipe of peace) and signaled that we weren’t coming to fight. The alarm continued; they were already getting ready to shoot us with arrows from all sides when suddenly God touched the hearts of the old men standing by the water, calming the younger ones.... Then we landed, not without fear on our part. Initially, we had to communicate through gestures since none of them understood the six languages I spoke. Eventually, we found an old man who spoke a little Illinois. We told them we were heading to the sea."

"The next day was spent in feasting on Indian corn and dogs' flesh. The people here had an abundance of Indian corn, which they sowed at all seasons. They cook it in great earthen jars which are very well made, and also have plates of baked earth. The men go naked and wear their hair short; they pierce their noses, from which, as well as from their ears, hang beads.... Their cabins are made of bark, and are long and wide. They sleep at the two ends, which are raised two feet above the ground. They know nothing of the beaver, and their wealth consists in the skins of wild cattle. They never see snow in their country, and recognize the winter only through the rains."

The next day was spent feasting on corn and dog meat. The people here had plenty of corn, which they planted year-round. They cook it in large earthenware pots that are very well crafted and also use plates made of baked clay. The men go naked and have short hair; they pierce their noses, with beads hanging from both their noses and ears. Their homes are made of bark and are long and spacious. They sleep at both ends, which are elevated about two feet off the ground. They know nothing about beavers, and their wealth comes from the skins of wild cattle. They never experience snow in their country and only recognize winter through the rains.

The expedition had passed the confluence of the Missouri and that of the Ohio, and had finally reached the place where the Arkansas River enters the Mississippi. Here the Frenchmen gathered from the natives that the sea was only ten days distant, and this sea they knew (for Jolliet was able to take astronomical observations and to make a rough survey) could only be the Gulf of Mexico. Jolliet feared if he prosecuted his journey any farther, he and his people would fall into the hands of the Spaniards and be imprisoned, if not killed. Therefore, at this point on the Lower Mississippi, the expedition turned back. Its return journey was a weary business, for the current was against the canoes as they were propelled northwards up the Great River. But Jolliet learnt from the natives of a better homeward route, that of following the Illinois River upstream until the expedition came within a very short distance of Lake Michigan, near where Chicago now stands. The canoes were carried over a low ridge of ground, launched again in the Chicago River, and so passed into Lake Michigan. (There is, in fact, at this point the remains of an ancient water connection between Lake Michigan and the Illinois River, and a canal now connects the two systems.) Jolliet, in describing this region, realized that by cutting a canal through two miles of prairie it would be possible to go "in a small ship" from Lake Erie or Lake Superior "to Florida".

The expedition had passed the point where the Missouri and Ohio rivers meet and had finally arrived at the spot where the Arkansas River flows into the Mississippi. Here, the Frenchmen learned from the locals that the sea was only ten days away, and they knew (because Jolliet was able to take astronomical readings and make a rough map) that this sea could only be the Gulf of Mexico. Jolliet was concerned that if he continued his journey any further, he and his crew would fall into the hands of the Spaniards and face imprisonment or worse. So, at this point on the Lower Mississippi, the expedition decided to turn back. The return journey was exhausting because the current was against the canoes as they paddled north up the Great River. However, Jolliet learned from the locals about a better route home: following the Illinois River upstream until they were very close to Lake Michigan, near where Chicago is now located. The canoes were carried over a low ridge of land, launched again in the Chicago River, and then moved into Lake Michigan. (In fact, there are remnants of an ancient waterway between Lake Michigan and the Illinois River at this point, and a canal now connects the two.) While describing this area, Jolliet realized that by digging a canal through two miles of prairie, it would be possible to travel "in a small ship" from Lake Erie or Lake Superior "to Florida."

Father Marquette remained at his new mission on the Fox River (he died two years afterwards on the shores of the Straits of Michili-makinak). Jolliet, on returning by way of the Ottawa River to Quebec, was nearly drowned in the La Chine Rapids (Montreal), and all his papers and maps were lost. The natives with him also perished, but he struggled to shore with difficulty, and went on his way to Quebec to report his wonderful discoveries to the Governor, Frontenac. Fortunately Father Marquette had also kept a journal and had made maps, and these reaching the superior of his mission arrived in time to confirm Jolliet's statements.

Father Marquette stayed at his new mission on the Fox River (he passed away two years later on the shores of the Straits of Michilimackinac). Jolliet, on his way back to Quebec via the Ottawa River, almost drowned in the La Chine Rapids (Montreal), losing all his papers and maps. The natives with him also died, but he managed to struggle to shore with difficulty and continued on to Quebec to report his incredible discoveries to Governor Frontenac. Luckily, Father Marquette had also kept a journal and made maps, which reached the head of his mission just in time to confirm Jolliet's accounts.

Jolliet married at Quebec, and proceeded to explore and develop the regions along the north coast of the Gulf of St. Lawrence, travelling in this work as far as Hudson's Bay. He was given by the French Government the Island of Anticosti as a reward for his achievements, but the work and capital which he put into the development of this long-neglected island came to nothing; for it was captured by the English, and Jolliet died a poor man whilst attempting to explore the coast of Labrador.

Jolliet got married in Quebec and went on to explore and develop the areas along the north coast of the Gulf of St. Lawrence, traveling as far as Hudson's Bay for this work. The French Government awarded him the Island of Anticosti for his achievements, but the effort and investment he made into developing this long-ignored island were all in vain; it was taken over by the English, and Jolliet passed away a poor man while trying to explore the coast of Labrador.

As to ROBERT CAVALIER DE LA SALLE, he had, after all, discovered the Ohio, and had descended that river as far as the site of the present town of Louisville. Then he interested the Governor (Frontenac) of Canada in his enterprises. A fort, called Fort Frontenac, was built at what is now Kingston, at the point where the St. Lawrence leaves Lake Ontario. La Salle returned to France, and obtained the grant of the lordship of this fort and the surrounding country on conditions of maintaining the whole cost of the establishment, and making a settlement of colonists. Another visit to France in 1677-8 secured him further support and capital, and he returned from France with a companion, Henry de Tonty.

As for ROBERT CAVALIER DE LA SALLE, he had, after all, discovered the Ohio River and traveled down it as far as what is now Louisville. He got the Governor of Canada, Frontenac, interested in his ventures. A fort named Fort Frontenac was constructed at what is now Kingston, where the St. Lawrence River exits Lake Ontario. La Salle returned to France and received the grant for the lordship of this fort and the surrounding area, with the condition that he would cover the entire cost of the establishment and settle colonists there. Another trip to France in 1677-78 helped him secure more support and funding, and he came back with a companion, Henry de Tonty.

La Salle, with de Tonty, started from Fort Frontenac in September, 1678, so intensely anxious to commence his discoveries that he disregarded the difficulties of the winter season. On his way to Niagara he paid a visit to the Iroquois to conciliate them, and cleverly got from them permission to build a vessel on Lake Erie and also to erect a blacksmith's forge, near where Niagara now stands. The blacksmith's forge grew rapidly into a fort before the Indians were aware of what was being done. By August, 1679, he had built and launched (in spite of extraordinary calamities and misfortunes) on the Upper Niagara River the first sailing boat which ever appeared on the four great upper lakes of the St. Lawrence basin.

La Salle, along with de Tonty, set out from Fort Frontenac in September 1678, eager to begin his explorations, so much so that he ignored the challenges of the upcoming winter. On his journey to Niagara, he visited the Iroquois to win their favor and skillfully obtained permission from them to build a ship on Lake Erie and to set up a blacksmith's forge near where Niagara is located today. The blacksmith's forge quickly turned into a fort before the Indians realized what was happening. By August 1679, he had built and launched, despite facing significant disasters and setbacks, the first sailing boat ever seen on the four major upper lakes of the St. Lawrence basin, on the Upper Niagara River.

In this ship he sailed through Lake Erie and past Detroit into Lake Huron, and thence to Green Bay (Lake Michigan), stopping at intervals amongst the canoes of the amazed natives, who for the first time heard the sound of cannon, for he had armed his vessel with guns. At Green Bay he collected a large quantity of furs, which had been obtained in trade by the men he had sent on in advance. He loaded up his sailing boat, the Griffon, and sent her on a voyage back to the east to transport this splendid load of furs to the merchants with whom he had become deeply indebted. Unhappily the Griffon foundered in a storm on Lake Michigan, and was never heard of again. Meantime La Salle, with de Tonty and Father HENNEPIN, the discoverer of Niagara, had travelled in canoes to the south-east end of Lake Michigan, had passed up the Joseph River, and thence by portage into the Kankaki, which flows into the Illinois. This river he descended till he stopped near the site of the modern Peoria. Below this place he built a fort—for it was winter time—and although the natives were not very friendly he collected enough information from them to satisfy himself that he could easily pass down the Illinois to the Mississippi.

In this ship, he sailed through Lake Erie and past Detroit into Lake Huron, then to Green Bay (Lake Michigan), stopping occasionally among the canoes of the amazed natives, who were hearing cannon fire for the first time, as he had armed his vessel with guns. At Green Bay, he gathered a large amount of furs that the men he had sent ahead had traded for. He loaded his sailing boat, the Griffon, and sent her back east to transport this impressive load of furs to the merchants he owed money to. Unfortunately, the Griffon sank in a storm on Lake Michigan and was never seen again. Meanwhile, La Salle, along with de Tonty and Father HENNEPIN, the discoverer of Niagara, traveled in canoes to the southeast end of Lake Michigan, went up the Joseph River, and then portaged into the Kankaki, which flows into the Illinois. He traveled down this river until he stopped near the location of modern Peoria. Below this area, he built a fort—since it was winter—and although the natives were not very friendly, he gathered enough information from them to reassure himself that he could easily navigate down the Illinois to the Mississippi.

He sent one of the Frenchmen, Michel Accault, together with Father Hennepin, to explore the Illinois down to the Mississippi; de Tonty he placed in charge of the fort with a small garrison; and then himself, on the last day of February, 1680, started to walk overland from Lake Michigan to Detroit. Eventually, by means of a canoe, which he constructed himself, he regained Fort Frontenac and Montreal. When he returned to Fort Crèvecoeur, on the Illinois River,[11] it was to meet with the signs of a horrible disaster. The Iroquois in his absence had descended on the place with a great war party. They had massacred the Illinois people dwelling in a big settlement near the fort, and the remains of their mutilated bodies were scattered all over the place. Their town had been burnt; the fort was empty and abandoned. There were no traces of the Frenchmen, however, amongst the skulls and skeletons lying around him; for the skulls retained sufficient hair to show that they belonged to Amerindians. Nevertheless, he deposited his new stock of goods and most of his men in the ruins of the Fort Crèvecoeur, and descended the River Illinois to the Mississippi. But he was obliged to turn back. On the west bank of the river were the scared Illinois Indians, on the east the raging Iroquois. Whenever La Salle could safely visit a deserted camp he would examine the remains of the tortured men tied to stakes to see if amongst them there was a Frenchman.

He sent one of the Frenchmen, Michel Accault, along with Father Hennepin, to explore the Illinois down to the Mississippi; he put de Tonty in charge of the fort with a small garrison; and then he set off on the last day of February, 1680, to walk overland from Lake Michigan to Detroit. Eventually, using a canoe that he made himself, he made his way back to Fort Frontenac and Montreal. When he returned to Fort Crèvecoeur, on the Illinois River,[11] he was faced with the aftermath of a terrible disaster. The Iroquois had attacked the fort while he was away with a large war party. They had slaughtered the Illinois people living in a large settlement nearby, and the remains of their mutilated bodies were scattered everywhere. Their town had been burned down; the fort was empty and abandoned. There were no signs of the Frenchmen among the skulls and skeletons around him; the skulls still had enough hair to indicate they belonged to Native Americans. Nevertheless, he left his new supplies and most of his men in the ruins of Fort Crèvecoeur and went down the Illinois River to the Mississippi. But he had to turn back. On the west bank of the river were the frightened Illinois Indians, and on the east were the aggressive Iroquois. Whenever La Salle could safely venture into an abandoned camp, he would check the remains of the tortured men tied to stakes to see if any of them were French.

But de Tonty was not dead. After incredible adventures he had escaped the raids of the Iroquois and had reached the Straits of Michili-makinak, between Lakes Michigan and Huron, and there met La Salle, who was once more on his way to Montreal.

But de Tonty was not dead. After incredible adventures, he had escaped the Iroquois raids and reached the Straits of Michilimackinac, located between Lakes Michigan and Huron, where he met La Salle, who was once again on his way to Montreal.

Again de La Salle and de Tonty, in the winter of 1681, returned to the south end of Lake Michigan, and made their way over the snow to the Illinois River. On the 6th February, 1682, they left the junction of the Illinois and the Mississippi to trace that great river to its outlet in the sea. La Salle reached the delta on the 6th April, 1682, having on the way taken possession of the country in the name of the King of France. Accault and Father Hennepin had meantime paddled up the Northern Mississippi as far as its junction with the Wisconsin. At this place their party was surrounded and captured by a large band of Siou warriors.

Again, de La Salle and de Tonty, in the winter of 1681, returned to the southern end of Lake Michigan and made their way over the snow to the Illinois River. On February 6, 1682, they left the meeting point of the Illinois and the Mississippi to follow that great river to its mouth in the sea. La Salle reached the delta on April 6, 1682, having taken possession of the land on the way in the name of the King of France. Accault and Father Hennepin had meanwhile paddled up the Northern Mississippi as far as its junction with the Wisconsin. At this spot, their group was surrounded and captured by a large band of Sioux warriors.

The Frenchmen were at first in danger of being killed, as the Sious refused to smoke with them the pipe of peace. But being much less bloodthirsty than the Iroquois, they soon calmed down and treated their captives with a certain rough friendliness. All their goods were taken from them, even the vestments worn by Father Hennepin. But they were well supplied with food such as the country produced—bison, beef, fish, wild turkeys, and the grain of the wild rice, which made such excellent flour. They were gradually conveyed by the Siou[12] to a large settlement of that tribe on the shore of Mille Lacs, a sheet of water not far distant from the westernmost extremity of Lake Superior. Whilst staying at this Siou town Hennepin conversed with Indians from the far north and north-west, and from what they told him came to the conclusion that there was no continuous waterway or "Strait of Anian" across the North-American continent, but that the land extended to the north-west till it finally joined the north-eastern part of Asia—a guess that was not very far wrong. But he also surmised that there were rivers in the far west which led to an ocean—the Pacific—across which ships might go to Japan and China without passing to the southward of the Equator.

The Frenchmen were initially in danger of being killed since the Sioux refused to share the peace pipe with them. However, since they were much less violent than the Iroquois, they soon calmed down and treated their captives with a kind of rough friendliness. They confiscated all their belongings, even the clothes worn by Father Hennepin. But they were provided with plenty of food available in the area—bison, beef, fish, wild turkeys, and wild rice, which made excellent flour. The Sioux gradually took them to a large settlement of their tribe by the shore of Mille Lacs, a body of water not far from the westernmost point of Lake Superior. While staying in this Sioux town, Hennepin talked with Indians from the far north and northwest, and based on what they told him, he concluded that there was no continuous waterway or "Strait of Anian" across the North American continent, but rather the land extended northwest until it finally connected with northeastern Asia—a guess that wasn't too far off. He also speculated that rivers in the far west could lead to an ocean—the Pacific—across which ships might travel to Japan and China without having to go south of the Equator.

Whilst moving up and down the northern Mississippi, bison-hunting with the Indians, the Frenchmen were met near the site of St. Paul by one of the great French pioneers of the seventeenth century, the Sieur DANIEL DE GREYSOLON DU L'HUT. This remarkable man, who was an officer of the French army, had already planted the French arms at the Amerindian settlement of Mille Lacs in 1679, and had established himself as a powerful authority at the west end of Lake Superior. He had also summoned a great council of Amerindian tribes—the Siou from the Upper Mississippi, the Assiniboins from the Lake of the Woods (between Lake Superior and Lake Winnipeg), and the Kri Indians from Lake Nipigon. He had further discovered, in 1679, the water route of the St. Croix River from near Lake Superior to the Mississippi.

While traveling up and down the northern Mississippi, bison hunting with the Native Americans, the Frenchmen encountered one of the great French pioneers of the seventeenth century, Sieur DANIEL DE GREYSOLON DU L'HUT, near what is now St. Paul. This remarkable man, an officer in the French army, had already established French presence in the Native settlement of Mille Lacs in 1679 and had become a powerful authority at the west end of Lake Superior. He had also called together a major council of Native tribes—the Sioux from the Upper Mississippi, the Assiniboine from the Lake of the Woods (located between Lake Superior and Lake Winnipeg), and the Cree from Lake Nipigon. Additionally, he discovered the water route of the St. Croix River from near Lake Superior to the Mississippi in 1679.

Du L'Hut soon persuaded the Siou to let his fellow countrymen return with him to Lake Superior. Accault remained behind with the Siou, delighted with their wild, roving life, and no doubt married an Indian wife and became the father of some of those bold half-breeds who played such a great part in the subsequent history of innermost Canada. But Father Hennepin returned to Montreal, and made his way eventually to France, where he fell into great disgrace and was unfrocked. He had richly merited this treatment, for after he heard of the death of La Salle he impudently claimed the discovery of the whole course of the Mississippi River for himself, and for a long time was believed. He will certainly go down in history as the man who discovered and described Niagara Falls (in 1678), and he also assisted greatly to clear up the geography of the time by the information he collected from the Amerindians as to the vast extent of the North-American continent; but he was a boastful, unscrupulous man.

Du L'Hut quickly convinced the Sioux to let his fellow countrymen come back with him to Lake Superior. Accault stayed behind with the Sioux, enjoying their wild, free lifestyle, and probably married an Indigenous woman, becoming the father of some of those daring mixed-heritage individuals who played a significant role in the later history of central Canada. Meanwhile, Father Hennepin returned to Montreal, eventually making his way back to France, where he fell into serious disgrace and was defrocked. He fully deserved this treatment, as after learning about La Salle’s death, he shamelessly claimed the discovery of the entire Mississippi River for himself and was believed for quite some time. He will definitely be remembered in history as the person who discovered and described Niagara Falls (in 1678), and he also contributed significantly to understanding the geography of the time by gathering information from Indigenous people about the vastness of the North American continent; however, he was a boastful and unscrupulous individual.

Du L'Hut, who came to the rescue of Accault and Hennepin, was of noble family, and a member of the king's bodyguard. He decided, however, to seek his fortune in Canada, and obtained a commission as captain. It was his cousin, Henri de Tonty, who had accompanied La Salle. After returning to France to fight in the wars then going on, he came back to Canada with a younger brother, Claude. He had in him the spirit of great adventurers, and longed to visit the unknown countries of the upper Mississippi. In the early part of these journeys he rescued his fellow countrymen from the keeping of the Sious in the manner described. After that he spent thirty years travelling and trading about North America, from the northern Mississippi into what we should now call Manitoba, and from the vicinity of Lake Winnipeg to Hudson Bay. He brought the great Amerindian nation of the Dakotas into direct relations with the French. He was absolutely fearless, and in no period of Canadian history has France been more splendidly represented in the personality of any of her officers than she was by Daniel de Greysolon du L'Hut. His was a tiresome name for English scribes and speakers. It was therefore written by them "Duluth" and pronounced Dălăth (instead of "Dülüt"). It is the name given to the township near the southernmost extremity of Lake Superior.

Du L'Hut, who came to the aid of Accault and Hennepin, was from a noble family and was part of the king's bodyguard. However, he chose to pursue his fortune in Canada and received a commission as a captain. His cousin, Henri de Tonty, had accompanied La Salle. After returning to France to participate in the ongoing wars, he came back to Canada with his younger brother, Claude. He had the spirit of a great adventurer and was eager to explore the unknown regions of the upper Mississippi. Early in these journeys, he rescued his fellow countrymen from the Sious as previously described. After that, he spent thirty years traveling and trading across North America, from the northern Mississippi to what we now call Manitoba, and from near Lake Winnipeg to Hudson Bay. He established direct relations between the great Amerindian nation of the Dakotas and the French. He was completely fearless, and at no point in Canadian history has France been so brilliantly represented by any of her officers as by Daniel de Greysolon du L'Hut. His name was cumbersome for English writers and speakers, so they referred to him as "Duluth" and pronounced it Dălăth (instead of "Dülüt"). This name was given to the township near the southernmost tip of Lake Superior.

When the journeys of du L'Hut came to an end—he died at Montreal in 1710—and after the era of great French explorations in North America drew to a close, the French power was beginning to be eclipsed by that of the British, who were building up the foundations of a colony on the shores of Hudson's Bay, and were taking steps to acquire Newfoundland and to colonize New Brunswick and Nova Scotia.

When du L'Hut's journeys ended—he died in Montreal in 1710—and the period of major French exploration in North America came to a close, French power was starting to fade as the British were establishing the groundwork for a colony along the shores of Hudson's Bay and were working on acquiring Newfoundland and colonizing New Brunswick and Nova Scotia.

Nevertheless, in 1720, the King of France, or rather the regent acting for the king, decided that a serious attempt must be made to discover the Western Sea, or Pacific Ocean, from the French posts which had been established in what is now known as Manitoba. The French had already discovered the Missouri, and had heard from several Indian tribes that it was possible to cross the Rocky Mountains and descend by other rivers to the waters of a great ocean, the coasts of which were visited by Spaniards. Several expeditions were sent out, more or less under the control of Jesuits, but did not accomplish much.

Nevertheless, in 1720, the King of France, or rather the regent acting for the king, decided that a serious effort needed to be made to find the Western Sea, or Pacific Ocean, from the French posts that had been set up in what is now Manitoba. The French had already discovered the Missouri and had heard from several Native American tribes that it was possible to cross the Rocky Mountains and travel down other rivers to reach the waters of a huge ocean, which was visited by Spaniards. Several expeditions were sent out, mostly under the supervision of Jesuits, but they didn't achieve much.

The really great discoveries which link the "Great North-West" for all time in history with France and French names were initiated by PIERRE GAULTIER DE LA VÉRENDRYE, who was born in 1685 at the town of Three Rivers, in Lower Canada, where his father was Governor. He entered the army at the age of twelve, and took part in the French campaigns in Flanders, winning the rank of lieutenant at the battle of Malplaquet, where he received nine wounds and was left for dead on the field. He then returned to Canada, not having the necessary means with which to support the position of a lieutenant; and then, as France seemed to have entered upon a period of protracted peace, he determined to become an explorer. In 1728, when he was commandant of the trading post of Nipigon, to the north of Lake Superior, he heard from an Indian that there was a great lake beyond Lake Superior, out of which flowed a river towards the west, which ultimately led to a great salt lake where the water ebbed and flowed. As a matter of fact, these stories simply referred to Lake Winnipeg, but the importance of them lay in the fact that they acted as a powerful incentive to La Vérendrye to push his explorations westwards, and perhaps discover a route to the Pacific Ocean.[13]

The significant discoveries that permanently connect the "Great North-West" with France and French names began with PIERRE GAULTIER DE LA VÉRENDRYE, who was born in 1685 in Three Rivers, Lower Canada, where his father served as Governor. He joined the army at twelve and participated in the French campaigns in Flanders, earning the rank of lieutenant at the battle of Malplaquet, where he sustained nine wounds and was presumed dead on the battlefield. Afterward, he returned to Canada, lacking the resources to maintain a lieutenant’s position. With France seemingly entering a long period of peace, he decided to become an explorer. In 1728, while he was in charge of the trading post at Nipigon, north of Lake Superior, he learned from an Indian about a large lake beyond Lake Superior, from which a river flowed westward, eventually leading to a vast salt lake where the water ebbed and flowed. These tales actually referred to Lake Winnipeg, but their significance lay in how they inspired La Vérendrye to further his explorations westward, potentially finding a route to the Pacific Ocean.[13]

La Vérendrye afterwards went to Quebec, where he discussed his plans for Western exploration with the Governor of New France, the Marquis de Beauharnais, who was a distant connection of the Beauharnais family from which sprang the first husband of the Empress Joséphine, the grandfather of Napoleon III.

La Vérendrye then went to Quebec, where he talked about his plans for exploring the West with the Governor of New France, the Marquis de Beauharnais, who was a distant relative of the Beauharnais family, which included the first husband of Empress Joséphine and the grandfather of Napoleon III.

This Governor entered into his scheme with enthusiasm, though he could obtain little or no money from the ministers of Louis XVI. But a way out of the difficulty was found by the Governor giving La Vérendrye the monopoly of the fur trade in the far North-West.[14] This monopoly enabled La Vérendrye to obtain the funds for his expenditure from the merchants of Montreal, and in the summer of 1731 he started out on his explorations, accompanied by three of his sons, his nephew, fifty soldiers and French Canadian canoe men, and a Jesuit missionary. For a guide they had the Indian, Oshagash, who had first told La Vérendrye of the western river and the salt water. After many delays, necessitated by the need for trading in furs to satisfy the merchants of Montreal, La Vérendrye and his expedition skated on snowshoes down the ice of the Winnipeg River and reached the shores of Lake Winnipeg. They were probably the first white men to arrive there. La Vérendrye established forts and posts along his route from Lake Nipigon, but his expedition had not been a commercial success. There was a deficit of £1700 between the amount realized in furs and the cost of the equipment and wages of the French and French Canadians. De Beauharnais made a fresh appeal to the French Court; he urged that the expenditure to convey La Vérendrye's expedition to the Pacific Ocean would not be a large one—perhaps only £1500.

This Governor jumped into his plan with excitement, even though he could get little or no funding from the ministers of Louis XVI. However, a solution was found when the Governor granted La Vérendrye a monopoly on the fur trade in the far North-West.[14] This monopoly allowed La Vérendrye to secure the funds for his expenses from the merchants in Montreal, and in the summer of 1731, he set out on his explorations, accompanied by three of his sons, his nephew, fifty soldiers, French Canadian canoe men, and a Jesuit missionary. For a guide, they had the Indian, Oshagash, who had first informed La Vérendrye about the western river and the salt water. After many delays caused by the need to trade furs to appease the merchants of Montreal, La Vérendrye and his expedition skied on snowshoes down the icy Winnipeg River and arrived at the shores of Lake Winnipeg. They were likely the first white men to get there. La Vérendrye established forts and posts along his route from Lake Nipigon, but his expedition wasn't commercially successful. There was a shortfall of £1700 between the revenue from furs and the expenses for the equipment and wages of the French and French Canadians. De Beauharnais made a new appeal to the French Court; he emphasized that the cost to send La Vérendrye's expedition to the Pacific Ocean wouldn't be significant—perhaps only £1500.

But the French Court was obdurate; it would not furnish a penny. Thus La Vérendrye, in all probability, was prevented from forestalling the British explorers of sixty and seventy years later, besides the expeditions of Captain Cook and Captain Vancouver, which secured for Great Britain a foothold on the Pacific seaboard of British Columbia.

But the French Court was stubborn; it wouldn’t provide a single penny. As a result, La Vérendrye was likely stopped from getting ahead of the British explorers of sixty and seventy years later, as well as the expeditions of Captain Cook and Captain Vancouver, which established Great Britain’s presence on the Pacific coast of British Columbia.

La Vérendrye in his fort on Lake Winnipeg was in a desperate position. He made a hasty journey back to Montreal and even Quebec, to beat up funds and to pacify the capitalists of his fur-trading monopoly. He painted in glowing colours the prospects of cutting off the trade of the Hudson's Bay Company and the building up of an immense commerce in valuable furs, and these men agreed once again to furnish the funds for the extension of the expedition. On his return he took back with him his youngest son, Louis, a boy of eighteen. Whilst he had been absent from Fort St. Charles (a post which he had built on the Lake of the Woods, in communication by water with the Winnipeg River), on Lake Winnipeg, that place was visited by a party of Siou Indians. They found the fort occupied in the absence of the French by a number of Kri or "Knistino" Indians in French service. These Kris were frightened at the arrival of the Sious and fired guns at them. "Who fired on us?" demanded these haughty Indians from Dakota, and the Kris replied, "The French". Then the Sious withdrew, but vowed to be completely revenged on the treacherous white man.

La Vérendrye in his fort on Lake Winnipeg was in a tough spot. He rushed back to Montreal and even Quebec to secure funds and calm the investors of his fur-trading monopoly. He painted a bright picture of cutting off the Hudson's Bay Company's trade and creating a huge market for valuable furs, and the capitalists agreed to provide the funds for expanding the expedition once again. When he returned, he brought back his youngest son, Louis, an eighteen-year-old. While he had been away from Fort St. Charles (a post he built on the Lake of the Woods, connected by water to the Winnipeg River), a group of Sioux Indians visited Lake Winnipeg. They found the fort occupied, in the absence of the French, by several Kri or "Knistino" Indians in French service. The Kri were scared by the arrival of the Sioux and fired their guns at them. "Who shot at us?" demanded the proud Dakota Indians, and the Kri replied, "The French." The Sioux then retreated but vowed to take complete revenge on the treacherous white man.

When La Vérendrye reached Fort St. Charles its little garrison was almost at the point of starvation. He had travelled himself ahead of his party, and the immense stock of supplies and provisions he was bringing up country were a long way behind him when he reached the fort. He therefore sent back his son Jean, together with the most active of his Canadian voyageurs and the Jesuit missionary, in order that they might meet the heavily laden canoes and hurry them up country as fast as possible. But this party was met by the Sious on Rainy River, who massacred them to a man. They were afterwards found lying in a circle on the beach, decapitated and mutilated. The heads of most of them were wrapped ironically in beaver skins, and La Vérendrye's son, Jean, was horribly cut and slashed, and his mutilated, naked body decorated with garters and bracelets of porcupine quills.

When La Vérendrye arrived at Fort St. Charles, its small garrison was on the verge of starvation. He had traveled ahead of his group, and the large supply of provisions he was bringing from further in was still far behind when he got to the fort. He sent his son Jean back with some of his most energetic Canadian voyageurs and the Jesuit missionary to meet the heavily loaded canoes and rush them inland as quickly as possible. However, this group was ambushed by the Sioux on Rainy River, who killed them all. They were later discovered lying in a circle on the beach, decapitated and mutilated. The heads of most were ironically wrapped in beaver skins, and La Vérendrye's son, Jean, was brutally slashed, his disfigured, naked body adorned with garters and bracelets made from porcupine quills.

Meantime, during his absence in Lower Canada, two of his sons in charge of Fort Maurepas, on Lake Winnipeg, had been very active. They had discovered the great size of this lake, and also the entrance of the Red River on the south. They then proceeded to explore both the Red River and its western tributary the Assiniboin. On the Assiniboin was afterwards built the post of Fort La Reine, and from this place in 1738 La Vérendrye started with two of his sons, several other Frenchmen, a few Canadian voyageurs, and twenty-five Assiniboin Indians. Leaving the Assiniboin River, they crossed the North Dakota prairies on foot. Owing to the timidity of his Indian guides, La Vérendrye was not led direct to the Missouri River, the "Great River of the West", but along a zigzag route which permitted his guides to reinforce their numbers at Assiniboin villages, and every now and then join in a bison hunt. All the party were on foot, horses not then having reached the Assiniboin tribe. But on the 28th of November, 1738, they drew near to the Missouri and were met by a chief of the great Mandan tribe, who was accompanied by thirty of his warriors, and who presented La Vérendrye with young maize cobs and leaves of native tobacco, these being regarded as emblems of peace and friendship.

Meanwhile, during his absence in Lower Canada, two of his sons, in charge of Fort Maurepas on Lake Winnipeg, were quite active. They discovered just how large this lake was and found the entrance to the Red River to the south. They then set out to explore both the Red River and its western tributary, the Assiniboine. Later, a post called Fort La Reine was built on the Assiniboine, and from there in 1738, La Vérendrye set off with two of his sons, several other Frenchmen, a few Canadian voyageurs, and twenty-five Assiniboine Indians. Leaving the Assiniboine River, they crossed the North Dakota prairies on foot. Due to the hesitance of his Indian guides, La Vérendrye wasn’t taken directly to the Missouri River, known as the "Great River of the West," but instead followed a zigzag route that allowed his guides to gather more people at Assiniboine villages and occasionally join in on bison hunts. Everyone in the party was on foot, as horses had not yet reached the Assiniboine tribe. However, on November 28, 1738, they approached the Missouri and were met by a chief of the great Mandan tribe, accompanied by thirty of his warriors, who presented La Vérendrye with young corn cobs and leaves of native tobacco, seen as symbols of peace and friendship.

The Mandan tribe differed materially in its habits and customs from the Indians to the north, who supported themselves mainly, if not entirely, by hunting, who cared very little for agriculture, and moved continually like nomads over great stretches of country, living chiefly in tents or temporary villages. The Mandans, on the other hand, were a people who practised agriculture, and had permanent and well-constructed towns. In fact, their civilization and demeanour made such an impression on the Assiniboin and other northern tribes that they had been considered a sort of "white people", somewhat akin to Europeans, and La Vérendrye was a little disappointed to find them only Amerindians in race and colour.

The Mandan tribe was quite different in their habits and customs from the Indians to the north, who primarily relied on hunting for their survival, showed little interest in farming, and moved constantly like nomads across vast areas, mostly living in tents or temporary villages. In contrast, the Mandans were an agricultural people with permanent, well-built towns. In fact, their level of civilization and behavior made such an impression on the Assiniboin and other northern tribes that they were seen as somewhat like "white people," similar to Europeans, which left La Vérendrye a bit disappointed to discover they were just Native Americans in race and appearance.

The six hundred Assiniboins who had gathered about La Vérendrye's expedition proved to be a great trouble to him, as they were constantly picking quarrels with the Mandans, who were very dishonest. Accordingly, La Vérendrye arranged with the Mandans to frighten them away by pretending that the Siou Indians were on the warpath. The six hundred Assiniboins bolted, but took with them La Vérendrye's interpreter, so that he was henceforth obliged to communicate with the Mandans by means of signs and gestures. This and other reasons decided him to return—even though it was the depth of winter, to Fort La Reine, but not before he had given the head chief of the Mandans a flag and a leaden plate which (unknown to the Mandans) meant taking possession of their country in the name of the French king.

The six hundred Assiniboins who had gathered around La Vérendrye's expedition turned out to be a huge hassle for him, as they were always starting fights with the very dishonest Mandans. So, La Vérendrye worked out a plan with the Mandans to scare them off by pretending that the Sioux Indians were about to attack. The six hundred Assiniboins fled, but they took La Vérendrye's interpreter with them, which meant he had to communicate with the Mandans using only signs and gestures from then on. This and other reasons led him to decide to return—even though it was the middle of winter—to Fort La Reine, but not before he gave the head chief of the Mandans a flag and a leaden plate that (unknown to the Mandans) signified taking ownership of their land in the name of the French king.

The journey back to Fort La Reine, over the plains of the Assiniboin, was a terrible experience. The party had to travel in the teeth of an almost unceasing north-east wind which was freezingly cold. Night after night they were obliged to dig deep holes in the snow for their sleeping places. La Vérendrye nearly died of agonizing pain and fatigue during this journey, and was a long time recovering from its effects.

The journey back to Fort La Reine across the Assiniboin plains was a brutal experience. The group had to battle against an almost constant freezing northeast wind. Night after night, they had to dig deep holes in the snow to sleep. La Vérendrye came close to dying from excruciating pain and exhaustion during this trip, and it took him a long time to recover from it.

As they continued to receive friendly messages from the Mandans, inviting them to make further discoveries, LA VÉRENDRYE'S sons, PIERRE and FRANCOIS, set out in the spring of 1742, and, after some checks and disappointments, managed with a single Mandan guide to reach Broad Lands on the Little Missouri River, where they noticed the earths of different colours, blue, green, red, black, white, and yellow, which are so characteristic of this region. They reached the village of the Crow Indians, passed through a portion of the friendly tribe, the Cheyennes (the name was probably pronounced Shian) and got into the country which was constantly being ravaged by the Snake Indians, or Shoshones. Here, on the 1st of January, 1743, when the mists of morning cleared away, they saw upon the horizon the outline of huge mountains. As they travelled westwards or south-westwards, day after day, the jagged blue wall resolved itself into towering snow-capped peaks, glittering in the sun and provoking the appellation of "the Mountains of Bright Stones", a name probably given to the Rocky Mountains by the Amerindians, but used in all the earlier French and English maps until the end of the eighteenth century.[15]

As they kept getting friendly messages from the Mandans, inviting them to explore further, LA VÉRENDRYE'S sons, PIERRE and FRANCOIS, set off in the spring of 1742. After some setbacks and disappointments, they managed to reach Broad Lands on the Little Missouri River with just one Mandan guide. There, they noticed the different colored earth—blue, green, red, black, white, and yellow—that is characteristic of this area. They arrived at the village of the Crow Indians, passed through a part of the friendly Cheyenne tribe (which was likely pronounced Shian), and entered territory that was frequently attacked by the Snake Indians, or Shoshones. On January 1, 1743, as the morning mist cleared, they saw the outline of massive mountains on the horizon. As they traveled westward or southwestward day by day, the jagged blue wall became towering snow-capped peaks, sparkling in the sunlight and earning the name "the Mountains of Bright Stones," a term likely given by the Native Americans but used in earlier French and English maps until the end of the eighteenth century.[15]

On the 12th of January they reached the very foot of the mountains, the slopes of which they saw were thickly covered with magnificent forests of pine and fir—forests, that have since suffered to an appalling extent from annual bush fires, which so far the United States Government seems unable to check. Here they were to meet with a bitter disappointment. They were travelling with a very large war party of the Bow Indians for the purpose, if need be, of attacking and routing the Shoshones; but a Shoshone camp at the base of the mountains was found to be deserted, and the Bow Indians jumped to the conclusion that the Shoshones had turned back through the forest unseen, and were now making with all speed for the principal war camp of the Bow Indians, where they would massacre the women and children. They would listen to no remonstrances from the two Frenchmen, who perforce had also to travel back, either alone or with the Bow Indians, in the direction of their war camp, where the idea of a Shoshone attack was found to be baseless. Eventually, the two La Vérendrye brothers were obliged to make their way to the Missouri River, and abandon any idea of finding a way to the Western Ocean across the Rocky Mountains.

On January 12th, they arrived at the base of the mountains, which were covered in beautiful pine and fir forests—forests that have since been severely damaged by annual wildfires that the U.S. Government has been unable to control. Here, they were faced with a harsh disappointment. They were traveling with a large war party of the Bow Indians, planning to attack and drive out the Shoshones if necessary; however, a Shoshone camp at the foot of the mountains was found empty, leading the Bow Indians to assume that the Shoshones had slipped away unnoticed through the forest and were now rushing to the Bow Indians' main war camp to kill the women and children. They ignored any arguments from the two Frenchmen, who had no choice but to return, either alone or with the Bow Indians, towards their war camp, where the idea of a Shoshone attack turned out to be unfounded. Eventually, the two La Vérendrye brothers had to make their way to the Missouri River, giving up any hopes of finding a route to the Pacific Ocean across the Rocky Mountains.

The French pioneers had already heard of the Spaniards in California, and the possibility of getting into touch with them. They had now discovered, first of all Europeans, the Rocky Mountains—that great snowy range of North America which extends from Robson Peak on the eastern borders of British Columbia to Baldy Peak in New Mexico.

The French pioneers had already heard about the Spaniards in California and the chance to connect with them. They were the first Europeans to discover the Rocky Mountains—a huge snowy range in North America that stretches from Robson Peak on the eastern edge of British Columbia to Baldy Peak in New Mexico.

Afterwards the La Vérendryes directed their attention more to the opportunities of reaching the Far West through the streams that flowed into the system of Lake Winnipeg, and in this way discovered, in or about 1743, the great River Saskatchewan. This river La Vérendrye's sons followed up till they reached the junction between the North and the South Rivers, and then they probably learnt a good deal more of the Southern Saskatchewan, on which they may have built one or two posts. La Vérendrye himself thought that this would prove to be the best route by which the French could reach the Western Sea.

Afterward, the La Vérendryes focused more on finding ways to reach the Far West through the rivers that flowed into the Lake Winnipeg system, leading to the discovery of the great Saskatchewan River around 1743. La Vérendrye’s sons traveled up this river until they reached the point where the North and South Rivers meet, and there they likely learned a lot more about the Southern Saskatchewan, where they may have established one or two posts. La Vérendrye believed this would be the best route for the French to reach the Western Sea.

By this time the French Government was becoming alive to the importance of these discoveries, and it conferred a decoration on La Vérendrye, and allowed him to hope that he might be furnished with means for further exploration. But he died soon afterwards, at the close of 1749, and after his death his sons were treated with gross ingratitude and neglect. The self-seeking Governor of New France endeavoured to secure the fur trade for his own friends, and sent an officer with a terribly long name—Captain Jacques Répentigny Le Gardeur de Saint Pierre—to continue the exploration towards the Pacific. From 1750 to 1763 the French occupation of this region of the two Saskatchewan Rivers was extended till in all probability the French got within sight of the northern Rocky Mountains in the vicinity of Calgary. Then came the English conquest of Canada to stop all further enterprise in this direction, and the story was next to be taken up by English, Scottish, and Canadian explorers.

By this time, the French Government was realizing how important these discoveries were, and it awarded La Vérendrye a decoration, giving him hope that he might receive support for further exploration. However, he died soon after, at the end of 1749, and following his death, his sons faced extreme ingratitude and neglect. The self-serving Governor of New France tried to monopolize the fur trade for his own allies and sent an officer with a ridiculously long name—Captain Jacques Répentigny Le Gardeur de Saint Pierre—to continue the exploration toward the Pacific. From 1750 to 1763, the French presence in the area around the two Saskatchewan Rivers expanded, and it’s likely the French got close to the northern Rocky Mountains near Calgary. Then came the English conquest of Canada, which halted any further efforts in that direction, and the story would next be taken up by English, Scottish, and Canadian explorers.

It will be men with English and Scottish names, mainly, who will henceforth complete the work begun and established so magnificently by Cartier, Brulé, Nicollet, Jolliet, La Salle, du L'Hut, and La Vérendrye, though the French Canadians will also play a notable part, together with "Americans", from New England.

It will mainly be men with English and Scottish names who will continue the work that was so magnificently started by Cartier, Brulé, Nicollet, Jolliet, La Salle, du L'Hut, and La Vérendrye, although French Canadians will also play a significant role, along with "Americans" from New England.


1 Mentioned on p. 80.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ mentioned on p. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

2 The Andastes were akin to the Iroquois, but did not belong to their confederacy; they lived in Pennsylvania.

2 The Andastes were similar to the Iroquois but were not part of their confederacy; they lived in Pennsylvania.

3 The inaccurate statement has frequently been written about Newfoundland being "the first British American colony". Newfoundland was reached by the ship in which John Cabot sailed on his 1497 voyage of discovery, and a few years afterwards its shores were sought by the English in common with the French and the Portuguese, and later on the Spaniards and Basques, for the cod fishery. But no definite British settlement, such as subsequently grew into an actual colony, was founded in Newfoundland until the year 1624; the island was not recognized as definitely British till 1713, and no governor was appointed till 1728. The first permanent English colonial settlement in America was founded at Jamestown, Virginia, in 1607; and in the Bermudas and Barbados (West Indies) soon afterwards.

3 The incorrect statement has often claimed that Newfoundland was "the first British American colony." Newfoundland was reached by the ship that John Cabot sailed on his 1497 voyage of discovery, and a few years later, its shores were sought by the English, along with the French and the Portuguese, and later by the Spaniards and Basques, for the cod fishery. However, no definite British settlement, like the ones that eventually developed into actual colonies, was established in Newfoundland until 1624. The island was not officially recognized as British until 1713, and no governor was appointed until 1728. The first permanent English colonial settlement in America was founded at Jamestown, Virginia, in 1607, followed by settlements in the Bermudas and Barbados (West Indies) soon afterward.

4 The Récollet (properly Recollect) friars were a strict branch of the Franciscan order that were sometimes called the Observantines. They were also known as "Recollects" (pronounced in French récollet) because they were required to be constantly keeping guard over their thoughts. This development of the Franciscan order of preaching missionary friars was originally a Spanish one, founded early in the sixteenth century, and becoming well established in the Spanish Netherlands. Many of them were Flemings or Walloons.

4 The Récollet (actually Recollect) friars were a strict branch of the Franciscan order sometimes referred to as the Observantines. They were also known as "Recollects" (pronounced in French récollet) because they had to constantly monitor their thoughts. This branch of the Franciscan order, focused on preaching and missionary work, originated in Spain in the early sixteenth century and became well established in the Spanish Netherlands. Many of them were Flemings or Walloons.

5 See p. 160.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See page __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

6 More probably musk oxen.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ More likely musk oxen.

7 La Salle was the name of his property in France.

7 La Salle was the name of his estate in France.

8 Born at Quebec in 1645.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Born in Quebec in 1645.

9 Father Jacques Marquette was born in the province of Champagne, eastern France. He came to Canada when he was twenty-nine years old, having already been prepared by the Jesuits for priesthood and missionary work since his seventeenth year. He spent nine years in Canada, and died at the age of thirty-eight. He has left an enduring memory for goodness, courage, and purity of life.

9 Father Jacques Marquette was born in the Champagne region of eastern France. He came to Canada when he was twenty-nine, having already been trained by the Jesuits for the priesthood and missionary work since he was seventeen. He spent nine years in Canada and died at thirty-eight. He is remembered for his goodness, courage, and pure life.

10 These remarkable rock pictures were situated immediately above the present city of Alton, Illinois. In 1812 they still remained in a good state of preservation, but the thoughtless Americans had gradually destroyed them by 1867 in quarrying the rock for building stone.

10 These incredible rock images were located right above what is now the city of Alton, Illinois. In 1812, they were still in fairly good condition, but careless Americans had gradually ruined them by 1867 while extracting the rock for building materials.

11 He had named this place "Heartbreak" because when building it he had learnt of the loss of his sailing ship Griffon, with the splendid supply of furs which was to have paid off his debts, with all his reserve supplies and his men. This was not the limit of his troubles; for, after the overland journey of appalling hardships through a country of melting ice, flood, swamp, and hostile Iroquois—the Iroquois being furious with La Salle for having outwitted them in the building of this fort, and seeking him everywhere to destroy him—when he got to Montreal it was only to learn that a ship, coming from France with further supplies for his great journey had been wrecked at the mouth of the St. Lawrence!

11 He called this place "Heartbreak" because while building it, he learned about the loss of his sailing ship Griffon, which was supposed to deliver a valuable cargo of furs meant to pay off his debts, along with all his extra supplies and his crew. This wasn't the end of his troubles; after enduring a grueling journey through a landscape of melting ice, floods, swamps, and hostile Iroquois—who were angry with La Salle for outsmarting them in the construction of this fort and were hunting him down to kill him—when he finally reached Montreal, he found out that a ship coming from France with more supplies for his major expedition had been wrecked at the mouth of the St. Lawrence!

12 The real name of the Siou, as far as we can arrive at it through the records of the French pioneers, was Issati or Naduessiu.

12 The actual name of the Siou, based on the records of the French pioneers, was Issati or Naduessiu.

13 The water of Lake Winnipeg—whatever it may be now—was frequently stated by Amerindians in earlier days to be "stinking water", or salt, brackish water, disagreeable to drink, and this lake exhibits a curious phenomenon of a regular rise and fall, reminding the observer of a tide, a phenomenon by no means confined to Lake Winnipeg, but occurring on sheets of water of much smaller extent.

13 The water of Lake Winnipeg—whatever it is now—was often called "stinking water" by Native Americans in the past, or described as salt, brackish water that was unpleasant to drink. This lake has a strange characteristic of regularly rising and falling, which makes it resemble a tide. This phenomenon isn't limited to Lake Winnipeg; it can also be seen in smaller bodies of water.

14 What we should call to-day a "concession".

14 What we would call today a "concession."

15 The term Rocky Mountains was probably first officially applied by the American expedition, under Lewis and Clarke, sent out by the United States Government in 1804 to take possession of the coast of Oregon, but it was used twenty or thirty years earlier by British explorers of Western Canada.

15 The term Rocky Mountains was likely first officially used by the American expedition led by Lewis and Clark, sent by the U.S. government in 1804 to claim the Oregon coast, but it had been used twenty or thirty years earlier by British explorers in Western Canada.

[__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]






CHAPTER VI

The Geographical Conditions of the Canadian Dominion

Before we continue to follow the adventures of the pioneers of British North America, I think—even if it seems wearisome and discursive—my readers would better understand this story if I placed before them a general description of what is now the Dominion of Canada, more particularly as it was seen and discovered by the earliest European explorers.

Before we continue with the adventures of the pioneers in British North America, I believe—even if it seems tedious and a bit off-topic—that you, the readers, would better grasp this story if I provided a general overview of what is now the Dominion of Canada, especially as it was observed and discovered by the earliest European explorers.

The most prominent feature on the east, and that which was nearest to Europe, was the large island of NEWFOUNDLAND, 42,000 square miles in extent, that is to say, nearly as large as England without Wales. It seems to bar the way of the direct sea access by the Gulf of St. Lawrence to the very heart of North America; and, until the Straits of Belle Isle and of Cabot were discovered, did certainly arrest the voyages of the earliest pioneers. Newfoundland, as you can see on the map, has been cut into and carved by the forces of nature until it has a most fantastic outline. Long peninsulas of hills alternate with deep, narrow gulfs, and about the south-east and east coasts there are innumerable islets, most of which in the days of the early discoverers were the haunt of millions of sea birds who resorted there for breeding purposes. The heart of Newfoundland, so to speak, is an elevated country with hills and mountains rising to a little over 2000 feet. A great deal of the country is, or was, dense forests, chiefly consisting of fir trees. As numerous almost as the sea birds were the seals and walruses which frequented the Newfoundland coasts. Inland there were very large numbers of reindeer, generally styled nowadays by the French-Canadian name of Caribou[1]. Besides reindeer there were wolves, apparently of a smaller size than those of the mainland. There were also lynxes and foxes, besides polar bears, martens, squirrels, &c. The human inhabitants of Newfoundland, whom I shall describe in the next chapter, were known subsequently by the name of Beothuk, or Beothik, a nickname of no particular meaning. They had evidently been separated for many centuries from contact with the Amerindians of the mainland, though they may have been visited occasionally on the north by the Eskimo. They had in fact been so long separated from the other Amerindians of North America that they were strikingly different from them in their habits, customs, and language.

The most notable feature on the east, and the one closest to Europe, was the large island of NEWFOUNDLAND, covering 42,000 square miles—nearly the same size as England without Wales. It appears to block direct sea access via the Gulf of St. Lawrence to the center of North America; until the Straits of Belle Isle and Cabot were discovered, it definitely hindered the journeys of the earliest explorers. Newfoundland, as shown on the map, has been shaped and carved by natural forces, giving it a very unique outline. Long peninsulas of hills alternate with deep, narrow bays, and along the southeast and east coasts, there are countless small islands, most of which were home to millions of seabirds breeding there during the time of early explorers. The heart of Newfoundland is an elevated region with hills and mountains rising just over 2,000 feet. Much of the land was covered in dense forests, mainly consisting of fir trees. Almost as numerous as the seabirds were the seals and walruses that frequented the Newfoundland shores. Inland, there were large populations of reindeer, commonly referred to nowadays by the French-Canadian word Caribou[1]. In addition to reindeer, there were wolves, which seemed to be smaller than those found on the mainland. There were also lynxes and foxes, as well as polar bears, martens, squirrels, and so on. The human inhabitants of Newfoundland, whom I will describe in the next chapter, later became known as the Beothuk, or Beothik—a nickname that holds no specific meaning. They had clearly been isolated for centuries from the Amerindians of the mainland, though they may have occasionally been visited by Eskimos from the north. They had been separated from the other Amerindians of North America for so long that they were remarkably different in their habits, customs, and language.

The climate of Newfoundland is not nearly so cold as that of the mainland, nor so hot in summer, but it is spoilt at times by fogs and sea mists which conceal the landscape for days together. In the wintertime, and quite late in the spring, quantities of ice hang about the shores of the islands, and when the warm weather comes, these accumulations of ice slip away into the Atlantic in the form of icebergs and are most dangerous to shipping.

The climate of Newfoundland isn't nearly as cold as the mainland's, nor as hot in summer, but it does get spoiled at times by fog and sea mist that can hide the landscape for days. In the winter, and even late into spring, a lot of ice lingers around the shores of the islands, and when the warm weather hits, this ice breaks away into the Atlantic as icebergs, posing a serious threat to shipping.

To the south-east of Newfoundland the sea is very shallow for hundreds of miles, the remains no doubt of a great extension of North America in the direction of Europe which had sunk below the surface ages ago. In this shallow water—the "Banks" of Newfoundland—fish, especially codfish, swarmed in millions, and still continue to swarm with little, if any, diminution from the constant toll of the fishing fleets. Another creature found in great abundance on these coasts is the true lobster,[2] which filled as important a part in the diet of the Beothuk natives, before the European occupation, as the salmon did in the dietary of the British Columbian tribes.

To the southeast of Newfoundland, the sea is very shallow for hundreds of miles, likely the remains of a large stretch of North America that sank beneath the surface ages ago. In this shallow water—the "Banks" of Newfoundland—fish, especially cod, swarm in millions and continue to do so with little, if any, decrease despite the constant pull from the fishing fleets. Another creature found in great abundance along these coasts is the true lobster,[2] which was as important a part of the diet for the Beothuk natives before European settlement as salmon was for the tribes of British Columbia.

The next most striking feature in the geography of Eastern North America is NOVA SCOTIA. AS you look at it on the map this province seems to be a long peninsula connected with the mainland by the narrow isthmus of Chignecto; but its northernmost portion—Cape Breton—really consists of two big and two little islands, only separated from Nova Scotia by a very narrow strait—the Gut of Canso. On the north of Nova Scotia lies the large Prince Edward Island, and north of this again the small group of the Magdalen Islands, discovered by Cartier, the resort of herds of immense walruses at one time. Due west of Nova Scotia the country, first flat (like Nova Scotia itself) and at one time covered with magnificent forests, rises into a very hilly region which culminates on the north in the Shikshok Mountains of the Gaspé Peninsula (nearly 4000 feet in height) and the White Mountains (over 6000 feet) and the Adirondak Mountains (over 5000 feet). The White, the Green, and the Adirondak Mountains lie just within the limits of the United States.

The next most notable feature in the geography of Eastern North America is Nova Scotia. When you look at it on the map, this province appears to be a long peninsula linked to the mainland by the narrow isthmus of Chignecto; however, its northernmost part—Cape Breton—actually consists of two large and two small islands, separated from Nova Scotia by a very narrow strait called the Gut of Canso. To the north of Nova Scotia is the large Prince Edward Island, and further north is the small group of the Magdalen Islands, discovered by Cartier, which once hosted large herds of walruses. Due west of Nova Scotia, the land starts off flat (similar to Nova Scotia itself) and was once covered with stunning forests, before rising into a hilly region that peaks in the north at the Shikshok Mountains of the Gaspé Peninsula (almost 4,000 feet high) and the White Mountains (over 6,000 feet) and the Adirondack Mountains (over 5,000 feet). The White, Green, and Adirondack Mountains are all located just within the borders of the United States.

North of the Gaspé Peninsula, in the great Gulf of St. Lawrence, is Anticosti Island, which rises on the south in a series of terraces until it reaches an altitude of about 2000 feet. This island, which is well wooded, was said to have swarmed with reindeer at one time, and perhaps other forms of deer also, and to have possessed grizzly bears which fed on the deer, besides Polar bears visiting it in the winter.

North of the Gaspé Peninsula, in the vast Gulf of St. Lawrence, lies Anticosti Island, which rises on the south in a series of terraces to an elevation of about 2,000 feet. This island, which is heavily forested, was once said to be filled with reindeer, and possibly other types of deer as well, and was believed to have had grizzly bears that preyed on the deer, in addition to Polar bears that visited in the winter.

[__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]

Newfoundland is separated from the mainland of LABRADOR on the north by the Strait of Belle Isle, and from Cape Breton Island on the south by Cabot Strait. Labrador is an immense region on the continent, where the coast (except for the deep inlet of Melville Lake) soon rises into an elevated plateau 2000 feet in height, which is strewn with almost uncountable lakes, out of which rivers flow north, south, east, and west. On the north-east corner of Labrador there are mountains from 3000 to 4000 feet, overlooking the sea. The whole of this vast Labrador or Ungava Peninsula, which is bounded on the south by the River and Gulf of St. Lawrence, and on the north by Hudson's Bay and Hudson's Straits, is an inhospitable land, at no time with much population.

Newfoundland is separated from the mainland of LABRADOR to the north by the Strait of Belle Isle, and from Cape Breton Island to the south by Cabot Strait. Labrador is a vast area on the continent, where the coast (except for the deep inlet of Melville Lake) quickly rises into an elevated plateau that reaches 2,000 feet in height, dotted with countless lakes, from which rivers flow in all directions—north, south, east, and west. In the northeast corner of Labrador, there are mountains that rise between 3,000 and 4,000 feet high, overlooking the sea. The entire region known as Labrador or the Ungava Peninsula is bordered to the south by the River and Gulf of St. Lawrence, and to the north by Hudson's Bay and Hudson's Straits. This land is mostly unwelcoming and has never had a large population.

"The winter of Labrador is long and severe; one would need to have blood like brandy, a skin of brass, and an eye of glass not to suffer from the rigours of a Labrador winter. In the summer the frequent fogs render the air damp, and the constant breezes from the immense fields of ice floating in the gulf keep the land very cool, and make any alteration in the winter dress almost unnecessary" (James M'Kenzie). Labrador and the lands farther north on the continent of North America are separated from Greenland on the east by the broad straits—a great branch of the Atlantic—named after Davis and Baffin, who first explored them. Passing up Davis Strait, along the coast of Labrador to beyond 60° N. lat., the voyager comes to Hudson's Straits, which, if followed up first to the northwards and then to the south-west, would lead him into the great expanse of Hudson's Bay, one of the most important features in the geography of North America.

"The winter in Labrador is long and harsh; you would need to have blood like brandy, skin like metal, and eyes like glass not to feel the harshness of a Labrador winter. In the summer, the frequent fogs make the air damp, and the constant breezes from the huge ice fields floating in the gulf keep the land quite cool, making any changes to winter clothing almost unnecessary" (James M'Kenzie). Labrador and the lands further north in North America are separated from Greenland to the east by the wide straits—a major branch of the Atlantic—named after Davis and Baffin, who were the first to explore them. Traveling up Davis Strait, along the Labrador coast to beyond 60° N latitude, the traveler comes to Hudson's Straits, which, if followed first to the north and then to the southwest, would lead into the vast area of Hudson's Bay, one of the most significant geographical features in North America.

HUDSON'S BAY, which is a great inland sea with an area of about 315,000 square miles, has a southern loop or extension called James Bay, the shores of which are not at a very great distance either from Lake Superior to the south-west, or from the source of the River Saguenay on the south. The Saguenay flows into the Lower St. Lawrence River. It is therefore not surprising that as soon as the French began to settle in Lower Canada they heard of a vast northern inland sea of salt water—Hudson's Bay. But the people who discovered and surveyed Hudson's Bay during the seventeenth, eighteenth, and nineteenth centuries were always on the search for a passage out of its waters into the Arctic Sea, which would enable them to get right round America into the Pacific Ocean.

HUDSON'S BAY, which is a large inland sea covering about 315,000 square miles, has a southern extension called James Bay. The shores of James Bay are not far from Lake Superior to the southwest or from the source of the Saguenay River to the south. The Saguenay flows into the Lower St. Lawrence River. So, it’s not surprising that when the French started settling in Lower Canada, they learned about a large northern inland sea of salt water—Hudson's Bay. However, the explorers who discovered and mapped Hudson's Bay in the seventeenth, eighteenth, and nineteenth centuries were always looking for a route that would connect its waters to the Arctic Sea, allowing them to navigate around America and into the Pacific Ocean.

In Arctic North America Nature really seems to have been preparing during millions of years a grim joke with which to baffle exploring humanity! It is easy enough to pass from Davis Straits into Hudson's Bay, but to get out of Hudson's Bay in the direction of the Arctic Ocean is like getting out of a very cleverly arranged maze. There are innumerable false exits, which have disappointed one Arctic explorer after another. When they had discovered that Hudson's Bay to the south was only like a great bottle, and had no outlet, they explored its northern waters; and when they found Chesterfield Inlet on the north-west, which leads into Baker Lake, they thought perhaps here was the passage through into the Arctic Sea. But no; that was no good. To the north of Chesterfield Inlet was a broad channel called Roe's Welcome, which led into Wager Bay and through frozen straits into Fox's Channel, and this again into Ross Bay. Here only a very narrow isthmus separates Hudson's Bay from the Arctic Sea; but still it is an isthmus of solid land. Turning to the north-east and north there are the broad waters of Fox's Channel leading into Fox's Basin; but the north-west corner of this inland sea was so blocked with ice and islands that it was not until the year 1822 that the real northern outlet of Hudson's Bay was discovered by Captain EDWARD PARRY to be the narrow Fury and Hecla Straits (the discovery was not completed until 1839 by the Hudson's Bay Company's explorers T. SIMPSON and W. DEASE).

In Arctic North America, it seems like Nature has been playing a long game, setting up a challenge to confuse explorers for millions of years! It's easy to enter Hudson's Bay from Davis Straits, but getting out of Hudson's Bay towards the Arctic Ocean is like navigating a cleverly designed maze. There are countless false exits that have let down one Arctic explorer after another. Once they realized that Hudson's Bay, to the south, was essentially a giant bottle with no outlet, they turned their attention to its northern waters. When they found Chesterfield Inlet in the northwest, leading to Baker Lake, they hoped it might be the passage to the Arctic Sea. But that wasn’t the case. North of Chesterfield Inlet is a wide channel called Roe's Welcome, which flows into Wager Bay and through frozen straits into Fox's Channel, and then into Ross Bay. Here, only a narrow isthmus separates Hudson's Bay from the Arctic Sea, but it's still solid land. Heading northeast and north, you've got the expansive waters of Fox's Channel leading into Fox's Basin; however, the northwest corner of this inland sea was so clogged with ice and islands that it wasn't until 1822 that Captain Edward Parry discovered the true northern outlet of Hudson's Bay— the narrow Fury and Hecla Straits. This discovery wasn't finalized until 1839 by the Hudson's Bay Company's explorers T. Simpson and W. Dease.

Here you have found the way out into the Gulf of Boothia, which communicates in the north with Barrow Strait and Baffin's Bay. But across the supposed peninsula of Boothia there were discovered, in 1847, by Dr. JOHN RAE (also an officer of the Hudson's Bay Company) the narrow Bellot Straits, which lead into Franklin Straits and so into M'Clintock Channel and the Arctic Ocean. After this you might theoretically (if the ice permitted it) sail or steam your ship through Victoria Straits and Coronation Gulf till you got into Beaufort Sea (part of the open Arctic Ocean), or, by turning round Prince Albert Land, pass through the Prince of Wales' Straits or M'Clure Straits into the same Beaufort Sea.

Here, you have found the exit into the Gulf of Boothia, which connects to Barrow Strait and Baffin's Bay in the north. However, in 1847, Dr. JOHN RAE (also an officer of the Hudson's Bay Company) discovered the narrow Bellot Straits across the supposed peninsula of Boothia, which lead into Franklin Straits and then into M'Clintock Channel and the Arctic Ocean. After this, you could theoretically (if the ice allowed) sail or steam your ship through Victoria Straits and Coronation Gulf until you reached Beaufort Sea (part of the open Arctic Ocean), or by going around Prince Albert Land, pass through Prince of Wales' Straits or M'Clure Straits into the same Beaufort Sea.

The North-West Passage across the Arctic extremity of North America, therefore, did exist after all, and the directest route would be up Davis Straits, through Hudson's Straits into Fox's Basin, then through the Fury and Hecla Straits into the Gulf of Boothia, then through the Bellot Straits and Franklin Straits (past Victorialand and Kemp Peninsula) and out through the Dolphin and Union Straits into the Arctic Ocean, and so on round the north coast of Alaska, past Bering's Straits into Bering Sea and the Pacific. But of course the accumulations of ice completely block continuous navigation.

The North-West Passage through the Arctic region of North America did exist after all, and the most direct route would be up Davis Strait, through Hudson Strait into Fox Basin, then through Fury and Hecla Strait into the Gulf of Boothia, and then through Bellot Strait and Franklin Strait (past Victoria Island and Kemp Peninsula) out through Dolphin and Union Straits into the Arctic Ocean, and then around the north coast of Alaska, past Bering Strait into Bering Sea and the Pacific. But of course, ice buildup completely blocks continuous navigation.

The huge jagged island of BAFFIN'S LAND differs from much of Arctic America in that it has high land rising into mountains. This is so completely covered with ice that it is of little interest under present circumstances to the world of civilization, though the large herds of musk oxen which it once supported were of much use to Arctic explorers as a food supply in winter. The coasts are inhabited by a few thousand Eskimo, and Davis Straits and Baffin's Bay possess a certain amount of commercial importance owing to the whale fisheries which are carried on there by the British, the Danes, the Americans, and the Eskimo. In fact the importance of these whale fisheries have of late made the Americans of the United States a little inclined to challenge the British possession of these great Arctic islands. North Devon, North Somerset, Prince of Wales' Land, Melville Island, Banks Land, Prince Albert Land, &c. &c, are names of other great Arctic islands completely within the grip of the ice. The nature of their interior is almost unknown. They are at present of use to no form of man unless it be to a few wandering Eskimo, who come to their coasts in the summer to kill seals.

The large, rugged island of Baffin's Land stands out from much of Arctic America because it has high land that rises into mountains. It's so heavily covered in ice that it's not really relevant to the modern world, though the large herds of musk oxen that used to roam here were very helpful to Arctic explorers as a winter food source. A few thousand Eskimos live along the coasts, and Davis Straits and Baffin's Bay are somewhat commercially significant due to the whale fisheries operated there by the British, the Danes, the Americans, and the Eskimos. Recently, the significance of these whale fisheries has led some Americans to challenge British claims over these great Arctic islands. North Devon, North Somerset, Prince of Wales' Land, Melville Island, Banks Land, Prince Albert Land, etc., are names of other major Arctic islands that are completely locked in ice. Their interiors are mostly unknown. Currently, they are useful to very few people, except for some nomadic Eskimos who come to their shores in the summer to hunt seals.

The great NORTH-WEST TERRITORIES of the Canadian Dominion extend from the American frontier of Alaska (which is the 141° of W. long.) to the Ungava Peninsula, which abuts on Labrador. Where this vast region slopes to the Arctic Ocean and Hudson's Bay it is rather low and flat, except between Alaska and the Mackenzie River, and between the Mackenzie and the watershed of Hudson's Bay. The principal river system in the far North-West is that of the great Mackenzie River, which flows into the Arctic Ocean (Beaufort Sea) through an immense delta, and is one of the longest rivers in the world. The southernmost sources of the Mackenzie (such as the Peace River and the Athabaska River) rise in the Rocky Mountains to the east of British Columbia. These waters are stored for a time in Lake Athabaska, and then under the name of Slave River flow northwards into the Great Slave Lake, and out of this, under the name of Mackenzie River, into Beaufort Sea, through an immense delta. The Great Bear Lake is also a feeder of the Mackenzie.

The vast NORTH-WEST TERRITORIES of Canada stretch from the American border of Alaska (at 141° W longitude) to the Ungava Peninsula, which borders Labrador. In this extensive area, where it slopes down to the Arctic Ocean and Hudson's Bay, the land is mostly low and flat, except between Alaska and the Mackenzie River, and between the Mackenzie and the Hudson's Bay watershed. The main river system in the far North-West is the impressive Mackenzie River, which flows into the Arctic Ocean (Beaufort Sea) through a huge delta and is one of the longest rivers in the world. The river's southernmost sources, including the Peace River and the Athabaska River, originate in the Rocky Mountains east of British Columbia. These waters are temporarily held in Lake Athabaska, and then, as the Slave River, flow north into Great Slave Lake, eventually continuing as the Mackenzie River into the Beaufort Sea through a massive delta. Great Bear Lake also feeds into the Mackenzie.

Two other Arctic rivers at one time thought to be of great importance as means of communication with the Arctic Ocean, are the Great Fish River, which flows into Elliot Bay, and the Coppermine River, which enters Coronation Gulf. The other northward-flowing rivers (passing through innumerable lakes and lakelets) enter Hudson's Bay.

Two other Arctic rivers that were once considered very important for communicating with the Arctic Ocean are the Great Fish River, which flows into Elliot Bay, and the Coppermine River, which flows into Coronation Gulf. The other rivers that flow northward (through countless lakes and small ponds) empty into Hudson's Bay.

West of the great Mackenzie River rises the northernmost extension of the Rocky Mountains. All this easternmost part of Alaska, which is under British control, is a region of great elevation, something like parts of Central Asia. The streams which rise here unite in the great Yukon River, and this has its outlet in Bering's Sea. Some points of the great mountains within the limits of British territory in this direction reach to nearly 20,000 feet (Mount Logan).

West of the large Mackenzie River lies the northernmost part of the Rocky Mountains. This easternmost section of Alaska, which is under British control, is a high-altitude area, similar to parts of Central Asia. The streams that originate here merge into the vast Yukon River, which flows into Bering's Sea. Some peaks of the significant mountains within British territory in this area rise to nearly 20,000 feet (Mount Logan).

But the climate of the northern parts of the Canadian Dominion differs very greatly in the west as compared to the east. For instance, the northern parts of Labrador are cruelly Arctic, hopelessly frozen, though they are in the same latitude as St. Petersburg (the capital of European Russia) and as the splendidly forested northern parts of British Columbia. Eastern Labrador is a region in which explorers have frequently perished from cold and starvation. Although in the lofty parts of the Yukon country (three hundred and fifty miles north of treeless Labrador) the winter is intensely cold, and the ground is frozen for a considerable depth downwards, all the year round, there are still great forests; and a white and Amerindian population find it possible to live there all the year round, while animal life is extremely abundant. On the other hand, a good deal of the territory between Mackenzie River and Hudson's Bay is almost uninhabitable, except during the summertime, owing to the depth of the snow and the bare rocky nature of the ground.

But the climate in the northern parts of Canada varies greatly between the west and the east. For example, the northern regions of Labrador are harshly Arctic and endlessly frozen, even though they share the same latitude as St. Petersburg (the capital of European Russia) and the beautifully forested northern areas of British Columbia. Eastern Labrador is a place where explorers have often died from the cold and starvation. Meanwhile, in the high regions of the Yukon (three hundred and fifty miles north of treeless Labrador), the winter is extremely cold and the ground remains frozen quite deeply throughout the year, yet there are still vast forests; a white and Indigenous population can live there year-round, and animal life is very plentiful. On the flip side, much of the land between the Mackenzie River and Hudson's Bay is nearly uninhabitable except during the summer due to the deep snow and the bare, rocky ground.

The treeless area north of Lake Athabaska (the "barren lands" of the Canadian Dominion) seems to consist of nothing but slabs of rock and loose stones. Yet this region is far from being without vegetation. The rock is often covered with a thin or thick sod of lichen ("reindeer moss", in some districts three feet deep) intermixed with the roots of the wishakapakka herb (Ledum palustre, from which Labrador tea is made), of cranberries, gooseberries, heather (with white bell flowers), and a dwarf birch. This last, in sheltered places where a little vegetable soil has been formed, grows into a low scrubby bush. As to the gooseberries—here and farther south—Hearne describes them as "thriving best on the stony or rocky ground, open and much exposed to the sun". They spread along the ground like vines. The small red fruit is always most plentiful and fine on the under side of the branches, probably owing to the reflected heat of the stones. In the bleaker places a hard, black, crumply lichen—the "Tripe de roche" of the French Canadians (Gyrophoreus) grows on the rocks and stones, and is of great service to the Amerindians, as it furnishes them with a temporary subsistence when no animal food can be procured. This lichen, when boiled, turns to a gummy consistence something like sago. Hearne describes it as being remarkably good when used to thicken broth; but some other pioneers complained that it made them and their Indians seriously ill. Another lichen, "reindeer moss" (Cladina), is also eaten by men as well as deer. The muskegs, or bogs and marshes, produce in the summertime a very rapid growth of grass (as well as breeding swarms of mosquitoes!), and thus furnish food for the geese and swans which throng them between June and October.

The treeless area north of Lake Athabaska (the "barren lands" of the Canadian Dominion) appears to be made up entirely of slabs of rock and loose stones. However, this region is far from lacking vegetation. The rock is often covered with a thin or thick layer of lichen ("reindeer moss," which can be three feet deep in some areas) mixed with the roots of the wishakapakka herb (Ledum palustre, used to make Labrador tea), along with cranberries, gooseberries, heather (with white bell flowers), and dwarf birch. The dwarf birch, in sheltered spots where some soil has developed, grows into a low, scruffy bush. Regarding the gooseberries—here and further south—Hearne notes that they "thrive best on the stony or rocky ground, which is open and very exposed to the sun." They spread along the ground like vines. The small red fruit is usually most abundant and best on the underside of the branches, likely due to the reflected heat from the stones. In the harsher areas, a tough, black, crumply lichen—the "Tripe de roche" of the French Canadians (Gyrophoreus)—grows on the rocks and stones, providing significant sustenance to the Indigenous peoples when no animal food is available. This lichen, when boiled, turns into a gummy consistency similar to sago. Hearne describes it as remarkably good for thickening broth, although some other pioneers claimed it made them and their Indigenous companions quite ill. Another lichen, "reindeer moss" (Cladina), is also consumed by both humans and deer. The muskegs, or bogs and marshes, produce an incredibly rapid growth of grass in the summertime (and also breed swarms of mosquitoes!), thus providing food for the geese and swans that gather there between June and October.

In the summertime all these northern territories of Canada—from the basin of Lake Winnipeg, with its white pelicans, to the Arctic circle—swarm with birds, wild swans, geese, ducks, plovers, grouse, cranes, eagles, owls of several kinds—especially the great snowy eagle-owl—red-breasted thrushes, black and white snow-buntings, scarlet grosbeaks (the female green and grey), crested jays, and ravens "of a beautiful glossy black, richly tinged with purple", but smaller in size than those of Europe.

In the summer, all these northern regions of Canada—from the area around Lake Winnipeg, with its white pelicans, to the Arctic Circle—are filled with birds. You can find wild swans, geese, ducks, plovers, grouse, cranes, eagles, and various types of owls, especially the impressive snowy eagle-owl. There are also red-breasted thrushes, black and white snow buntings, scarlet grosbeaks (the females are green and gray), crested jays, and ravens that are a beautiful glossy black, with a rich purple tint, but smaller than those found in Europe.

This is also the country for bears. Some grizzlies still linger here. Their range at one time extended to near the Arctic circle. In Alaska (British as well as United States) there is an enormous chocolate-coloured bear, the biggest in the world. The Polar bear, usually creamy white along the seacoast, is stated to range inland during the summer over the "barren grounds", and to develop either a permanent local variety or a seasonal change of coat, which is greyish-brown or blue-grey.

This is also the land of bears. Some grizzlies are still found here. Their territory once stretched close to the Arctic Circle. In Alaska (both British and U.S.), there’s a massive chocolate-colored bear, the largest in the world. The polar bear, typically creamy white along the coast, is said to venture inland during the summer across the "barren grounds," potentially developing either a permanent local variation or a seasonal change in fur, which appears grayish-brown or blue-gray.

The black bear in northern Canada is said to give birth at times to cubs which are cinnamon-brown in colour.

The black bear in northern Canada is said to sometimes give birth to cubs that are cinnamon-brown in color.

"In the early summer the black bears swim up and down the northern rivers with their mouths open, swallowing the immense number of water insects which have come into being at that season." Hearne goes on to state that bears which have subsisted on this food for some days, when cut open emit a stench that is intolerable, and which taints their flesh to a sickening degree. The insects on which they feed are mostly of two kinds: one a sort of grasshopper with a hard black skin, and the other a soft, brown, sluggish fly. "This last is the most numerous. In some of the lakes such quantities are forced into the bays when the wind blows hard, that they are pressed together in dead multitudes and remain a great nuisance. I have several times, in my inland voyages from York Fort (Hudson's Bay), found it scarcely possible to land in some of those bays for the intolerable stench of those insects, which in some places were lying in putrid masses to the depth of two or three feet." It is more than probable that the bears occasionally feed on these dead insects. After the middle of July, when they take to a diet of berries, they are excellent eating, and continue to be so to the end of the winter.

"In early summer, black bears swim up and down the northern rivers with their mouths open, swallowing the huge number of water insects that come to life during that season." Hearne also notes that bears that have been eating this food for a few days, when cut open, give off an unbearable stench that makes their flesh taste disgusting. The insects they eat are mainly two kinds: one is a type of grasshopper with a tough black shell, and the other is a soft, brown, sluggish fly. "The latter is the most numerous. In some lakes, large quantities are pushed into the bays when the wind blows strongly, forming dead masses that become a huge nuisance. I have often found it almost impossible to land in some of those bays during my inland journeys from York Fort (Hudson's Bay) because of the overwhelming odor of those insects, which in some spots were piled up in rotten heaps two or three feet deep." It's quite possible that the bears sometimes feed on these dead insects. After mid-July, when they switch to a diet of berries, they taste excellent, and continue to do so until the end of winter.

The Arctic foxes of this region when young are sooty black all over, and gradually change to a light ash-grey in colour, with a dark, almost blue, tint on the head, legs, and back. In winter they usually become white all over, with or without a black tip to the tail; but it is recorded by some travellers that not all the foxes of the Canis lagopus species turn white; some keep their dark-grey colour all the year round. The common fox (C. vulpes fulvus) in Northern Canada is sometimes black, with white-tipped hairs. Wolves in these far northern regions do not seem to have been so abundant as farther south.

The Arctic foxes in this area start off as a sooty black when they’re young and gradually change to a light ash-grey, with a dark, almost blue tint on their heads, legs, and backs. In winter, they typically turn completely white, with or without a black tip on their tails; however, some travelers have noted that not all foxes of the Canis lagopus species turn white; some maintain their dark-grey color throughout the year. The common fox (C. vulpes fulvus) in Northern Canada can sometimes be black with white-tipped hairs. Wolves in these far northern regions don’t seem to be as plentiful as they are further south.

The deer tribe are represented (north of the Athabaska region) by the reindeer and the elk (called by the Canadians "Moose"). The wapiti or red deer (for which the common Amerindian name in the north was Waskesiu) seldom ranged farther north than the vicinity of Lake Winnipeg. The reindeer of the "barren ground" sub-species extended to the Arctic seacoast, and were at one time especially abundant in Labrador. Here they were so tame, down to a hundred years ago, that fishermen were often known to shoot many of them from the windows of their huts near the seashore. This type (Rangifer tarandus arcticus) might possibly be domesticated; not so the larger and much wilder Caribou woodland reindeer of the more southern and western parts of the Dominion, which dislikes the neighbourhood of man. The elk or moose, east of the Rocky Mountains, was not found northward of about 50° to 55°; but west of that range extended over all British Columbia and Alaska, in which latter country it grows to a giant size and develops enormous antlers.

The deer tribe is represented (north of the Athabaska region) by reindeer and elk (which Canadians call "moose"). The wapiti or red deer (known by the common Indigenous name in the north as Waskesiu) rarely went further north than around Lake Winnipeg. The reindeer of the "barren ground" sub-species reached the Arctic coast and were once especially abundant in Labrador. They were so tame until about a hundred years ago that fishermen often shot many of them from the windows of their huts by the sea. This type (Rangifer tarandus arcticus) could possibly be domesticated, unlike the larger, wilder Caribou woodland reindeer found in the southern and western parts of the Dominion, which avoid human contact. The elk or moose, east of the Rocky Mountains, was not found north of about 50° to 55°, but west of that range, it spread across all of British Columbia and Alaska, where it grows to a giant size and develops enormous antlers.

Hearne says of the elk in northern Canada: "In summer, when they frequent the margins of rivers and lakes, they are often killed by the Indians in the water while they are crossing rivers or swimming from the mainland to islands, &c. When pursued in this manner, they are the most inoffensive of all animals, never making any resistance; and the young ones are so simple that I remember to have seen an Indian paddle his canoe up to one of them and take it by the poll without the least opposition; the poor, harmless animal seeming at the same time as contented alongside the canoe as if swimming by the side of its dam, and looking up in our faces with the same fearless innocence that a house lamb would; making use of its fore foot almost every instant to clear its eyes of mosquitoes, which at that time were remarkably numerous.... The moose are also the easiest to tame and domesticate of any of the deer kind. I have repeatedly seen them at Churchill as tame as sheep, and even more so; for they would follow their keeper any distance from home, and at his call return with him without the least trouble, or ever offering to deviate from the path."

Hearne talks about the elk in northern Canada: "In the summer, when they gather near rivers and lakes, they're often hunted by the Indigenous people while they cross rivers or swim from the mainland to islands, etc. When chased this way, they are the most gentle of all animals, never putting up a fight; and the young ones are so naive that I remember seeing an Indian paddle his canoe up to one of them and grab it by the antlers without any resistance at all. The poor, innocent animal looked just as content next to the canoe as if it were swimming alongside its mother, gazing up at us with the same fearless innocence as a lamb would; it kept using its front foot to swat away mosquitoes, which were exceptionally plentiful at that time.... The moose are also the easiest to tame and domesticate among all deer species. I’ve seen them at Churchill as friendly as sheep, and even more so; they would follow their handler anywhere from home and return with him at his call without any trouble, never straying from the path."

The most northern range of the elk would seem to be the region round Lake Athabaska.

The northernmost range of the elk appears to be the area around Lake Athabaska.

The musk ox (Ovibos) is perhaps the most remarkable beast of Arctic Canada.[3] Samuel Hearne is my principal source for the following notes as to its habits and appearance: The number of bulls is very few in proportion to the cows, for it is rare to see more than two or three full-grown bulls with the largest herd; and from the number of the males that are found dead, the Indians are of opinion that they kill each other in contending for the females. In the rutting season they are so jealous of the cows that they run at either man or beast who offers to approach them, and have been observed to run and bellow even at ravens and other large birds which chanced to alight near them. They delight in the most stony and mountainous parts of the "barren ground", but are seldom found at any great distance from the woods. Though they are a beast of great magnitude, and apparently of a very unwieldy inactive structure, yet they climb the rocks with ease and agility, and are nearly as surefooted as a goat. Like it, too, they will feed on anything; and though they seem fondest of grass, yet in winter, when grass cannot be had in sufficient quantity, they will eat moss or any other herbage they can find, as also the tops of willows and the tender branches of the pine tree.

The musk ox (Ovibos) is one of the most impressive animals in Arctic Canada.[3] Samuel Hearne is my main source for the following notes about its behavior and appearance: There are very few bulls compared to cows; it's uncommon to see more than two or three adult bulls in the largest herd. The Indians believe that many males are found dead because they fight each other for access to females. During mating season, they become extremely protective of the cows, charging at anyone—human or animal—that gets too close, and they’ve even been seen charging and bellowing at ravens and other large birds that land nearby. They prefer rocky and mountainous areas of the "barren ground," but are usually not far from the woods. Despite their large size and seemingly clumsy build, they are very agile and can climb rocks easily, being nearly as sure-footed as a goat. Like goats, they will eat practically anything; while they seem to prefer grass, in the winter, when grass is scarce, they will eat moss or any other vegetation they can find, including the tops of willows and the tender branches of pine trees.

"The musk ox, when full grown, is as large as the generality of English black cattle; but their legs, though thick, are not so long, nor is their tail longer than that of a bear; and, like the tail of that animal, it always bends downward and inward, so that it is entirely hid by the long hair of the rump and hind quarters. The hunch on their shoulders is not large, being little more in proportion than that of a deer. Their hair is in some parts very long, particularly on the belly, sides, and hind quarters; but the longest hair about them, particularly the bulls, is under the throat, extending from the chin to the lower part of the chest between the fore legs. It there hangs down like a horse's mane inverted, and is fully as long, which gives the animal a most formidable appearance. It is of the hair from this part that the Eskimo make their mosquito wigs (face screens or masks). In winter the musk oxen are provided with a thick fine wool or fur that grows at the root of the long hair, and shields them from the intense cold to which they are exposed during that season; but as the summer advances this fur loosens from the skin, and by frequently rolling themselves on the ground it works out to the end of the hair, and in time drops off, leaving little for their summer clothing except the long hair. This season is so short in these high latitudes, that the new fleece begins to appear almost as soon as the old one drops off, so that by the time the cold becomes severe they are again provided with a winter dress."

"The musk ox, when fully grown, is about the size of most English black cattle; however, their legs, while thick, are not as long, and their tail is no longer than that of a bear. Like a bear's tail, it always bends downward and inward, so it's completely hidden by the long hair on their back and hindquarters. The hump on their shoulders isn't very large, being only slightly larger in proportion than that of a deer. Their hair is quite long in some areas, especially on the belly, sides, and hindquarters; but the longest hair, particularly on the bulls, is found under the throat, stretching from the chin to the lower chest between the front legs. It hangs down like an inverted horse's mane and is just as long, giving the animal a very intimidating appearance. The Eskimo use the hair from this area to make their mosquito wigs (face screens or masks). In winter, musk oxen have a thick, fine wool or fur that grows at the base of the long hair, protecting them from the extreme cold they face during that season. As summer comes, this wool loosens from the skin, and by frequently rolling on the ground, it works its way to the ends of the hair and eventually falls off, leaving little for their summer coat except the long hair. The summer season is so brief in these northern latitudes that the new fleece starts to grow almost as soon as the old one sheds, ensuring they have a winter coat ready by the time the cold weather returns."

According to Hearne, the flesh of the musk ox does not resemble that of the bison, but is more like the meat of the moose or wapiti. The fat is of a clear white, "slightly tinged with a light azure". The calves and young heifers are good eating, but the flesh of the bulls both smells and tastes so strongly of musk as to be very disagreeable; "even the knife that cuts the flesh of an old bull will smell so strongly of musk that nothing but scouring the blade quite bright can remove it, and the handle will retain the scent for a long time".

According to Hearne, the meat of the musk ox doesn't look like that of the bison, but is more similar to the meat of the moose or elk. The fat is a clear white, "slightly tinged with a light blue." The calves and young heifers are tasty, but the meat of the bulls has such a strong musk smell and flavor that it's pretty unpleasant; "even the knife that cuts the meat of an old bull will smell so strongly of musk that nothing but cleaning the blade completely can get rid of it, and the handle will keep the scent for a long time."

Bisons of the "wood" variety are (or were) found far up the heights of the Rocky Mountains and in the regions south-west of the Great Slave Lake. These "wood buffaloes" delight in mountain valleys, and never resort to the plains. And higher than anything, of course, range the great white mountain goat-antelopes (Oreamnus montanus) from northern Alaska to the Columbia River.

Bison of the "wood" type can be found in the high elevations of the Rocky Mountains and in areas southwest of Great Slave Lake. These "wood buffaloes" thrive in mountain valleys and never go down to the plains. And even higher up, you'll find the impressive white mountain goat-antelopes (Oreamnus montanus) ranging from northern Alaska to the Columbia River.

The north and the north-west were, of course, pre-eminently the great fur-trading regions, though all parts of the vast Dominion have at one time or another yielded furs for commerce with the white man. The principal fur-bearing smaller mammals of the north and north-west were wolves, foxes, lynxes, gluttons (wolverene), otters, martens (sables) and black fishing martens, mink (a kind of polecat), ermine-stoats, weasels, polar hares (Lepus timidus), beavers, musquash, lemming, gopher or pouched ground-squirrels, and the common red squirrel of North America. The grey squirrel and striped chipmunk are only found in southern Canada.

The north and northwest were, of course, the major fur-trading areas, although all parts of the vast Dominion have at some point provided furs for trade with white settlers. The main fur-bearing small mammals in the north and northwest included wolves, foxes, lynxes, wolverines, otters, martens (sables), black fishing martens, minks, ermine stoats, weasels, polar hares (Lepus timidus), beavers, muskrats, lemmings, gophers or pouched ground squirrels, and the common red squirrel of North America. The gray squirrel and striped chipmunk are found only in southern Canada.

The musquash (Fiber zibethicus) is such a characteristic animal of northern Canada that it is worth while to give Hearne's description of it (I would mention it is really a huge vole, and no relation of the beaver):—

The musquash (Fiber zibethicus) is such a distinctive animal of northern Canada that it's worthwhile to share Hearne's description of it (I should note that it's actually a large vole, not related to the beaver):—

"The musk rat or musquash builds a dwelling near the banks of ponds or swamps to shelter it from the bitter cold of the winter, but never on land, always on the ice, as soon as it is firm enough, taking care to keep a hole open to admit it to dive for its food, which chiefly consists of the roots of grass or arums. It sometimes happens in very cold winters that the holes communicating with their dwellings under the water are so blocked by ice that they cannot break through them. When this is the case, and they have no provisions left in the house, they begin to eat one another. At last there may be only one rat left out of a whole lodge. They occasionally eat fish, but in general feed very cleanly, and when fat are good eating. They are easily tamed and soon grow fond of their owner. They are very cleanly and playful, and 'smell exceedingly pleasant of musk', but their resemblance to the rat is so great that few are partial to them, though of course they are much larger in size, and have webbed hind feet and a flat scaly tail. In Canadian regions farther south the musquash no longer builds on the ice, but in swamps, where it raises heaps of mud like islands in the surrounding water. On the top of these mounds they build their nests, and on the top of the musquash nest, or 'lodge', wild geese frequently lay their eggs and bring forth their young brood without any fear of being molested by foxes."

"The muskrat, or musquash, builds its home near the banks of ponds or swamps to protect itself from the harsh winter cold, but never on land; it always waits for the ice to be solid enough to set up on. It makes sure to keep a hole open to dive for food, which mainly consists of grass or arum roots. Sometimes, during very cold winters, the holes leading to their homes under the water freeze over so much that they can't break through. When that happens, and they run out of food in their lodge, they end up eating each other. Eventually, there might be only one muskrat left from an entire lodge. They occasionally eat fish, but usually keep their diet clean, and when they're fat, they're considered tasty. They tame easily and quickly become attached to their owner. Muskrats are very clean and playful, and they 'smell pleasantly of musk,' but they look so much like rats that not many people are fond of them, even though they are significantly larger, with webbed hind feet and a flat, scaly tail. In southern Canadian regions, muskrats no longer build on the ice; instead, they create mounds of mud in swamps, resembling islands in the water. They build their nests on top of these mounds, and wild geese often lay their eggs there and raise their young without fear of being disturbed by foxes."

The YUKON territories of the Dominion, and above all the State of BRITISH COLUMBIA, constitute a very distinct region from the rest of British North America, not only in their tribes of Amerindians but in their fauna, flora, and climate. British Columbia is one of the most beautiful and richly endowed countries in the world. Here, in spite of northern latitudes, the warm airs coming up from the Pacific Ocean act somewhat in the same way as the Gulf Stream on north-west Europe, and favour the growth of magnificent forests.

The YUKON territories of the Dominion, and especially the State of BRITISH COLUMBIA, make up a very unique area compared to the rest of British North America, not just because of their Indigenous tribes but also due to their wildlife, plants, and climate. British Columbia is one of the most beautiful and resource-rich places in the world. Despite its northern location, the warm air from the Pacific Ocean has a similar effect as the Gulf Stream does on northwest Europe, promoting the growth of stunning forests.

All this north-western part of British Columbia is very mountainous, and the rocks are rich in minerals, especially gold in the Fraser and Columbia Rivers, far north in the upper valley of the Yukon, and copper and coal in Vancouver Island.

All this northwestern part of British Columbia is very mountainous, and the rocks are full of minerals, especially gold in the Fraser and Columbia Rivers, far north in the upper valley of the Yukon, and copper and coal on Vancouver Island.

The rainfall in British Columbia is considerable, and the flora—trees, plants, ferns—richer than anywhere else in North America, with many resemblances to the trees and plants of Japan and northern China. In British Columbia more than in any other part of the world are found the noblest developments of the pines, firs, and junipers (Coniferæ).

The rainfall in British Columbia is significant, and the plants—trees, shrubs, ferns—are more diverse than anywhere else in North America, sharing many similarities with the trees and plants of Japan and northern China. British Columbia is home to the finest varieties of pines, firs, and junipers (Coniferæ) found anywhere in the world.

The coast rivers swarm with salmon, and perhaps because of the abundance of sea fish close in shore there have been developed in the course of ages those remarkable aquatic mammals, the sea lions or fur seals (Otaria), whose relationship to the true seals is a very distant one. On the Alaskan coasts and islands is Otaria ursina, the creature which provides the sealskin fur of commerce. There is also the much larger sea lion (Otaria stelleri), on the coasts of British Columbia and Vancouver Island. Alexander Henry, jun., gives some interesting facts about this remarkable beast.

The coastal rivers are full of salmon, and probably because of the abundance of sea fish near the shore, over time, those impressive marine mammals, the sea lions or fur seals (Otaria), have developed, although they're only distantly related to true seals. On the coasts and islands of Alaska is Otaria ursina, the species that provides the commercially valuable sealskin. There's also the much larger sea lion (Otaria stelleri) found along the coasts of British Columbia and Vancouver Island. Alexander Henry, Jr. shares some interesting facts about this remarkable animal.

"The natives at Oak Point, during the time Mr. Keith was there, killed five very large sea lions by spearing them at night. Two canoes being lashed together, they approach very softly, and throw their spears, which are fastened by a long, strong cord, with a barb so fixed in a socket that, when it strikes the animal and pierces the flesh, it is detached from the shaft of the spear, but remains fastened to the cord. This is instantly made fast between the canoes; the animal dives and swims down river, dragging the canoes with such velocity that they may be in danger of filling, and require great skill in steering. In this manner they are carried down some miles before the animal becomes exhausted with loss of blood, makes for the shore, and lies on the beach, where they dispatch it and cut it up. The price of a sea lion among the natives is one slave and an assortment of other articles. Mr. Keith bought the flesh of one of these animals, and we had some roasted; it resembles bear's meat. The hair is like that of a horse, in summer of a chestnut colour. The natives, and also the Russians, are particularly fond of marine animals, such as whales, &c.; they drink the oil like milk."

"The locals at Oak Point, while Mr. Keith was there, killed five huge sea lions by spearing them at night. With two canoes tied together, they quietly approached and threw their spears, which are attached by a long, strong cord. The barb is secured in a socket, so when it hits the animal and pierces the skin, it separates from the spear shaft but stays connected to the cord. This is quickly secured between the canoes; the animal dives and swims downriver, pulling the canoes with such speed that they risk filling with water, requiring skilled navigation. They are taken downriver for several miles until the animal tires from blood loss, heads for the shore, and lies on the beach, where they finish it off and cut it up. The value of a sea lion among the locals is one slave and a variety of other goods. Mr. Keith purchased the meat from one of these animals, and we had some roasted; it tastes like bear meat. The hair is similar to a horse's, chestnut-colored in summer. The locals, as well as the Russians, really enjoy marine animals, such as whales, etc.; they drink the oil like milk."

Another notable water beast of the British Columbia coast was the sea otter (Enhydris), described on p. 305. Such an immense value was set on its fur that it is now nearly extinct within British limits.

Another remarkable marine animal along the British Columbia coast was the sea otter (Enhydris), detailed on p. 305. Its fur was so highly valued that it is now almost extinct within British borders.

The huge chocolate-coloured bear of the Yukon valley has already been mentioned; also the very large, blackish-brown wild dog (Canis pambasileus), which from one or two passages in the writings of Canadian pioneers may also be found as far south as the British Columbian Rocky Mountains. In the Yukon country the elk (which was formerly very common in British Columbia) grows to gigantic proportions with longer and larger antlers than elsewhere. In the forested mountains of British Columbia (as well as farther north) are the wood bison, the white mountain goat, grizzly bears, black bears, two kinds of lynx, the wapiti red deer, and the large bighorn sheep.

The large chocolate-colored bear of the Yukon Valley has already been mentioned, along with the big, blackish-brown wild dog (Canis pambasileus), which, from a few passages in Canadian pioneers' writings, can also be found as far south as the Rocky Mountains in British Columbia. In the Yukon region, the elk (which used to be very common in British Columbia) grows to enormous sizes with longer and larger antlers than anywhere else. In the forested mountains of British Columbia (and further north) you can find wood bison, the white mountain goat, grizzly bears, black bears, two types of lynx, wapiti red deer, and large bighorn sheep.

These (Ovis montana) sheep are of a grey or leaden colour; the rump and the inner side of the legs are white; the hoofs black, about one inch long. "The hair is rather soft, and at the roots is mixed with exceedingly fine white wool, which seems to grow only in certain patches. The neck is relatively much thicker than that of other animals of the same size; the legs and hoofs are also strongly built, like the neck." The horns of the female are comparatively small, flat, and have only a small bend backward; they are of a dirty-yellowish white, marked with closely connected annulations to the very tip. The legs are brown, as are also the ends of the hairs about the neck; the hoofs are black. "A ewe will weigh about 100 lb. when in full flesh, with only the entrails taken out. The head bears every resemblance to that of our European sheep." The colour of the males is nearly the same as that of the females, only rather browner; they are much larger and more strongly built, with a pair of enormous horns, which incline backward. As they grow they bend downward, and in the course of time form a complete curve and project forward. At the root the horns are nearly three inches square, the flat sides opposite; they are marked with closely connected ridges and end in a tapering flat point.

These (Ovis montana) sheep are grey or lead-colored; their rumps and the inner sides of their legs are white, and their hooves are black, about one inch long. "The hair is quite soft, and at the roots, it has very fine white wool mixed in, which seems to grow only in certain patches. The neck is much thicker compared to other animals of the same size; the legs and hooves are also sturdy, like the neck." The female's horns are relatively small, flat, and have a slight backward bend; they are a dirty-yellowish white, marked with closely connected rings all the way to the tip. The legs are brown, as are the ends of the hair around the neck; the hooves are black. "A ewe weighs about 100 lbs when fully fleshed, with just the entrails removed. The head resembles that of our European sheep." The males are nearly the same color as the females, but a bit browner; they are much larger and more muscular, with a pair of huge horns that angle backward. As they grow, the horns bend downward, eventually forming a complete curve and projecting forward. At the base, the horns are nearly three inches square, with flat sides opposite each other; they are marked with closely connected ridges and taper to a flat point at the end.

When the horns grow to a great length, forming a complete curve, the tips project on both sides of the head so as to prevent the ram from feeding. This, with their great weight, causes the sheep to dwindle to a mere skeleton and die. The bighorn sheep feed much in the caverns of the Rocky Mountains, eating a kind of moss and grass growing on the floors of these caves, and also a peculiar soft, sweet-tasting "clay", of which the natives also are fond.

When the horns grow long and curve completely, the tips stick out on both sides of the head and stop the ram from eating. This, combined with their heavy weight, leads the sheep to become extremely thin and die. The bighorn sheep often feed in the caves of the Rocky Mountains, eating a type of moss and grass that grows on the cave floors, as well as a unique soft, sweet-tasting "clay," which the locals also enjoy.

The southern part of British Columbia contains the mule deer of western North America (Mazama macrotis), and a very strange rodent, the sewellel or mountain beaver (Haplodon), a creature distantly allied to squirrels, marmots, and beavers, but restricted in its distribution to a few parts of California, Oregon, and British Columbia. Amongst the birds noteworthy in the landscape are the white-headed sea eagles and Californian condors (Pseudogryphus californianus). Humming-birds range through British Columbia and Vancouver Island between mid-April and October.

The southern part of British Columbia is home to the mule deer of western North America (Mazama macrotis) and a very unusual rodent called the sewellel or mountain beaver (Haplodon). This creature is distantly related to squirrels, marmots, and beavers, but is found only in certain areas of California, Oregon, and British Columbia. Among the notable birds in the area are the white-headed sea eagles and California condors (Pseudogryphus californianus). Hummingbirds can be seen across British Columbia and Vancouver Island from mid-April to October.

In the regions about the upper Kootenay River (Eastern British Columbia), before the railway was constructed, there were wild horses, descended, no doubt, from those which had escaped from the Spaniards in New Mexico and California. They went in large herds, and in the winter when the snow was deep the natives would try to catch them by running them down with relays of fresh horses, or driving them up the mountains into the deepest snow or some narrow pass. A noose would then be thrown about the exhausted animal, which would be instantly mounted by an Indian and broken immediately to the saddle. Some of these wild horses were exceedingly swift, well-proportioned, and handsome in shape, but they seldom proved as docile as those born in captivity. When in a wild condition they would snort so loudly through the nostrils on descrying an enemy that they could be heard at a distance of five hundred yards.

In the areas around the upper Kootenay River (Eastern British Columbia), before the railway was built, there were wild horses, likely descendants of those that had escaped from the Spaniards in New Mexico and California. They roamed in large herds, and in the winter, when the snow was deep, locals would try to catch them by chasing them down with fresh horses or driving them up into the deep snow or narrow passes. A noose would then be thrown around the exhausted animal, which would be immediately mounted by a local and quickly broken to the saddle. Some of these wild horses were incredibly fast, well-built, and handsome, but they were rarely as gentle as those raised in captivity. When in a wild state, they would snort loudly through their nostrils when spotting an enemy, making sounds that could be heard from up to five hundred yards away.

The provinces of Alberta, Saskatchewan and Manitoba—the MIDDLE WEST—represent mainly the great prairie region of the Canadian Dominion. Nearly all the streams here flow from the eastern side of the Rocky Mountains and direct their course to the basin of Lake Winnipeg and to Hudson's Bay. A few turn south-west to the Missouri and Mississippi. The landscapes here remind one more of the middle part of the United States. The climate is severe in winter but very warm and dry in summer. In the extreme south, within the basin of the upper Missouri, the "prickly pear" (Opuntia) cactus grows in sheltered places, and suggests affinities with distant Colorado and California.

The provinces of Alberta, Saskatchewan, and Manitoba—the MIDDLE WEST—mainly represent the vast prairie area of Canada. Almost all the rivers here originate from the eastern side of the Rocky Mountains and flow towards the Lake Winnipeg basin and Hudson's Bay. A few head southwest to the Missouri and Mississippi rivers. The landscapes here are reminiscent of the central United States. Winters are harsh, but summers are very warm and dry. In the far south, within the upper Missouri basin, the "prickly pear" (Opuntia) cactus grows in sheltered spots, hinting at connections to far-off Colorado and California.

These great plains and river courses of the middle West were, until about fifty years ago, one of the world's great natural parks or zoological gardens. Large numbers of wapiti deer, of the smaller Virginian deer,[4] and of the prongbuck "antelope" [5] thronged the grassy flats, and elk browsed on the foliage of the thickets along the river banks. Grizzly bears and black bears,[6] large grey wolves, the small coyote wolf, the pretty little kit fox and large red fox preyed on these herbivores, as did also pumas and lynxes. Marmots and prairie hares (Lepus campestris)—often called rabbits by the pioneers, who also named the marmots "wood-chucks"—frolicked in the herbage, and formed the principal prey of the numerous rattlesnakes. By the shores of streams and lakes stood rows of stately cranes: the whooping crane, of large size, pure white, with black quill feathers, the crown of the head crimson scarlet and the long legs black; and the purple-brown crane, somewhat smaller in size. On hot, calm days in the region of Lake Winnipeg the cranes soar to an amazing height, flying in circles, till by degrees they are almost out of sight. Yet their loud note sounds so distinct and near that the spectator might fancy they were close to him.

These great plains and riverbeds of the Midwest were, until about fifty years ago, one of the world's incredible natural parks or zoos. Huge numbers of elk, smaller Virginia deer, and pronghorn antelope roamed the grassy fields, while elk fed on the leaves of the bushes along the riverbanks. Grizzly bears and black bears, large gray wolves, the small coyote, the adorable kit fox, and large red fox hunted these herbivores, as did pumas and lynxes. Marmots and prairie hares (Lepus campestris)—often referred to as rabbits by the pioneers, who also called the marmots "woodchucks"—played in the grass and were the main prey of the many rattlesnakes. Along the streams and lakes stood lines of elegant cranes: the whooping crane, which is large and pure white with black quill feathers, a crimson crown on its head, and long black legs; and the purple-brown crane, slightly smaller in size. On hot, calm days around Lake Winnipeg, the cranes can soar to astonishing heights, flying in circles until they are nearly out of sight. Yet their loud calls sound so clear and close that onlookers might think they were right next to them.

The air at this season is full of great birds—eagles, buzzards, hawks, and falcons—soaring in circles to look out for prey among the flocks of wild swans, white geese, bernicle geese and brent geese, duck and teal, which cover the backwaters and the marshes and shallow lagoons. Turkey buzzards, coming up from the south, act as scavengers during the summer months. Immense flocks of passenger pigeons, buntings, grosbeaks, attack the ripening fruits and the wild rice of the swamps. Grouse in uncountable numbers inhabit the drier tablelands and open moors.[7]

The air this season is filled with large birds—eagles, buzzards, hawks, and falcons—soaring in circles, searching for prey among flocks of wild swans, white geese, barnacle geese, and brent geese, as well as ducks and teal, which cover the backwaters, marshes, and shallow lagoons. Turkey vultures, migrating from the south, scavenge during the summer months. Massive flocks of passenger pigeons, buntings, and grosbeaks feast on ripening fruits and wild rice in the swamps. Grouse, in countless numbers, inhabit the drier plateaus and open moors.[7]

Indians Lying in Wait for Moose
INDIANS LYING IN WAIT FOR MOOSE

But—a hundred years ago and more—the dominant features in the fauna of the Middle West was the bison. Between the Athabaska and Saskatchewan Rivers on the north, the Rocky Mountains on the west, and Lake Superior on the east the bison passed backwards and forwards over the great plains and prairies in millions, when white explorers first penetrated these lands. They moved in herds which concealed the ground from sight for miles. Here are some word pictures selected from the writings of the pioneers between 1770 and 1810:

But—more than a hundred years ago—the most notable feature of the wildlife in the Middle West was the bison. Between the Athabasca and Saskatchewan Rivers to the north, the Rocky Mountains to the west, and Lake Superior to the east, the bison roamed the vast plains and prairies in the millions when white explorers first ventured into these areas. They traveled in herds so large that they could obscure the ground from view for miles. Here are some descriptive excerpts from the writings of the pioneers between 1770 and 1810:

"The buffaloes chiefly delight in wide open plains, which in those parts produce very long coarse grass, or rather a kind of small flags and rushes, upon which they feed; but when pursued they always take to the woods. They are of such an amazing strength, that when they fly through the woods from a pursuer, they frequently brush down trees as thick as a man's arm; and be the snow ever so deep, such is their strength and agility, that they are enabled to plunge through it faster than the swiftest Indian can run in snowshoes. To this I have been an eyewitness many times, and once had the vanity to think that I could have kept pace with them; but though I was at that time celebrated for being particularly fleet of foot in snowshoes, I soon found that I was no match for the buffaloes, notwithstanding they were then plunging through such deep snow, that their bellies made a trench in it as large as if many sacks had been hauled through it. Of all the large beasts in those parts the buffalo is easiest to kill, and the moose are the most difficult; neither are the (red) deer very easy to come at, except in windy weather: indeed it requires much practice and a great deal of patience to slay any of them, as they will by no means suffer a direct approach, unless the hunter be entirely sheltered by woods or willows.

"The buffaloes mainly enjoy wide open plains, where they graze on long coarse grass, or more like small flags and rushes. But when they’re being chased, they always retreat to the woods. They’re incredibly strong, and when they bolt through the trees to escape, they often knock down trees as thick as a person's arm. No matter how deep the snow is, their strength and agility allow them to plow through it faster than even the fastest Indian can run in snowshoes. I've seen this many times, and once I foolishly thought I could keep up with them; however, despite being known for my speed in snowshoes, I quickly realized I was no match for the buffaloes, even as they struggled through deep snow that left a trench as wide as if many sacks were dragged through it. Of all the large animals in that area, the buffalo is the easiest to hunt, while moose are the hardest; red deer aren’t too easy to get either, except in windy conditions. It indeed takes a lot of practice and patience to hunt any of them since they won't let you approach directly unless you’re completely hidden by trees or willows."

"The flesh of the buffalo is exceedingly good eating, and so entirely free from any disagreeable smell or taste, that it resembles beef as nearly as possible."

"The meat of the buffalo is incredibly tasty and completely free from any unpleasant smell or flavor, making it very similar to beef."

"The spots of wood along the Park River are ravaged by buffaloes (bison); none but the large trees are standing, the bark of which is rubbed perfectly smooth, and heaps of hair and wool lie at the bottom of the trees ... and even the grass is not permitted to grow.... The ground is trampled more by these cattle than about the gate of a farmyard."

"The patches of wood along the Park River are destroyed by buffaloes (bison); only the large trees remain standing, their bark worn smooth, and piles of hair and wool are scattered at the base of the trees ... and even the grass isn't allowed to grow.... The ground is trampled more by these animals than around the entrance of a farm."

"The Kris informed me they had seen a calf as white as snow in a herd of buffalo. White buffalo are very scarce. They are of inestimable value among the nations of the Missouri.... There were also some of a dirty-grey colour, but these are very rare."

"The Kris told me they had spotted a calf as white as snow in a herd of buffalo. White buffalo are extremely rare. They are considered invaluable among the tribes of Missouri.... There were also some that were a dirty-grey color, but these are quite uncommon."

"I brought home two buffalo calves alive; they no sooner lost sight of the herd than they followed my horse like dogs, directly into the fort. On chasing a herd at this season the calves follow it until they are fatigued, when they throw themselves down in high grass and lie still, hiding their heads if possible. But seeing only a man and his horse they remain quiet and allow themselves to be taken. Having been a little handled, they follow like dogs."

"I brought home two live buffalo calves; as soon as they lost sight of their herd, they followed my horse like dogs right into the fort. When chasing a herd during this season, the calves stick with it until they get tired, then they drop down in the tall grass and lie still, trying to hide their heads if they can. However, when they see just a man and his horse, they stay calm and let themselves be captured. After being briefly handled, they follow like dogs."

In the spring, when the ice melted, innumerable buffaloes were killed through attempting to cross the rivers on the melting ice. They would drift by an observer (such as Alexander Henry, jun.) in entire herds of drowned corpses. Vast numbers perished. They formed one continuous line on the current for two days and two nights.

In the spring, when the ice melted, countless buffalo were killed while trying to cross the rivers on the melting ice. They would float past an observer (like Alexander Henry, Jr.) in whole herds of drowned bodies. A huge number died. They created one continuous line in the current for two days and two nights.

"By this time the river was crowded with them, swimming across, bellowing and grunting terribly. The bulls really looked fierce; all had their tails up, and each appeared eager to land first. The scene would have struck terror to one unaccustomed to such innumerable herds. From out in the plains, as far as the eye could reach, to the middle of the river, they were rushing toward us, and soon began to land about ten yards off. I shot one dead on the spot, my ball having broken his neck; my hunter and guide only wounded theirs. This discharge suddenly halted those on the south side, and turned those that were still in the water."

"By this time, the river was packed with them, swimming across, bellowing and grunting loudly. The bulls looked really fierce; all had their tails raised, and each seemed eager to be the first to reach the shore. The scene would have terrified anyone not used to seeing such countless herds. From the plains, as far as the eye could see, all the way to the middle of the river, they were rushing toward us and soon began to land about ten yards away. I shot one dead on the spot, my bullet having broken his neck; my hunter and guide only wounded theirs. This sudden shot stopped those on the south side and turned those still in the water."

In the autumn:—"Plains burned in every direction and blind buffalo seen every moment wandering about. The poor beasts have all the hair singed off; even the skin in many places is shrivelled up and terribly burned, and their eyes are swollen and closed fast. It was really pitiful to see them staggering about, sometimes running afoul of a large stone, at other times tumbling down hill and falling into creeks not yet frozen over. In one spot we found a whole herd lying dead."

In the autumn:—"The plains were on fire in every direction and blind buffalo could be seen wandering around at any moment. The poor animals had all their hair burned off; even their skin was shriveled and badly singed in many places, and their eyes were swollen shut. It was truly heartbreaking to watch them stagger around, sometimes running into large rocks, other times tumbling down hills and falling into creeks that weren't frozen yet. At one spot, we found an entire herd lying dead."

Throughout British North America, from the Yukon to Newfoundland, and from Labrador to Vancouver's Island, the rivers and freshwater lakes swarm with fish, and fish that in most cases is exceedingly good to eat. Salmon are most strikingly abundant in the rivers of British Columbia and Newfoundland, but they also ascend most of the rivers flowing into the Atlantic and Hudson's Bay. In the great lakes of Canada and of the middle west there are trout and white fish (Coregonus), pike, bass, chub, barbel, and five species of sturgeon. In the rivers and lakes of the far north-west is found the blackfish (Dallia).

Throughout British North America, from the Yukon to Newfoundland, and from Labrador to Vancouver Island, the rivers and freshwater lakes are teeming with fish, most of which are really tasty. Salmon are particularly plentiful in the rivers of British Columbia and Newfoundland, but they also travel up most of the rivers that flow into the Atlantic and Hudson's Bay. In the great lakes of Canada and the Midwest, you'll find trout and whitefish (Coregonus), pike, bass, chub, barbel, and five types of sturgeon. In the rivers and lakes of the far northwest, you can find blackfish (Dallia).

Hearne writes of Lake Athabasca that it swarms with fish, such as pike, trout, perch, barbel, and other kinds not easily identified. Apparently there is also a form of gar-pike found here (see p. 74); this is described as having scales of a very large and stiff kind, and being a beautiful bright silver in colour. The size of these gar-pike range from two feet to four feet in length. Their flesh was delicately white and soft, but so foul and rank in taste that even the Indians would not eat it. The trout in Lake Athabaska seem to have been enormous, weighing from 35 to 40 pounds, while pike were of about the same weight.

Hearne mentions that Lake Athabasca is teeming with fish, including pike, trout, perch, barbel, and other types that are hard to identify. There is also a type of gar-pike found here (see p. 74); it is described as having very large and stiff scales and a beautiful bright silver color. These gar-pike range in size from two to four feet long. Their flesh is delicately white and soft, but has such a foul taste that even the Indigenous people wouldn’t eat it. The trout in Lake Athabasca appear to have been huge, weighing between 35 and 40 pounds, while the pike were about the same weight.

The Amerindian tribes and the early European explorers lived mainly on fish, which was a palatable and easily obtained food. Yet it must be admitted that they had a splendid array of large and small game from which to take their toll.

The Native American tribes and the early European explorers primarily relied on fish, which was a tasty and readily available food source. However, it must be acknowledged that they also had a fantastic variety of large and small game from which to hunt.

Nor was the whole Dominion, from west to east and up to the Arctic zone, wanting in wild vegetable produce fit for man's consumption. The sugar maple (Acer saccharinum) and its ally the Negundo maple provided a delicious syrup; the bark of certain poplars and the bast of the sugar pine were chewed for their well-flavoured sweetness; the wild rice of the marshes will be further described in the next chapter. The wild fruits included delicious strawberries, cherries, gooseberries, currants, black currants, grapes (in the south only), blackberries of many kinds, whortleberries, cranberries, pears of the service tree (Pyrus canadensis[8]), and raspberries of various types—red, yellow, and black. Southern Canada and Nova Scotia contained various nut trees of the walnut order (hickories, butter-nuts, &c.), and hazel nuts were found everywhere except in the north.

The entire Dominion, stretching from west to east and up to the Arctic zone, was rich in wild plants that humans could eat. The sugar maple (Acer saccharinum) and its relative, the Negundo maple, produced a tasty syrup; the bark of certain poplars and the fibrous inner bark of the sugar pine were chewed for their flavorful sweetness; the wild rice found in the marshes will be further described in the next chapter. The wild fruits included tasty strawberries, cherries, gooseberries, currants, black currants, grapes (only in the south), various kinds of blackberries, whortleberries, cranberries, service tree pears (Pyrus canadensis[8]), and raspberries in different colors—red, yellow, and black. Southern Canada and Nova Scotia had several types of nut trees from the walnut family (like hickories and butter-nuts), and hazelnuts were found everywhere except in the north.

We have left undescribed what is still politically the most important part of the whole of British North America—UPPER and LOWER CANADA. These regions lie within the basin of the great St. Lawrence River, beyond all doubt the most important waterway of North America, more important even than the Mississippi. The main origin of the St. Lawrence in the west is Lake Superior, the largest sea of fresh water in the world, which is connected with Lake Nipigon on the north. The waters of Lake Superior are carried over the Sault Ste. Marie rapids into Lake Huron and find a huge backwater in Lake Michigan.[9] Out of Lake Huron again they flow past Detroit into Lake Erie. From Duluth, at the westernmost extremity of Lake Superior, to Buffalo, on the easternmost point of Lake Erie, including all Lake Michigan and Lake Huron, with its bays and channels, a steamer can pass with just the one difficulty (easily surmounted) of the rapids at Sault Ste. Marie between Lake Superior and Lake Huron. But after you have left Lake Erie on the east you find yourself in the Niagara River, which at the Niagara Falls plunges several hundred feet downwards into Lake Ontario. From Lake Ontario to the sea along the St. Lawrence there is uninterrupted navigation, though there are rapids that require careful steering both with steamers and boats. Quebec marks the place where the St. Lawrence River suddenly broadens from a river into a tidal gulf of brackish or salt water. Ocean steamers from all over the world can come (except during the height of the winter, when the water freezes) to Quebec. But for the ice in wintertime Quebec would be the great sea-port of eastern Canada.

We haven't discussed what is still the most politically significant part of British North America—UPPER and LOWER CANADA. These areas are located within the basin of the great St. Lawrence River, undoubtedly the most important waterway in North America, even more so than the Mississippi. The St. Lawrence originates in the west from Lake Superior, the largest body of fresh water in the world, which connects to Lake Nipigon to the north. The waters of Lake Superior flow over the Sault Ste. Marie rapids into Lake Huron and create a large backflow into Lake Michigan.[9] From Lake Huron, they continue past Detroit into Lake Erie. A steamer can travel from Duluth at the far western end of Lake Superior to Buffalo at the eastern tip of Lake Erie, including all of Lake Michigan and Lake Huron, with its bays and channels, with just one easily managed obstacle—the rapids at Sault Ste. Marie between Lake Superior and Lake Huron. However, once you leave Lake Erie to the east, you enter the Niagara River, which plunges several hundred feet down at Niagara Falls into Lake Ontario. From Lake Ontario to the sea along the St. Lawrence, navigation is uninterrupted, although there are rapids that require careful steering with both steamers and boats. Quebec marks the point where the St. Lawrence River suddenly widens from a river into a tidal gulf of brackish or saltwater. Ocean steamers from all over the world can reach Quebec (except during the peak of winter when the water freezes). If it weren't for the ice in winter, Quebec would be the major sea-port of eastern Canada.

"If pitiless rock is commonly understood by an 'iron-bound shore', then the coasts of the River St. Lawrence along the northern side of the Gulf may truly be so styled, as nothing scarcely is to be seen for hundreds of leagues but bare rocky mountains, capes and cliffs in various shapes and figures, some of which are dotted with a few spruce firs, while others present their bald pates deprived of covering by the unmerciful hand of time." (James M'Kenzie).

"If relentless rock is usually described as an 'iron-bound shore', then the northern coasts of the St. Lawrence River along the Gulf can definitely be called that, as there’s hardly anything visible for hundreds of miles but bare rocky mountains, capes, and cliffs in different shapes and sizes, some scattered with a few spruce trees, while others show their bare tops stripped of vegetation by the unforgiving passage of time." (James M'Kenzie).

The winters of the Quebec province are extremely cold, but the summer and autumn are warm and sunny. The best winter climate, possibly, in all Canada (though not as good as that of Vancouver Island, British Columbia) is to be found in the small peninsula region, on the shores of Lakes Erie and Huron, between Toronto and Detroit. This is the district which the Jesuit missionaries described as "an earthly paradise" even during the winter-time.

The winters in Quebec are really cold, but summer and autumn are warm and sunny. The best winter climate, probably, in all of Canada (though not as nice as Vancouver Island, British Columbia) can be found in the small peninsula region, along the shores of Lakes Erie and Huron, between Toronto and Detroit. This is the area that the Jesuit missionaries referred to as "an earthly paradise" even in the winter.

The following extracts, mostly from the journals of Alex. Henry, jun., give a good idea of the difference in climate and temperature between the western and the central parts of the Canadian Dominion.

The following extracts, mostly from the journals of Alex. Henry, jun., give a good idea of the difference in climate and temperature between the western and the central parts of the Canadian Dominion.

The late spring of northern Canada (Lake Nipigon, 50° N. lat.):—About May 15, the tops of the poplars begin to appear green, with fresh buds; the hills are changing their hue from a dry straw colour to a delightful verdure, and fragrant odours greet us.

The late spring in northern Canada (Lake Nipigon, 50° N. lat.):—Around May 15, the tops of the poplar trees start to turn green with fresh buds; the hills are shifting from a dry straw color to a lovely green, and refreshing scents welcome us.

"Early in March, 1800, in the Assiniboin country (Manitoba, about 29° N. lat.) the snow was entirely gone, for this winter had been an abnormally mild one for central Canada. The birds soon realized the openness of the season, for, on the 7th of March, turkey-buzzards began to arrive from the south, and cormorants, ducks, swans, and other spring birds; indeed, by the 24th of March not only had the snow quite melted, but the meadows had grown so dry with the hot sun that some accidents set them on fire. By April the 11th the weather had become excessively hot, and immense flocks of the traveller-pigeon (Ectopistes) flew northwards over the country."

"Early in March 1800, in the Assiniboine region (Manitoba, about 29° N latitude), the snow was completely gone, as this winter had been abnormally mild for central Canada. The birds quickly sensed the change in the season; by March 7th, turkey vultures began arriving from the south, along with cormorants, ducks, swans, and other spring migrators. By March 24th, not only had all the snow melted, but the meadows had dried out so much from the intense sun that some areas caught fire. By April 11th, the weather had become incredibly hot, and huge flocks of passenger pigeons (Ectopistes) were flying north across the country."

In somewhat similar latitudes (50°) the spring bursts on the Pacific coast region of British Columbia towards the end of February. "The tall raspberry bushes were in blossom with a beautiful red flower, which appeared more forward than the leaf (Rubus spectabilis). The elder had sprouts an inch long, the alder was also beginning to sprout, and willows were budding."

In similar latitudes (50°), spring arrives on the Pacific coast of British Columbia around the end of February. "The tall raspberry bushes were blooming with lovely red flowers, which looked more advanced than the leaves (Rubus spectabilis). The elder had sprouts an inch long, the alder was also starting to sprout, and the willows were budding."

Although nowhere in Upper and Lower Canada (or in the maritime provinces of New Brunswick and Nova Scotia) are the forests so splendid as in parts of British Columbia, yet nevertheless when this region was first discovered the magnificence of its woodlands greatly impressed even the explorers of the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries, who were not as much given to praise of landscape beauty as are we of later times. These Canadian forests include oaks, elms, pines and firs, chestnuts and beeches, birch trees and sycamores, maples and poplars, willows, alders, and hazelnuts (these last sometimes growing into tall trees with thick trunks). The trees and low-growing plants are partly like those of the north-eastern United States, and partly resemble those of northern and central Europe.

Although the forests in Upper and Lower Canada (and in the maritime provinces of New Brunswick and Nova Scotia) aren't as impressive as those in parts of British Columbia, when this region was first discovered, the beauty of its woodlands left a strong impression on explorers from the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries, who weren't as prone to praise landscape beauty as we are today. These Canadian forests include oaks, elms, pines and firs, chestnuts and beeches, birch trees and sycamores, maples and poplars, willows, alders, and hazelnuts (the last sometimes growing into tall trees with thick trunks). The trees and lower-growing plants share similarities with those in the northeastern United States as well as those found in northern and central Europe.

Nowadays, owing to two centuries of incessant killing, the beasts and birds of Upper and Lower Canada are not nearly so abundant as they were a hundred years ago. When Canada proper was first discovered, the wapiti red deer was still found in the basin of the St. Lawrence; it has long since been extinct. There are, however, still lingering, reindeer in the north, and elk in the forests of the east. There are also Virginian deer (Mazama), but there is no bison (and, so far as we know, never has been). There is no prongbuck, and many other creatures characteristic of the United States and British Columbia are not found in Upper and Lower Canada or in the maritime provinces. The tree porcupine (Erethizon dorsatus), which the Canadians call "Urson", or "Little Bear" is found still in the well-wooded regions of eastern and southern Canada, as well as in British Columbia and Alaska. In southern Canada there is the wood hare (Lepus sylvaticus), and in the east and north the varying hare (L. americanus) which turns white in winter.

Nowadays, because of two centuries of continuous hunting, the animals and birds of Upper and Lower Canada are not nearly as plentiful as they were a hundred years ago. When Canada was first discovered, the wapiti red deer could still be found in the St. Lawrence River basin; it has long been extinct. However, there are still reindeer in the north and elk in the eastern forests. There are also Virginian deer (Mazama), but there are no bison (and, as far as we know, there never have been). There are no pronghorns, and many other animals typical of the United States and British Columbia are not found in Upper and Lower Canada or in the maritime provinces. The tree porcupine (Erethizon dorsatus), which Canadians call "Urson" or "Little Bear," can still be found in the wooded areas of eastern and southern Canada, as well as in British Columbia and Alaska. In southern Canada, there is the wood hare (Lepus sylvaticus), and in the east and north, the varying hare (L. americanus) that turns white in winter.

Perhaps the most characteristic animal of this region was and is still the beaver, though the beaver is found all over British North America as far north as the Saskatchewan province and westwards into British Columbia.

Perhaps the most distinctive animal of this region was and still is the beaver, although beavers can be found throughout British North America, as far north as Saskatchewan and west into British Columbia.

It is curious that the Indians of central Canada had a belief (recorded by French and English pioneers) that occasionally in the dusk, or at night, they have seen an enormously large beaver in the water, so large that at first sight they have taken it for a moose. Travellers who have related this have surmised that the Indian perhaps saw a bear swimming, or a female moose, and in the dim light mistook it for a giant beaver. But as we know that there were once giant beavers (Trogontherium) as large as a bear, existing in England, it is just possible there may have been a gigantic type of beaver lingering in Canada before the opening up of the country by Europeans.

It’s interesting that the Indigenous people of central Canada believed (as recorded by French and English explorers) that sometimes during dusk or at night, they saw an enormous beaver in the water, so big that at first glance, they mistook it for a moose. Travelers who shared this story speculated that the Indigenous people might have seen a bear swimming or a female moose and, in the low light, confused it with a giant beaver. However, since we know that giant beavers (Trogontherium) as large as bears once existed in England, it’s possible that there could have been a gigantic kind of beaver still in Canada before the area was opened up by Europeans.

The beaver of North America is a very similar animal to the beaver which used to exist wild in Wales, England, France, Germany, and central Europe, and which still lingers in some parts of the Rhine valley, Poland, Russia, and Siberia; but the American form is classified as a separate species—Castor canadensis.

The North American beaver is quite similar to the beaver that used to live wild in Wales, England, France, Germany, and central Europe, and which still exists in some areas of the Rhine valley, Poland, Russia, and Siberia; however, the American version is classified as a separate species—Castor canadensis.

Beavers were sometimes exterminated or diminished in numbers by an epidemic disease, which, according to JAMES TANNER[10], destroyed vast quantities of them.

Beavers were sometimes wiped out or their numbers significantly reduced by an epidemic disease, which, according to JAMES TANNER[10], killed off large amounts of them.

"I found them dead or dying in the water, on the ice, and on the land; sometimes I found one that, having cut a tree half down, had died at its roots; sometimes one who had drawn a stick of timber halfway to his lodge was lying dead by his burthen. Many of them which I opened were red and bloody about the heart. Those in large rivers and running water suffered less; almost all of those that lived in ponds and stagnant water, died. Since that year the beaver have never been so plentiful in the country of Red River and Hudson's Bay as they used formerly to be."

"I found them dead or dying in the water, on the ice, and on the land; sometimes I found one that, having cut a tree halfway, had died at its roots; sometimes one who had dragged a log halfway to his lodge was lying dead beside his load. Many of those I opened were red and bloody around the heart. Those in large rivers and flowing water suffered less; almost all of those that lived in ponds and stagnant water died. Since that year, beavers have never been as plentiful in the Red River and Hudson's Bay area as they used to be."

The great attraction which Canada offered to France and England as a field of adventure lay in its wonderful supply of furs. The beaver skins were perhaps the commonest article of export, and were generally regarded as a unit of value, such as a shilling might be. Other skins were valued at "so many beavers," or the smaller ones at half or a quarter of a beaver each. Besides beaver skins, which were used for making hats, as well as capes and coats, the following furs and skins were formerly, or are still, exported from Canada. "Buffalo" robes—the carefully rubbed-down hides of the bison, rendered, by shaving and rubbing, so thin and supple that they could be easily folded; reindeer and musk-ox skins treated in the same way; marten or sable skins; mink (a kind of polecat); ermine (the white winter dress of the stoat); the fishing marten, or pekan; otter skins; black bear and white polar bear skins; raccoon, muskwash, squirrel, suslik, and marmot skins, and the soft white fur of the polar hare; the white skins of the Arctic fox, the skins of the blue fox, black fox, and red fox;[11] wolf skins, and the furs of the wolverene or glutton, and of the skunk—a handsome black-and-white creature of the weasel family, which emits a most disgusting smell from a gland in its body. (The skunk only comes from the south-central parts of the Canadian Dominion). At one time a good many swans' skins were exported for the sake of the down between the feathers, also the skins of grebes.

The big draw that Canada had for France and England as a place for exploration was its amazing supply of furs. Beaver skins were probably the most common export, and they were often considered a unit of value, similar to a shilling. Other skins were priced at "so many beavers," with smaller ones valued at half or a quarter of a beaver each. In addition to beaver skins, which were used for making hats, capes, and coats, the following furs and skins were once exported from Canada or still are: "Buffalo" robes—carefully processed bison hides that were shaved and rubbed down to be thin and supple enough to fold easily; reindeer and musk-ox skins treated in the same way; marten or sable skins; mink (a type of polecat); ermine (the white winter coat of the stoat); the fishing marten, or pekan; otter skins; black bear and white polar bear skins; raccoon, muskwash, squirrel, suslik, and marmot skins, and the soft white fur of the polar hare; the white skins of the Arctic fox, as well as the skins of blue foxes, black foxes, and red foxes; wolf skins; and the furs of the wolverine or glutton, and the skunk—a striking black-and-white animal from the weasel family that releases a very unpleasant odor from a gland in its body. (The skunk comes only from the south-central regions of the Canadian Dominion). At one time, many swan skins were exported for their down, as well as the skins of grebes.


A general fact that must not be forgotten in studying the adventures of the pioneers of Canada was the means which Nature and savage man had provided or invented for quickly traversing in all directions this enormous area of nearly half North America. These means consisted (1) of the distribution of salt and fresh water in such a way that by means of ocean-sailing ships explorers coming from the east could enter through straits and bays of the sea into the heart of Canada; and (2) the facility, on quitting the seashore, of passing up navigable rivers in boats or canoes into big lakes, and from these lakes into other rivers leading to other lakes. Moreover, the different river systems approached so closely to one another that even the Amerindians and the Eskimo, long before the white man, had realized that they had only to pick up their light canoes and carry them a few miles, to launch them on fresh waters which might provide hundreds or even thousands of miles of continuous travel. These are the celebrated "portages" of Canadian history, from the French word porter, to carry, transport. Sometimes the portages were made still easier for loaded canoes by a road being cleared through the scrub and over the rocks, and wooden rollers placed across it. Strong men could then easily haul a loaded canoe over these wooden rollers until it could be launched again in the water. Often these portages were made to circumvent dangerous rapids or waterfalls. The Indians and the French Canadians soon learnt how to steer canoes down rushes of water—rapids—which we should think very dangerous on an English river; but of course many of the rivers were obstructed at intervals by descents of water which no canoe could traverse up or down, and in these cases a path was cut from one smooth part of the river to another, and the canoe carried or hauled overland.

A key point to remember when studying the adventures of Canada's pioneers is the means that nature and indigenous people provided or created to navigate this vast area, nearly half the size of North America. These means included (1) the way salt and fresh water were distributed, allowing explorers from the east to sail in ocean-going ships through the straits and bays into the heart of Canada; and (2) the ease of moving up navigable rivers in boats or canoes from the shoreline into large lakes, and from these lakes into other rivers leading to even more lakes. Additionally, the various river systems were so interconnected that even the Indigenous peoples and the Inuit, long before Europeans arrived, realized they could simply carry their light canoes a few miles to launch them into fresh waters offering hundreds or even thousands of miles of continuous travel. These famous routes are known as the "portages" in Canadian history, derived from the French word porter, meaning to carry or transport. Sometimes, portages were made easier for loaded canoes by clearing a path through the brush and over rocks, with wooden rollers placed along the way. Strong individuals could then easily pull a loaded canoe over these rollers until it could be relaunched into the water. Frequently, these portages were designed to bypass dangerous rapids or waterfalls. The Indigenous people and the French Canadians quickly learned how to navigate canoes through rushing waters—rapids—that we might find very treacherous on a river in England; however, many of the rivers were intermittently obstructed by drops in water levels that no canoe could navigate, and in those cases, a path was created from one smooth section of the river to another, with the canoe being carried or pulled overland.

In this way the great French and British explorers found it possible to travel by water from the Atlantic to the Pacific Ocean across a width of land of something like 2500 miles. The only serious walking that had to be done was the crossing somewhere or other of the Rocky Mountains, where the streams, of course, were far too precipitate in descent to be navigable. In the hot, dusty plains of Assiniboia and the upper Missouri region the Amerindians had introduced horses, obtained indirectly from Spanish Mexico, and these were of great service to the white pioneers, especially in their pursuit of the bison.

In this way, the great French and British explorers were able to travel by water from the Atlantic to the Pacific Ocean across a stretch of land of about 2,500 miles. The only significant walking they had to do was crossing the Rocky Mountains, where the streams were too steep to navigate. In the hot, dusty plains of Assiniboia and the upper Missouri region, Indigenous people had brought in horses, which they got indirectly from Spanish Mexico, and these were extremely helpful to the white pioneers, especially in their hunting of bison.

So much for the summer season, when the rivers were full and overflowing, and the ground consisted of bare rock, sand, or soil covered with vegetation; the abundance of navigable streams and the suitability of the country to horses rendered very little walking necessary for those who wished to traverse the Canadian Dominion from end to end.

So much for the summer season, when the rivers were full and overflowing, and the ground was made up of bare rock, sand, or soil covered with plants; the many navigable streams and the land’s suitability for horses meant that very little walking was needed for those who wanted to cross the Canadian Dominion from one end to the other.

But the winter changed these conditions, the rivers became coated with thick ice, and the ground was covered, except in steep places, with an unvarying mantle of snow. Yet transport became just as easy as in the summertime, though perhaps a trifle more fatiguing. Men and women put on snowshoes shaped like tennis rackets, and flew over the hard snow quicker than a canoe could travel, dragging after them small sledges on which their luggage was packed; or, if they had not much luggage, carrying it slung round the shoulders and scurrying away on their snowshoes even swifter for the weight they carried; or they travelled over the smooth ice of the rivers and lakes.

But winter changed these conditions; the rivers were covered in thick ice, and the ground, except in steep areas, was blanketed in an unchanging layer of snow. Still, getting around became just as easy as in the summer, though maybe a little more tiring. Men and women put on snowshoes shaped like tennis rackets and glided over the hard snow faster than a canoe could go, pulling small sleds that held their luggage. If they didn’t have much to carry, they slung it over their shoulders and sped away on their snowshoes, moving even quicker because of the weight; or they traveled over the smooth ice of rivers and lakes.

Winter travellers, however, were sometimes troubled with a disorder known as the snowshoe evil. This arose from the placing of an unusual strain on the tendons of the leg, occasioned by the weight of the snowshoe. It often resulted in severe inflammation of the lower leg. The local remedy was a drastic one: it was to place a piece of lighted touchwood on the most inflamed part, and to leave it there till the flesh was burnt to the nerve!

Winter travelers, however, were sometimes plagued by a condition known as snowshoe evil. This happened due to the unusual strain on the leg tendons caused by the weight of the snowshoe. It often led to intense inflammation of the lower leg. The local remedy was quite extreme: it involved placing a lit piece of touchwood on the most inflamed area and leaving it there until the flesh was burned to the nerve!

In the north and the regions round Hudson's Bay, and also in the far west—British Columbia and Alaska—there were dogs, more or less of the Eskimo breed, trained by Eskimo or by Amerindians to drag the sledges. In the months of December and January it is true that the daylight in Arctic Canada (north of Lake Athapaska) became so short that the sun at its greatest altitude only appeared for two or three hours a short distance above the horizon. But there were compensations. The brilliancy of the Aurora Borealis, even without the assistance of the moon and the stars, made some amends for that deficiency, for it was frequently so light all night that travellers could see to read a very small print (Samuel Hearne). The importance of these "Northern lights" must not be overlooked in forming an opinion on the habitability of the far north in the "dark" winter months. The display was frequent and brilliant.

In the northern regions around Hudson's Bay, as well as in the far west—British Columbia and Alaska—there were dogs, primarily of the Eskimo breed, trained by Eskimos or Native Americans to pull sleds. During December and January, it's true that the daylight in Arctic Canada (north of Lake Athapaska) became so short that the sun only showed itself for two or three hours at its peak, just above the horizon. But there were upsides. The brilliance of the Aurora Borealis, even without the moon and stars, made up for that lack of daylight, as it often stayed bright enough all night for travelers to read very small print (Samuel Hearne). The significance of these "Northern lights" shouldn't be underestimated when considering the livability of the far north during the "dark" winter months. The display was both frequent and stunning.

The Athapaskan Indians called this phenomenon Edthin, that is to say, "reindeer". When the Aurora Borealis was particularly bright in the sky they would say that deer were plentiful in that part of the heavens. Their fancy in this respect was not quite so silly as one might think. They had learnt from experience that the Aurora Borealis was in some way connected with electricity, and experience had equally shown them that the skin of the reindeer, if briskly stroked by the hand on a dark night, would emit as many electric sparks as the back of a cat. On the other hand, the Amerindians in the southern and more temperate regions thought the Aurora Borealis was a vast concourse of "spirits of the happy day" dancing in the clouds.

The Athapaskan Indians referred to this phenomenon as Edthin, meaning "reindeer." When the Aurora Borealis lit up the sky especially brightly, they believed that there were many deer in that area of the heavens. Their belief wasn't as silly as it might seem. They had learned from experience that the Aurora Borealis was somehow linked to electricity, and they also found that the skin of a reindeer, when quickly stroked at night, would produce as many electric sparks as a cat's back. In contrast, the Amerindians in the southern and milder regions thought the Aurora Borealis was a large gathering of "spirits of the happy day" dancing in the clouds.

Thus there were no climatic reasons why, both in summer and in winter, immense distances should not be quickly covered in Canada between the Rocky Mountains and the Atlantic Ocean. This is how a mere hundred of white pioneers opened up Canada to the knowledge of the civilized world far quicker than the same area could have been discovered in Africa or Asia. Sometimes, for about a month, between the melting of the snow and ice and the steady flowing of the rivers in the late spring, or between the uncertain autumn of November and the confirmed winter of December, there might be an interval of a few weeks in which journeys had to be made on foot under conditions of great hardship, through mud, swamp, and over sharp stones or slippery rocks.

Thus, there were no climate-related reasons why immense distances between the Rocky Mountains and the Atlantic Ocean in Canada couldn't be quickly covered in both summer and winter. That's how just a hundred white pioneers opened up Canada to the civilized world much faster than the same area could have been discovered in Africa or Asia. Occasionally, for about a month, between the melting of snow and ice and the steady flow of rivers in late spring, or between the uncertain autumn of November and the set winter in December, there could be a few weeks where journeys had to be made on foot under very tough conditions, through mud, swamps, and over sharp stones or slippery rocks.

"The plains are covered with water from the melting of the snow so suddenly, and our men suffer much, as they are continually on the march, looking after Indians in every creek and little river. The water is commonly knee deep, in some places up to the middle, and in the morning is usually covered with ice, which makes it tedious and even dangerous travelling. Some of our men lose the use of their legs while still in the prime of life", wrote one eighteenth-century pioneer, in the Canadian spring.

"The plains are flooded with water from the quick melting of the snow, and our men are struggling a lot since they are in constant motion, keeping an eye out for Indians in every creek and small river. The water usually reaches knee-deep, and in some areas, it's up to their waist, and in the morning, it’s often covered in ice, making travel slow and even risky. Some of our men lose the use of their legs while they are still in their prime," wrote one 18th-century pioneer in the Canadian spring.

Severe as were the winter conditions of climate, the explorers were just as willing to travel through the winter as the summer, because in the winter they were spared the awful plague of mosquitoes and midges which still renders summer and early-autumn travel throughout the whole of Canada, from the United States borders on the south to the Arctic Ocean on the north, a severe trial, and even an unbearable degree of physical suffering.

As harsh as the winter weather was, the explorers were just as eager to travel in the winter as in the summer because, during winter, they were free from the terrible plague of mosquitoes and midges. These bugs make travel in Canada during the summer and early autumn, from the U.S. border in the south to the Arctic Ocean in the north, a real challenge and can even cause unbearable physical suffering.


1 The first Frenchmen visiting North America, and seeing the caribou without their horns, thought they were a kind of wild ass. The reindeer of Newfoundland is a sub-species peculiar to this island.

1 The first Frenchmen who traveled to North America and saw the caribou without their antlers thought they were a type of wild donkey. The reindeer in Newfoundland is a unique subspecies found only on this island.

2 Homarus americanus. The lobster of Newfoundland and the coasts of North-east America is closely related to the common lobster of British waters. These true lobsters resemble the freshwater crayfish in having their foremost pair of legs modified into large, unequal-sized claws. The European rock-lobster of the Mediterranean and French coasts (the langouste of the French) has no large claws.

2 Homarus americanus. The lobster found in Newfoundland and the northeastern coasts of America is closely related to the common lobster of British waters. These true lobsters are like freshwater crayfish in that their front pair of legs has evolved into large, uneven claws. The European rock lobster from the Mediterranean and French coasts (the langouste in French) does not have large claws.

3 The musk ox, which is not an ox, but a creature about midway in structure and affinities between cattle on the one hand and sheep and goats on the other, is a large beast comparatively, being the size of a small ox, but appearing very much larger than it is on account of the extremely thick coat of hair and wool. Both sexes have horns, and the horns, after meeting in the middle and making more or less of a boss over the forehead, droop down at the sides of the cheeks and then turn up with sharp points. The musk ox once ranged right across the northern world, from England and Scandinavia, through Germany, Russia, and Siberia, to Alaska and North America. Many thousands of years ago, during one of the Glacial periods, it inhabited southern England. At the present day it is extinct everywhere, excepting in the eastern parts of Arctic America, not going west of the Mackenzie River nor south of Labrador. It is also found in Greenland.

3 The musk ox, which isn’t actually an ox, but a creature that's somewhat in between cattle and sheep or goats, is a relatively large animal, about the size of a small ox, but it looks much larger due to its extremely thick coat of hair and wool. Both males and females have horns that meet in the middle, creating a kind of bump over the forehead, then curve down along the sides of the face and turn up into sharp points. The musk ox once lived across the northern world, from England and Scandinavia to Germany, Russia, Siberia, Alaska, and North America. Thousands of years ago, during one of the ice ages, it even inhabited southern England. Today, it’s extinct everywhere except in the eastern parts of Arctic America, where it doesn’t go west of the Mackenzie River or south of Labrador. It can also be found in Greenland.

4 Mazama americana, similar to, but quite distinct from, the larger mule deer of British Columbia.

4 Mazama americana, similar to, but very different from, the larger mule deer of British Columbia.

5 The prongbuck (Antilocapra americana) is not a true antelope, though in outward appearance it resembles a large gazelle. It was called "cabri" by the French Canadians.

5 The pronghorn (Antilocapra americana) isn't a true antelope, but it looks a lot like a large gazelle. French Canadians referred to it as "cabri."

6 "Bears make prodigious ravages in the brush and willows; the plum trees, and every tree that bears fruit share the same fate. The tops of the oaks are also very roughly handled, broken, and torn down, to get the acorns. The havoc they commit is astonishing...." —Alex. Henry, jun.

6 "Bears cause massive damage in the underbrush and willows; the plum trees and any fruit-bearing tree suffer the same fate. The tops of the oaks are also severely damaged, broken, and torn apart to access the acorns. The destruction they leave behind is astonishing...." —Alex. Henry, jun.

7 Nowhere in the world are there so many kinds of grouse as in North America. In the more northern regions are several species of ptarmigan or snow partridges (Lagopus), which turn white in winter, and the spruce partridges (Canachites); in the more genial climate of the great plains of eastern Canada and in the Far West the ruffled grouse and hazel grouse (Bonasa), the sage cocks (Centrocercus), the prairie hens (Tympanuchus), and the blue or pine grouse (Dendrapagus).

"To snare grouse requires no other process than making a few little hedges across a creek, or a few short hedges projecting at right angles from the side of an island of willows, which those birds are found to frequent. Several openings must be left in each hedge, to admit the birds to pass through, and in each of them a snare must be set; so that when the grouse are hopping along the edge of the willows to feed, which is their usual custom, some of them soon get into the snares, where they are confined till they are taken out. I have caught from three to ten grouse in a day by this simple contrivance, which requires no further attendance than going round them night and morning" (Hearne).

7 Nowhere in the world can you find as many types of grouse as in North America. In the northern regions, there are several species of ptarmigan, also known as snow partridges (Lagopus), that turn white in winter, along with spruce partridges (Canachites); in the milder climate of the great plains of eastern Canada and the Far West, you can find ruffed grouse and hazel grouse (Bonasa), sage grouse (Centrocercus), prairie chickens (Tympanuchus), and blue or pine grouse (Dendrapagus).

"To catch grouse, you simply need to set up a few small hedges across a creek, or a few short hedges sticking out at right angles from the side of a willow island, which is where these birds are usually found. You need to leave several openings in each hedge for the birds to pass through, and set a snare in each gap. Then, when the grouse are hopping along the edge of the willows to feed, which is their normal behavior, some of them will soon get caught in the snares and stay there until you come to collect them. I've caught anywhere from three to ten grouse in a day using this simple method, which only requires checking them morning and night" (Hearne).

8 Sometimes called Amelanchier canadensis.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Also known as Amelanchier canadensis.

9 The south shore of Lake Superior, the whole of Lake Michigan, the west shore of Lake Huron, and the south coasts of Lake Erie and Lake Ontario are within the territories of the United States.

9 The south shore of Lake Superior, all of Lake Michigan, the west shore of Lake Huron, and the southern coasts of Lake Erie and Lake Ontario are all part of the United States.

10 A remarkable eighteenth-century pioneer who joined the Indians when a boy and lived as one of them.

10 An extraordinary 18th-century trailblazer who became part of the Indigenous community as a child and lived among them.

11 The blue fox is the Arctic fox (Canis lagopus) in its summer dress; the black fox is a beautiful variety or sub-species of the common fox (C. vulpes); so also is the red or "cross" fox. There is also common throughout the Canadian Dominion the pretty little kit fox (Canis velox).

11 The blue fox is the Arctic fox (Canis lagopus) in its summer coat; the black fox is a stunning variety or subspecies of the common fox (C. vulpes); the red or "cross" fox is the same. The cute little kit fox (Canis velox) is also commonly found throughout Canada.

[__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]






CHAPTER VII

The Amerindians and Eskimo: the Aborigines of British North America

I have already attempted to describe in the first chapter the ancient peopling of America from north-eastern Asia, but it might be useful if I gave here some description of the Eskimo and Amerindian tribes of the Canadian Dominion at the time of its gradual discovery by Europeans, especially during the great explorations of the eighteenth and early nineteenth centuries.

I’ve already tried to explain in the first chapter how people from northeastern Asia first settled in America, but it might be helpful to provide a description of the Eskimo and Indigenous tribes in Canada when Europeans were gradually discovering the land, particularly during the major explorations of the eighteenth and early nineteenth centuries.

It is evident that the ESKIMO—who are quite distinct from the Amerindians in physical type, language, customs, and industries—have been for thousands of years the only inhabitants of Arctic America. When the Norsemen came to the New World they seem to have met with Eskimo as far south as New England, but in more recent times the Eskimo have only been found inhabiting the extreme north and north-east: in Greenland, on the Labrador coast, on Baffin's Land, and along the Arctic coast of the North-American continent, between the Coppermine River and the westernmost extremity of Alaska, as well as on the opposite islands and promontories of Asia.

It’s clear that the ESKIMO—who are very different from the Amerindians in terms of physical appearance, language, customs, and industries—have been the only people living in Arctic America for thousands of years. When the Norse arrived in the New World, they seem to have encountered Eskimo as far south as New England, but more recently, the Eskimo have only been found in the far north and northeast: in Greenland, along the Labrador coast, in Baffin's Land, and along the Arctic coast of North America, between the Coppermine River and the westernmost part of Alaska, as well as on the nearby islands and promontories of Asia.

Their name for themselves as a people is usually "Innuit" (in Greenland, "Karalit"). Eskimo is a corruption of Eskimantsik, a northern Algonkin word meaning "eaters of raw flesh". Although their geographical range extends over a distance of about three thousand five hundred miles—from north-easternmost Asia to the east coast of Greenland—the difference in their dialects is little more than that between French and Italian; whereas the difference between the speech of one Amerindian tribe and another—even where they belong to the same language group—is very great—not less than that between German and Latin, or English and French, or even between Russian and Hindustani. This fact—of the widespread Eskimo language—makes some authorities suppose that the presence of the Eskimo in Arctic America cannot be such a very ancient event as, from other evidence, one might believe. Perhaps the bold travelling habits of the Eskimo—which makes them range over vast distances of ice and snow when hunting seals, walruses, whales, musk ox, or reindeer—enables them to keep in touch with their far-away relations.

Their name for themselves as a people is usually "Inuit" (in Greenland, "Karalit"). Eskimo is a mispronunciation of Eskimantsik, a northern Algonquin word that means "eaters of raw flesh." Although their geographical range stretches about three thousand five hundred miles—from the northeastern part of Asia to the east coast of Greenland—the difference in their dialects is only slightly more than that between French and Italian. In contrast, the differences in speech between Amerindian tribes—even those in the same language group—can be quite significant, comparable to the differences between German and Latin, English and French, or even Russian and Hindustani. This widespread nature of the Eskimo language leads some experts to believe that the presence of the Eskimo in Arctic America may not be as ancient as one might think based on other evidence. Perhaps the adventurous nature of the Eskimo—which drives them to travel great distances across ice and snow while hunting seals, walruses, whales, musk ox, or reindeer—helps them stay connected with their distant relatives.

The canoes or kayaks in which they travel (first described by the Norsemen in the tenth century) are made out of the hide of the seal or walrus. The leather is stretched over a framework constructed from driftwood or whales' bones. There is a hole in the middle for the man or woman to insert their legs. This hole they fill up with their bodies. If the canoe capsizes, the Eskimo cannot fall out, but bobs up immediately. He and the canoe are really "one-and-indivisible" when he is navigating the seas and lakes, plying deftly a large paddle.

The canoes or kayaks they use for travel (first described by the Norsemen in the tenth century) are made from seal or walrus hide. The skin is stretched over a frame made from driftwood or whale bones. There's an opening in the middle for a person to insert their legs. They fill this hole with their body. If the canoe capsizes, the Eskimo stays in it and pops back up immediately. They and the canoe are truly "one-and-indivisible" when navigating the seas and lakes, skillfully using a large paddle.

In regard to food they were certainly not particular or squeamish. They loved best of all whales' blubber, or to drink the fishy-tasting oil from bodies of whales, seals, or walruses. Besides the meat of Polar bears and of any fur animals they could catch, or the musky beef of the musk ox, they devoured eagerly sea birds' eggs, Iceland moss, and even the parasitic insects of their own heads and bodies! Hearne relates that they will eat with a relish whole handfuls of maggots that have been produced in meat by the eggs of the bluebottle fly! On the other hand, they held cannibalism in horror, whereas for two-two's their Amerindian neighbours on the west and south would eat human flesh without repugnance.

When it came to food, they were definitely not picky or squeamish. They especially loved whale blubber, or drinking the fishy oil from whales, seals, or walruses. In addition to the meat of polar bears and any fur-bearing animals they could catch, or the musky meat of the musk ox, they eagerly devoured seabird eggs, Iceland moss, and even the parasitic insects found on their own heads and bodies! Hearne notes that they would happily eat whole handfuls of maggots that formed in meat from the eggs of the bluebottle fly! On the other hand, they were horrified by cannibalism, while their Amerindian neighbors to the west and south would eat human flesh without any disgust.

The Eskimo, though occasionally tall, are as a rule stumpy and thickset, with very small hands and feet, broad faces, and projecting cheekbones, a narrow nose without the aquiline bridge of the Amerindian, slanting narrow eyes, and long heads containing large well-developed brains. In disposition the Eskimo are nearly always merry, affectionate to one another, honest, and modest. Modern travellers in the Arctic regions give them invariably a high character; but Frobisher, Davis, and the explorers of the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries accused them of treachery and an inclination to steal. Iron in any shape or form they could hardly resist taking. Moreover, if they are the same people as the Skraellings of the Norse traditions they must have been of a fiercer disposition a thousand years ago.

The Eskimos, while sometimes tall, are generally short and stocky, with very small hands and feet, broad faces, and prominent cheekbones. They have narrow noses without the pronounced bridge typical of Native Americans, slanted narrow eyes, and long heads that house large, well-developed brains. In terms of personality, Eskimos are usually cheerful, affectionate with each other, honest, and modest. Modern travelers in the Arctic regions consistently speak highly of them; however, Frobisher, Davis, and the explorers of the 16th and 17th centuries accused them of being treacherous and having a tendency to steal. They could hardly resist taking iron in any form. Furthermore, if they are indeed the same people as the Skraellings mentioned in Norse traditions, they must have had a more aggressive nature a thousand years ago.

The Amerindians who inhabited (more or less) the rest of the Canadian Dominion, and the whole remainder of the New World, differed in physical appearance from the Eskimo mainly in being taller and better proportioned, with shorter and rounder heads, larger, fuller eyes, a bigger nose, and a handsomer personal appearance. The skin colour, as a rule, was darker and browner than the greyish- or pinkish-yellow of the Eskimo.

The Indigenous people who lived in most of Canada and across the rest of the New World were generally taller and had better body proportions compared to the Eskimos. They had shorter, rounder heads, larger and fuller eyes, bigger noses, and a more attractive overall appearance. Typically, their skin tone was darker and more brown than the greyish or pinkish-yellow of the Eskimos.

The various human types that went to form the Amerindian race (beside the Eskimo element in them) seem to have entered north-west America from Asia, and first to have peopled the Pacific slopes of the Rocky Mountains, after which they wandered farther and farther south till they got into a warmer climate. Then they crossed the Rocky Mountains and peopled the centre and east of what is now the United States. As they pushed their way north up the valleys of the great rivers, they no doubt killed, mingled with, or pushed back the Eskimo. At last their northernmost extensions reached to the Mackenzie River, the vicinity of Hudson's Bay, Labrador, and Newfoundland. But in all the middle, west, and even east of Canada they seem to have been relatively recent arrivals,[1] not to have inhabited the country for a great many centuries before the white man came, and all their recorded and legendary movements in North America have been from the south-west towards the north-east (after they had got across the Rocky Mountains). The few cultivated plants they had, such as maize (Indian corn), tobacco, and pumpkins, they brought with them or received from the south.

The different types of people that made up the Amerindian race (excluding the Eskimo influence) seem to have arrived in north-west America from Asia. They first settled along the Pacific slopes of the Rocky Mountains and then gradually moved further south into warmer areas. After that, they crossed the Rocky Mountains and populated the central and eastern regions of what is now the United States. As they traveled north up the valleys of the major rivers, they likely fought against, mixed with, or pushed out the Eskimo. Eventually, their northernmost reach extended to the Mackenzie River, around Hudson's Bay, Labrador, and Newfoundland. However, in much of the middle, west, and even east of Canada, they seem to have been relatively recent arrivals,[1] not having lived in the area for many centuries before the arrival of Europeans. All recorded and legendary movements in North America have generally been from the south-west toward the north-east (after they crossed the Rocky Mountains). They brought with them a few cultivated plants, such as maize (Indian corn), tobacco, and pumpkins, or obtained them from the south.

The only domestic animal possessed by either Eskimo or Amerindian was the dog. We are most of us by now familiar with the type of the Eskimo dog—a large, wolf-like animal with prick ears and a bushy tail curled over its back. In this carriage of the tail the Eskimo and most other true dogs differ from wolves, with whom the tail droops between the hind quarters. But there is a small wild American wolf—the coyote—which carries its tail more upright, like that of the true dog; and the coyote seems indeed an intermediate form between the wolf and the original wild dog. Most of the domestic dogs of the Amerindians[2] (as distinguished from those of the Eskimo) seem to have been derived from the coyote or small wolf of central North America.

The only domestic animal owned by either the Eskimo or Amerindian was the dog. Most of us are now familiar with the type of Eskimo dog—a large, wolf-like creature with pointy ears and a bushy tail that curls over its back. This tail position is what sets the Eskimo dog and many other true dogs apart from wolves, whose tails droop between their hind legs. However, there's a smaller wild American wolf—the coyote—which holds its tail more upright, similar to that of a true dog; the coyote really appears to be an intermediate form between the wolf and the original wild dog. Most domestic dogs of the Amerindians[2] (as distinct from those of the Eskimo) seem to have come from the coyote or small wolf of central North America.

On the Pacific coast there were other types of domestic dog, resembling greatly breeds that are found in eastern Asia and the Pacific islands. Some of these were naked, and others grew silky hair, which was woven by the natives into cloth (see p. 323). The Eskimo dog almost certainly has been derived from northern Asia, and is closely related to the well-known Chinese breed—the chow dog—and the domestic breeds of ancient Europe. Even the commonest type of house dog in the Roman Empire was very much like an Eskimo or a chow in appearance. There is a true wild dog, however, in the Yukon province of the Canadian Dominion and in Alaska—Canis pambasileus—a dark, blackish-brown in colour. This may have been a parent of the Eskimo dog, but it is also doubtless closely allied to the original (extinct) wild dog of northern Asia, from which the chow and many other breeds are directly descended. The Eskimo never under ordinary circumstances ate their dogs; on the other hand, the Amerindians were fond of dog's flesh, and in some tribes simply bred dogs for the table.

On the Pacific coast, there were different types of domestic dogs that closely resembled breeds found in eastern Asia and the Pacific islands. Some of these dogs were hairless, while others had silky fur that the natives wove into cloth (see p. 323). The Eskimo dog likely originated from northern Asia and is closely related to the well-known Chinese breed, the chow dog, as well as the domestic breeds of ancient Europe. Even the most common type of house dog in the Roman Empire looked a lot like an Eskimo or chow dog. However, there is a true wild dog in the Yukon province of Canada and in Alaska—Canis pambasileus—which is dark, blackish-brown in color. This may have been a ancestor of the Eskimo dog, but is also likely related to the original (now extinct) wild dog of northern Asia, from which the chow and many other breeds are directly descended. The Eskimo typically did not eat their dogs; in contrast, the Amerindians enjoyed dog meat, and in some tribes, they specifically bred dogs for food.

When Europeans first reached America all these Amerindian tribes, and also the Eskimo, were still, for all practical purposes, in the Stone Age. Those who lived in the north had discovered the use of copper and had shaped for themselves knives and spear blades out of copper, but not even this metal was in use to any great extent, and for the most part they relied, down to the end of the eighteenth century, for their implements and weapons, on polished and sharpened stones, on deer's antlers, buffalo horns, sticks, sharp shells, beavers' incisor teeth,[3] the claws or spines of crustaceans, flints, and suchlike substances—in short, they were leading the same life and using almost exactly the same tools as the long-since-vanished hunter races of Europe of five thousand to one hundred thousand years ago—the people who pursued the mammoth, the bison, the Irish "elk", and the other great beasts of prehistoric Europe. Indeed, North America represented to some extent, as late as a hundred years ago, what Europe must have looked like in the days of palæolithic Man.

When Europeans first arrived in America, all the Indigenous tribes, including the Eskimo, were still, for all practical purposes, in the Stone Age. Those living in the north had discovered how to use copper and made knives and spear blades from it, but even this metal was not widely used. For the most part, until the end of the eighteenth century, they relied on polished and sharpened stones, deer antlers, buffalo horns, sticks, sharp shells, beaver teeth,[3] the claws or spines of crustaceans, flints, and similar materials for their tools and weapons. In short, they led the same lives and used almost exactly the same tools as the long-gone hunter societies of Europe from five thousand to one hundred thousand years ago—those who hunted mammoths, bison, the Irish "elk," and other great prehistoric animals. In fact, North America, even a hundred years ago, somewhat resembled Europe during the time of Paleolithic Man.


The AMERINDIANS of the Canadian Dominion (when the country first became known to Europeans) belonged to the following groups and tribes. The order of enumeration begins in the east and proceeds westwards. I have already mentioned the peculiar Beothiks of Newfoundland.[4] In Nova Scotia, Prince Edward Island, New Brunswick, and the Gaspé Peninsula there were the Mikmak Indians belonging to the widespread ALGONKIN family or stock. West and south of the Mikmaks, in New Brunswick and along the borders of New England, were other tribes of the Algonkin group: the Etchemins, Abenakis, Tarratines, Penobscots, Mohikans, and Adirondacks. North of these, in the eastern part of the Quebec province, on either side of the Gulf of St. Lawrence, were the Montagnais. This name, though it looks like a French word meaning "mountaineers", was also spellt Montagnet, and in various other ways, showing that it was originally a native name, pronounced Montanyé. The Montagnais in various clans extended northwards across Labrador until they touched the Eskimo, with whom they constantly fought. The interior of Labrador was inhabited by another Algonkin tribe, the Naskwapi, living in a state of rude savagery. The Algonkins proper, whose tribe gave their name to the whole stock because the French first became acquainted with them as a type, dwelt in the vicinity of Montreal, Lake Ontario, and the valley of the St. Lawrence. In upper Canada, about the great lakes and the St. Lawrence valley, were the Chippeways, or Ojibwés, and the Ottawas. West and north of Lake Michigan were the Miamis, the Potawátomis, and the Fox Indians (the Saks or Sawkis). Between Lake Winnipeg and Lake Superior were the Cheyennes (Shians); between North and South Saskatchewan, the Blackfeet or Siksika Indians (sections of which were also called Bloods, Paigans, Piegans, &c). North of Lake Winnipeg, as far as Lake Athabaska, and almost from the Rocky Mountains to the shores of Hudson's Bay, were the widespread tribe of the Kris, or Knistino.[5] The Gros Ventres or Big Bellies—properly called Atsina—inhabited the southern part of the middle west, between the Saskatchewan and the Missouri basins; and the Monsoni or Maskegon were found in eastern Rupert Land.

The Indigenous Peoples of Canada (when the country first became known to Europeans) belonged to several groups and tribes. The list starts in the east and moves west. I've already mentioned the unique Beothuks of Newfoundland.[4] In Nova Scotia, Prince Edward Island, New Brunswick, and the Gaspé Peninsula, there were the Mikmak Indians, part of the widespread ALGONKIN family. To the west and south of the Mikmaks, in New Brunswick and along the New England borders, were other tribes of the Algonkin group: the Etchemins, Abenakis, Tarratines, Penobscots, Mohikans, and Adirondacks. To the north of these, in the eastern part of Quebec, on both sides of the Gulf of St. Lawrence, were the Montagnais. This name, although it looks like a French word meaning "mountaineers," was also spelled Montagnet and in various other ways, indicating that it was originally a native name, pronounced Montanyé. The Montagnais, in different clans, extended northward across Labrador until they reached the Eskimo, with whom they frequently clashed. The interior of Labrador was home to another Algonkin tribe, the Naskwapi, who lived in a state of rough savagery. The true Algonkins, whose tribe gave their name to the entire family because the French first met them as a representative group, lived near Montreal, Lake Ontario, and the St. Lawrence valley. In upper Canada, around the Great Lakes and the St. Lawrence valley, were the Chippeways, or Ojibwés, and the Ottawas. To the west and north of Lake Michigan were the Miamis, the Potawátomis, and the Fox Indians (the Saks or Sawkis). Between Lake Winnipeg and Lake Superior were the Cheyennes (Shians); between North and South Saskatchewan, the Blackfeet or Siksika Indians (some sections were also called Bloods, Paigans, Piegans, etc.). North of Lake Winnipeg, stretching to Lake Athabaska, and almost from the Rocky Mountains to the shores of Hudson's Bay, was the widespread tribe of the Kris, or Knistino.[5] The Gros Ventres or Big Bellies—properly called Atsina—lived in the southern part of the Midwest, between the Saskatchewan and Missouri basins; and the Monsoni or Maskegon were located in eastern Rupert Land.

All the above-enumerated tribes, except the Beothik indigenes of Newfoundland, belong to the great and widespread ALGONKIN group. (Algonkin is a word derived from the "Algommequin" of Champlain.) In the valley of the St. Lawrence the French first encountered those Indians whom they called Huron. This was a French word meaning "crested", because these people wore their hair in a great crest over the top and back of the head, which reminded the French of the appearance of a wild boar (Hure). The real name of the Hurons, who dwelt at a later date between Lakes Huron, Erie, Ontario, and the neighbourhood of Montreal, was Waiandot (Wyandot); but they went under a variety of other names, according to the clans, such as the Eries and the Atiwándoran or Neutral Nation. They were also called the "Good" Iroquois, to distinguish them from the six other nations, the IROQUOIS proper of the French Canadians, who signalized themselves by fiendish and frightful warfare against the French and the various tribes of Algonkin Indians. The Hurons and the rest of the six tribes grouped under the name of IROQUOIS [6] were of the same stock originally, forming a separate group like that of the Algonkins, though they are supposed to be related distantly to the Dakota or Siou. Amongst the "Six Nations" or tribes banded together in warfare and policy were the celebrated "Mohawks" who dwelt on the southern borders of the St. Lawrence basin and near Lake Champlain. As the others of the six nations (including the Senekas and Onondagas) inhabited the eastern United States, well outside the limits of Canada, they need not be referred to here.

All the tribes mentioned above, except for the Beothuk natives of Newfoundland, belong to the large and widespread Algonkin group. (Algonkin comes from Champlain's term "Algommequin.") In the St. Lawrence Valley, the French first came across the Indians they called Huron. This term means "crested" in French because these people styled their hair in a prominent crest on the top and back of their heads, which reminded the French of a wild boar's appearance (Hure). The Hurons, who later lived between Lakes Huron, Erie, Ontario, and near Montreal, were actually called Waiandot (Wyandot); however, they were known by various other names based on their clans, like the Eries and the Atiwándoran or Neutral Nation. They were also referred to as the "Good" Iroquois to differentiate them from the six other nations, the IROQUOIS proper in the eyes of the French Canadians, who were notorious for their brutal and terrifying warfare against both the French and various Algonkin tribes. The Hurons and the other six tribes collectively identified as IROQUOIS [6] were originally of the same stock, forming a distinct group like the Algonkins, although they are thought to be distantly related to the Dakota or Sioux. Among the "Six Nations," which were tribes united for warfare and policy, were the famous "Mohawks" who lived on the southern borders of the St. Lawrence basin and near Lake Champlain. The other nations in the six tribes (including the Senecas and Onondagas) occupied areas of the eastern United States, beyond the borders of Canada, so they won't be discussed here.

Between the South Saskatchewan, the Rocky Mountains, and Lake Superior, nearly outside the limits of the Canadian Dominion, was the great DAKOTA, or Siou group,[7] divided into the distinct tribe of Assiniboin or "Stone" Indians (because they used hot stones in cooking), the "Crows" or Absaroka, the Hidatsa or Minitari (also called Big Bellies, like the quite distinct Atsina of the Algonkin family), the Menómini (the most north-eastern amongst the Siouan tribes, and the first met with by the British and French Canadians south-west of Lake Superior), the Winnebagos on the southern borders of Manitoba, the Yanktons or Yanktonnais, the "Santi Siou" proper—generally calling themselves Dakota or Mdewakanton—and the "Tétons" along the northern Dakota frontier and into the Rocky Mountains—also known as Blackfeet, Sans Arcs ("without bows"), "Two-kettles", "Brulés" or "Burnt" Indians, &c.

Between the South Saskatchewan, the Rocky Mountains, and Lake Superior, just outside the boundaries of the Canadian Dominion, was the large DAKOTA, or Sioux group, [7] divided into distinct tribes: the Assiniboin or "Stone" Indians (because they used hot stones for cooking), the Crows or Absaroka, the Hidatsa or Minitari (also known as Big Bellies, like the quite different Atsina from the Algonkin family), the Menominee (the most northeastern among the Siouan tribes and the first encountered by the British and French Canadians southwest of Lake Superior), the Winnebagos on the southern borders of Manitoba, the Yanktons or Yanktonnais, the "Santi Siou" proper—who generally call themselves Dakota or Mdewakanton—and the "Tétons" along the northern Dakota frontier extending into the Rocky Mountains—also known as Blackfeet, Sans Arcs ("without bows"), "Two-kettles," "Brulés" or "Burnt" Indians, etc.

Next must be mentioned the very important and widespread ATHAPASKAN or Déné (Tinné) group, named after Lake Athapaska (or Athabaska), because that sheet of water became a great rallying place for these northern tribes. The Athapaskan group of Indians indeed represents the "Northern Indians" of the Hudson's Bay Company's reports and explorers. They drew a great distinction between the Northern Indians (the Athapaskan tribes) and the Southern Indians, which included all the other Amerindian groups dwelling to the south of the Athapaskan domain. But although nowadays so much associated with the far north and north-west of America, the Athabaskan group evidently came from a region much farther south, and has been cut in half by other tribal movements, wars, and migrations; for the Athapaskan family also includes the Apaches and the Navaho of the south-western portions of the United States and the adjoining territories of Mexico. The northern and southern divisions of the Athapaskan group are separated by something like twelve hundred miles. The following are the principal tribes into which the Northern ATHAPASKAN group was divided at the time of the first explorations of the north-west. There were the Chippewayan Indians[8] round about Lake Athapaska, and the Caribou Eaters or Ethen-eldeli between Lake Athapaska and Reindeer Lake. The "Slaves", or Slave Indians of the Great Slave Lake and the upper Mackenzie River; the Beaver and Sarsi Indians (known also as the Tsékehn), about the Peace River and the northern part of Alberta province; and the Yellow Knives, or Totsan-ottine (so called from their being found with light-coloured copper knives when first discovered by Europeans), north-east of the Great Slave Lake and along the Coppermine River: the Dogribs between the Great Slave Lake and Great Bear Lake, perhaps (except in Alaska) the most northern extension of the Amerindian type towards the Arctic regions. West of the Dogribs dwelt—and still dwell—the interesting tribe of Hare Indians, or Kawcho-Tinné. They extend northwards to the Anderson River, on the verge of the Arctic Ocean. West of the lower Mackenzie River, and stretching thence to the Porcupine or Yukon Rivers, are the Squinting Indians ("Loucheux", or Kuchin), who in former times were met with much farther to the south-east than at the present day. Finally, there are the Nahani Indians, who have penetrated through the Rocky Mountains to the Stikine River, reaching thus quite close to the Pacific Ocean. This penetration northwards of groups of Athapaskan Indians into districts inhabited for the most part by Amerindian tribes differing widely in language and customs from all those east of the Rocky Mountains, explains the way in which stories of the great western sea—the Pacific—reached, by means of trading intercourse, those Amerindian tribes of the middle-west and upper Canada, and so stirred up the French and English explorers of the seventeenth and eighteenth centuries to make the marvellous journeys which are recounted in this book.

Next, we should mention the very important and widespread ATHAPASKAN or Déné (Tinné) group, named after Lake Athapaska (or Athabaska), since that body of water became a major meeting point for these northern tribes. The Athapaskan group of Indians indeed represents the "Northern Indians" of the Hudson's Bay Company's reports and explorers. They made a clear distinction between the Northern Indians (the Athapaskan tribes) and the Southern Indians, which included all the other Native American groups living south of the Athapaskan territory. However, even though the Athapaskan group is now strongly associated with the far north and northwest of America, they actually originated from a region much farther south and have been split in half by other tribal movements, wars, and migrations; the Athapaskan family also includes the Apaches and the Navajo from the southwestern parts of the United States and adjacent territories in Mexico. The northern and southern divisions of the Athapaskan group are divided by about twelve hundred miles. The following are the main tribes into which the Northern ATHAPASKAN group was divided at the time of the first explorations of the northwest. There were the Chippewayan Indians[8] around Lake Athapaska, and the Caribou Eaters or Ethen-eldeli between Lake Athapaska and Reindeer Lake. The "Slaves", or Slave Indians of Great Slave Lake and the upper Mackenzie River; the Beaver and Sarsi Indians (also known as the Tsékehn), near the Peace River and the northern part of Alberta province; and the Yellow Knives, or Totsan-ottine (named for being found with light-colored copper knives when first discovered by Europeans), northeast of Great Slave Lake and along the Coppermine River: the Dogribs between Great Slave Lake and Great Bear Lake, perhaps (aside from Alaska) the most northern extension of the Native American type towards the Arctic regions. West of the Dogribs lived—and still live—the intriguing tribe of Hare Indians, or Kawcho-Tinné. They extend northward to the Anderson River, on the edge of the Arctic Ocean. West of the lower Mackenzie River, stretching to the Porcupine or Yukon Rivers, are the Squinting Indians ("Loucheux", or Kuchin), who were once found much farther southeast than at present. Lastly, there are the Nahani Indians, who have moved through the Rocky Mountains to the Stikine River, thus coming quite close to the Pacific Ocean. This northward movement of Athapaskan Indians into areas mostly inhabited by Native American tribes with vastly different languages and customs from those east of the Rocky Mountains explains how stories about the great western sea—the Pacific—were transmitted through trading interactions to those Native American tribes of the midwest and upper Canada, ultimately inspiring the French and English explorers of the seventeenth and eighteenth centuries to embark on the remarkable journeys detailed in this book.

West of the Rocky Mountains, in British Columbia and Vancouver Island (besides southern Alaska), the Amerindian tribes form the Nūtka-Columbian group, which is markedly distinct from the Amerindians east of the Rocky Mountains, from whom they differ widely in language, type, and culture. They are divided into quite a large number of small separate groups—the Wakashan or Nūtkas of Vancouver Island and south-western British Columbia, the Shahaptian or "Nez percés" Indians of the Columbia basin, and the Chinūks of the lower Columbia River, the Salishan or "Flathead" group (including the Atnās) of the Fraser and Thompson Rivers and central British Columbia; and the Haida Indians of Queen Charlotte's Islands and the north-west coast of British Columbia. It must be remembered that these different groups are only based on the relationships of their component tribes in language or dialect, and do not always imply that the tribes belonging to them had the same customs and dispositions; but they were generally able to communicate with one another in speech, whereas if they met the Indians of another group the language might be so totally different that they could only communicate by means of signs.

West of the Rocky Mountains, in British Columbia and Vancouver Island (besides southern Alaska), the Indigenous tribes make up the Nūtka-Columbian group, which is clearly different from the Indigenous peoples east of the Rocky Mountains, with significant differences in language, type, and culture. They are divided into many small separate groups—the Wakashan or Nūtkas of Vancouver Island and southwestern British Columbia, the Shahaptian or "Nez Percés" people of the Columbia basin, and the Chinūks of the lower Columbia River, the Salishan or "Flathead" group (including the Atnās) of the Fraser and Thompson Rivers and central British Columbia; and the Haida people of the Queen Charlotte Islands and the northwest coast of British Columbia. It's important to note that these groups are based on the relationships of their individual tribes in language or dialect and do not always mean that the tribes had the same customs and ways; however, they could generally communicate with each other, while if they encountered tribes from another group, the language could be so different that they could only communicate through gestures.

An Amerindian Type of British Columbia
AN AMERINDIAN TYPE OF BRITISH COLUMBIA

Sign and gesture language[9] was extraordinarily developed amongst all the Amerindian races from the Arctic Ocean to the Antarctic. Not only that, but they were quick to understand the purpose of pictures. They could draw maps in the sand to explain the geography of their country, and Europeans could often make them understand what they required by rough drawings. They themselves related many events by means of a picture language—the beginning of hieroglyphics; and in the south-eastern parts of Canada, as in the United States, these signs or pictographs were recorded in bead-shell work—the celebrated "wampum".

Sign and gesture language[9] was highly developed among all the Indigenous peoples from the Arctic Ocean to the Antarctic. Not only that, but they quickly grasped the meaning of pictures. They could draw maps in the sand to explain the geography of their land, and Europeans often communicated their needs through simple drawings. They also narrated many events using a pictorial language—the early form of hieroglyphics; and in the southeastern parts of Canada, as well as in the United States, these signs or pictographs were created in bead-shell work—the famous "wampum."

All these tribes, of course, varied very much in personal appearance, though not in disposition. The vanished Beothiks of Newfoundland are described as having been a good-looking tall people, with large black eyes and a skin so light, when washed free from dirt or paint, that the Portuguese compared them to gipsies; and the writer of Fabian's Chronicle, who saw two of them (brought back by Cabot) at Henry VII's Court, in 1499, took them for Englishmen when they were dressed in English clothes. It was these people—subsequently killed out by the British settlers on Newfoundland—who originated the term "Red Indians", or, in French, Peaux Rouges, because their skins, like those of so many other Amerindians, were painted with red ochre.

All these tribes, of course, varied quite a bit in their looks, but not in their personalities. The extinct Beothuks of Newfoundland were described as a tall and good-looking people, with large black eyes and skin that was so light, once cleaned of dirt or paint, that the Portuguese likened them to gypsies. The author of Fabian's Chronicle, who saw two of them (brought back by Cabot) at Henry VII's Court in 1499, mistook them for Englishmen when they wore English clothes. It was these people—later wiped out by British settlers in Newfoundland—who came up with the term "Red Indians," or in French, Peaux Rouges, because their skin, like that of many other Native Americans, was painted with red ochre.

Many of the British Columbian peoples made themselves artificially ugly by flattening the sides of the head. To press the skull whilst it was soft, they squeezed the heads of their children between boards; others, such as the warlike tribes of the upper Missouri, had a passion for submitting themselves to mutilation by the medicine man of the clan, in order to please the sun god. Such would submit to large strips being cut from the flesh of their shoulders, arms, or legs, or having their cheeks slashed. The result, of course, was to leave their limbs and features horribly scarred when they healed up. In some tribes, however, a young man could not obtain—or retain—a wife unless he had shown his bravery by submitting to this mutilation. Women often cut off one or more joints of their fingers to show their grief for the death of children.

Many of the peoples in British Columbia intentionally made themselves look unattractive by flattening the sides of their heads. To shape the skull while it was still soft, they would press their children's heads between boards. Others, like the warrior tribes of the upper Missouri, had a strong desire to undergo mutilation by the clan's medicine man to please the sun god. These individuals would allow large strips of flesh to be cut from their shoulders, arms, or legs, or would have their cheeks slashed. As a result, their limbs and facial features would be left horribly scarred once they healed. In some tribes, however, a young man could not get or keep a wife unless he demonstrated his bravery by undergoing this mutilation. Women often would cut off one or more joints of their fingers to express their grief for the death of their children.

In some tribes, especially of the far north-west and of the Rocky Mountains, the personal habits of men and women, or of the women only, were so filthy, and their dislike to bathing so pronounced, that they became objects of loathing to white men; in other tribes personal cleanliness was highly esteemed, especially on the seacoast of British Columbia or along the banks of the great rivers. Usually the men were better looking and better developed than the women—for one reason, because they were better fed.

In some tribes, especially in the far north-west and the Rocky Mountains, the personal hygiene of men and women, or just the women, was so poor, and their aversion to bathing so strong, that they became objects of disgust to white settlers; in other tribes, personal cleanliness was greatly valued, particularly along the coast of British Columbia or by the banks of major rivers. Generally, the men were better looking and more physically developed than the women—mainly because they had better access to food.

Here is a description by PETER GRANT—a pioneer of the North-West Company—of the Ojibwé Indians dwelling near the east end of Lake Superior at the beginning of the nineteenth century:—

Here is a description by PETER GRANT—a pioneer of the North-West Company—of the Ojibwé Indians living near the east end of Lake Superior at the start of the nineteenth century:—

"Their complexion is a whitish cast of copper colour, their hair black, long, straight, and of a very strong texture. The young men allow several locks of the hair to fall down over the face, ornamented with ribbons, silver brooches, &c. They gather up another lock from behind the head into a small clump, and wrap it up with very thin plates of silver, in which they fix the tail feathers of the eagle or any other favourite bird with the wearing of which they have distinguished themselves in war. They are very careful with their hair, anointing it with bears' oil, which gives it a smooth and glossy appearance. The teeth are of a beautiful ivory white, the cheeks rather high and prominent, the eyes black and lively. Their countenances are generally pleasant, and they might often be called handsome. The ears are pierced in infancy, and the lobe is extended to an unnatural size by suspending lead or any other heavy metal from the outer rim, which in time brings them down near the shoulder. The nose ornaments hang down half an inch, and nearly touch the upper lip.

Their skin has a light copper tone, their hair is black, long, straight, and very strong. The young men let several locks of hair fall over their faces, decorated with ribbons, silver brooches, etc. They gather another lock from the back of their heads into a small bunch and wrap it with thin plates of silver, attaching the tail feathers of an eagle or any other favored bird that signifies their achievements in battle. They take great care of their hair, applying bear oil to give it a smooth and glossy look. Their teeth are a beautiful ivory white, their cheeks are quite high and prominent, and their eyes are black and lively. Their faces are generally pleasant, and they are often considered handsome. They pierce their ears in childhood, and the lobes are stretched to an unnatural size by hanging heavy metal, like lead, from the outer rim, eventually bringing them down close to the shoulders. Nose ornaments dangle half an inch and nearly touch the upper lip.

"The men are bold, manly, and graceful in their gait, always carrying their bodies erect and easy. On the other hand, the women, by walking with the toes of their feet turned inwards, have a disagreeable and lame appearance. The men are specially fond of painting their faces and bodies with vermilion, white and blue clay, charcoal or soot mixed with a little grease or water. With this colour they daub the body, legs, and thighs in bars and patches, and take the greatest pains about painting the face, usually with red and black. Their skins are generally tattooed with figures representing the sun, stars, eagles, serpents, &c, especially objects which have appeared to them in their dreams. The women's faces are much less painted, usually a spot of red on each cheek and a circle of red round the roots of the hair or eyes."

"The men are bold, masculine, and graceful in their walk, always keeping their bodies upright and relaxed. In contrast, the women have a less appealing and awkward look because they walk with their toes pointed inward. The men especially enjoy decorating their faces and bodies with red, white, and blue paint, as well as charcoal or soot mixed with some grease or water. They apply this color in stripes and patches across their body, legs, and thighs, and pay special attention to their faces, usually using red and black. Their skin is often tattooed with designs representing the sun, stars, eagles, serpents, etc., particularly things they've seen in their dreams. The women’s faces are painted much less, typically just a red dot on each cheek and a red circle around their hairline or eyes."

Here is a summary of what Alexander Henry, sen., wrote of the Kri or Knistino Indians of Lake Athabaska about 1770:—

Here is a summary of what Alexander Henry, sen., wrote about the Kri or Knistino Indians of Lake Athabaska around 1770:—

"The men in general tattoo their bodies and arms very much. The women confine this ornamentation to the chin, having three perpendicular lines from the middle of the chin to the lip, and one or more running on each side, nearly parallel with the corner of the mouth. Their dress consists of leather; that of the men is a pair of leggings, reaching up to the hip and fastened to the girdle. Between the legs is passed a strip of woollen stuff, but when this cannot be procured they use a piece of dressed leather about nine inches broad and four feet long, whose ends are drawn through the girdle and hang down before and behind about a foot.... The shirt is of soft dressed leather, either from the prong-buck or young red deer, close about the neck and hanging to the middle of the thigh; the sleeves are of the same, loose and open under the arms to the elbows, but thence to the wrist sewed tight. The cap is commonly a piece of leather, or skin with the hair on, shaped to fit the head, and tied under the chin; the top is usually decorated with feathers or other ornament. Shoes are made of buffalo (bison) hide, dressed in the hair, and mittens of the same. Over the whole a buffalo robe is thrown, which serves as covering day and night.

The men generally tattoo their bodies and arms a lot. The women limit this decoration to their chins, with three vertical lines extending from the center of the chin to the lip, and one or more lines on each side, nearly parallel to the corners of their mouths. Their clothing is made of leather; the men wear leggings that go up to the hips and are secured to a belt. Between their legs, they use a strip of wool, but if that's unavailable, they opt for a piece of tanned leather about nine inches wide and four feet long, whose ends are threaded through the belt and hang down in front and back by about a foot. The shirt is made of soft tanned leather, either from a pronghorn or young red deer, fitting closely at the neck and hanging down to the mid-thigh. The sleeves are also made of the same material, loose and open under the arms up to the elbows, but then sewn tightly from the elbows to the wrists. The cap is usually made of leather or skin with the hair still on, shaped to fit the head, and tied under the chin; the top is often adorned with feathers or other decorations. Shoes are crafted from buffalo hide, tanned with the hair on, and mittens are made of the same material. Over everything, they wear a buffalo robe, which serves as their covering day and night.

"Such is their common dress, but on particular occasions they appear to greater advantage, having their cap, shirt, leggings, and shoes perfectly clean and white, trimmed with porcupine quills and other ingenious work of their women, who are supposed to be the most skilful hands in the country at decorations of this kind. The women's dress consists of the same materials as the men's. Their leggings do not reach above the knee, and are gathered below that joint; their shoes always lack decoration. The shift or body garment reaches down to the calf, where it is generally fringed and trimmed with quillwork; the upper part is fastened over the shoulders by strips of leather; a flap or cape hangs down about a foot before and behind, and is ornamented with quillwork and fringe. This covering is quite loose, but tied around the waist with a belt of stiff parchment fastened on the side, where also some ornaments are suspended. The sleeves are detached from the body garment; from the wrist to the elbow they are sewed, but thence to the shoulder they are open underneath and drawn up to the neck, where they are fastened across the breast and back.

"That's their typical clothing, but on special occasions, they look even better, with their hats, shirts, leggings, and shoes all clean and white, decorated with porcupine quills and other creative work done by the women, who are considered the most skilled in the country at this kind of decoration. The women's clothing is made from the same materials as the men's. Their leggings stop just above the knee and are gathered below that joint; their shoes are always plain. Their dress or body garment reaches down to the calf, usually fringed and trimmed with quillwork; the top part is held up by leather straps over the shoulders; a flap or cape hangs about a foot in front and back, decorated with quillwork and fringe. This garment is quite loose but is cinched at the waist with a stiff parchment belt, fastened at the side where some ornaments also hang. The sleeves are separate from the body garment; they're sewn from the wrist to the elbow, but from there to the shoulder, they are open underneath and gathered up to the neck, where they are fastened across the chest and back."

"Their ornaments are two or three coils of brass wire twisted around the rim of each ear, in which incisions are made for that purpose; blue beads, brass rings, quillwork, and fringe occasionally answer. Vermilion (a red clay) is much used by the women to paint the face.

"Their jewelry consists of two or three coils of brass wire twisted around the edges of each ear, with cuts made for that purpose; blue beads, brass rings, quillwork, and fringe sometimes serve as well. Women frequently use vermilion (a red clay) to paint their faces."

"Their hair is generally parted on the crown and fastened behind each ear in large knots, from which are suspended bunches of blue beads or other ingenious work of their own. The men adjust their hair in various forms; some have it parted on top and tied in a tail on each side, while others make one long queue which hangs down behind, and around which is twisted a strip of otter skin or dressed buffalo entrails. This tail is frequently increased in thickness and length by adding false hair, but others allow it to flow loose naturally. Combs are seldom used by the men, and they never smear the hair with grease, but red earth is sometimes put upon it. White earth daubed over the hair generally denotes mourning. The young men sometimes have a bunch of hair on the crown, about the size of a small teacup, and nearly in the shape of that vessel upside down, to which they fasten various ornaments of feathers, quillwork, ermine tails, &c. Red and white earth and charcoal are much used in their toilets; with the former they usually daub their robes and other garments, some red and others white. The women comb their hair and use grease on it."

"Their hair is usually parted at the crown and tied behind each ear in large knots, from which hang clusters of blue beads or other creative work. The men style their hair in different ways; some part it on top and tie it into a tail on each side, while others create one long queue that hangs down the back, often wrapped in a strip of otter skin or dressed buffalo entrails. This tail is often thickened and lengthened with added false hair, but some let it flow naturally. Men rarely use combs and never apply grease to their hair, though they sometimes sprinkle it with red earth. White earth on the hair usually signifies mourning. Young men might sport a bunch of hair on top, about the size of a small teacup and nearly shaped like that vessel upside down, to which they attach various ornaments like feathers, quillwork, and ermine tails. They frequently use red and white earth and charcoal for their grooming; they typically coat their robes and other garments in either red or white. The women comb their hair and apply grease to it."

The Slave Indians (a tribe of the Athapaskan family) tattooed their cheeks with charcoal inserted under the skin, also daubed their bodies, robes, and garments profusely with red earth (generally called, in the text of travellers, vermilion), but they had another favourite pigment, procured from the regions on the west of the Rocky Mountains, some kind of graphite, like the lead of lead pencils. With this they marked their faces in black lead after red earth has been applied, and thus gave themselves a ghastly and savage appearance. Their dress consists of a leather shirt trimmed with human hair and porcupine-quill work, and leggings of leather. Their shoes and caps were made of bison leather, with the hair outside. Their necklaces were strings of grizzly-bear claws, and a "buffalo" robe was thrown over all occasionally. Some of them occasionally had quite light skins—when free of dirt or paint—and grey eyes, and their hair, instead of being black, was greyish-brown. These last features (grey eyes and brown hair) characterized many individuals among the northern British-Columbian tribes.

The Slave Indians (a tribe from the Athapaskan family) tattooed their cheeks with charcoal inserted under their skin, and they also applied red earth all over their bodies, robes, and clothes (usually referred to by travelers as vermilion). They had another favorite pigment from regions west of the Rocky Mountains, a type of graphite similar to pencil lead. With this, they marked their faces in black after applying the red earth, creating a ghastly and savage look. Their clothing included a leather shirt trimmed with human hair and porcupine quills, along with leather leggings. Their shoes and caps were made of bison leather, with the hair on the outside. Their necklaces were made of grizzly bear claws, and they occasionally wore a "buffalo" robe over everything. Some of them had fairly light skin—when clean of dirt or paint—and grey eyes, and their hair was a greyish-brown instead of black. These characteristics (grey eyes and brown hair) were common among many individuals from the northern British Columbian tribes.

The Naskwapis of inland Labrador—allied in speech to the Kris and the Montagnais, but in blood to the Eskimo—are described as above the middle size in height, slender, and long-legged, their cheeks being very prominent, eyes black, nose rather flat, mouth large, lips thick, teeth white, hair rough and black, and the complexion a yellowish "frog" colour. They were dressed in elaborate and warm garments made of reindeer skin. The ordinary covering for the head of the men was the skin of a bear's head. "Thus accoutred, with the addition of a bow and quiver, a stone axe, and a bone knife, a Naskwapi man possessed no small degree of pride and self-importance" (James M'Kenzie).

The Naskwapis of inland Labrador—connected in language to the Kris and the Montagnais, but genetically related to the Eskimo—are described as being slightly above average height, slender, and long-legged, with very prominent cheeks, black eyes, a rather flat nose, a large mouth, thick lips, white teeth, rough black hair, and a yellowish "frog" skin tone. They wore elaborate and warm clothing made of reindeer skin. The typical head covering for men was the skin of a bear's head. "Thus equipped, with the addition of a bow and quiver, a stone axe, and a bone knife, a Naskwapi man had a notable sense of pride and self-importance" (James M'Kenzie).

The handsomest tribes of Amerindians encountered by the Canadian pioneers seem to have been the Ojibwés of Lake Superior, the Iroquois south of the St. Lawrence, and the Mandans of the upper Missouri.

The most striking tribes of Native Americans that the Canadian pioneers came across appear to be the Ojibwe of Lake Superior, the Iroquois south of the St. Lawrence, and the Mandan of the upper Missouri.

Until well on in the nineteenth century none of the Canadian Amerindians were particular about wearing clothes if the weather was hot. The men, especially, were either quite oblivious of what was seemly in clothing (except perhaps the Iroquois) or thought it necessary to go naked into battle, or to remove all clothing before taking part in religious ceremonies.

Until well into the nineteenth century, none of the Canadian Indigenous peoples were very concerned about wearing clothes if the weather was hot. The men, in particular, were either completely unaware of what was appropriate to wear (except maybe the Iroquois) or felt it was essential to go naked into battle or to strip off all their clothing before participating in religious ceremonies.

It is commonly supposed that the Red Man was a rather glum person, seldom seen to smile and averse to showing any emotion. That is not the impression one derives from the many pen portraits of Amerindians in the journals of the great pioneers. Here, on the contrary, you see the natives laughing, smiling, kissing eagerly their wives and children after an absence, displaying exuberant and cordial friendship towards the white man who treated them well, having love quarrels and fits of raging jealousy, moods of deep remorse after a fight, touching devotion to their comrades or chiefs, and above all to their children. They are most emotional, indeed, and, apart from this chapter you will find frequent descriptions of how they wept at times over the remembrance of their dead relations and friends.

It’s commonly believed that Native Americans were pretty serious people, rarely smiling and not showing much emotion. However, that’s not the impression you get from the many descriptions of them in the journals of the great pioneers. On the contrary, you see the natives laughing, smiling, and eagerly embracing their wives and children after being apart. They show warm and friendly feelings towards the white men who treated them well, have love conflicts and moments of intense jealousy, experience deep regret after fights, and display heartfelt loyalty to their friends or leaders, especially to their children. They are very emotional, and throughout this chapter, you'll find numerous accounts of how they wept at times while remembering their deceased relatives and friends.

Hearne remarked, in 1772, that when two parties of Athapaska Indians met, the ceremonies which passed between them were very formal. They would advance within twenty or thirty yards of each other, make a full halt, and then sit or lie down on the ground, not speaking for some minutes. At length one of them, generally an elderly man, broke silence by acquainting the other party with every misfortune that had befallen him and his companions from the last time they had seen or heard of each other, including all deaths and other calamities which had happened to any other Indians during the same period. When he finished, another orator, belonging to the other party, related in like manner all the bad news that had come to his knowledge. If these orations contained any news that in the least affected either party, it would not be long before some of them began to sigh and sob, and soon after to break out into a loud cry, which was generally accompanied by most of the grown persons of both sexes; and sometimes it was common to hear them all—men, women, and children—joining in one universal howl. When the first transports of grief had subsided, they advanced by degrees, and both parties mixed with each other, the men with the men, the women with the women. They then passed round tobacco pipes very freely, and the conversation became general. They had now nothing but good news left to tell, and in less than half an hour probably nothing but smiles and cheerfulness would be seen on every face.

Hearne noted, in 1772, that when two groups of Athapaska Indians met, their ceremonies were very formal. They would come within twenty or thirty yards of each other, come to a complete stop, and then sit or lie down on the ground without speaking for several minutes. Eventually, one of them, usually an older man, would break the silence by sharing every misfortune that had happened to him and his companions since their last meeting, including all deaths and other tragedies that had affected any other Indians during that time. Once he finished, another speaker from the other group would similarly recount all the bad news he knew. If these speeches included any news that affected either group, it wouldn’t take long before some of them started to sigh and cry, and soon after, they would all break out into loud wails, usually with many of the adults, both men and women, joining in; sometimes, you could hear everyone—men, women, and children—participating in one collective howl. As the first waves of grief subsided, they would gradually approach each other, mixing men with men and women with women. They would then pass around tobacco pipes freely, and the conversation would become lively. By then, they had nothing but good news left to share, and in less than half an hour, smiles and happiness would be evident on every face.

One direction in which the Amerindians did not shine was in their treatment of women. This perhaps was worse than in other uncivilized races. Woman was very badly used, except perhaps for the first year of courtship and marriage. Courtship began by the young man throwing sticks at the girl[10] who pleased his fancy, and if she responded he asked her in marriage. But not long after she had become a mother she sank into the position of a household drudge and beast of burden. For example, amongst the Beaver Indians, an Athapaskan tribe of the far north-west, it is related by Alexander Mackenzie that the women are permanently crippled and injured in physique by the hardships they have to undergo. "Having few dogs for transport in that country, the women alone perform that labour which is allotted to beasts of burden in other countries. It is not uncommon whilst the men carry nothing but a gun, that their wives and daughters follow with such weighty burdens that if they lay them down they cannot replace them; nor will the men deign to perform the service of hoisting them on to their backs. So that during their journeys they are frequently obliged to lean against a tree for a small degree of temporary relief. When they arrive at the place which their tyrants have chosen for their encampment, they arrange the tent in a few minutes by forming a curve of poles meeting at the top and expanding into a circle of twelve or fifteen feet in diameter at the bottom, covered with dressed skins of the moose sewn together. During these preparations the men sit down quietly to the enjoyment of their pipes, if they happen to have any tobacco."

One area where the Native Americans struggled was in how they treated women. This was possibly worse than in other non-civilized groups. Women were treated very poorly, except maybe during the first year of dating and marriage. Courtship started with a young man throwing sticks at the girl who caught his eye, and if she responded, he proposed to her. But not long after she became a mother, she fell into the role of a household servant and laborer. For instance, among the Beaver Indians, an Athapaskan tribe from the far northwest, Alexander Mackenzie noted that the women suffer permanent physical damage due to the harsh conditions they endure. "Having few dogs for transport in that region, the women alone do the work typically done by pack animals in other places. It’s common for men to carry nothing but a gun while their wives and daughters follow with such heavy loads that if they set them down, they can’t lift them again; nor will the men stoop to help put them back on their backs. So, during their travels, they often have to lean against a tree for a bit of temporary relief. When they reach the spot their leaders have chosen for their campsite, they quickly set up the tent by forming a curve of poles that meet at the top and spread into a circle twelve to fifteen feet in diameter at the bottom, covered with sewn moose hides. While they’re doing this, the men sit back, enjoying their pipes, if they have any tobacco."

Among the Ojibwé and Huron Indians of the Great Lakes the men sometimes obliged their wives to bring up and nourish young bears instead of their own children, so that the bears might eventually be fattened for eating. If food was scarce, the women went without before even the male slaves of the tribe were unprovided with food. Women might never eat in the society of males, not even if these males were slaves or prisoners of war. If food was very scarce, the husband as likely as not killed and ate a wife; perhaps did this before slaying and eating a valuable dog. (On the other hand, Mackenzie instances the case of a woman among the Slave Indians who, in a winter of great scarcity, managed to kill and devour her husband and several relations.) So terrible was the ill-treatment of the women in some tribes that these wretched beings sometimes committed suicide to end their tortures. Even in this, however, they were not let off lightly, for the Siou men invented as a tenet of their religion the saying that "Women who hang themselves are the most miserable of all wretches in the other world".

Among the Ojibwé and Huron Indians of the Great Lakes, men sometimes forced their wives to raise and care for young bears instead of their own children, so they could eventually fatten the bears for food. If food was scarce, the women went without before the male slaves of the tribe even had to go without. Women were never allowed to eat in the presence of men, not even if those men were slaves or war prisoners. If food was extremely limited, a husband might very well kill and eat his wife; he might do this before killing and eating a valuable dog. (On the other hand, Mackenzie mentions a woman among the Slave Indians who, during a winter of severe scarcity, managed to kill and eat her husband and several relatives.) The mistreatment of women in some tribes was so severe that these unfortunate women sometimes took their own lives to escape their suffering. Even in this, however, they faced further cruelty, as Siou men developed a religious belief stating that "Women who hang themselves are the most miserable of all wretches in the afterlife."

On the other hand, the kind treatment of children by fathers as well as mothers is an "Indian" trait commented on by writer after writer. Here is a typical description by Alexander Henry the Elder, concerning the children of the Ojibwé tribe:

On the other hand, the caring attitude of fathers and mothers towards their children is a quality often noted by various writers, described as an "Indian" trait. Here’s a typical account by Alexander Henry the Elder about the children of the Ojibwé tribe:

"As soon as the boys begin to run about, they are provided with bows and arrows, and acquire, as it were 'by instinct', an astonishing dexterity in shooting birds, squirrels, butterflies, &c. Hunting in miniature may be justly said to comprise the whole of their education and childish diversion. Such as excel in this kind of exercise are sure of being particularly distinguished by their parents, and seldom punished for any misbehaviour, but, on the contrary, indulged in every degree of excess and caprice. I have often seen grown-up boys of this description, when punished for some serious fault, strike their father and spit in his face, calling him 'bad dog', or 'old woman', and, sometimes, carrying their insolence so far as to threaten to stab or shoot him, and, what is rather singular, these too-indulgent parents seem to encourage such unnatural liberties, and even glory in such conduct from their favourite children. I heard them boast of having sons who promised at an early age to inherit such bold and independent sentiments.... Children of nine or ten years of age not only enjoy the confidence of the men, but are generally considered as companions and very deliberately join in their conversations."

"As soon as the boys start running around, they are given bows and arrows and seem to pick up an amazing skill for shooting birds, squirrels, butterflies, etc., almost instinctively. Miniature hunting can be rightly seen as the entire basis of their education and childhood fun. Those who excel in this activity are sure to be especially recognized by their parents and are rarely punished for bad behavior; instead, they are indulged in every kind of excess and whim. I've often seen older boys in this situation, when punished for a serious mistake, strike their father and spit in his face, calling him 'bad dog' or 'old woman,' and sometimes even going so far as to threaten to stab or shoot him. Interestingly, these overly indulgent parents seem to encourage such outrageous behavior and even take pride in it when it comes from their favorite children. I’ve heard them brag about having sons who promise to grow up with such bold and independent mindsets... Children of nine or ten years old not only earn the trust of the adults but are generally seen as companions and actively join in their conversations."

When death overtook anybody the grief of the female relations was carried to great excess. They not only cut their hair, cried and howled, but they would sometimes, with the utmost deliberation, employ some sharp instrument to separate the nail from the finger and then force back the flesh beyond the first joint, which they immediately amputated. "Many of the old women have so often repeated this ceremony that they have not a complete finger remaining on either hand" (Mackenzie).

When someone died, the female relatives showed extreme grief. They not only cut their hair and cried, but sometimes, very deliberately, used a sharp instrument to separate their nails from their fingers and then pushed back the flesh beyond the first joint, which they would then amputate. "Many of the old women have repeated this ceremony so often that they don't have a complete finger left on either hand" (Mackenzie).

Caribou Swimming a River
CARIBOU SWIMMING A RIVER

The Amerindians of North America were religious and superstitious, and had a firm faith in a world of spiritual agencies within or outside the material world around us. Most of them believed in the existence of "fairies",—woodland, earth, mountain, or water spirits—whom they declared they could see from time to time in human semblance. Or such spirit or demi-god might assume for a time or permanently the form of an animal. To all such spirits of earth, air, and water, or to the sacred animals they inhabited, sacrifices would be offered and prayers made. Great importance was attributed to dreams and visions. They accustomed themselves to make long fasts, so that they might become light-headed and see visions, or hear spirit voices in a trance. To prepare their minds for this state they would go four or five days without food, and even abstain from drinking.

The Native Americans of North America were spiritual and superstitious, having a strong belief in a world filled with spiritual forces both within and beyond the physical world. Most of them believed in the existence of "fairies"—spirits of the woods, earth, mountains, or water—who they claimed they could occasionally see in human form. Or these spirits or demi-gods might take on the shape of an animal either temporarily or permanently. They offered sacrifices and said prayers to these spirits of earth, air, and water, or to the sacred animals they inhabited. Dreams and visions were considered very important. They often engaged in long fasting to become light-headed and experience visions or hear the voices of spirits during trances. To prepare themselves for this state, they would go without food for four or five days and sometimes even refrain from drinking.

Undoubtedly their "medicine men" developed great mesmeric powers, and this force, combined with rather clumsy juggling and ventriloquism, enabled them to perform a semblance of "miracles". The Iroquois offered much opposition to Christianity, thinking it would tame their warriors too quickly and affect their national independence; but by the greater part of the Amerindians the message of the Gospel brought by the French priests was eagerly received, and the converts became many and most sincere. Their reverence for the missionaries and belief in them was increased when they saw how effectually they were able to protect them from too-rapacious white adventurers, fierce soldiers, and unscrupulous traders.

Undoubtedly, their "medicine men" developed impressive hypnotic abilities, and this power, combined with somewhat clumsy juggling and ventriloquism,

The Miamis of Lake Michigan held the symbol of the cross in great respect. A young Frenchman who was trading with them got into a passion and drew his sword to avenge himself for a theft committed on his goods. The Miama chieftain, to appease him, showed him the cross, which was planted in the ground at the end of his lodge, and said to him: "Behold the tree of the Black Gown; he teaches us to pray and not to lose our temper,"—of course, referring to the missionary in the black gown who had been amongst them. Before the cross was planted here these Miamis kept in their houses one or more bogies, to which they appealed in times of distress or sickness. One of these was the skull of the bison with its horns. Another was the skin of the bear raised on a pole in the middle of the hut and retaining the head, which was usually painted green. The women sometimes died of terror from the stories told them by the men about these idols, and the Jesuits did a great deal of good by getting them abolished in many places.

The Miamis of Lake Michigan held the symbol of the cross in high regard. A young Frenchman who was trading with them got angry and drew his sword to take revenge for a theft of his goods. To calm him down, the Miami chief showed him the cross planted in the ground at the end of his lodge and said to him, "Look at the tree of the Black Gown; he teaches us to pray and not to lose our cool,"—referring to the missionary in the black gown who had been with them. Before the cross was put up here, these Miamis kept one or more idols in their homes, which they turned to in times of trouble or illness. One of these was the skull of a bison with its horns. Another was a bear skin raised on a pole in the middle of the hut, still attached to the head, which was usually painted green. The women sometimes died from fear from the stories the men told about these idols, and the Jesuits did a lot of good by helping to get rid of them in many places.

The Supreme Being of the Eskimos was a goddess rather than a god: a mother of all things who lived under the sea. On the other hand, most of the Amerindian tribes believed in one great God of the Sky—Manito, as He was called by the peoples of Algonkin stock, Nainubushan by the Siou and their kindred. This Being was usually kindly disposed towards man; but they also (in most cases) believed in a bad Manito, who was responsible for most of the harm in the world. But sometimes the Great Manito was capricious, or apparently made many mistakes which he had afterwards to rectify. Thus the Siou tribes of Assiniboia believed that the Supreme Being (whom they called Eth-tom-é) first created mankind and all living things, and then, through some oversight or mistake, caused a great flood to cover the earth's surface. So in a hurry he was obliged to make a very large canoe of twigs and branches, and into this he put a pair of every kind of bird and beast, besides a family of human beings, who were thus saved from drowning, and began the world afresh when the waters subsided. This legend was something like the story of Noah's ark, but seems in some form or another to have existed in the mind of all the North-American peoples before the arrival of Christian missionaries. Much the same story was told by the Ojibwés about the Great Hare-God, Nainiboju.

The Supreme Being of the Eskimos was seen as a goddess rather than a god: a mother of all things who lived beneath the sea. In contrast, most Amerindian tribes believed in one great God of the Sky—Manito, as he was called by the Algonquin people, and Nainubushan by the Siou and their relatives. This Being was generally kind to humans, but they also (in most cases) believed in a bad Manito, who caused most of the world's harm. However, sometimes the Great Manito was unpredictable or seemingly made many mistakes that he later had to fix. For instance, the Siou tribes of Assiniboia believed that the Supreme Being (whom they called Eth-tom-é) first created mankind and all living creatures, and then, due to some oversight or error, caused a massive flood to cover the earth. So in a rush, he had to make a huge canoe out of twigs and branches and placed a pair of every kind of bird and beast in it, along with a family of humans, who were saved from drowning and began the world anew once the waters receded. This legend is somewhat similar to the story of Noah's ark but seems to have existed in one form or another among all North American peoples before the arrival of Christian missionaries. A similar tale was told by the Ojibwés about the Great Hare-God, Nainiboju.

The Siou and the Ojibwé (and other tribes also) believed that after death the soul lay for a time in a trance, and then found itself floating towards a River which must be crossed. Beyond the River lay the Happy Hunting Grounds, the Elysian fields; but to oppose the weary soul anxious to reach this paradise there ramped on the other side a huge, flaming-red bison bull, if it had been ordained by the Great Spirit that the soul's time was not yet come, this red bison pushed it back, and the soul was obliged to re-enter the body, which then awoke from its trance or swoon and resumed its worldly activities.

The Siou and the Ojibwé (along with other tribes) believed that after death, the soul would lie in a trance for a while, and then would find itself floating toward a River that needed to be crossed. Beyond the River were the Happy Hunting Grounds, the Elysian fields; however, to block the weary soul eager to reach this paradise, a massive, flaming-red bison bull stood on the other side. If the Great Spirit had decided that the soul's time had not yet come, this red bison would push it back, forcing the soul to re-enter the body, which would then wake up from its trance or swoon and continue its earthly activities.

Suicide was regarded as the most heinous of crimes. Any man killing himself deliberately, fell into the river of the ghost world and was never heard of again, while women who hanged themselves "were regarded as the most miserable of all wretches in the other world".

Suicide was seen as the worst of crimes. Any man who deliberately took his own life would be cast into the realm of ghosts and would never be heard from again, while women who hanged themselves "were considered the most unfortunate of all outcasts in the afterlife."

Their belief in spirits—even ancestral spirits—taking up an abode in the bodies of beasts, birds, or reptiles, or even in plants or stones, caused them to view with respect of a superstitious kind many natural objects. Some one thing—a beast, bird, reptile, fish, plant, or strange stone had been fixed on as the abode of his tutelary spirit by some father of a family. The family grew into a clan, and the clan to a tribe, and the object sacred in the eyes of its father and founder became its "totem", crest, or symbol. As a rule, whatever thing was the totem of the individual or the clan was held sacred in their eyes, and, if it was an animal, was not killed, or, if killed, not eaten. Many of the northern Indians would refrain from killing the wolf or the glutton, or if they did so, or did it by accident, they would refuse to skin the animal. The elder people amongst the Athapaskan Indians, in Hearne's day, would reprove the young folk for "speaking disrespectfully" of different beasts and birds.

Their belief in spirits—even ancestral spirits—living in the bodies of animals, birds, reptiles, or even in plants or stones, led them to respect many natural objects in a superstitious way. One particular thing—a beast, bird, reptile, fish, plant, or unusual stone—was chosen as the home of a guardian spirit by a family patriarch. The family expanded into a clan, and the clan into a tribe, making the once-sacred object in the eyes of its founder their "totem," crest, or symbol. Typically, whatever was the totem of the individual or clan was considered sacred, and if it was an animal, it was not killed, or if it was killed, it was not eaten. Many northern Indians would avoid killing the wolf or the wolverine, or if they did, even accidentally, they would refuse to skin the animal. The older members of the Athapaskan Indians, during Hearne's time, would scold the younger ones for "speaking disrespectfully" about different animals and birds.

Their ideas of medicine and surgery were much mixed up with a belief in magic and in the mysterious powers of their "medicine men". This person, who might be of either sex, certainly knew a few simple medicines to be made from herbs or decoctions of bark, but for the most part he attempted to cure the sick or injured by blowing lustily on the part affected or, more wisely, by massage. A universal cure, however, for all fevers and mild ailments was sweating. Sweating huts were built in nearly every settlement. They were covered over in a way to exclude air as much as possible. The inside was heated with red-hot stones and glowing embers, on to which from time to time water was poured to fill the place with steam. The Amerindians not only went through these Turkish baths to cure small ailments but also with the idea of clearing the intelligence and as a fitting preliminary to negotiations—for peace, or alliance, or even for courtship. In many tribes if a young "brave" arrived with proposals of marriage for a man's daughter he was invited to enter the sweating house with her father, and discuss the bargain calmly over perspiration and the tobacco pipe.

Their concepts of medicine and surgery were closely tied to a belief in magic and the mysterious abilities of their "medicine men." This individual, who could be either male or female, certainly knew a few basic remedies made from herbs or bark infusions, but mostly they treated the sick or injured by blowing forcefully on the affected area or, more effectively, through massage. A common remedy for all fevers and mild issues was sweating. Sweating huts were constructed in nearly every settlement. They were designed to be as airtight as possible. The inside was heated with red-hot stones and glowing embers, and water was occasionally poured over them to create steam. The Amerindians not only used these sweat baths to treat minor ailments but also believed they helped clear the mind and served as a suitable way to prepare for discussions—whether for peace, alliances, or even courtship. In many tribes, if a young "brave" arrived with marriage proposals for a man's daughter, he was invited to join her father in the sweating house, where they could calmly discuss the arrangement while sweating it out and sharing a tobacco pipe.

Tobacco smoking indeed was almost a religious ceremony, as well as a remedy for certain maladies or states of mind. The "pipe of peace" has become proverbial. Nevertheless tobacco was still unknown in the eighteenth century to many of the Pacific-coast and far-north-west tribes, as to the primitive Eskimo. It was not a very old practice in the Canadian Dominion when Europeans first arrived there, though it appeared to be one of the most characteristic actions of these red-skinned savages in the astonished eyes of the first pioneers. They used pipes for smoking, however, long before tobacco came among them, certain berries taking the place of tobacco.

Tobacco smoking was almost like a religious ritual and served as a remedy for various illnesses or mental states. The "pipe of peace" has become a well-known saying. However, in the eighteenth century, many tribes on the Pacific coast and in the far northwest, including the primitive Eskimos, were still unfamiliar with tobacco. When Europeans first arrived in Canada, smoking wasn't a very old practice there, even though it seemed to be one of the most distinctive behaviors of these indigenous people in the eyes of the first settlers. They had been using pipes to smoke long before tobacco was introduced, using certain berries instead.

The Amerindians of the southern parts of Canada and British Columbia were more or less settled peoples of towns or villages, of fixed homes to which they returned at all seasons of the year, however far afield they might range for warfare, trade, or hunting. But the more northern tribes were nomads: people shifting their abode from place to place in pursuit of game or trade. Unlike the people of the south and west (though these only grew potatoes) they were not agriculturists: the only vegetable element in their food was the wild rice of the marshes, the sweet-tasting layer between the bark and the wood of certain trees, and the fruits or fungi of the forest or the lichen growing on the rocks. Though these people might in summertime build some hasty wigwam of boughs and moss, their ordinary dwelling place was a tent.

The Indigenous peoples of southern Canada and British Columbia were mostly settled communities living in towns or villages, with permanent homes they returned to throughout the year, no matter how far they traveled for warfare, trade, or hunting. In contrast, the more northern tribes were nomadic, moving from place to place in search of game or trade. Unlike those in the south and west, who mainly grew potatoes, they didn’t practice agriculture; their diet consisted mostly of wild rice from the marshes, the sweet-tasting inner bark of certain trees, and the fruits, fungi, or lichens found in the forest and on the rocks. While these communities might throw together a quick wigwam made of branches and moss in the summer, their typical homes were tents.

The Wood Indians, or Opimitish Ininiwak, of the Athapaskan group (writes Alexander Henry, sen.) had no fixed villages; and their lodges or huts were so rudely fashioned as to afford them very inadequate protection against the weather. The greater part of their year was spent in travelling from place to place in search of food. The animal on which they chiefly depended was the hare—a most prominent animal in Amerindian economy and tradition. This they took in springes. From its skin they made coverings with much ingenuity, cutting it into narrow strips and weaving this into the shape of a blanket, which was of a very warm and agreeable quality.

The Wood Indians, or Opimitish Ininiwak, from the Athapaskan group (writes Alexander Henry, sen.) didn’t have permanent villages, and their lodges or huts were so poorly made that they offered very little protection against the weather. Most of their year was spent traveling from place to place to find food. The main animal they relied on was the hare—a key part of Amerindian culture and tradition. They caught them using springes. From the hare's skin, they cleverly crafted coverings by cutting it into narrow strips and weaving it into a blanket shape, which was very warm and comfortable.

The Naskwapi Algonkins of inland Labrador were savages that led a wandering life through the bare, flat parts of that country, subsisting chiefly upon flesh, and clothing themselves with the skin of the caribou, which they caught in pitfalls or shot with the bow and arrow. "Very few sights, I believe, can be more distressing to the feelings of humanity than a Labrador savage, surrounded by his wife and five or six small children, half-famished with cold and hunger in a hole dug out of the snow and screened from the inclemency of the weather by the branches of the trees. Their whole furniture is a kettle hung over the fire, not for the purpose of cooking victuals, but for melting snow" (James M'Kenzie).

The Naskwapi Algonkins of inland Labrador were people who lived a nomadic lifestyle across the open, flat areas of that region, mainly surviving on meat and wearing the skin of caribou, which they caught in traps or hunted with bows and arrows. "Very few sights, I believe, can be more distressing to the feelings of humanity than a Labrador person, surrounded by his wife and five or six small children, half-starved from the cold and hunger in a hole dug out of the snow and sheltered from the harsh weather by tree branches. Their only belongings are a kettle hanging over the fire, not for cooking food, but for melting snow" (James M'Kenzie).

A description of the tents of the Kris or Knistino (Algonkins of the Athabaska region), written by Alexander Henry, sen., applies with very little difference to all the other tribes dwelling to the east of the Rocky Mountains.[11]

A description of the tents of the Kris or Knistino (Algonkins of the Athabaska region), written by Alexander Henry, senior, is very similar for all the other tribes living to the east of the Rocky Mountains.[11]

These tents were of dressed leather, erected with poles, generally seventeen in number, of which two were tied together about three feet from the top. The first two poles being erected and set apart at the base, the others were placed against them in a slanting position, meeting at the top, so that they all formed nearly a circle, which was then covered with the leather. This consisted of ten to fifteen dressed skins of the bison, moose, or red deer, well sewed together and nicely cut to fit the conical figure of the poles, with an opening above, to let out smoke and admit the light. From this opening down to the door the two edges of the tent were brought close together and well secured with wooden pegs about six inches long, leaving for the door an oval aperture about two feet wide and three feet high, below which the edges were secured with similar pegs. This small entrance did well enough for the natives, who would be brought up to it from infancy, but a European might be puzzled to get through, as a piece of hide stretched upon a frame of the same shape as the door, but somewhat larger, hung outside, and must be first raised by the hand of the incomer.

These tents were made of tanned leather, set up with poles, usually seventeen in number, with two tied together about three feet from the top. After raising the first two poles and spacing them apart at the base, the others were angled against them, meeting at the top, forming nearly a circle, which was then covered with leather. This cover was made from ten to fifteen tanned hides of bison, moose, or red deer, sewn together and cut to fit the conical shape of the poles, with a vent at the top to let out smoke and bring in light. From this vent down to the door, the edges of the tent were brought together and secured with wooden pegs about six inches long, leaving an oval opening for the door that was about two feet wide and three feet high, with the edges below similarly secured with pegs. This small entrance worked fine for the natives, who grew up using it, but a European might struggle to get through, as a piece of hide stretched over a frame, matching the shape of the door but slightly larger, hung outside and had to be lifted by hand to enter.

Such tents were usually spacious, measuring twenty feet in diameter. The fire was always made in the centre, around which the occupants generally placed a range of stones to prevent the ashes from scattering and to keep the fire compact. New tents were perfectly white; some of them were painted with red and black figures. These devices were generally derived from the dreams of the Amerindians, being some mythical monster or other hideous animal, whose description had been handed down from their ancestors. A large camp of such tents, pitched regularly on a level plain, had a fine effect at a distance, especially when numerous bands of horses were seen feeding in all directions.

Such tents were typically spacious, about twenty feet in diameter. The fire was always set up in the center, around which the occupants usually arranged a circle of stones to keep the ashes from blowing away and to keep the fire contained. New tents were perfectly white; some were decorated with red and black designs. These patterns were often inspired by the dreams of the Native Americans, depicting some mythical creature or another frightening animal, whose descriptions had been passed down from their ancestors. A large group of these tents, set up neatly on a flat plain, looked impressive from a distance, especially when many bands of horses were seen grazing in all directions.

The "lodges" or long houses made of poles, fir branches, moss, &c., wherein, among the Iroquois, Algonkin, and Siou peoples, several families made a common habitation, are described here and there in the course of the narrative. The houses of the coast tribes of British Columbia were bigger, more elaborate, and permanent, and in this region the natives had acquired some idea of carpentry, and had learnt to make planks of wood by splitting with wedges or hewing with adzes.

The "lodges" or longhouses made of poles, fir branches, moss, etc., where several families among the Iroquois, Algonquin, and Sioux people lived together, are mentioned throughout the narrative. The houses of the coastal tribes in British Columbia were larger, more detailed, and more permanent. In this area, the natives had developed some carpentry skills and learned to make wooden planks by splitting them with wedges or hewing them with adzes.

One of these British Columbian houses was measured, and found to be seventy feet long by twenty-five feet wide; the entrance in the gable end was cut through a plank five and a half feet wide, and nearly oval. A board suspended on the outside answered for a door; on the other side of the broad plank was rudely carved a large painted figure of a man, between whose legs was the passage. But other houses on the Pacific coast, visited by Cook or Vancouver, are said to have been large enough to accommodate seven hundred people. These houses of the Pacific coast region were exceedingly filthy, sturgeon and salmon being strewn about in every direction. The men inhabiting them were often disgusting in their behaviour, while the women are declared to have been "devoid of shame or decency".

One of these British Columbian houses was measured and found to be seventy feet long and twenty-five feet wide; the entrance in the gable end was cut through a plank five and a half feet wide, and nearly oval. A board hanging on the outside served as a door; on the other side of the wide plank, there was a rough carving of a large painted figure of a man, with the passage between his legs. However, other houses along the Pacific coast, visited by Cook or Vancouver, were said to be large enough to accommodate seven hundred people. These houses in the Pacific coast region were extremely dirty, with sturgeon and salmon scattered everywhere. The men living there often had disgusting behavior, while the women were described as being "devoid of shame or decency."

According to Mackenzie, such habitations swarmed with fleas, and even the ground round about them "was alive with this vermin". The Alexander Henrys, both uncle and nephew, complain of the flea plague (partly due to the multitude of dogs) in every Indian village or encampment.

According to Mackenzie, these places were filled with fleas, and even the ground around them "was alive with this vermin." The Alexander Henrys, both uncle and nephew, complained about the flea problem (partly because of the large number of dogs) in every Indian village or camp.

The domestic implements of the Amerindians were few. Pottery seems to have been unknown amongst the northern tribes to the east and north of the Mississippi valley, but earthen jars and vessels were made by the Dakota-Siou group in the valley of the Mississippi. Amongst these agricultural Indians the hoe was made of a buffalo's blade bone fastened to a crooked wooden handle. The Ojibwés manufactured chisels out of beavers' teeth. The Eskimo and some of the neighbouring Amerindian tribes used oblong "kettles" of stone—simply great blocks of stone chipped, rubbed, and hollowed out into receptacles, with handles at both ends. (It is suggested that they borrowed the idea of these stone vessels for cooking from the early Norse settlers of Greenland; see p. 18.)

The everyday tools of the Native Americans were limited. Pottery didn’t seem to exist among the northern tribes east and north of the Mississippi River, but the Dakota-Siou group in the Mississippi Valley created earthen jars and vessels. Among these farming tribes, the hoe was made from a buffalo's bone blade attached to a bent wooden handle. The Ojibwe made chisels from beaver teeth. The Eskimo and some nearby Native American tribes used rectangular "kettles" made of stone—essentially large stone blocks that were chipped, smoothed, and hollowed out into containers with handles at both ends. (It’s suggested that they got the idea for these stone cooking vessels from the early Norse settlers of Greenland; see p. 18.)

The Amerindians of the regions west of the Rocky Mountains made kettles or cooking vessels out of blocks of "cedar" (Juniper) wood; east of the Rocky Mountains the birch-bark kettle was universal. Of course these vessels of wood or bark could not be placed on the fire or embers to heat or boil the contents, as was possible with the "kettles" of stone or the cooking pots of clay. So the people using them heated the water in which the food or the soup was boiled by making stones red-hot in the fire and then dropping them into the birch-bark or cedar-wood tubs. Many of the northern Indians got into the way of eating their food raw because of the difficulty of making a fire away from home.

The Native Americans in the areas west of the Rocky Mountains created kettles or cooking pots from blocks of cedar wood. In contrast, east of the Rocky Mountains, birch-bark kettles were common. Naturally, these wooden or bark vessels couldn't be placed directly on the fire or embers to heat or boil their contents, unlike the stone kettles or clay pots. So, the people using them heated the water for cooking food or soup by making stones red-hot in the fire and then dropping them into the birch-bark or cedar tubs. Many of the northern tribes became accustomed to eating their food raw due to the challenges of making a fire away from home.

In regard to food, neither Amerindian nor Eskimo was squeamish. They were almost omnivorous, and specially delighted in putrid or noisome substances from which a European would turn in loathing, and from the eating of which he might conceivably die.

In terms of food, neither the Amerindian nor the Eskimo had any aversions. They were nearly omnivorous and particularly enjoyed rotten or foul substances that would repulse a European, and consuming which could potentially be lethal to them.

It was only in the extreme south of Canada or in British Columbia (potatoes only) that any agriculture was carried on and that the natives had maize, pumpkins, and pease to add to their dietary; but (as compared to the temperate regions of Europe and Asia) Nature was generous in providing wild fruits and grain without trouble of husbandry. The fruits and nuts have been enumerated elsewhere, but a description might be given here of the "wild oats" (Avena fatua) and the "wild rice" of the regions of central Canada and the middle west. The wild oats made a rough kind of porridge, but were not so important and so nourishing as the wild rice which is so often mentioned in the stories of the pioneers, who liked this wild grain as much as the Indians did.

It was only in the far south of Canada or in British Columbia (just potatoes) that any farming took place, and there the natives had maize, pumpkins, and peas to include in their diet; however, compared to the temperate areas of Europe and Asia, Nature was generous in providing wild fruits and grains without the effort of farming. The fruits and nuts have been listed elsewhere, but a description can be given here of the "wild oats" (Avena fatua) and the "wild rice" found in central Canada and the Midwest. The wild oats produced a coarse type of porridge, but they weren’t as significant or nutritious as the wild rice, which is frequently mentioned in the accounts of the pioneers, who appreciated this wild grain as much as the Indians did.

This wild rice (Zizania aquatica) grew naturally in small rivers and swampy places. The stems were hollow, jointed at intervals, and the grain appeared at the extremity of the stalk. By the month of June they had grown two feet above the surface of the shallow water, and were ripe for harvesting in September. At this period the Amerindians passed in canoes through the water-fields of wild rice, shaking the ears into the canoes as they swept by. The grain fell out easily when ripe, but in order to clean it from the husk it was dried over a slow fire on a wooden grating. After being winnowed it was pounded to flour in a mortar, or else boiled like rice, and seasoned with fat. "It had a most delicate taste", wrote Alexander Henry the Elder.

This wild rice (Zizania aquatica) naturally grew in small rivers and marshy areas. The stems were hollow, segmented at intervals, and the grain formed at the tip of the stalk. By June, they had reached two feet above the surface of the shallow water and were ready to be harvested in September. During this time, the Indigenous people paddled canoes through the wild rice fields, shaking the ears into the canoes as they passed. The grain easily fell out when ripe, but to remove the husk, it was dried over a gentle fire on a wooden grate. After being winnowed, it was ground into flour in a mortar or boiled like rice and seasoned with fat. "It had a most delicate taste," noted Alexander Henry the Elder.

Fish was perhaps the staple of Amerindian diet, because in scarcely any part of the Canadian Dominion is a lake, river, or brook far away. In the region of the Great Lakes fish were caught in large quantities in October, and exposed to the weather to be frozen at nighttime. They were then stored away in this congealed state, and lasted good—more or less—till the following April.

Fish was probably a key part of the Native American diet, since there are hardly any places in Canada without a nearby lake, river, or stream. In the Great Lakes area, fish were caught in large numbers in October and left outside to freeze at night. They were then kept in this frozen state and lasted fairly well until the following April.

Pemmican—that early form of potted meat so familiar to the readers of Red-Indian romances—was made of the lean meat of the bison. The strips of meat were dried in the sun, and afterwards pounded in a mortar and mixed with an equal quantity of bison fat. Fish "pemmican" was sun-dried fish ground to powder.

Pemmican—that early type of potted meat well-known to readers of Native American stories—was made from the lean meat of the bison. The strips of meat were dried in the sun and then pounded in a mortar and mixed with an equal amount of bison fat. Fish "pemmican" was sun-dried fish that was ground into powder.

A favourite dish among the northern Indians was blood mixed with the half-digested food found in the stomach of a deer, boiled up with a sufficient quantity of water to make it of the consistency of pease porridge. Some scraps of fat or tender flesh were shredded small and boiled with it. To render this dish more palatable they had a method of mixing the blood with the contents of the stomach in the paunch itself, and hanging it up in the heat and smoke of the fire for several days—in other words, the Scotch haggis. The kidneys of both moose and buffalo were usually eaten raw by the southern Indians, for no sooner was one of those beasts killed than the hunter ripped up its belly, snatched out the kidneys, and ate them warm, before the animal was quite dead. They also at times put their mouths to the wound the ball or the arrow had made, and sucked the blood; this, they said, quenched thirst, and was very nourishing.

A favorite dish among northern Indians was blood mixed with half-digested food from a deer's stomach, boiled with enough water to get it to the consistency of pea soup. Some bits of fat or tender meat were chopped up and boiled with it. To make this dish taste better, they had a method of mixing the blood with the stomach contents right in the paunch, then hanging it up in the heat and smoke of the fire for several days—in other words, the Scottish haggis. The southern Indians usually ate the kidneys of moose and buffalo *raw*, because as soon as one of those animals was killed, the hunter would cut open its belly, grab the kidneys, and eat them warm, before the animal was fully dead. They also sometimes put their mouths to the wound made by a bullet or arrow and sucked the blood; they said this quenched thirst and was very nutritious.

The favourite drink of the Ojibwé Indians in the wintertime was hot broth poured over a dishful of pure snow.

The favorite drink of the Ojibwé Indians in the winter was hot broth poured over a dish of fresh snow.

The Amerindians of the Nipigon country (north of Lake Superior) and the Ojibwés and Kris often relapsed into cannibalism when hard up for food. Indeed some of them became so addicted to this practice that they simply went about stalking their fellow Indians with as much industry as if they were hunting animals. "These prowling ogres caused such terror that to sight the track of one of them was sufficient to make twenty families decamp in all the speed of their terror" (Alexander Henry). It was deemed useless to attempt any resistance when these monsters were coming to kill and eat. The people would even make them presents of clothes and provisions to allow them and their children to live. There were women cannibals as well as men (see p. 171).

The Native Americans in the Nipigon area (north of Lake Superior), along with the Ojibwe and Cree, sometimes resorted to cannibalism when food was scarce. Some of them became so reliant on this practice that they actively hunted their fellow tribespeople as if they were animals. "These lurking monsters instilled such fear that just seeing their tracks was enough to send twenty families fleeing in terror" (Alexander Henry). It was considered pointless to try to fight back when these creatures came to kill and eat. The people would even give them gifts of clothes and food to ensure their own survival and that of their children. There were women cannibals as well as men (see p. 171).

As the greater part of their food came from the chase, and their only articles of commerce likewise, they devoted themselves more entirely to hunting and fishing than to any other pursuit. The women did most of the fishing (and all the skin-curing for the fur market and for their own dress), while the men pursued with weapons the beasts of the chase, trapped them in pitfalls or snares, or drove them into "pounds" (excavated enclosures).

As most of their food came from hunting, and their only trade items did too, they focused more on hunting and fishing than anything else. The women handled most of the fishing (and did all the skin-curing for the fur trade and their own clothing), while the men used weapons to hunt animals, set traps, or drove them into "pounds" (dug-out enclosures).

Illustrating the wonderful sagacity of the Amerindians as game trackers, Alexander Henry the Elder tells the following story in the autumn of 1799:—

Illustrating the incredible wisdom of Native Americans as skilled trackers, Alexander Henry the Elder shares the following story from autumn 1799:—

"We had not gone far from the house before we fell upon the fresh tracks of some red deer (wapiti), and soon after discovered the herd in a thicket of willows and poplars; we both fired, and the deer disappeared in different directions. We pursued them, but to no purpose, as the country was unfavourable. We then returned to the spot where we had fired, as the Indian suspected that we had wounded some of them. We searched to see if we could find any blood; on my part, I could find tracks, but no blood. The Indian soon called out, and I went to him, but could see no blood, nor any sign that an animal had been wounded. However, he pointed out the track of a large buck among the many others, and told me that from the manner in which this buck had started off he was certain the animal had been wounded. As the ground was beaten in every direction by animals, it was only after a tedious search that we found where the buck had struck off. But no blood was seen until, passing through a thicket of willows, he observed a drop upon a leaf, and next a little more. He then began to examine more strictly, to find out in what part of the body the animal had been wounded; and, judging by the height and other signs, he told me the wound must have been somewhere between the shoulder and neck. We advanced about a mile, but saw nothing of the deer, and no more blood. I was for giving up the chase; but he assured me the wound was mortal, and that if the animal should lie down he could not rise again. We proceeded two miles farther, when, coming out upon a small open space, he told me the animal was at no great distance, and very probably in this meadow. We accordingly advanced a few yards, and there we found the deer lying at the last gasp. The wound was exactly as I had been told. The sagacity of the Saulteurs [Ojibwés] in tracing big wood animals is astonishing. I have frequently witnessed occurrences of this nature; the bend of a leaf or blade of grass is enough to show the hunter the direction the game has taken. Their ability is of equally great service to war parties, when they discover the footsteps of their enemies."

"We hadn’t gone far from the house before we came across fresh tracks of some red deer (wapiti), and soon after found the herd in a thicket of willows and poplars. We both shot, and the deer scattered in different directions. We chased them, but it was pointless since the terrain wasn't favorable. We then returned to the spot where we had fired, as the Indian thought we might have wounded some of them. We searched for any blood; I was able to find tracks, but no blood. The Indian soon called out to me, but I couldn’t see any blood or any signs of a wounded animal. However, he pointed out the track of a large buck among the many others and told me that based on how this buck had taken off, he was sure the animal had been injured. Since the ground was trampled with animal tracks in every direction, it took a while to find where the buck had gone. But there was no blood until, going through a thicket of willows, he spotted a drop on a leaf, followed by a few more. He then began to examine more closely to determine where the animal had been wounded and, based on the height of the blood and other signs, he concluded the wound must have been somewhere between the shoulder and neck. We moved about a mile further but saw no sign of the deer, and no more blood. I was ready to give up the chase, but he insisted that the wound was fatal and that if the animal lay down, it wouldn’t be able to get back up. We traveled two more miles, and when we came out onto a small open space, he told me the animal was close by, probably in this meadow. So, we moved a few yards forward and found the deer lying there, at the end of its strength. The wound was exactly as he had described. The skill of the Saulteurs [Ojibwés] in tracking large woodland animals is impressive. I have often witnessed situations like this; the bend of a leaf or blade of grass is enough to show the hunter the direction the game has gone. Their ability is also incredibly useful for war parties when they track the footsteps of their enemies."

The Assiniboin Indians (a branch of the Sious) down to about fifty years ago captured the bison of the plains in hundreds at a time by driving them into large excavated areas below the level of the ground.

The Assiniboin Indians (a branch of the Sioux) up until about fifty years ago would capture hundreds of bison from the plains by driving them into large pits dug below ground level.

Alexander Henry, jun., gives the following description of this procedure in 1810:—

Alexander Henry, Jr. provides the following description of this procedure in 1810:—

"The pounds are of different dimensions, according to the number of tents in one camp. The common size is from sixty to one hundred paces or yards in circumference, and about five feet in height. Trees are cut down, laid upon one another, and interwoven with branches and green twigs; small openings are left to admit the dogs to feed upon the carcasses of the (old) bulls, which are generally left as useless. This enclosure is commonly made between two hummocks, on the declivity or at the foot of rising ground. The entrance is about ten paces wide, and always fronts the plains. On each side of this entrance commences a thick range of fascines, the two ranges spreading asunder as they extend to the distance of one hundred yards, beyond which openings are left at intervals; but the fascines soon become more thinly planted, and continue to spread apart to the right and left until each range has been extended about three hundred yards from the pound. The labour is then diminished by only placing at intervals three or four cross sticks, in imitation of a dog or other animal (sometimes called 'dead men'); these extend on the plain for about two miles, and double rows of them are planted in several other directions to a still greater distance. Young men are usually sent out to collect and bring in the buffalo—a tedious task, which requires great patience, for the herd must be started by slow degrees. This is done by setting fire to dung or grass. Three young men will bring in a herd of several hundred from a great distance. When the wind is aft it is most favourable, as they can then direct the buffalo with great ease. Having come in sight of the ranges, they generally drive the herd faster, until it begins to enter the ranges, where a swift-footed person has been stationed with a buffalo robe over his head, to imitate that animal; but sometimes a horse performs this business. When he sees buffaloes approaching he moves slowly toward the pound until they appear to follow him; then he sets off at full speed, imitating a buffalo as well as he can, with the herd after him. The young men in the rear now discover themselves, and drive the herd on with all possible speed. There is always a sentinel on some elevated spot to notify the camp when the buffalo appear; and this intelligence is no sooner given than every man, woman, and child runs to the ranges that lead to the pound to prevent the buffalo from taking a wrong direction. Then they lie down between the fascines and cross sticks, and, if the buffalo attempt to break through, the people wave their robes, which causes the herd to keep on, or turn to the opposite side, where other persons do the same. When the buffalo have been thus directed to the entrance of the pound, the Indian who leads them rushes into it and out at the other side, either by jumping over the enclosure or creeping through an opening left for that purpose. The buffalo tumble in pell-mell at his heels, almost exhausted, but keep moving around the enclosure from east to west, and never in a direction against the sun. What appeared extraordinary to me on those occasions was that, when word was given to the camp of the near approach of the buffalo, the dogs would skulk away from the pound and not approach until the herd entered. Many buffaloes break their legs and some their necks in jumping into the pound, as the descent is generally six or eight feet, and stumps are left standing there. The buffalo being caught, the men assembled at the enclosure, armed with bows and arrows; every arrow has a particular mark of the owner, and they are let fly until the whole herd is killed. Then the men enter the pound, and each claims his own; but commonly there is what they term the master of the pound, who divides the animals and gives each tent an equal share, reserving nothing for himself. But in the end he is always the best provided for; everyone is obliged to send him a certain portion, as it is in his tent that the numerous ceremonies relating to the pound are observed. There the young men are always welcome to feast and smoke, and no women are allowed to enter, as that tent is set apart for the affairs of the pound. Horses are sometimes used to collect and bring in buffalo, but this method is less effectual than the other; besides, it frightens the herds and soon causes them to withdraw to a great distance. When horses are used the buffalo are absolutely driven into the pound, but when the other method is pursued they are in a manner enticed to their destruction."

The pounds vary in size based on how many tents are in a camp. The usual size is between sixty and one hundred paces or yards in circumference and about five feet high. Trees are cut down, stacked on top of each other, and woven with branches and green twigs; small gaps are left so dogs can feed on the carcasses of old bulls, which are usually considered useless. This enclosure is typically set up between two small hills or at the base of a rise. The entrance is about ten paces wide and always faces the plains. On either side of the entrance, a thick line of brush begins, spreading apart as it extends for about one hundred yards, with gaps left at intervals; however, the brush soon becomes more sparsely placed and continues to fan out to the right and left until each line reaches about three hundred yards from the pound. The work then shifts to placing three or four cross sticks at intervals to mimic a dog or other animal (sometimes referred to as 'dead men'); these extend across the plains for about two miles, with double rows set up in multiple directions even further out. Young men are typically sent out to gather and bring in the buffalo—a long and patient task, as the herd must be approached slowly. This is done by igniting dung or grass. Three young men can bring in a herd of several hundred from a long distance. When the wind is blowing in their favor, it’s much easier, as they can guide the buffalo with ease. Once they’re close to the enclosures, they usually speed up the herd until it begins to approach the ranges, where a quick individual is waiting with a buffalo robe over their head to imitate that animal; sometimes a horse takes on this role. When they see the buffalo coming, they move slowly toward the pound until it looks like the buffalo are following; then they sprint away, imitating a buffalo as best as they can, with the herd trailing behind. The young men in the back then reveal themselves and push the herd forward as fast as possible. There’s always a lookout on some high ground to alert the camp when the buffalo appear, and as soon as the news is out, everyone—men, women, and children—rushes to the paths leading to the pound to keep the buffalo from going off course. They then lie down between the brush and cross sticks and, if the buffalo try to break through, they wave their robes to encourage the herd to stay on course, or to turn toward the opposite side where others do the same. Once the buffalo have been led to the entrance of the pound, the Indian leading them dashes in and out again, either jumping over the enclosure or crawling through an opening meant for that purpose. The buffalo stumble in wildly behind him, almost worn out, but continue to circle the enclosure from east to west, always avoiding the direction of the sun. What struck me as odd during these events was that when the camp was alerted to the buffalo's imminent arrival, the dogs would sneak away from the pound and wouldn’t approach until the herd was inside. Many buffalo break their legs and some even their necks when jumping into the pound, as the drop is usually six to eight feet, and stumps are often left standing. Once the buffalo are captured, the men gather at the enclosure armed with bows and arrows; every arrow has a unique mark belonging to its owner, and they’re shot until the entire herd is killed. Then the men go into the pound and each takes their share; however, there’s usually someone known as the master of the pound who distributes the animals and gives each tent an equal portion, keeping nothing for himself. But in the end, he is always the best provided for; everyone must give him a portion, as his tent is where all the rituals concerning the pound take place. There, young men are always invited to feast and smoke, and no women are allowed in, as that tent is reserved for the affairs of the pound. Horses are sometimes used to round up the buffalo, but this method is less effective than the other; moreover, it scares the herds and leads them to retreat far away. When horses are used, the buffalo are herded directly into the pound, but when the other method is applied, they are sort of lured to their doom.

A somewhat similar method was adopted by the northern Kris and Athapascans for the capture of reindeer.

A somewhat similar method was used by the northern Kris and Athapascans to capture reindeer.

As regards means of transport, the use of dogs as draught animals was by no means confined to the Eskimo: they were used in wintertime to draw sledges over the snow or ice by nearly all the northern Indian tribes, and by the people of the Rocky Mountains and Pacific coast. After the Amerindians of the prairies and plains received horses (indirectly through the Spaniards of Mexico)[12] they sometimes employed the smaller and poorer kind of ponies as pack animals; but for the most part throughout the summer season of the Canadian Dominion—from May to October—transport and travel by canoe was the favourite method.

When it comes to transportation, using dogs as draft animals wasn't just something the Eskimo did; nearly all northern Indian tribes, as well as people from the Rocky Mountains and Pacific coast, used them in winter to pull sledges over snow or ice. After the Native Americans of the prairies and plains got horses (thanks to the Spaniards from Mexico)[12], they sometimes used smaller, less valuable ponies as pack animals. However, throughout most of the summer in the Canadian Dominion—from May to October—canoeing was the preferred way to travel and transport goods.

There were four very well marked types of canoe or boat in British North America. There was the already-described Eskimo kayak, made of leather stretched over a framework of wood or bone; the Amerindians of the Dominion, south of the Eskimo and east of the Rocky Mountains, used the familiar "birch-bark" canoe;[13] the peoples of the Pacific coast belt possessed something more like a boat, made out of a hollowed tree trunk and built up with planks; and the tribes of the Upper Mississippi used round coracles. Here are descriptions of all three kinds of Amerindian canoe from the pens of eighteenth-century pioneers: The birch-bark canoe used on the Great Lakes was about thirty-three feet long by four and a half feet broad, and formed of the smooth rind or bark of the birch tree fastened outside a wooden framework. It was lined with small splints of juniper cedar, and the vessel was further strengthened with ribs of the same wood, of which the two ends were fastened to the gunwales. Several bars rather than seats were laid across the canoe from gunwale to gunwale, the small roots of the spruce fir afforded the fibre with which the bark was sewn or stitched, and the gum of the pine tree supplied the place of tar and oakum. Bark, some spare fibre, and gum were always carried in each canoe for repairs, which were constantly necessary (one continually reads in the diaries of the pioneers of "stopping to gum the canoe"). The canoes were propelled with paddles, and occasionally a sail.

There were four clearly defined types of canoe or boat in British North America. There was the already-described Eskimo kayak, made of leather stretched over a framework of wood or bone; the Indigenous peoples of the Dominion, south of the Eskimo and east of the Rocky Mountains, used the familiar "birch-bark" canoe;[13] the peoples of the Pacific coast had something more like a boat, made from a hollowed tree trunk and built up with planks; and the tribes of the Upper Mississippi used round coracles. Here are descriptions of all three types of Indigenous canoe from the perspective of 18th-century pioneers: The birch-bark canoe used on the Great Lakes was about thirty-three feet long and four and a half feet wide, and was made of the smooth bark of the birch tree attached to a wooden frame. It was lined with small splints of juniper cedar, and the vessel was further reinforced with ribs of the same wood, with both ends secured to the gunwales. Instead of seats, several bars were laid across the canoe from gunwale to gunwale, while the fine roots of spruce fir provided the fibers used to sew or stitch the bark, and pine tree gum replaced tar and oakum. Canoes always carried extra bark, fibers, and gum for repairs, which were frequently necessary (pioneers often noted "stopping to gum the canoe" in their diaries). The canoes were paddled, and occasionally had a sail.

The aborigines of Newfoundland—the Beothiks—are said to have known the birch-bark canoe, framework canoe, but to have employed "dug-outs"—hollowed tree trunks. The canoes of the Mandans of the upper Missouri basin were like coracles, of circular form, made of a framework of bent willow branches over which was stretched a raw bison-hide with the hair inside. This was sewn tightly round the willow rim. In lieu of a paddle they use a pole about five feet long, split at one end to admit a piece of board about two feet long and half a foot broad, which was lashed to the pole and so formed a kind of cross. There was but one for each canoe. The paddler of this coracle made directly for the opposite shore; every stroke he gave turned his "dish" almost entirely round; to recover his position and go on his intended route, he must give a stroke on the other side, which brought him up again; and so on till he got over, not without drifting down sometimes nearly a mile.

The indigenous people of Newfoundland—the Beothiks—are said to have known the birch-bark canoe and the framework canoe, but they used "dug-outs"—hollowed tree trunks. The canoes of the Mandans from the upper Missouri basin resembled coracles, being circular in shape, constructed from a framework of bent willow branches covered with raw bison hide, with the hair facing inward. This was sewn tightly around the willow rim. Instead of a paddle, they used a pole about five feet long, split at one end to hold a piece of board about two feet long and half a foot wide, which was lashed to the pole to create a sort of cross. Each canoe had just one. The paddler of this coracle aimed straight for the opposite shore; every stroke he made turned his "dish" almost completely around; to get back on track, he had to paddle on the other side, which would realign him, and so on until he reached the other side, not without sometimes drifting down nearly a mile.

Alexander Henry, jun., thus describes a canoe of the Clatsop people on the Lower Columbia (Pacific coast, opposite Vancouver Island): "This was a war canoe—the first of the kind I had seen. She was about thirty-six feet long and wide in proportion, the stem rising upright about six feet, on top of which was a figure of some imaginary monster of uncouth sculpture, having the head of a carnivorous animal with large erect ears but no body, clinging by arms and legs to the upper end of the canoe, and grinning horribly. The ears were painted green, the other parts red and black. The stern also rose about five feet in height, but had no figure carved on it. On each side of both stem and stern broad strips of wood rose about four feet, having holes cut in them to shoot arrows through. She had a high sprit-sail made of handkerchiefs and pieces of gunny-cloth or jute, forming irregular stripes, I am told these Indians commonly have pieces of squared timber, not unlike a three-inch plank, high and broad, perforated to shoot arrows through; this is fixed on the bow of the war canoe to serve as bulwarks in battle."

Alexander Henry, Jr. describes a canoe belonging to the Clatsop people on the Lower Columbia (Pacific coast, across from Vancouver Island): "This was a war canoe—the first one I had ever seen. It was about thirty-six feet long and proportionately wide, with the front rising straight up about six feet. At the top was a figure of some imaginary monster with a strange design, featuring the head of a meat-eating animal with large, upright ears but no body, clinging to the upper end of the canoe with its arms and legs and grinning in a terrifying way. The ears were painted green, while the rest was red and black. The back also rose about five feet but had no carving on it. On each side of both the front and back, broad strips of wood stood about four feet high, with holes cut into them for shooting arrows. It had a high sprit-sail made of handkerchiefs and pieces of gunny-cloth or jute, arranged in irregular stripes. I learned that these Indians typically use squared timber, similar to a three-inch plank, tall and wide, with holes for shooting arrows, which is fixed to the bow of the war canoe to act as a barrier in battles."

Canoe voyages were mainly embarked on for trading; but in all probability before the coming of the European there was little trading done between one tribe and another, except in the region west of the Rocky Mountains, in which—especially to the north—the Amerindians were so different in their habits and customs from those dwelling east of the mountains as to suggest that they must very occasionally have been in touch with some world outside America, such as Hawaii, Kamschatka, or Japan. In these Pacific coastlands they used a white seashell as a currency and a medium of exchange. So also did the Iroquois people and the southern Algonkin tribes, in the form of "wampum". The principal articles of barter were skins of fur animals, porcupine quills, dogs, slaves, and women.

Canoe trips were mainly taken for trade; however, before the arrival of Europeans, there probably wasn't much trade happening between tribes, except in the area west of the Rocky Mountains. In this region—especially in the north—the Native Americans had such different habits and customs from those living east of the mountains that it hints they must have occasionally interacted with some outside cultures, possibly from Hawaii, Kamchatka, or Japan. In these Pacific coastal areas, they used a white seashell as currency and a medium of exchange. The Iroquois and southern Algonquin tribes also used "wampum" in the same way. The main items exchanged were fur animal skins, porcupine quills, dogs, slaves, and women.

First Hunting (to supply food), then Trading in the products of the chase, and lastly War were the main subjects which occupied the Amerindian's thoughts before the middle of the nineteenth century. They usually went to war to turn other tribes out of profitable hunting grounds or productive fisheries; or because they wanted slaves or more wives; or because a chief or a medicine man had a dream; or because some other notability felt he had given way too much to tears over some personal or public sorrow, and must show his manliness by killing the people of another tribe. In their wars they knew no mercy when their blood was up, and frequently perpetrated frightful cruelties for the sheer pleasure of seeing human suffering. Yet these devilish moods would alternate with fits of sentimentality. A man or a woman would suddenly take a war prisoner, or a person who was wounded or half-tortured to death, under their protection, and a short time afterwards the whole war party would be greeting this rescued wretch (usually a man—they were far more pitiless towards women) as brother, son, or friend, and even become quite maudlin over a scratch or a bruise; whereas an hour or so before they were on the point of disembowelling, or of driving splinters up the nails and setting them on fire. In warfare they often gave way to cannibalism.

First hunting (for food), then trading the products of the hunt, and finally war were the main concerns of Native Americans before the mid-nineteenth century. They typically went to war to drive other tribes out of valuable hunting areas or productive fishing spots; or because they wanted slaves or additional wives; or because a chief or a medicine man had a dream; or because some notable individual felt he had shown too much emotion over personal or public grief and needed to prove his strength by killing members of another tribe. In their wars, they showed no mercy when they were agitated, often committing horrific acts simply for the thrill of witnessing human suffering. Yet these violent tendencies would shift to moments of sentimentality. A man or woman might suddenly take a war prisoner, or someone who was injured or nearly dead, under their protection, and shortly after, the whole war party would be welcoming this rescued person (usually a man—they were much more brutal towards women) as a brother, son, or friend, even becoming quite emotional over a scratch or bruise; whereas an hour before, they were ready to disembowel or drive splinters under the nails and set them on fire. In warfare, they often resorted to cannibalism.

Though extremely fond of singing—they sang when they were merry; when they thought they were going to die; when they were victorious in hunting, love, or war; when they were defeated; when they were paddling a canoe or sewing a moccasin—they had but a poor range of musical instruments. Most of the tribes used flutes made out of the wing bones of cranes or out of reeds, and some had small trumpets of wood, bark, or buffalo horn. The Pacific coast Indians made gongs or "xylophones" out of blocks or slabs of resonant wood.

Though they really loved to sing—they sang when they were happy; when they thought they might die; when they were successful in hunting, love, or battle; when they faced defeat; when they were paddling a canoe or sewing a moccasin—they had limited musical instruments. Most tribes used flutes made from crane wing bones or reeds, and some had small trumpets made of wood, bark, or buffalo horn. The Pacific Coast Indians created gongs or "xylophones" from blocks or slabs of resonant wood.

Here is a specimen of Amerindian singing. It is the song which accompanied the famous Calumet dance in celebration of the peacemaking qualities of tobacco-smoking. It was taken down by the Jesuit missionaries in the seventeenth century from the Ilinwa (Illinois) Algonkin Indians of the middle west, and its notation reminds one of Japanese music.

Here’s an example of Native American singing. It’s the song that went along with the well-known Calumet dance, celebrating the peace that comes from tobacco smoking. This was recorded by Jesuit missionaries in the seventeenth century from the Illinois Algonquin Indians in the Midwest, and its notation is reminiscent of Japanese music.

The Calumet Or Tobacco-pipe Dance

Ninahani, &c, ongo; ninahani, &c, hoho; ninahani, &c.,
Kawa bannoge atchicha Koge ake awā;
Banoge atchicha shagobe hé hé hé! Mintingo mitade
Pini pini hé! Atchicha lé machi mi nam ba miktande,
Miktande pini pini hé!

Ninahani, &c, ongo; ninahani, &c, hoho; ninahani, &c.,
Kawa bannoge atchicha Koge ake awā;
Banoge atchicha shagobe hé hé hé! Mintingo mitade
Pini pini hé! Atchicha lé machi mi nam ba miktande,
Miktande pini pini hé!

Dancing was little else than posturing and jumping in masks—usually made to look like the head of a wild beast. But the men were usually very athletic. Wrestling competitions were almost universal, especially as a means of winning a wife. The conqueror in a wrestling match took the wife or wives of the defeated man. Their running powers for endurance and speed became justly celebrated.

Dancing was mostly just posing and jumping while wearing masks that often looked like the heads of wild animals. However, the men were typically very athletic. Wrestling matches were almost everywhere, particularly as a way to win a wife. The winner of a wrestling match would take the wife or wives of the loser. Their ability to run, both in terms of endurance and speed, became well-known.

"Their principal and most inveterate game is that of the hoop," writes Alexander Henry, sen., "which proves as ruinous to them as the platter does to the Saulteurs (Ojibwé)." This game was played in the following manner. A hoop was made about two feet in diameter, nearly covered with dressed leather, and trimmed with quillwork, feathers, bits of metal, and other trinkets, on which were certain particular marks. Two persons played at the same time, by rolling the hoop and accompanying it, one on each side; when it was about to fall, each gently threw one arrow in such a manner that the hoop might fall upon it, and according to that mark on the hoop which rested on the arrows they reckoned the game. They also played another game by holding some article in one hand, or putting it into one of two shoes, the other hand or shoe being empty. They had another game which required forty to fifty small sticks, as thick as a goose quill and about a foot long; these were all shuffled together and then divided into two bunches, and according to the even or odd numbers of sticks in the bunch chosen, the players lost or won.

"Their main and most deeply rooted game is the hoop," writes Alexander Henry, senior, "which is just as harmful to them as the platter is to the Saulteurs (Ojibwé)." This game was played like this: A hoop was made about two feet in diameter, nearly covered in leather, and decorated with quillwork, feathers, bits of metal, and other small items, featuring specific marks. Two people played at the same time, rolling the hoop while following it, one on each side; when it was about to fall, each would gently throw an arrow so that the hoop would land on it, and based on the mark on the hoop that rested on the arrows, they determined the outcome of the game. They also played another game by holding an item in one hand or placing it in one of two shoes, while the other hand or shoe remained empty. They had yet another game that involved forty to fifty small sticks, about the thickness of a goose quill and roughly a foot long; these sticks were all mixed together and then split into two groups, and depending on whether the chosen group had an even or odd number of sticks, the players either won or lost.

A favourite game amongst the Ojibwé is described as "the hurdle", which is another name for the Canadian national game of La Crosse. When about to play, the men, of all ages, would strip themselves almost naked, but dress their hair in great style, put ornaments on their arms, and belts round their waists, and paint their faces and bodies in the most elaborate style. Each man was provided with "a hurdle", an instrument made of a small stick of wood about three feet long, bent at the end to a small circle, in which a loose piece of network is fixed, forming a cavity big enough to receive a leather ball about the size of a man's fist. Everything being prepared, a level plain about half a mile long was chosen, with proper barriers or goals at each end. Having previously formed into two equal parts, they assembled in the very middle of the field, and the game began by throwing up the ball perpendicularly in the air, when instantly both parties (writes an eyewitness) "formed a singular group of naked men, painted in different colours and in the most comical attitudes imaginable, holding their rackets elevated in the air to catch the ball". Whoever was so fortunate as to catch it in his net ran with it to the barrier with all his might, supported by his party; whilst the opponents were pursuing and endeavouring to knock the ball out of the net. He who succeeded in doing so ran in the same manner towards the opposite barrier, and was, of course, pursued in his turn. If in danger of being overtaken, he might throw it with his hurdle towards any of his associates who happened to be nearer the barrier than himself. They had a particular knack of throwing it a great distance in this manner, so that the best runners had not always the advantage; and, by a peculiar way of working their hands and arms while running, the ball never dropped out of their "hurdle".

A popular game among the Ojibwé is known as "the hurdle," which is another name for the Canadian national game of Lacrosse. Before playing, men of all ages would nearly strip down, but style their hair impressively, adorn their arms, wear belts around their waists, and paint their faces and bodies in intricate designs. Each man was given "a hurdle," a tool made from a small, three-foot long wooden stick bent at one end into a small circle, with a loose piece of netting attached, forming a pocket just big enough to hold a leather ball about the size of a fist. With everything set, a level field about half a mile long was chosen, with proper goals at each end. After splitting into two equal teams, they gathered in the middle of the field, and the game started by tossing the ball straight up into the air. An eyewitness described the scene as "a unique group of naked men, painted in different colors and in the most comical poses imaginable, holding their rackets high to catch the ball." The lucky player who caught it in his net would sprint towards the goal with all his strength, cheered on by his teammates, while the opponents chased after him, trying to knock the ball out of his net. If he managed to lose it, he would then run towards the opposite goal while being pursued. If he was at risk of being caught, he could throw it with his hurdle to any teammates who were closer to the goal than he was. They had a special skill for throwing it far this way, so even the fastest runners didn’t always have the advantage; and through a unique way of moving their hands and arms while running, the ball rarely fell out of their "hurdle."

"The best of three heats wins the game, and, besides the honour acquired on such occasions, a considerable prize is adjudged to the victors. The vanquished, however, generally challenge their adversaries to renew the game the next day, which is seldom refused. The game then becomes more important, as the honour of the whole village is at stake, and it is carried on with redoubled impetuosity, every object which might impede them in their career is knocked down and trodden under foot without mercy, and before the game is decided, it is a common thing to see numbers sprawling on the ground with wounded legs and broken heads, yet this never creates any disputes or ill-will after the play is decided" (Alexander Henry, sen.).

"The winner of three heats takes the game, and along with the honor gained in such events, a significant prize is awarded to the champions. The losers usually challenge their opponents to play again the next day, which is rarely turned down. The game then becomes even more important, as the pride of the entire village is at stake, and it's played with heightened intensity; anything that might block their path is pushed aside and trampled without hesitation. By the time the game is over, it's common to see many players sprawled on the ground with injured legs and bruises, but this never leads to arguments or bad feelings once the game has ended."

It has been computed that in the middle of the eighteenth century the Amerindian population of the vast territories now known as the Dominion of Canada numbered about 300,000. It now stands at an approximate 110,000. The chief diminution has taken place in Newfoundland, Lower and Upper Canada, New Brunswick, Assiniboia, and British Columbia. There may even have been an increase in the north and north-west. The first great blow to the Amerindians of these regions was the smallpox epidemic of 1780. The next was the effect of the strong drink[14] introduced by the agents of the Hudson's Bay and, still more, the two North-west Companies. Phthisis or pulmonary consumption also seems to have been introduced from Europe (though Hearne thought that the Northern Indians had it before the white man came). In fact, before the European invaded America neither Eskimo nor Amerindian seem to have had many diseases. They suffered from ulcers, scurvy, digestive troubles, rheumatism, headache, bronchitis, and heart complaints, but from few, if any, "germ" diseases.

It has been estimated that in the mid-eighteenth century, the Indigenous population of the vast territories now known as the Dominion of Canada was around 300,000. Today, it’s approximately 110,000. The biggest decline has occurred in Newfoundland, Lower and Upper Canada, New Brunswick, Assiniboia, and British Columbia. There may have been an increase in the north and northwest. The first major blow to the Indigenous people in these areas was the smallpox epidemic of 1780. The next was the impact of alcohol introduced by agents from Hudson's Bay and, even more so, the two Northwest Companies. Tuberculosis also seems to have been brought over from Europe (though Hearne thought that the Northern Indigenous people had it before the Europeans arrived). In fact, before Europeans invaded America, neither the Inuit nor the Indigenous peoples seemed to suffer from many diseases. They experienced ulcers, scurvy, digestive issues, rheumatism, headaches, bronchitis, and heart problems, but few, if any, "germ" diseases.

Some of the agents of the North-west Company apologize in their writings for the amount of rum that was circulated among the Amerindians at the orders of that company to stimulate trade, by saying that it was seven parts water. Nevertheless it excited them to madness, as the following extracts show. These are mostly taken from the journals of Alexander Henry the Younger, but they are typical of what was recorded by many other writers who describe the far interior of British North America between 1775 and 1835.

Some of the agents of the North-west Company apologize in their writings for the amount of rum that was distributed among the Indigenous peoples at the orders of that company to boost trade, claiming that it was mostly water. Still, it drove them to madness, as the following excerpts show. These are mostly taken from the journals of Alexander Henry the Younger, but they reflect what many other writers recorded about the deep interior of British North America between 1775 and 1835.

"To see a house full of drunken Indians, consisting of men, women, and children, is a most unpleasant sight; for, in that condition, they often wrangle, pull each other by the hair, and fight. At times, ten or twelve of both sexes may be seen fighting each other promiscuously, until at last they all fall on the floor, one upon another, some spilling rum out of a small kettle or dish which they hold in their hands, while others are throwing up what they have just drunk. To add to this uproar, a number of children, some on their mothers' shoulders, and others running about and taking hold of their clothes, are constantly bawling, the elder ones, through fear that their parents may be stabbed, or that some other misfortune may befal them in the fray. These shrieks of the children form a very unpleasant chorus to the brutal noise kept up by their drunken parents."

To see a house full of drunk Native Americans, including men, women, and children, is a really unpleasant sight; when they’re in that state, they often argue, pull each other's hair, and get into fights. At times, you can see ten or twelve people of both genders fighting each other randomly until they all end up on the floor, one on top of another, with some spilling rum from a small kettle or dish they’re holding, while others are throwing up what they just drank. To make things even louder, several children, some on their mothers' shoulders and others running around grabbing their clothes, are constantly crying. The older ones are afraid that their parents might get hurt or that something bad will happen during the chaos. These cries from the children create a really unpleasant background noise to the violent shouting from their drunk parents.


"In a drinking match at the Hills yesterday, Gros Bras (Thick Arms) in a fit of jealousy stabbed Aupusoi to death with a hand-dague (dagger); the first stroke opened his left side, the second his belly, and the third his breast; he never stirred, although he had a knife in his belt, and died instantly. Soon after this Aupusoi's brother, a boy about ten years of age, took the deceased's gun, loaded it with two balls, and approached Gros Bras's tent. Putting the muzzle of the gun through the door the boy fired the two balls into his breast and killed him dead, just as he was reproaching his wife for her affection for Aupusoi, and boasting of the revenge he had taken. The little fellow ran into the woods and hid. Little Shell (Petite Coquille) found the old woman, Aupusoi's mother, in her tent; he instantly stabbed her. Ondainoiache then came in, took the knife, and gave her a second stab. Little Shell, in his turn taking the knife, gave a third blow. In this manner did these two rascals continue to murder the old woman, as long as there was any life in her. The boy escaped into Langlois' house, and was kept hid until they were all sober. Next morning a hole was dug in the ground, and all three were buried together. This affair kept the Indians from hunting, as Gros Bras was nearly related to the principal hunters."

"In a drinking match at the Hills yesterday, Thick Arms, overcome with jealousy, stabbed Aupusoi to death with a dagger; the first stab opened his left side, the second his belly, and the third his chest; he didn't move, even though he had a knife in his belt, and died instantly. Soon after, Aupusoi's younger brother, a boy about ten years old, took Aupusoi's gun, loaded it with two bullets, and approached Thick Arms's tent. He pointed the gun through the door and shot the two bullets into his chest, killing him right as he was blaming his wife for her affection for Aupusoi and bragging about the revenge he had taken. The boy ran into the woods and hid. Little Shell found Aupusoi's mother in her tent and immediately stabbed her. Ondainoiache then came in, took the knife, and gave her a second stab. Little Shell then took the knife and delivered a third blow. This continued as the two of them murdered the old woman until there was no life left in her. The boy escaped into Langlois's house and was hidden until everyone sobered up. The next morning, a hole was dug in the ground, and all three were buried together. This incident stopped the Indians from hunting, as Thick Arms was closely related to the main hunters."


"Grand' Gueule stabbed Perdrix Blanche with a knife in six places. Perdrix Blanche fighting with his wife, fell in the fire and almost roasted, but had strength enough left notwithstanding his wounds to bite her nose off."

"Grand' Gueule stabbed Perdrix Blanche with a knife six times. Perdrix Blanche, while arguing with his wife, fell into the fire and almost got burned alive, but despite his injuries, he had just enough strength left to bite off her nose."


"In the first drinking match a murder was committed in an Assiniboine tent, but fortunately it was done by an Ojibwé. L'Hiver stabbed Mishewashence to the heart three times, and killed him instantly. The wife and children cried out, and some of my people ran to the tent just as L'Hiver came out with the bloody knife in his hand, expecting we would lay hold of him. The first person he met was William Henry, whom he attempted to stab in the breast; but Henry avoided the stroke, and returned the compliment with a blow of his cudgel on the fellow's head. This staggered him; but instantly recovering he made another attempt to stab Henry. Foiled in this design, and observing several coming out of the fort, he took to his heels and ran into the woods like a deer. I chased him with some of my people, but he was too fleet for us. We buried the murdered man, who left a widow and five helpless orphans, having no relations on this river. The behaviour of two of the youngest was really piteous while we were burying the body; they called upon their deceased father not to leave them, but to return to the tent, and tried to prevent the men from covering the corpse with earth, screaming in a terrible manner; the mother was obliged to take them away."

"In the first drinking match, a murder happened in an Assiniboine tent, but luckily it was committed by an Ojibwé. L'Hiver stabbed Mishewashence in the heart three times, killing him instantly. The wife and children screamed, and some of my people rushed to the tent just as L'Hiver came out with the bloody knife in his hand, expecting us to catch him. The first person he encountered was William Henry, whom he tried to stab in the chest; but Henry dodged the attack and retaliated with a blow from his club to the guy's head. This knocked him off balance, but he quickly recovered and tried to stab Henry again. Foiled in this attempt, and seeing several people coming out of the fort, he took off running into the woods like a deer. I chased him with some of my people, but he was too fast for us. We buried the murdered man, who left behind a widow and five helpless orphans, with no family on this river. The behavior of two of the youngest was truly heartbreaking while we were burying the body; they called for their deceased father not to leave them and to come back to the tent, and they tried to stop the men from covering the corpse with dirt, screaming terribly; the mother had to take them away."


"Men and women have been drinking a match for three days and nights, during which it has been drink, fight—drink, fight—drink, and fight again—guns, axes, and knives being their weapons—very disagreeable."

"Men and women have been drinking a lot for three days and nights, during which they've been drinking, fighting—drinking, fighting—drinking, and fighting again—using guns, axes, and knives as their weapons—very unpleasant."


"Mithanasconce was so troublesome (in drink) that we were obliged to tie him with ropes to prevent his doing mischief. He was stabbed in the back in three different places about a month ago. His wounds were still open, and had an ugly appearance; in his struggling to get loose they burst out afresh and bled a great deal. We had much trouble to stop the blood, as the fellow was insensible to pain or danger; his only aim was to bite us. We had some narrow escapes, until we secured his mouth, and then he fell asleep."

"Mithanasconce was such a hassle when he was drinking that we had to tie him up with ropes to keep him from causing trouble. About a month ago, he was stabbed in the back in three different places. His wounds were still open and looked pretty bad; when he struggled to break free, they opened up again and bled a lot. It took us a lot of effort to stop the bleeding since he didn’t seem to feel pain or understand the danger; his only goal was to bite us. We had a few close calls until we managed to secure his mouth, and then he fell asleep."


"Some Red Lake Indians having traded here for liquor which they took to their camp, quarrelled amongst themselves. One jumped on another and bit his nose off. It was some time before the piece could be found; but, at last, by tumbling and tossing the straw about, it was recovered, stuck on, and bandaged, as best the drunken people could, in hopes it would grow again" (Alexander Henry, jun.).

"Some Red Lake Indians traded here for liquor, which they brought back to their camp, and ended up fighting among themselves. One attacked another and bit his nose off. It took a while to find the missing piece, but eventually, after rummaging through the straw, it was recovered. They stuck it back on and bandaged it as best as they could, hoping it would grow back." (Alexander Henry, jun.).


As regards drunkenness, several authors among the early explorers declared that the French Canadian voyageurs were more disagreeable when drunk even than the Amerindians, for their quarrels were noisier and more deadly. "Indeed I had rather have fifty drunken Indians in the fort than sixty-five drunken Canadians", writes Alexander Henry in 1810. And yet the extracts I have given from his journal show that it would be hard to beat the Amerindians for disagreeable ferocity when intoxicated.

As for drunkenness, several writers among the early explorers stated that the French Canadian voyageurs were even more unpleasant when drunk than the Indigenous Americans, since their fights were louder and more lethal. "Honestly, I would prefer to have fifty drunk Indians in the fort than sixty-five drunk Canadians," writes Alexander Henry in 1810. Yet, the excerpts I've shared from his journal indicate that it would be tough to surpass the Indigenous Americans in terms of aggressive behavior when intoxicated.

Henry, summing up his experiences before leaving for the Pacific coast in 1811, writes these remarks in his diary:—

Henry, summarizing his experiences before heading to the Pacific coast in 1811, writes these notes in his diary:—

"What a different set of people they would be, were there not a drop of liquor in the country! If a murder is committed among the Saulteurs (Ojibwés), it is always in a drinking match. We may truly say that liquor is the root of all evil in the north-west. Great bawling and lamentation went on, and I was troubled most of the night for liquor to wash away grief."

"What a different group of people they would be if there wasn't any alcohol in the country! If someone gets murdered among the Saulteurs (Ojibwés), it’s always because of a drinking game. We can honestly say that alcohol is the source of all problems in the northwest. There was a lot of yelling and crying, and I spent most of the night looking for alcohol to numb the pain."

As a rule, the treatment of the Amerindians by the British and French settlers was good, except the thrusting of alcohol on them. But in Newfoundland a great crime was perpetrated. Between the middle of the seventeenth and the beginning of the nineteenth centuries the British fishermen and settlers on the coasts of Newfoundland had destroyed the native population of Beothik Indians.

As a rule, the way the British and French settlers treated the Native Americans was decent, except for their efforts to push alcohol on them. However, in Newfoundland, a terrible crime occurred. Between the mid-seventeenth century and the early nineteenth century, the British fishermen and settlers on the coasts of Newfoundland destroyed the native population of Beothuk Indians.

Before the English arrived on the coasts of Newfoundland the Beothiks lived an ideal life for savages. They were well clothed with beasts' skins, and in the winter these were supplemented by heavy fur robes. Countless herds of reindeer roamed through the interior, passing from north to south in the autumn and returning in the spring. Vast flocks of willow grouse (like ptarmigan) were everywhere to be met with; the many lakes were covered with geese, swans, and ducks. The woods were full of pigeons; the salmon swarmed up the rivers to breed; the sea round the coasts was—except in the wintertime—the richest fishery in the world. They caught lobsters in the rock pools, and speared or clubbed seals and great walruses for their flesh and oil. An occasional whale provided them with oil, blubber, and meat. The Great Auk—which could not fly—swarmed in millions on the cliffs and islets. So abundant was this bird, and so fat, that its body was sometimes used as fuel, or as a lamp. In the summertime their fish and flesh diet could be varied by the innumerable berries growing wild—strawberries, raspberries, currants, cranberries, and whortleberries. The capillaire plant yielded a lusciously sweet, sugary substance.[15]

Before the English arrived on the shores of Newfoundland, the Beothiks lived a perfect life for their time. They wore clothing made from animal skins, which were added to with thick fur robes in the winter. Countless herds of reindeer moved through the interior, going south in autumn and returning in spring. There were vast flocks of willow grouse (like ptarmigan) everywhere; the many lakes were filled with geese, swans, and ducks. The woods were packed with pigeons; salmon crowded the rivers to breed; and the sea around the coasts was—except in winter—the richest fishing grounds in the world. They caught lobsters in rock pools and speared or clubbed seals and large walruses for their meat and oil. Sometimes, a whale would provide them with oil, blubber, and meat. The Great Auk, which couldn't fly, thrived in millions on the cliffs and islets. This bird was so plentiful and fatty that its body was sometimes used for fuel or as a lamp. In summer, their diet of fish and meat was enhanced by the countless wild berries—strawberries, raspberries, currants, cranberries, and whortleberries. The capillaire plant produced a deliciously sweet, sugary substance.

Great Auks, Gannets, Puffins, and Guillemots
GREAT AUKS, GANNETS, PUFFINS, AND GUILLEMOTS

The Beothiks were a tall, good-looking people, with large black eyes and a light-coloured skin. The early French and Biscayan seamen, who resorted to the coasts of Newfoundland for the whale fisheries, reported these "Red Indians" to be "an ingenious and tractable people, if well used, who were ready to help the white men with great labour and patience in the killing, cutting-up, and boiling of whales, and the making of train oil, without other expectation of reward than a little bread or some such small hire".

The Beothiks were a tall, good-looking people with large black eyes and light-colored skin. Early French and Biscayan sailors who came to the coasts of Newfoundland for whale fishing described these "Red Indians" as "an intelligent and cooperative people, who, if treated well, were eager to help the white men with great effort and patience in hunting, processing, and boiling whales, as well as making oil, expecting nothing in return except a bit of bread or some small payment."

Yet from the beginning of the seventeenth century the Beothiks—then about four thousand in number—were ill-treated by the European fishermen who frequented the Newfoundland coasts. They soon greatly decreased in numbers, and became very shy of white men. The French, when they occupied the south coast of Newfoundland, brought over Mikmak Indians to chase and kill the Beothiks or "Red" Indians. The Eskimo attacked them from Labrador. Finally, when Newfoundland became British in the eighteenth century, the English fishermen settlers and fur hunters attacked and slew the harmless Beothiks with a wanton ferocity (described by horror-struck officers of the British navy) which is as bad as anything attributed to the Spaniards in Cuba and Hispaniola. By about 1830 they were all extinct. As late as 1823 the following anecdote is recorded of two English settlers whose names are hidden behind the initials C and A. "When near Badger Bay they fell in with an Indian man and woman, who approached, apparently soliciting food. The man was first killed, and the woman, who was afterwards found to be his daughter, in despair remained calmly to be fired at, when she was also shot through the chest and immediately expired. This was told Mr. Cormack by the man who did the deed." Even English women in the late eighteenth century were celebrated for their skill "in shooting Red Indians and seals".

Yet from the start of the seventeenth century, the Beothiks—then about four thousand in number—were mistreated by the European fishermen who frequented the Newfoundland coasts. Their numbers quickly diminished, and they became very wary of white men. The French, when they occupied the south coast of Newfoundland, brought over Mikmak Indians to hunt and kill the Beothiks or "Red" Indians. The Eskimo attacked them from Labrador. Finally, when Newfoundland became British in the eighteenth century, the English fishing settlers and fur hunters attacked and killed the defenseless Beothiks with a brutal ferocity (described by horrified officers of the British navy) that was as shocking as anything attributed to the Spaniards in Cuba and Hispaniola. By around 1830, they were completely extinct. As late as 1823, there's a recorded anecdote about two English settlers whose names are hidden behind the initials C and A. "When near Badger Bay, they encountered an Indian man and woman, who approached, seemingly asking for food. The man was the first to be killed, and the woman, who was later found to be his daughter, calmly stood there in despair, waiting to be shot at, when she was also shot in the chest and died instantly. This was told to Mr. Cormack by the man who did it." Even English women in the late eighteenth century were known for their skill "in shooting Red Indians and seals."

"For a period of nearly two hundred years this barbarity had continued, and it was considered meritorious to shoot a Red Indian. 'To go to look for Indians' came to be as much a phrase as to look for partridges (ptarmigan). They were harassed from post to post, from island to island; their hunting and fishing stations were unscrupulously seized by the invading English. They were shot down without the least provocation, or captured to be exposed as curiosities to the rabble at the fairs of the western towns of Christian England at twopence a piece."[16]

"For almost two hundred years, this brutality continued, and it was seen as a good deed to shoot a Native American. 'Going to look for Indians' became just as common a phrase as looking for partridges (ptarmigan). They were chased from one place to another, from island to island; their hunting and fishing spots were ruthlessly taken by the invading English. They were killed without any reason or captured to be displayed as curiosities for the crowds at the fairs of western towns in Christian England for two pence each."[16]

Too late—when the worry and anxiety of the Napoleonic wars were over—the British Government sent a commission of naval officers to enquire into the treatment of the Beothiks by the settlers. One woman alone remained, as a frightened semi-captive, to be consoled and soothed. There are Indians in the south of Newfoundland at the present day, but they are Mikmaks who come over from the adjoining regions of Cape Breton and Nova Scotia. So tender, indeed, is the modern government of the island towards these (out of compunction for the past) that they are allowed to kill the reindeer and other wild animals without the licence which is exacted from white people, and so are actually injuring Newfoundland's resources!

Too late—after the worry and anxiety of the Napoleonic Wars had passed—the British Government sent a team of naval officers to investigate how the Beothiks were treated by the settlers. One woman remained, a scared semi-captive, needing comfort and support. Today, there are Indigenous people in southern Newfoundland, but they are Mi'kmaq who come from nearby regions in Cape Breton and Nova Scotia. The modern government of the island is so compassionate towards them (out of guilt for the past) that they are allowed to hunt reindeer and other wild animals without the permits that white people must obtain, which is actually hurting Newfoundland's resources!

Since the great Dominion of Canada was brought into existence in 1871 as a unified, responsible government, the treatment of the remaining Amerindian natives of British North America has been admirable; and splendid work has been done in reclaiming them to a wholesome civilization by the Moravian, Roman Catholic, and Church of England missionaries.

Since Canada became a unified, responsible government in 1871, the treatment of the remaining Indigenous peoples of British North America has been commendable; and significant efforts have been made to reintegrate them into a healthy society by the Moravian, Roman Catholic, and Church of England missionaries.

1 There may have been an earlier race inhabiting north-east America which was killed out or driven away by the last Glacial period.

1 There might have been an earlier group living in northeast America that was wiped out or forced to leave during the last Ice Age.

2 "The dogs of the Northern Indians are of various sizes and colours, but all of them have a foxy or wolf-like appearance, sharp noses, bushy tails, and sharp ears standing erect." (Samuel Hearne).

Hearne also remarks that the northern Indians had a superstitious reverence and liking for the wolf. They would frequently go to the mouth of the burrows where the female wolves lived with their young, take out the puppies and play with them, and even paint the faces of the young wolves with vermilion or red ochre.

When first observed by Europeans the unhappy Beothiks (of Newfoundland) had apparently no domestic dogs, only "tame wolves", whom they distinguished from the wild wolves by marking their ears. They were made more angry by the European seamen attacking and killing the wolves than by anything else they did. Apparently some kind of alliance had been struck up between the Beothiks—a nation of hunters—and the wolf packs which followed in their tracks; and the Newfoundland wolves were on the way to becoming domesticated "dogs". Later on it was realized that the island did produce a special breed—the celebrated Newfoundland dog—the original type of which was much smaller than the modern type, nearly or entirely black in colour, with a sharper muzzle and less pendulous ears. But its feet were as strongly webbed and its habits as aquatic as those of the "Newfoundland" of the modern breed. Some people have noticed the resemblance between the farmers' dogs in Norway and the Newfoundland type, and have thought that the latter may not be altogether of wolf extraction, but be descended from the dogs brought from Norway and Iceland by the Norse adventurers who visited Newfoundland in the tenth and eleventh centuries.

2 "The dogs of the Northern Indians come in various sizes and colors, but all of them have a fox-like or wolf-like appearance, sharp noses, bushy tails, and pointed ears." (Samuel Hearne).

Hearne also notes that the northern Indians had a superstitious respect and affection for the wolf. They often visited the entrances of burrows where the female wolves lived with their pups, took out the puppies to play with them, and even painted the faces of the young wolves with red dye or ochre.

When first seen by Europeans, the unfortunate Beothiks (of Newfoundland) apparently had no domestic dogs, just "tame wolves," which they identified from wild wolves by marking their ears. They were more upset by European sailors attacking and killing the wolves than by anything else the sailors did. It seems some kind of alliance had formed between the Beothiks—a nation of hunters—and the wolf packs that followed them; the Newfoundland wolves were on the verge of becoming domesticated "dogs." Later, it became clear that the island *did* produce a special breed—the famous Newfoundland dog—the original type of which was much smaller than the modern version, nearly or entirely black in color, with a sharper muzzle and less droopy ears. However, its feet were just as strongly webbed and its habits as aquatic as those of the modern "Newfoundland" breed. Some people have observed a similarity between farmers' dogs in Norway and the Newfoundland type, believing that the latter may not be entirely derived from wolves but descended from dogs brought from Norway and Iceland by the Norse explorers who reached Newfoundland in the tenth and eleventh centuries.

3 Of which they made very serviceable chisels.

3 They made very useful chisels from that.

4 See also pp. 156, 164, 186, and 199. In this list I have put in italics the names of the tribes more important in history, and in capitals the principal group names.

4 See also pp. 156, 164, 186, and 199. In this list, I've italicized the names of the tribes that are more significant in history and capitalized the main group names.

5 Kinistino, Kiristineaux, Kilistino; called "Crees" or "Kris" for short.

5 Kinistino, Kiristineaux, Kilistino; known as "Crees" or "Kris" for short.

6 "Iroquois" was a name invented by Champlain (see p. 69). Apparently this confederation called themselves Hodenosauni. The termination "ois" in all French-American names is pronounced "wa"—Irokwá.

6 "Iroquois" was a name made up by Champlain (see p. 69). Apparently, this confederation called themselves Hodenosauni. The ending "ois" in all French-American names is pronounced "wa"—Irokwá.

7 The far-famed term Siou is said to have been an abbreviation of one of the original French names for this type of Amerindian, Nadouessiou. In early books they are often called the Nadouessies.

7 The well-known term Siou is believed to have been a shortened form of one of the original French names for this type of Native American, Nadouessiou. In early texts, they are frequently referred to as the Nadouessies.

8 These northern Indians are described by Hearne as having very low foreheads, small eyes, high cheekbones, Roman noses, broad cheeks, and long, broad chins. Their skins were soft, smooth and polished, somewhat copper-coloured, and inclining towards a dingy brown. The hair of the head was black, strong, and straight. They were not in general above middle size, though well proportioned.

8 Hearne describes these northern Indians as having very low foreheads, small eyes, high cheekbones, Roman noses, broad cheeks, and long, wide chins. Their skin was soft, smooth, and polished, somewhat copper-colored, and leaning towards a dull brown. Their hair was black, strong, and straight. They were generally not taller than average, but were well-proportioned.

9 "It is surprising how dexterous all these natives of the plains are in communicating their ideas by signs. They hold conferences for several hours, upon different subjects, during the whole of which time not a single word is pronounced upon either side, and still they appear to comprehend each other perfectly well. This mode of communication is natural to them; their gestures are made with the greatest ease, and they never seem to be at a loss for a sign to express their meaning" (Alex. Henry the Younger, 1800). But it should also be noted that during the last hundred years the peoples belonging to the Nūtka-Columbian group have developed a trade language which they use in common. This is a mixture of Chinūk, English, French, Chinese, and Hawaaian.

9 "It's surprising how skilled the natives of the plains are at expressing their ideas through signs. They hold discussions for several hours on various topics, during which not a single word is spoken by either side, yet they seem to understand each other perfectly. This method of communication is natural to them; their gestures flow easily, and they never seem unsure about how to convey their message" (Alex. Henry the Younger, 1800). However, it's also worth noting that over the past hundred years, the people of the Nūtka-Columbian group have created a trade language that they all use. This language is a blend of Chinūk, English, French, Chinese, and Hawaiian.

10 The manner of courtship among the Ojibwés seemed to Peter Grant not only singular, but rude. "The lover begins his first addresses by gently pelting his mistress with bits of clay, snowballs, small sticks, or anything he may happen to have in his hand. If she returns the compliment, he is encouraged to continue the farce, and repeat it for a considerable time, after which more direct proposals of marriage are made by word of mouth."

10 The way the Ojibwe court each other struck Peter Grant as not only unusual but also rather crude. "The guy starts his initial advances by playfully throwing small pieces of clay, snowballs, sticks, or whatever else he has on hand at his crush. If she throws something back, he takes it as a green light to keep it going, doing this for quite a while, after which he eventually moves on to direct marriage proposals."

11 See also p. 249.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See also page __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

12 See p. 150.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See page __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

13 In the far north-west, on the rivers of the Pacific slope, the natives used spruce-fir bark instead of birch.

13 In the far northwest, along the rivers of the Pacific slope, the natives used spruce fir bark instead of birch.

14 Before the white man came to North America the natives had no form of intoxicating drink.

14 Before the white man arrived in North America, the natives had no kind of alcoholic drink.

15 This was the Moxie plum or creeping snowberry (Chiogenes hispidula).

15 This was the Moxie plum or creeping snowberry (Chiogenes hispidula).

16 These are the remarks of an English chaplain in the island, quoted by the Rev. George Patterson, who contributed a most interesting article on the vanished Beothiks of Newfoundland to the Royal Society of Canada in 1891.

16 These are the comments from an English chaplain on the island, as quoted by Rev. George Patterson, who wrote a fascinating article about the lost Beothiks of Newfoundland for the Royal Society of Canada in 1891.

[__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]






CHAPTER VIII

The Hudson Bay Explorers and the British Conquest of all Canada

In a general way the discovery of the main features of the vast Canadian Dominion may be thus apportioned amongst the different European nations. First came the British, led by an Italian pilot. They discovered Cape Breton Island, Nova Scotia, and Newfoundland. Then came the Portuguese, who discovered the north-east of Newfoundland and the coast of Labrador, while a French expedition under an Italian captain reached to Nova Scotia and southern Newfoundland. A Spanish expedition under a Portuguese leader shortly afterwards reached the coast of New Brunswick. After that the French from Brittany, Normandy, and the west coast of France laid bare the west coast of Newfoundland, the Gulf of St. Lawrence, the River St. Lawrence, and the Great Lakes.

In general, the discovery of the main features of the vast Canadian Dominion can be attributed to various European nations. First, the British, guided by an Italian pilot, discovered Cape Breton Island, Nova Scotia, and Newfoundland. Next, the Portuguese explored the northeast of Newfoundland and the coast of Labrador, while a French expedition led by an Italian captain reached Nova Scotia and southern Newfoundland. Shortly afterward, a Spanish expedition under a Portuguese leader arrived at the coast of New Brunswick. After that, the French from Brittany, Normandy, and the west coast of France explored the west coast of Newfoundland, the Gulf of St. Lawrence, the St. Lawrence River, and the Great Lakes.

Sir Francis Drake led the way in the exploration of the north-west coast of North America. He reached, in 1579, as far north on that side as the country of Oregon, which he christened New Albion. This action stirred up the Spaniards, who explored the coast of California, and in 1591-2 sent an Ionian Island pilot, Apostolos Valeriano (commonly called Juan de Fuca), in charge of an expedition to discover the imagined Straits of Anian. He gave strength to this idea of a continuous water route across temperate North America by entering (in 1592) the straits, since called Juan de Fuca, between Vancouver Island and the modern State of Washington, and passing thence into the Straits of Georgia, which bear a striking resemblance in their features to the Straits of Magellan.

Sir Francis Drake was a pioneer in exploring the northwest coast of North America. In 1579, he traveled as far north as Oregon, which he named New Albion. This move prompted the Spaniards to explore the California coast, and in 1591-92, they sent an Ionian Island pilot named Apostolos Valeriano (commonly known as Juan de Fuca) to lead an expedition in search of the rumored Straits of Anian. He reinforced the idea of a continuous waterway across temperate North America by entering the strait later named after him in 1592, located between Vancouver Island and what is now Washington State, and then moving on into the Straits of Georgia, which closely resemble the features of the Straits of Magellan.

French explorers and adventurers, as we have seen, penetrated from the basin of the St. Lawrence to the north and west until they touched the southern extension of Hudson Bay (James's Bay), discovered Lake Winnipeg and the Saskatchewan Rivers, the upper Missouri and the whole course of the Mississippi, and finally recorded the existence of the Rocky Mountains.

French explorers and adventurers, as we’ve seen, traveled from the St. Lawrence River basin to the north and west until they reached the southern part of Hudson Bay (James Bay), discovered Lake Winnipeg and the Saskatchewan Rivers, explored the upper Missouri River, and charted the entire course of the Mississippi, ultimately noting the presence of the Rocky Mountains.

Parallel with these movements the British discovered the broad belt of sea between Greenland and North America and the whole area of Hudson Bay. After the French had ceased to reign in North America, the British were to reveal the great rivers flowing into the Arctic Ocean, the coasts and islands of the Arctic Ocean, the Yukon River, and the coasts and islands of British Columbia and Alaska.

Parallel to these developments, the British discovered the vast stretch of water between Greenland and North America and the entire Hudson Bay area. After the French lost their control in North America, the British would uncover the major rivers flowing into the Arctic Ocean, along with the coastlines and islands of the Arctic Ocean, the Yukon River, and the coastlines and islands of British Columbia and Alaska.

The first Europeans, however, to reach Alaska were Russians led by Vitus Bering, a great Danish sea captain in the Russian service. Bering was born in 1680 at Horsens, in the province of Aarhuus, E. Denmark, and entered the service of Peter the Great, who was desirous of knowing where Asia terminated and America began. Bering discovered the straits which bear his name in 1728, and in 1741 was wrecked and died on Bering's Island. Captain James Cook, the British discoverer of Australia and of so many Pacific islands, completed the work of Bering in 1788 in charting the north-west American coast right into the Arctic Ocean.

The first Europeans to reach Alaska were Russians led by Vitus Bering, an impressive Danish sea captain in the service of Russia. Bering was born in 1680 in Horsens, in the Aarhuus province of Denmark, and joined Peter the Great’s service, who wanted to determine where Asia ended and America began. Bering discovered the straits named after him in 1728 and was shipwrecked and died on Bering Island in 1741. Captain James Cook, the British explorer known for discovering Australia and many Pacific islands, completed Bering's work in 1788 by mapping the northwestern American coast all the way to the Arctic Ocean.

It has already been related in Chapter III how the Hudson's Bay Chartered Company came to be founded. Soon after their first pioneers were established, in 1670, at Fort Nelson, on the west coast of Hudson Bay, near where York Factory now stands, there was born—or brought out from England as an infant—a little boy named Henry Kellsey, who as a child took a great fancy to the Amerindians who came to trade at Fort Nelson. As he played with them, and they returned his affection, he learnt their language, and—for some inconceivable reason—this gave great offence to the stupid governor of the fort (indeed, when Kellsey as a grown man, some years afterwards, compiled a vocabulary of the Kri language for the use of traders, the Hudson's Bay Company ordered it to be suppressed). Stupid Governor Geyer not only objected to Kellsey picking up the Kri language, but punished him most severely for that and for his boyish tricks and jokes; so much so, that Kellsey, when he was about ten years old, ran away with the returning Indians, some of whom had grown very fond of him whilst they stayed at Fort Nelson.

It has already been discussed in Chapter III how the Hudson's Bay Chartered Company was founded. Shortly after their first pioneers settled in 1670 at Fort Nelson, on the west coast of Hudson Bay, near where York Factory is now, a little boy named Henry Kellsey was born—or brought over from England as an infant. As a child, he became very fond of the Indigenous people who came to trade at Fort Nelson. While playing with them, and receiving their affection in return, he learned their language, which, for some inexplicable reason, greatly offended the foolish governor of the fort. In fact, when Kellsey grew up and later compiled a vocabulary of the Kri language for traders, the Hudson's Bay Company ordered it to be suppressed. Governor Geyer not only disapproved of Kellsey picking up the Kri language but also severely punished him for that and for his childish pranks; so much so that when he was about ten years old, Kellsey ran away with the returning Indigenous people, some of whom had grown very attached to him during their time at Fort Nelson.

Six years afterwards an Indian brought to the governor of the fort a letter written by Kellsey in charcoal on a piece of white birch bark. In this he asked the governor's pardon for running away, and his permission to return to the fort. As a kind reply was sent, Kellsey appeared not long afterwards grown into a young man, accompanied by an Indian wife and attended by a party of Indians. He was dressed exactly like them, but differed from them in the respect which he showed to his native wife. She attempted to accompany her husband into the factory or place of business, and the governor stopped her; but Kellsey at once told him in English that he would not enter himself if his wife was not suffered to go with him, and so the governor relented. After this Kellsey (who must then have been about seventeen) seems to have regularly enrolled himself in 1688 in the service of the Company, and he was employed as a kind of commercial traveller who made long journeys to the north-west to beat up a fur trade for the Company and induce tribes of Indians to make long journeys every summer to the Company's factory with the skins they had secured between the autumn and the spring. In this way Kellsey penetrated into the country of the Assiniboines, and he finally reached a more distant tribe or nation called by the long name of Néwátamipoet.[1] Kellsey first of all made for Split Lake, up the Nelson River, and thence paddled westwards in his canoe for a distance of 71 miles. Here he abandoned the canoe, and, for what he estimated as 316 miles, he tramped through a wooded country, first covered with fir and pine trees, and farther on with poplar and birch. Apparently he then reached a river flowing into Reindeer Lake. In a general way his steps must have taken him in the direction of Lake Athapaska.

Six years later, an Indian brought the governor of the fort a letter written by Kellsey in charcoal on a piece of white birch bark. In it, he asked the governor for forgiveness for running away and asked for permission to return to the fort. After a kind reply was sent back, Kellsey showed up not long after, having grown into a young man, accompanied by an Indian wife and a group of Indians. He was dressed just like them but treated his native wife with more respect. When she tried to go with her husband into the factory or place of business, the governor stopped her, but Kellsey immediately told him in English that he wouldn't enter if his wife couldn’t come with him, and the governor relented. After this, Kellsey, who must have been about seventeen at the time, seems to have officially joined the Company in 1688, working as a sort of commercial traveler who made long trips to the northwest to boost the fur trade for the Company and encouraged Indian tribes to make lengthy journeys every summer to the Company's factory with the skins they had collected during the autumn and spring. This way, Kellsey ventured into the land of the Assiniboines and eventually reached a more distant tribe known by the long name of Néwátamipoet.[1] Kellsey first headed to Split Lake, up the Nelson River, and then paddled westward in his canoe for about 71 miles. After that, he abandoned the canoe and walked an estimated 316 miles through a wooded area, first filled with fir and pine trees, and further on with poplar and birch. Eventually, he reached a river flowing into Reindeer Lake. In general, his route seemed to take him toward Lake Athapaska.

On the way he had much trouble with the Assiniboin Indians and Kris, with whom he had caught up, and with whom he was to travel in the direction of these mysterious Néwátamipoets. The last-named tribe, who were probably of the Athapaskan group, had killed, a few months previously, three of the Kri women, and the Kri Indians who belonged to Kellsey's party were bent, above all things, on attacking the Néwátamipoets and punishing them for this outrage. Kellsey only wished to open up peaceful relations with them and create a great trade in furs with the Hudson's Bay Company, so he kept pleading with the Indians not to go to war with the Néwátamipoets. On this journey, however, one of the Kri Indians fell ill and died. The next day the body was burnt with much ceremony—first the flesh, and then the bones—and after this funeral the companions of the dead man began to reason as to the cause of his death, and suddenly blamed Kellsey. Kellsey had obstructed them from their purpose of avenging their slain women, therefore the gods of the tribe were angry and claimed this victim in the man who had died. Kellsey was very near being sent to the other world to complete the sacrifice; but he arranged for "a feast of tobacco"—in other words, a calm deliberation and the smoking of the pipe of peace. He explained to the angry Indians that his Company had not supplied him with guns and ammunition with which to go to war, but to induce them to embark on the fur trade and to kill wild animals for their skins. If, instead of this, they went to war, or injured him, they need never again go down to Fort Nelson for any further trade or supplies. Four days afterwards, however, the attention of the whole party was concentrated on bison.

On the way, he faced a lot of trouble with the Assiniboin Indians and Kris, with whom he had caught up and who were traveling toward the mysterious Néwátamipoets. This latter tribe, likely part of the Athapaskan group, had killed three Kri women a few months earlier, and the Kri Indians traveling with Kellsey were determined to attack the Néwátamipoets and punish them for this act. Kellsey wanted to establish peaceful relations with them and create a lucrative fur trade with the Hudson's Bay Company, so he kept urging the Indians not to go to war with the Néwátamipoets. However, on this journey, one of the Kri Indians fell ill and died. The next day, his body was burned with great ceremony—first the flesh, then the bones—and after the funeral, the companions of the deceased began to discuss the cause of his death and suddenly turned their blame on Kellsey. They claimed that Kellsey had hindered their desire to avenge the slain women, so the tribe's gods were angry and demanded a sacrifice in the form of the dead man. Kellsey came close to being sent to the afterlife as part of that sacrifice, but he organized a "feast of tobacco"—essentially a calm discussion and the smoking of the peace pipe. He explained to the upset Indians that his Company hadn't given him guns and ammunition to go to war, but to encourage them to engage in the fur trade and hunt wild animals for their skins. If they chose to go to war or harm him instead, they would never be able to return to Fort Nelson for any trade or supplies again. Four days later, however, the entire group's attention turned to bison.

Bison could now be seen in abundance. Kellsey was already acquainted with the musk ox, which he had seen in the colder regions near to Hudson Bay; but the bison seemed to him quite different, with horns growing like those of an English ox, black and short. In the middle of September he reached the country of the Néwátamipoets, and presented to their chief, on behalf of the Hudson's Bay Company, a present of clothes, knives, awls, tobacco, and a gun, gunpowder, and shot. On this journey Kellsey encountered the grizzly bear, a more common denizen of the western regions of North America. According to his own account, he and one of the Indians with him were attacked by two grizzly bears and obliged to climb into the branches of trees. The bears followed them; but Kellsey fired and killed one, and later on the other also. For this feat he was greatly reverenced by the Indians, and received the name of Mistopashish, or "little giant". Kellsey afterwards rose to be governor of York Fort, on the west coast of Hudson Bay.

Bison could now be seen everywhere. Kellsey was already familiar with the musk ox, which he had spotted in the colder areas near Hudson Bay, but to him, the bison looked quite different, with horns like those of an English ox—short and black. In mid-September, he arrived in the land of the Néwátamipoets and presented their chief, on behalf of the Hudson's Bay Company, a gift of clothes, knives, awls, tobacco, a gun, gunpowder, and ammunition. During this journey, Kellsey encountered a grizzly bear, a more common inhabitant of the western regions of North America. According to his own account, he and one of the Indians with him were attacked by two grizzly bears and had to climb up into the trees. The bears pursued them, but Kellsey shot and killed one, and later the other as well. For this act, he earned great respect from the Indians and was given the name Mistopashish, or "little giant." Kellsey later became the governor of York Fort on the west coast of Hudson Bay.

The next great explorer ranging westward from Hudson Bay was Anthony Hendry.[2] Anthony Hendry left York factory in 1754, with a company of Kri Indians, to make a great journey of exploration to the west, and with the deliberate intention of wintering with the natives and not returning for that purpose to Hudson Bay. By means of canoe travel and portages he reached Oxford Lake. From here he gained Moose Lake, and soon afterwards "the broad waters of the Saskatchewan—the first Englishman to see this great river of the western plains".[3] Twenty-two miles upstream from the point where it reached the Saskatchewan he came to a French fort which had only been standing for a year, and which represented probably the farthest advance northwards of the French Canadians.

The next great explorer heading west from Hudson Bay was Anthony Hendry.[2] Anthony Hendry left York factory in 1754 with a group of Kri Indians to undertake an extensive exploration westward, intending to spend the winter with the natives and not return to Hudson Bay for that reason. Through canoe travel and portages, he reached Oxford Lake. From there, he arrived at Moose Lake and soon after encountered "the broad waters of the Saskatchewan—the first Englishman to see this great river of the western plains." [3] Twenty-two miles upstream from where it flowed into the Saskatchewan, he came across a French fort that had only been established for a year, representing probably the furthest northward extension of the French Canadians.

[__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]

The situation was a rather delicate one, for the Hudson's Bay Company was a thorn in the side of French Canada. However, in this year—1754—the two nations were not actually at war, and the two Frenchmen in charge of the fort received him "in a very genteel manner", and invited him into their home, where he readily accepted their hospitality. At first they spoke of detaining him till the commandant of the fort returned, but abandoned this idea after reflection, and Hendry continued his journey up the Saskatchewan. He then left the river and marched on foot over the plains which separate the North and the South Saskatchewan Rivers. The South Saskatchewan was found to be a high stream covered with birch, poplar, elder, and2 fir. He and his Indian guides were searching for the horse-riding Blackfeet Indians.[4] All the Amerindians known to the Hudson's Bay Company hitherto travelled on foot, using snowshoes in the winter; but vague rumours had reached the Company that in the far south-west there were great nations of Indians which did all their hunting on horseback.

The situation was pretty delicate because the Hudson's Bay Company was a real pain for French Canada. However, in 1754, the two nations weren't actually at war, and the two Frenchmen in charge of the fort welcomed him "in a very polite manner" and invited him into their home, where he happily accepted their hospitality. At first, they thought about keeping him there until the commandant of the fort returned, but after thinking it over, they dropped that idea, and Hendry continued his journey up the Saskatchewan. He then left the river and walked across the plains that separate the North and South Saskatchewan Rivers. The South Saskatchewan turned out to be a high stream lined with birch, poplar, elder, and fir. He and his Indian guides were looking for the horse-riding Blackfeet Indians. All the Indigenous peoples known to the Hudson's Bay Company so far traveled on foot, using snowshoes in the winter; but there were vague rumors reaching the Company that in the far south-west, there were large nations of Indians who did all their hunting on horseback.[4]

Hendry had now found them, and he also met a small tribe of Assiniboins—the Mekesue or Eagle Indians—who differed from the surrounding tribes by going about, at any rate in the summertime, absolutely naked. Here, too, between the two Saskatchewans, they saw herds of bison on the plains grazing like English cattle. But they also found elk (moose), wapiti or red deer, hares, grouse, geese, and ducks. He records in his journal: "I went with the young men a-buffalo-hunting, all armed with bows and arrows; killed several; fine sport. We beat them about, lodging twenty arrows in one beast. So expert were the natives that they will take the arrows out of the buffalo when they are foaming and raging with pain and tearing up the ground with their feet and horns until they fall down." The Amerindians killed far more of these splendid beasts than they could eat, and from these carcasses they merely took the tongues and a few choice pieces, leaving the remainder to the wolves and the grizzly bears.

Hendry had now found them, and he also met a small group of Assiniboins—the Mekesue or Eagle Indians—who were different from the surrounding tribes by going around completely naked during the summer. Here, too, between the two Saskatchewans, they saw herds of bison grazing on the plains like English cattle. But they also found elk (moose), wapiti or red deer, hares, grouse, geese, and ducks. He wrote in his journal: "I went with the young men to hunt buffalo, all armed with bows and arrows; we killed several; it was great fun. We chased them around, lodging twenty arrows in one animal. The natives were so skilled that they could retrieve the arrows from the buffalo even when they were foaming and raging in pain and tearing up the ground with their feet and horns until they collapsed." The Amerindians killed far more of these magnificent beasts than they could eat, and from these carcasses, they took only the tongues and a few choice pieces, leaving the rest for the wolves and grizzly bears.

At last they arrived at the temporary village of the Blackfeet. Two hundred tents or tipis were pitched in two parallel rows, and down this avenue marched Anthony Hendry, gazed at silently by many Blackfeet Indians until he reached the large house or lodge of their great chief, at the end of the avenue of tents. This lodge was large enough to contain fifty persons. The chief received him seated on the sacred skin of a white buffalo. The pipe of peace was then produced and passed round in silence, each person taking a ceremonial puff. Boiled bison beef was then brought to the guests in baskets made of willow branches. Hendry told the great chief of the Blackfeet that he had been sent by the great leader of the white men at Hudson Bay to invite the Blackfeet Indians to come to these eastern waters in the summertime, and bring with them beaver and wolf skins, for which they would get, in return, guns, ammunition, cloth, beads, and other trade goods. But this chief, though he listened patiently, pointed out that this fort on Hudson Bay was situated at a very great distance, that his men only knew how to ride horses, and not how to paddle canoes. Moreover, they could not live without bison beef, and disliked fish.

At last, they reached the temporary village of the Blackfeet. Two hundred tents or tipis were set up in two parallel rows, and down this avenue walked Anthony Hendry, silently watched by many Blackfeet Indians until he arrived at the large house or lodge of their great chief at the end of the tent avenue. This lodge was big enough for fifty people. The chief welcomed him while seated on the sacred skin of a white buffalo. The peace pipe was then brought out and passed around quietly, with each person taking a ceremonial puff. Boiled bison beef was then served to the guests in baskets made of willow branches. Hendry informed the great chief of the Blackfeet that he had been sent by the great leader of the white men at Hudson Bay to invite the Blackfeet Indians to come to these eastern waters in the summer and bring with them beaver and wolf skins, for which they would receive guns, ammunition, cloth, beads, and other trade goods in return. However, the chief, while listening patiently, pointed out that the fort at Hudson Bay was very far away, that his people only knew how to ride horses and not how to paddle canoes. Moreover, they could not live without bison beef and did not like fish.

After leaving the headquarters of the Blackfeet, Hendry rambled over the beautiful country of fir woods and pine woods until he must have got within sight of the Rocky Mountains, though these are not mentioned in his journal. Then, after passing the winter (which did not begin as regards cold weather till the 2nd of December, and was over at the end of March) he returned to the French fort on the Saskatchewan, where he was received by the Commandant, de La Corne, with great kindness and hospitality. These Frenchmen, he found, were able to speak in great perfection several Indian languages; they were well dressed, and courtly in manners, and led a civilized life in these distant wilds. They had excellent trade goods and were sincerely liked by the Indians, but for some reason or other they lacked Brazilian tobacco, which seems to have been a commodity much in favour amongst the Indians. With this the Hudson's Bay Company were kept well supplied, and that alone enabled them in any degree to compete with the French. But in ten years more this French fort would be abandoned owing to the cession of Canada to Britain.

After leaving the headquarters of the Blackfeet, Hendry wandered through the stunning areas of fir and pine forests until he likely caught his first glimpse of the Rocky Mountains, even though he doesn’t mention them in his journal. Then, after spending the winter (which didn’t really start getting cold until December 2nd and ended by the end of March), he returned to the French fort on the Saskatchewan, where the Commandant, de La Corne, welcomed him with great kindness and hospitality. He noticed that these Frenchmen were fluent in several Native languages, dressed well, behaved gracefully, and lived a civilized life in these remote wildernesses. They had excellent trade goods and were genuinely liked by the Indigenous people, but for some reason, they didn’t have Brazilian tobacco, which seemed to be a favorite among the Indians. The Hudson's Bay Company kept a good supply of it, and that alone allowed them to compete with the French to some extent. But in ten more years, this French fort would be abandoned due to Canada being ceded to Britain.

The British, in fact, all through the first half of the eighteenth century, by their superiority in sea power, were steadily strangling the French empire in North America. Acadia, or Nova Scotia, and New Brunswick had been, as we have seen, recognized as British in 1713, and Newfoundland, also, subject to certain conditions, giving France the exclusive right to fish on the western and northern coasts of Newfoundland. The result was that when "New France", or Canada and Louisiana combined, was at its greatest extent of conquered and administered territory, France held but a very limited seacoast from which to approach it—just the mouth of the Mississippi, and a little bit of Alabama on the south and Cape Breton Island on the east. Cape Breton Island was commanded by the immensely strong fortress of Louisburg, and the possession of this place gave the French some security in entering the Gulf of St. Lawrence through Cabot Straits. But Louisburg was captured by the British colonists of New England (United States) in 1745; and although it was given back to France again, it was reoccupied in 1758, and served as a basis for the armaments which were directed against Quebec in 1759, and which resulted at the close of that year in the surrender of that important city. In 1763 all Canada was ceded to the British, and Louisiana (which had become the western barrier of the about-to-be-born United States) was ceded to Spain; the French flag flew no more on the Continent of North America, save in the two little islands of St. Pierre and Miquelon adjoining Newfoundland, wherein it still remains as a reminder of the splendid achievements of Frenchmen in America.

The British, throughout the first half of the eighteenth century, consistently choked the French empire in North America with their naval superiority. As we’ve seen, Acadia, or Nova Scotia, and New Brunswick were recognized as British in 1713, and Newfoundland was subject to certain conditions, granting France exclusive rights to fish on the western and northern coasts of Newfoundland. This meant that when "New France," which included Canada and Louisiana, reached its largest area of conquered and administrated territory, France only controlled a very limited coastal region to access it—just the mouth of the Mississippi, a bit of Alabama to the south, and Cape Breton Island to the east. Cape Breton Island was defended by the incredibly strong fortress of Louisburg, which provided the French some security to enter the Gulf of St. Lawrence through Cabot Straits. However, Louisburg was captured by British colonists from New England (United States) in 1745; although it was returned to France, it was retaken in 1758 and served as a base for the attacks against Quebec in 1759, leading to the surrender of that key city by the end of that year. In 1763, all of Canada was ceded to the British, and Louisiana (which had become the western boundary of the soon-to-be-formed United States) was ceded to Spain; the French flag was no longer seen on the continent of North America, except on the two small islands of St. Pierre and Miquelon near Newfoundland, where it still flies as a reminder of the remarkable achievements of the French in America.


1 Spelt in the documents of the Hudson's Bay Company, Naywatame-poet.

1 Spelled out in the documents of the Hudson's Bay Company, Naywatame-poet.

2 The young or old reader of this and other books dealing with the exploration of the Canadian Dominion will be indeed puzzled between the various Hendrys and Henrys. The last-named was a prolific stock, from which several notable explorers and servants of the fur-trading companies were drawn. In this book a careful distinction must be made between the Anthony Hendrey or Hendey, who commenced his exploration of the west in 1754; the unrelated Alexander Henry the Elder, who journeyed between 1761 and 1776; and the nephew of the last-named, Alexander Henry the Younger, whose pioneering explorations occurred between 1799 and 1814.

2 Both young and old readers of this and other books about exploring Canada will definitely be confused by the various Hendrys and Henrys. The latter group was quite numerous, producing several notable explorers and employees of the fur-trading companies. In this book, it’s important to clearly distinguish between Anthony Hendrey or Hendey, who started exploring the west in 1754; the unrelated Alexander Henry the Elder, who traveled between 1761 and 1776; and his nephew, Alexander Henry the Younger, whose significant explorations took place between 1799 and 1814.

3 The Search for the Western Sea, by Lawrence J. Burpee.

3 The Search for the Western Sea, by Lawrence J. Burpee.

4 See p. 159.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See page __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

[__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]






CHAPTER IX

The Pioneers from Montreal: Alexander Henry the Elder

After 1763, when the two provinces of Canada were definitely ceded to Great Britain, the exploring energies of the Hudson's Bay Fur-trading Company revived. But before this rather sluggish organization could take full advantage of the cessation of French opposition, independent British pioneers were on their way to explore the vast north-west and west, soon carrying their marvellous journeys beyond the utmost limits reached by La Vérendrye and his sons. Eventually these pioneers, who had Montreal for their base and who wisely associated themselves in business and exploration with French Canadians, founded in 1784 a great trading association known as the North-west Trading Company. A few years later certain Scottish pioneers brought a rival exploration and trading corporation into existence and called it the "X.Y. Company". In 1804 these rival Montreal fur-trading associations were fused into a new North-west Trading Company. Between this and the old Hudson's Bay Company an intensely bitter rivalry and enmity—almost at times a state of war—arose, and continued until 1821, when the North-west Company and that of Hudson's Bay amalgamated. It is necessary that these dry details should be understood in order that the reader may comprehend the motives and reasons which prompted the journeys which are about to be described.

After 1763, when Canada was officially given to Great Britain, the Hudson's Bay Fur-trading Company sparked back to life. However, before this rather slow-moving organization could fully capitalize on the end of French opposition, independent British pioneers were already on their way to explore the vast northwest and west, soon taking their incredible journeys beyond the farthest points reached by La Vérendrye and his sons. Eventually, these pioneers, based in Montreal, teamed up with French Canadians for business and exploration, founding a major trading organization known as the North-west Trading Company in 1784. A few years later, some Scottish pioneers created a competing exploration and trading company called the "X.Y. Company." In 1804, these rival Montreal fur-trading businesses merged to form a new North-west Trading Company. Intense rivalry and hostility—almost to the point of war—developed between this new company and the Hudson's Bay Company, continuing until 1821, when the North-west Company and the Hudson's Bay Company joined forces. Understanding these straightforward

Jonathan Carver, of Boston, U.S.A., was perhaps the pioneer of all the British traders into the far west of Canada, beyond Lake Superior, after Canada had been handed over to the British.[1] In 1766-7 he reached the Mississippi at its junction with the St. Peter or Minnesota River, and journeyed up it to the land of the Dakota. Thomas Currie, of Montreal, in 1770 travelled as far as Cedar Lake,[2] where there had been established the French post of Fort Bourbon. He was succeeded the next year by James Finlay, who extended his explorations to the Saskatchewan, whither he was followed by Alexander Henry the Elder in 1775.

Jonathan Carver, from Boston, U.S.A., was likely the first British trader to venture into the far west of Canada, beyond Lake Superior, after Canada was turned over to the British.[1] In 1766-1767, he reached the Mississippi at its confluence with the St. Peter or Minnesota River and traveled up it to the land of the Dakota. Thomas Currie, from Montreal, traveled as far as Cedar Lake in 1770,[2] where the French post of Fort Bourbon had been established. The following year, James Finlay took over and expanded his explorations to the Saskatchewan, where he was followed by Alexander Henry the Elder in 1775.

Alexander Henry (styled The Elder to distinguish him from his famous nephew of the same name) was a native of New Jersey (U.S.A.), where he was born in 1739. His parents were well-to-do people of the middle class who are believed to have emigrated at the beginning of the eighteenth century from the West of England, and to have been related to Matthew Henry, the Bible commentator. Their son, Alexander, received a good education, and after some commercial apprenticeship at Albany (New York) came to Quebec when Canada was occupied by the British in 1760; at which period he was about twenty-one years old. He was in such a hurry to try a trading adventure in the country of the great lakes that he ventured into central Canada before it was sufficiently calmed down and reconciled to British rule. The hostility, curiously enough, manifested itself much more among the Amerindians than the settlers of French blood. These white men had not been so well treated by the arrogant French officers and officials as much to mind the change to the greater freedom of British government. But the Indian chiefs and people loved the French, largely owing to the goodness and solicitude of the missionaries.

Alexander Henry (known as The Elder to differentiate him from his famous nephew) was born in 1739 in New Jersey, USA. His parents were well-off members of the middle class, believed to have emigrated from the West of England at the start of the eighteenth century, and were thought to be related to Matthew Henry, the Bible commentator. Alexander received a good education and, after some time apprenticed in trade in Albany, New York, he arrived in Quebec when Canada was taken over by the British in 1760, at which point he was about twenty-one. Eager to embark on a trading venture in the Great Lakes region, he traveled into central Canada before the situation had stabilized and the local population had come to terms with British rule. Interestingly, the hostility was more pronounced among the Indigenous people than among the French settlers. The French settlers were not as upset by the transition to British governance, as they had faced poor treatment from the arrogant French officials. In contrast, the Indigenous chiefs and their communities had a strong affection for the French, largely due to the kindness and care shown by the missionaries.

"The hostility of the Indians", wrote Henry in his journal, travelling along the coast of Lake Huron, "was exclusively against the English. Between them and my Canadian attendants, there appeared the most cordial goodwill. This circumstance suggested one means of escape, of which, by the advice of my friend, Campion, I resolved to attempt availing myself; namely, that of putting on the dress usually worn by such of the Canadians as pursue the trade into which I had entered, and assimilating myself, as much as I was able, to their appearance and manners. To this end I laid aside my English clothes and covered myself only with a cloth passed about the middle; a shirt, hanging loose; a 'molton', or blanket coat, and a large, red worsted cap. The next thing was to smear my face and hands with dirt and grease; and, this done, I took the place of one of my men, and, when the Indians approached, used the paddle with as much skill as I possessed. I had the satisfaction to find, that my disguise enabled me to pass several canoes without attracting the smallest notice."

"The hostility from the Indians," Henry wrote in his journal while traveling along the coast of Lake Huron, "was directed solely at the English. Between them and my Canadian companions, there was a warm sense of goodwill. This situation suggested a possible way for me to escape, which I decided to try based on my friend Campion's advice. I planned to wear the clothing typically worn by Canadians involved in the trade I had entered and to blend in with their appearance and behavior as much as I could. To do this, I took off my English clothes and wrapped myself in a cloth around my waist; I wore a loose shirt, a 'molton' or blanket coat, and a large red wool cap. Next, I smeared my face and hands with dirt and grease. Once that was done, I took the place of one of my men and when the Indians approached, I used the paddle as skillfully as I could. I was pleased to find that my disguise allowed me to pass several canoes without attracting any attention."

When he reached Fort Michili-makinak[3] he wrote: "At two o'clock in the afternoon, the Chipeways came to my house, about sixty in number, and headed by Minaváváná, their chief. They walked in single file, each with his tomahawk in one hand and scalping knife in the other. Their bodies were naked from the waist upward, except in a few examples, where blankets were thrown loosely over the shoulders. Their faces were painted with charcoal, worked up with grease; their bodies, with white clay, in patterns of various fancies. Some had feathers thrust through their noses, and their heads decorated with the same.... It is unnecessary to dwell on the sensations with which I beheld the approach of this uncouth, if not frightful assemblage.

When he got to Fort Michilimackinac[3], he wrote: "At two o'clock in the afternoon, about sixty Chipeways arrived at my house, led by their chief, Minaváváná. They came in a single line, each holding a tomahawk in one hand and a scalping knife in the other. From the waist up, they were mostly naked, with just a few exceptions where blankets hung loosely over their shoulders. Their faces were painted with charcoal mixed with grease, and their bodies were covered in white clay with various designs. Some had feathers pushed through their noses, and their heads were adorned the same way.... It's unnecessary to describe the feelings I experienced as I watched this bizarre, if not frightening, group approach."

"The chief entered first, and the rest followed without noise. On receiving a sign from the former, the latter seated themselves on the floor.

"The chief came in first, and everyone else followed silently. When the chief signaled, the others sat down on the floor."

"Minaváváná appeared to be about fifty years of age. He was six feet in height, and had, in his countenance, an indescribable mixture of good and evil.... Looking steadfastly at me, where I sat in ceremony, with an interpreter on either hand and several Canadians behind me, he entered at the same time into conversation with Campion, enquiring how long it was since I left Montreal, and observing that the English, as it would seem, were brave men, and not afraid of death, since they dared to come, as I had done, fearlessly among their enemies."

"Minaváváná looked to be around fifty years old. He stood six feet tall and had an indescribable mix of good and evil in his expression. As he looked intently at me, sitting in ceremony with an interpreter on either side and several Canadians behind me, he also struck up a conversation with Campion, asking how long it had been since I left Montreal, and noting that the English seemed to be brave men, unafraid of death, since they dared to come, like I did, fearlessly among their enemies."

The Indians now gravely smoked their pipes, whilst Henry inwardly endured tortures of suspense. At length, the pipes being finished, a long pause of silence followed. Then Minaváváná, taking a few strings of wampum in his hand, began a long speech, of which it is only necessary to give a few extracts:—

The Native Americans now seriously smoked their pipes while Henry silently suffered through suspense. Finally, after they finished smoking, a long silence followed. Then Minaváváná, holding a few strands of wampum, began a lengthy speech, from which only a few excerpts are necessary:—

"Englishman, it is to you that I speak, and I demand your attention!

"Englishman, I’m speaking to you, and I need your attention!"

"Englishman, although you have conquered the French, you have not yet conquered us! We are not your slaves. These lakes, these woods and mountains, were left to us by our ancestors. They are our inheritance, and we will part with them to none. Your nation supposes that we, like the white people, cannot live without bread—and pork—and beef! But, you ought to know, that He, the Great Spirit and Master of Life, has provided food for us in these spacious lakes, and on these woody mountains.

"Englishman, even though you've defeated the French, you haven't defeated us yet! We are not your slaves. These lakes, these woods, and these mountains were passed down to us by our ancestors. They are our legacy, and we won't give them up to anyone. Your people think that we, like white people, can't survive without bread—and pork—and beef! But you should know that He, the Great Spirit and Master of Life, has given us food in these vast lakes and on these lush mountains."

"Englishman, our father, the King of France, employed our young men to make war upon your nation. In this warfare many of them have been killed, and it is our custom to retaliate, until such time as the spirits of the slain are satisfied. But the spirits of the slain are to be satisfied in either of two ways. The first is by the spilling of the blood of the nation by which they fell; the other by covering the bodies of the dead, and thus allaying the resentment of their relations. This is done by making presents.

"Englishman, our father, the King of France, sent our young men to fight against your nation. In this conflict, many of them have died, and it's our tradition to seek revenge until the spirits of the fallen are at peace. The spirits can find peace in one of two ways. The first is by shedding the blood of the nation responsible for their deaths; the second is by honoring the bodies of the dead, which helps ease the grief of their families. This is done through gifts."

"Englishman, your king has never sent us any presents, nor entered into any treaty with us, wherefore he and we are still at war; and, until he does these things, we must consider that we have no other father, nor friend, among the white men, than the King of France; but, for you, we have taken into consideration, that you have ventured your life among us in the expectation that we should not molest you. You do not come armed with an intention to make war; you come in peace, to trade with us, and supply us with necessaries, of which we are in want. We shall regard you, therefore, as a brother, and you may sleep tranquilly, without fear of the Chipeways.... As a token of our friendship, we present you with this pipe to smoke."

"Englishman, your king has never sent us any gifts, nor made any deals with us, which is why we are still at war; and until he does these things, we must consider that we have no other father or friend among the white men than the King of France. However, for you, we recognize that you have risked your life among us expecting that we would not harm you. You aren’t coming armed with the intention to fight; you’re coming in peace to trade with us and to provide us with the necessities we need. Therefore, we will see you as a brother, and you can sleep peacefully without fear of the Chipeways... As a sign of our friendship, we offer you this pipe to smoke."

When Minaváváná had finished his harangue, an Indian presented Henry with a pipe, the which, after he had drawn smoke through it three times, was carried back to the chief, and after him to every person in the room. This ceremony ended, the chief arose, and gave the Englishman his hand, in which he was followed by all the rest.

When Minaváváná finished his speech, an Indian handed Henry a pipe, which he smoked three times before it was returned to the chief and then passed to everyone else in the room. After this ceremony was over, the chief stood up and shook hands with the Englishman, followed by everyone else.

At the Sault Ste Marie, on the river connecting Lake Superior and Huron, Henry spent part of the spring of 1763-4, and engaged with a few French Canadians and Indians in making maple sugar, the season for which—April—was now at hand.

At Sault Ste Marie, on the river linking Lake Superior and Huron, Henry spent part of the spring of 1763-64 and teamed up with a few French Canadians and Indigenous people to make maple sugar, as the season for it—April—was approaching.

A temporary house for eight persons was built in a convenient part of the maple woods, distant about three miles from the fort. The men then gathered the bark of white birch trees, and made out of it vessels to hold the sap which was to flow from the incisions they cut in the bark of the maple trees. Into these cuts they introduced wooden spouts or ducts, and under them were placed the birch-bark vessels. When these were filled, the sweet liquid was poured into larger buckets, and the buckets were emptied into bags of elkskin containing perhaps a hundred gallons. Boilers (probably of metal, introduced by the French) were next set up in the camp over fires kept burning day and night, and the maple sap thus boiled became, by concentration, maple sugar.

A temporary house for eight people was built in a convenient area of the maple woods, about three miles from the fort. The men then collected the bark from white birch trees and made containers to hold the sap that would flow from the cuts they made in the bark of the maple trees. They inserted wooden spouts into these cuts, and placed the birch-bark containers beneath them. Once these were filled, the sweet liquid was poured into larger buckets, which were then emptied into elk-skin bags that could hold around a hundred gallons. Boilers, probably made of metal and introduced by the French, were then set up in the camp over fires that burned continuously, and the maple sap was boiled down to become maple sugar.

The women attended to all the business of sugar manufacture, while the men cut wood and went out hunting and fishing to secure food for the community; though, as a matter of fact, sugar and syrup were their main sustenance during all this absence from home. "I have known Indians", wrote Henry, "to live for a time wholly on maple sugar and syrup and become fat." The sap of the maple had certain medicinal qualities which were exceedingly good for persons who had previously been eating little else than meat and fish, so that the three weeks of sugar-boiling in Canada was, no doubt, a splendid assistance to the health of the natives. On this particular occasion described by Henry, the party returned, after three weeks' absence, to the Sault Ste Marie with 1600 lb. of maple sugar, and 36 gallons of syrup.[4]

The women handled all the sugar-making, while the men chopped wood and went hunting and fishing to provide food for the community. However, the truth is that sugar and syrup were their main sources of nutrition during their time away from home. "I've known Native Americans," Henry wrote, "to survive entirely on maple sugar and syrup and gain weight." The sap from the maple tree had some medicinal benefits that were very helpful for people who had mostly been eating just meat and fish, so the three weeks of sugar boiling in Canada was definitely a great boost to the health of the locals. In the specific instance that Henry described, the group returned to Sault Ste Marie after three weeks away with 1,600 pounds of maple sugar and 36 gallons of syrup.[4]

Henry returned in the summer of 1763 to Fort Michili-makinak. The place was then held by a British garrison under Major Etherington. Shortly after Henry's arrival, an Ojibwé chief named Wáwátam came often to his lodgings, and, taking a great fancy to the Englishman, asked leave to become his blood brother. He was about forty-five years of age, and of an excellent character amongst his nation. He warned Henry that he, Wáwátam, had had bad dreams during the winter, in which he had been disturbed "by the noises of evil birds", and gave him other roundabout warnings that the Indians of different tribes were going to attack the British garrison at Michili-Makinak, and endeavour to destroy all the English in Upper Canada. Henry did not pay over much attention to this warning, because "the Indian manner of speech is so extravagantly figurative".

Henry returned in the summer of 1763 to Fort Michili-makinak. The place was then occupied by a British garrison under Major Etherington. Shortly after Henry's arrival, an Ojibwé chief named Wáwátam frequently visited his lodgings and, being quite taken with the Englishman, asked for permission to become his blood brother. He was about forty-five years old and had a great reputation among his people. He warned Henry that he, Wáwátam, had experienced troubling dreams during the winter, disturbed by "the sounds of evil birds," and gave him various indirect warnings that the Indians from different tribes were planning to attack the British garrison at Michili-Makinak and attempt to eliminate all the English in Upper Canada. Henry didn’t pay much attention to this warning because "the Indian manner of speech is so extravagantly figurative."

The King's birthday was celebrated with, no doubt, somewhat tipsy rejoicings in the summer of 1763. The Ojibwé Indians outside the fort pretended they were going to have a great game of La Crosse with the Sāki or "Fox" Indians. This game was got up to find a pretext for entering the fort and taking the British officers and garrison at a disadvantage. Some of the officers and soldiers, suspecting nothing in the way of danger, were outside the fort by the waterside. However, the sport commenced, and suddenly the ball was struck over the pickets of the fort. At once the Ojibwés, pretending great ardour in their game, came leaping, struggling and shouting over the defences into the fort as though "in the unrestrained pursuit of a rude, athletic exercise". Once inside the fortifications, they attacked the unsuspicious and unarmed soldiers and officers, of whom they killed seventy out of ninety.

The King's birthday was celebrated, without a doubt, with some drunken festivities in the summer of 1763. The Ojibwé Indians outside the fort pretended they were about to have a big game of La Crosse with the Sāki or "Fox" Indians. This game was organized to create a reason for entering the fort and catching the British officers and garrison by surprise. Some of the officers and soldiers, unaware of any danger, were by the waterside outside the fort. However, the game began, and suddenly the ball was hit over the fort's pickets. Immediately, the Ojibwés, feigning great enthusiasm for their game, came leaping, struggling, and shouting over the defenses into the fort as if they were "in the unrestrained pursuit of a rough, athletic activity." Once inside the fortifications, they attacked the unsuspecting and unarmed soldiers and officers, killing seventy out of ninety.

Henry had not gone with the others, but had stayed in his room writing letters. Suddenly he heard the Indian warcry and a noise of general confusion. Looking out of his window he saw a crowd of Indians inside the fort furiously cutting down and scalping every Englishman they could reach. Meantime, the French Canadian inhabitants of the fort looked on calmly, neither intervening to stop the Indians, nor suffering any injury from them. Realizing that all his fellow countrymen were practically destroyed, Henry endeavoured to hide himself. He entered the house of his next-door neighbour, a Frenchman, and found the whole family at the windows gazing at the scene of blood before them. He implored this Frenchman to put him into some place of safety until the massacre was over. The latter merely shrugged his shoulders and intimated that he could do nothing for him; but a Pani Indian woman, a slave of this Frenchman, beckoned to Henry to follow her, and hid him in a garret. Then the Indians burst into the house and asked the Frenchman if he had got any Englishmen concealed, the latter returned an evasive answer, telling them to search for themselves. Henry hid himself under a heap of birch-bark vessels, which were used in maple-sugar manufacture. The door was unlocked, the four Indians dashed in, their bodies covered with blood, and armed with tomahawks. The hidden man thought that the throbbing of his heart must make a noise loud enough to betray him. The Indians searched the garret, and one of them approached Henry so closely as almost to touch him; yet he remained undiscovered, possibly owing to the dark colour of his clothes and the dim light in the room. Then the Indians, after describing to the Frenchman how many they had killed and scalped, returned downstairs, and the door was locked behind them.

Henry hadn’t gone with the others; instead, he stayed in his room writing letters. Suddenly, he heard the Indian war cry and a loud commotion. Looking out of his window, he saw a crowd of Indians inside the fort violently attacking and scalping every Englishman they could find. Meanwhile, the French Canadian residents of the fort watched calmly, neither intervening to stop the Indians nor suffering any harm themselves. Realizing that nearly all his fellow countrymen were being killed, Henry tried to hide. He entered the house of his next-door neighbor, a Frenchman, and found the whole family at the windows staring at the bloody scene before them. He begged this Frenchman to help him find a safe place until the massacre ended. The Frenchman simply shrugged and indicated that he couldn’t do anything for him; however, a Pani Indian woman, who was a slave to this Frenchman, signaled for Henry to follow her and hid him in an attic. Then the Indians burst into the house and asked the Frenchman if he had any Englishmen hidden. The Frenchman gave an evasive answer, telling them to look for themselves. Henry hid under a pile of birch-bark containers used for making maple syrup. The door was unlocked, and four Indians rushed in, their bodies covered in blood and armed with tomahawks. Henry thought the pounding of his heart was loud enough to give him away. The Indians searched the attic, and one of them came so close to Henry that he almost touched him; yet Henry remained undetected, likely because of the dark color of his clothes and the dim light in the room. After describing to the Frenchman how many they had killed and scalped, the Indians went back downstairs, and the door was locked behind them.

But the next day the Indians insisted on a further search, and, regarding every attempt at concealment as vain, Henry, by a desperate resolve, rose from his bed and presented himself in full view to the Indians as they entered the room. They were all in a state of intoxication and entirely naked. One of them, upwards of six feet in height, had all his face and body covered with charcoal and grease, but with a large white ring encircling each of his eyes. This man, walking up to Henry, seized him with one hand by the collar of his coat, and in the other held up a large carving knife, making a feint as if to plunge it into his breast, his eyes meanwhile fixed steadfastly on those of the Englishman. At length, after some seconds of the most anxious suspense, he dropped Henry's arm, saying: "I won't kill you," adding that he had often fought in war with the English and brought away many scalps, but that on a certain occasion he had lost a brother whose name was Musinigon, and that he would adopt Henry in his place.

But the next day, the Indians demanded another search, and, seeing any attempt to hide as pointless, Henry, in a moment of desperation, got out of bed and stood openly in front of the Indians as they entered the room. They were all drunk and completely naked. One of them, over six feet tall, had his entire face and body covered in charcoal and grease, but large white rings surrounded each of his eyes. This man walked up to Henry, grabbed him by the collar of his coat with one hand, and brandished a large carving knife in the other, pretending to stab him in the chest while keeping his eyes locked on the Englishman’s. After what felt like an eternity of tension, he finally let go of Henry's arm and said, "I won’t kill you," adding that he had often fought against the English and had taken many scalps, but once lost a brother named Musinigon, and that he would adopt Henry in his place.

One would like the story to have stopped here at this happy turn of events, but Wenniway (as this saviour of Henry was called) entertained a very fickle regard for his adopted brother, and, though he once or twice intervened, subsequently took no great pains to see that his life was spared. However, for the time being he was reprieved, and regarded Wenniway as his "master". Nevertheless, he was soon haled out of the house by another Indian, apparently coming with Wenniway's authority. This man ordered him to undress, and then took away all his clothes, giving him such dirty rags or strips of leather as he possessed himself. He frankly owned that his motive for stripping him was that, as he wished afterwards to kill him, Henry's clothes might not be stained with blood! With the intention of assassinating him, in fact, he dragged Henry along to a region of bushes and sandhills, and then produced a knife and attempted to execute his purpose. But with the rage and strength of absolute despair Henry wrenched himself free, pushed his would-be murderer on one side, and ran for his life towards the fort.

One would hope the story could end here at this happy twist of events, but Wenniway (the savior of Henry) had a very unpredictable attitude toward his adopted brother. Although he intervened once or twice, he didn’t do much to ensure Henry's life was protected. For now, Henry was safe and thought of Wenniway as his "master." However, he was soon dragged out of the house by another Indian, seemingly acting on Wenniway's orders. This man told him to undress and then took away all his clothes, giving him some dirty rags and strips of leather instead. He openly admitted that he wanted to strip him because, since he planned to kill Henry later, he didn’t want Henry's clothes to get blood on them! With the intent to assassinate him, he pulled Henry to an area of bushes and sandhills, then pulled out a knife and tried to carry out his plan. But fueled by pure desperation and rage, Henry broke free, pushed his attacker aside, and ran for his life toward the fort.

Here Wenniway rather indifferently helped him to take refuge in the house of the Frenchman in which he had formerly hidden, but the same night he was roused from sleep and ordered to come below, where to his surprise he found himself in the presence of three of the British officers who had formerly commanded in this fort, and who were now prisoners of the Ojibwés. The Indian chiefs for the time being had handed these men over to the surveillance of the French Canadians, together with the seventeen surviving English soldiers and traders. Henry, like the others, was almost without clothes. The French Canadian in whose house he had taken refuge refused to give him as much as a blanket, but another Canadian, less indifferent to the sufferings of a fellow white man, did give him a blanket, but for which he would certainly have perished from cold.

Here, Wenniway casually helped him find safety in the house of the Frenchman where he had previously hidden, but that same night he was awakened and told to come downstairs. To his surprise, he found himself face to face with three British officers who had once commanded this fort and were now prisoners of the Ojibwés. The Indian chiefs had temporarily assigned these men to the care of the French Canadians, along with the seventeen surviving English soldiers and traders. Henry, like the others, was nearly naked. The French Canadian whose house he had taken refuge in refused to give him even a blanket, but another Canadian, who was less indifferent to a fellow white man's suffering, did offer him a blanket; without it, he surely would have frozen to death.

The next day he and the other English prisoners were embarked in canoes and taken away to Lake Michigan. On reaching the mouth of that lake, at the Beaver Islands, the Ojibwé canoes, on account of the fog, were obliged to approach the lands of the Ottawa Indians. These last suddenly seized the canoes as they entered shallow water, and professed great indignation at the capture of Fort Michili-Makinak and the slaughter of the Englishmen. They declared their intention of saving the survivors, and charged the Ojibwés with being about to kill and eat them. By the Ottawa Indians, therefore, the twenty Englishmen were carried back again and deposited in Fort Michili-Makinak, which was now taken possession of by the Ottawas. The English were still held as prisoners. After hearing all the Ojibwés had to say, and receiving from them large presents, the Ottawas finally decided to restore their English prisoners to the Ojibwés, who consequently took them away with ropes tied round their necks, and put them into an Indian habitation. Here, as they were starving, they were offered loaves of bread, but with the horrible accompaniment of seeing the slices cut with knives still covered with the blood of the murdered English. The Ojibwés moistened this blood on the knife blades with their spittle, and rubbed it on the slices of bread, offering this food then to their prisoners, so that they might force them to eat the blood of their countrymen.

The next day, he and the other English prisoners were loaded into canoes and taken to Lake Michigan. When they arrived at the mouth of the lake, at the Beaver Islands, the Ojibwé canoes had to head towards the land of the Ottawa Indians due to the fog. The Ottawas suddenly seized the canoes as they entered shallow water and expressed dramatic outrage over the capture of Fort Michili-Makinak and the killing of the Englishmen. They claimed they were there to save the survivors and accused the Ojibwés of planning to kill and eat them. So, the twenty Englishmen were taken back by the Ottawa Indians and handed over to Fort Michili-Makinak, which the Ottawas now occupied. The English remained prisoners. After listening to everything the Ojibwés had to say and receiving generous gifts from them, the Ottawas ultimately decided to return their English prisoners to the Ojibwés, who then took them away with ropes around their necks and placed them in an Indian dwelling. Here, as they were starving, they were offered loaves of bread, but with the horrifying sight of seeing the slices cut with knives still stained with the blood of the murdered English. The Ojibwés moistened the blood on the knife blades with their spit and rubbed it on the slices of bread, then offered this food to their prisoners, forcing them to eat the blood of their countrymen.

The next morning, however, there appeared before Ménéhewéhná, the great war chief of the Ojibwés, Henry's friend and adopted brother, Wáwátam. This man made an earnest speech to the council of Ojibwé chiefs and braves, in which he pleaded hard for the Englishman's life, at the same time tendering from out of his own goods a considerable ransom. After much pipe-smoking and an embarrassing silence, the war chief rose to his feet and accepted the ransom, giving Wáwátam permission to take away into safety his adopted brother. "Wáwátam led me to his lodge, which was at the distance of a few yards only from the prison lodge. My entrance appeared to give joy to the whole family; food was immediately prepared for me; and I now ate the first hearty meal which I had made since my capture. I found myself one of the family; and, but that I had still my fears as to the other Indians, I felt as happy as the situation could allow."

The next morning, though, Wáwátam, the great war chief of the Ojibwés and Henry's friend and adopted brother, appeared before Ménéhewéhná. He gave a heartfelt speech to the council of Ojibwé chiefs and warriors, passionately advocating for the Englishman's life while offering a significant ransom from his own belongings. After a lot of pipe-smoking and an awkward silence, the war chief stood up and accepted the ransom, allowing Wáwátam to safely take his adopted brother away. "Wáwátam led me to his lodge, which was only a few yards away from the prison lodge. My arrival seemed to bring joy to the whole family; they immediately prepared food for me, and for the first time since my capture, I had a proper meal. I felt like part of the family, and aside from my lingering fears about the other Indians, I felt as happy as the situation would allow."

The next day seven of the English prisoners were killed by the Ojibwés, and Henry actually saw their dead bodies being dragged out into the open. They had been killed in cold blood by an Indian chief who had just arrived from a hunting expedition, and who, not having been present at the attack on the fort, now desired to satisfy his warlike instincts and his agreement with the policy of the Ojibwés by going into the lodge where the English officers and men were tied up, and slaughtering seven of them in cold blood.

The next day, seven of the English prisoners were killed by the Ojibwés, and Henry actually saw their bodies being dragged out into the open. They had been killed in cold blood by an Indian chief who had just returned from a hunting trip and, not having been present during the attack on the fort, wanted to satisfy his urge for violence and align with the Ojibwé's policy by going into the lodge where the English officers and men were tied up and slaughtering seven of them in cold blood.

Shortly afterwards two of the Ojibwés took the fattest amongst the dead men, cut off his head, and divided his body into five parts, one of which was put into each of five kettles hung over as many fires, which were kindled for this purpose at the door of the house in which the other prisoners were tied up. They then sent to insist on the attendance at their cannibal feast of Wáwátam, the adopted brother and protector of Henry. The invitation was delivered after the Amerindian fashion. A small cutting of cedar wood about four inches in length supplies the place of the written or printed invitation to dinner of European civilization, and the man who bore the slip of cedar wood gave particulars as to place and time by word of mouth. Guests on these occasions were expected to bring their own dish and spoon.

Shortly after, two of the Ojibwe chose the fattest of the dead men, cut off his head, and divided his body into five parts. Each part was placed in one of five kettles hung over separate fires that were started for this purpose outside the house where the other prisoners were tied up. They then sent to summon Wáwátam, the adopted brother and protector of Henry, to their cannibal feast. The invitation was given in the traditional Amerindian way. A small piece of cedar wood, about four inches long, served as a substitute for the written or printed dinner invitation of European society, and the person who carried the cedar slip provided the details about the time and place verbally. Guests at these events were expected to bring their own dish and spoon.

In spite of repugnance, Wáwátam, to save his life and that of Henry, was obliged to go. He returned after an absence of half an hour, bringing back in his dish the portion given to him—a human hand and a large piece of flesh. His objection to eat this gruesome food was apparently not very deep or persistent. He excused the custom by saying that amongst all Amerindian nations there existed this practice of making a war feast from out of the bodies of the slain after a successful battle.

In spite of his disgust, Wáwátam, to save himself and Henry, had to go. He came back after half an hour, bringing with him a dish that contained what was given to him—a human hand and a large piece of flesh. His reluctance to eat this disturbing food didn’t seem very strong or lasting. He justified the custom by explaining that among all Native American nations, it was common to hold a war feast using the bodies of those who were killed after a victorious battle.

Soon after this episode of horror the Ojibwés abandoned Fort Michili-Makinak, for fear the English should come to attack it. Henry was hidden by his adopted brother, Wáwátam, in a cave, where he found himself by the light of the next morning sleeping on a bed of human bones, which the night before he had taken to be twigs and boughs. The whole of the cave was, in fact, filled with these human remains. No one knew or remembered the reason. Henry thought that the cave had been an ancient receptacle for the bones of persons who had been sacrificed and devoured at war feasts; for, however contemptuous they may be of the flesh, the Amerindians paid particular attention to the bones of human beings—whether friends, relations, or enemies—preserving them unbroken, and depositing them in some place kept exclusively for that purpose.

Soon after this terrifying event, the Ojibwés left Fort Michili-Makinak because they feared an English attack. Henry was hidden by his adopted brother, Wáwátam, in a cave, where he woke up the next morning to find himself sleeping on a bed of human bones, which he had mistaken for twigs and branches the night before. The entire cave was actually filled with these human remains. No one knew or remembered why. Henry thought the cave must have been an ancient burial site for the bones of people who had been sacrificed and eaten at war feasts; because, even though they might disregard the flesh, the Indigenous people gave special care to the bones of humans—whether they were friends, family, or enemies—keeping them intact and storing them in designated places.

The great chief of the Ojibwés, however, advised that Henry, who had rejoined Wáwátam, should be dressed in disguise as an Indian to save him from any further harm, for the natives all round about were preparing for what they believed to be an inevitable war with the English.

The great chief of the Ojibwés, however, suggested that Henry, who had rejoined Wáwátam, should be dressed as an Indian to protect him from any more harm, as the natives nearby were getting ready for what they thought would be an unavoidable war with the English.

"I could not but consent to the proposal, and the chief was so kind as to assist my friend and his family in effecting that very day the desired metamorphosis. My hair was cut off, and my head shaved, with the exception of a spot on the crown, of about twice the diameter of a crown piece. My face was painted with three or four different colours; some parts of it red, and others black. A shirt was provided for me, painted with vermilion, mixed with grease. A large collar of wampum[5] was put round my neck, and another suspended on my breast. Both my arms were decorated with large bands of silver above the elbow, besides several smaller ones on the wrists; and my legs were covered with mitasses, a kind of hose, made, as is the favourite fashion, of scarlet cloth. Over all I was to wear a scarlet blanket or mantle, and on my head a large bunch of feathers. I parted, not without some regret, with the long hair which was natural to it, and which I fancied to be ornamental; but the ladies of the family, and of the village in general, appeared to think my person improved, and now condescended to call me handsome, even among Indians."

I couldn't help but agree to the proposal, and the chief was kind enough to help my friend and his family make the desired transformation that very day. My hair was cut off, and my head was shaved except for a patch on the crown about twice the size of a coin. My face was painted in three or four different colors, with some parts red and others black. I was given a shirt painted with red mixed with grease. A large wampum collar was placed around my neck, and another one hung on my chest. Both my arms were adorned with large silver bands above the elbow, along with several smaller ones on my wrists; and my legs were covered with mitasses, a kind of hose made, as is the popular style, of scarlet cloth. Over everything, I wore a scarlet blanket or mantle, and on my head was a large bunch of feathers. I parted with some regret from the long hair that was naturally mine, which I thought was decorative; but the women of the family and the village in general seemed to think my appearance improved, and even started to call me handsome, even among Indians.

He then went away to live with his protectors, and with them passed a by no means unhappy autumn, winter, and spring, hunting and fishing.

He then left to stay with his guardians, and during that time, he had a quite enjoyable autumn, winter, and spring, filled with hunting and fishing.

Here are some of his adventures at this period.

Here are some of his adventures during this time.

"To kill beaver, we used to go several miles up the rivers, before the approach of night, and after the dusk came on, suffer the canoe to drift gently down the current, without noise. The beavers, in this part of the evening, come abroad to procure food, or materials for repairing their habitations, and as they are not alarmed by the canoe, they often pass it within gunshot.

"To hunt beaver, we used to travel several miles up the rivers before nightfall, and after it got dark, we let the canoe drift quietly down the current. At this time of evening, beavers come out to gather food or materials to fix their homes, and since they’re not scared of the canoe, they often swim right past us within shooting range."

"On entering the River Aux Sables, Wáwátam took a dog, tied its feet together, and threw it into the stream, uttering, at the same time, a long prayer, which he addressed to the Great Spirit, supplicating his blessing on the chase, and his aid in the support of the family, through the dangers of a long winter. Our 'lodge' was fifteen miles above the mouth of the stream. The principal animals, which the country afforded, were red deer (wapiti), the common American deer, the bear, racoon, beaver, and marten.

"Upon entering the River Aux Sables, Wáwátam took a dog, tied its feet together, and threw it into the water, all while saying a long prayer to the Great Spirit, asking for blessings on the hunt and help in supporting his family through the hardships of a long winter. Our 'lodge' was fifteen miles upstream from where the river meets the main body of water. The main animals available in the area included red deer (wapiti), the common American deer, bears, raccoons, beavers, and martens."

"The beaver feeds in preference on young wood of the birch, aspen, and poplar tree[6]; but, in defect of these, on any other tree, those of the pine and fir kinds excepted. These latter it employs only for building its dams and houses. In wide meadows, where no wood is to be found, it resorts, for all its purposes, to the roots of the rush and water lily. It consumes great quantities of food, whether of roots or wood; and hence often reduces itself to the necessity of removing into a new quarter. Its house has an arched dome-like roof, of an elliptical figure, and rises from three to four feet above the surface of the water. It is always entirely surrounded by water; but, in the banks adjacent, the animal provides holes or washes, of which the entrance is below the surface, and to which it retreats on the first alarm.

The beaver prefers to eat the young wood of birch, aspen, and poplar trees[6]; but if those aren’t available, it will settle for any other trees, except for pines and firs. It only uses those for building its dams and homes. In wide meadows where there are no trees, it relies on the roots of rushes and water lilies for its needs. It eats a lot, whether it's roots or wood, which often forces it to move to a new area. Its home has a dome-shaped roof that is elliptical and rises three to four feet above the water's surface. It is completely surrounded by water, but along the nearby banks, the beaver makes holes or washes, with entrances below the surface, where it can retreat at the first sign of danger.

"The female beaver usually produces two young at a time, but not unfrequently more. During the first year, the young remain with their parents. In the second, they occupy an adjoining apartment, and assist in building, and in procuring food. At two years old, they part, and build houses of their own; but often rove about for a considerable time before they fix upon a spot. There are beavers, called, by the Indians, old bachelors, who live by themselves, build no houses, and work at no dams, but shelter themselves in holes. The usual method of taking these is by traps, formed of iron, or logs, and baited with branches of poplar.

"The female beaver typically gives birth to two young at a time, but often has more. During their first year, the young stay with their parents. In the second year, they move to a nearby space and help with building and gathering food. By the time they are two years old, they leave to create their own homes, but they often wander for quite a while before settling down. There are beavers known as old bachelors by the Indians that live alone, don’t build houses, and don’t work on dams, instead finding shelter in holes. The common way to catch these beavers is with iron or log traps, baited with poplar branches."

"According to the Indians, the beaver is much given to jealousy. If a strange male approaches the cabin, a battle immediately ensues. Of this the female remains an unconcerned spectator, careless as to which party the law of conquest may assign her. The Indians add that the male is as constant as he is jealous, never attaching himself to more than one female.

"According to the Indigenous people, beavers are highly prone to jealousy. When a strange male comes near the den, a fight starts right away. The female just watches without concern, indifferent to which male comes out on top. The Indigenous people also say that the male beaver is as dedicated as he is jealous, never bonding with more than one female."

"The most common way of taking the beaver is that of breaking up its house, which is done with trenching tools, during the winter, when the ice is strong enough to allow of approaching them; and when, also, the fur is in its most valuable state.

"The most common way to catch a beaver is by breaking into its lodge using digging tools during the winter, when the ice is sturdy enough to get close to them; and also when the fur is at its most valuable condition."

"Breaking up the house, however, is only a preparatory step. During this operation, the family make their escape to one or more of their washes. These are to be discovered by striking the ice along the bank, and where the holes are, a hollow sound is returned. After discovering and searching many of these in vain, we often heard the whole family together in the same wash. I was taught occasionally to distinguish a full wash from an empty one, by the motion of the water above its entrance, occasioned by the breathing of the animals concealed in it. From the washes, they must be taken out with the hands; and in doing this, the hunter sometimes receives severe wounds from their teeth. Whilst I was a hunter with the Indians, I thought beaver flesh was very good; but after that of the ox was again within my reach, I could not relish it. The tail is accounted a luxurious morsel.

"Breaking up the house is just a first step. During this process, the family escapes to one or more of their washes. You can find these by tapping the ice along the bank; where you hear a hollow sound, there are holes. After checking many of these without luck, we often heard the whole family together in the same wash. I learned to sometimes tell a full wash from an empty one by the movement of the water above its entrance, caused by the breathing of the animals hidden inside. They have to be pulled out by hand, and doing this can sometimes leave the hunter with serious bites. While I was hunting with the Indians, I thought beaver meat was really tasty; but once I had ox meat again, I lost my taste for it. The tail is considered a real delicacy."

"One evening, on my return from hunting, I found the fire put out, and the opening in the top of the lodge covered over with skins—by this means excluding, as much as possible, external light. I further observed that the ashes were removed from the fireplace, and that dry sand was spread where they had been. Soon after, a fire was made withoutside the cabin, in the open air, and a kettle hung over it to boil.

"One evening, when I got back from hunting, I noticed the fire had been put out, and the opening at the top of the lodge was covered with skins—blocking out as much outside light as possible. I also saw that the ashes had been cleared from the fireplace and that dry sand was spread where they had been. Soon after, a fire was lit outside the cabin in the open air, and a kettle was hung over it to boil."

"I now supposed that a feast was in preparation. I supposed so only, for it would have been indecorous to enquire into the meaning of what I saw. No person, among the Indians themselves, would use this freedom. Good breeding requires that the spectator should patiently wait the result.

"I assumed that a feast was being prepared. I only thought so, because it would have been inappropriate to ask about what I was seeing. No one among the Indians would act so freely. Good manners dictate that the observer should patiently wait for the outcome."

"As soon as the darkness of night had arrived, the family, including myself, were invited into the lodge. I was now requested not to speak, as a feast was about to be given to the dead, whose spirits delight in uninterrupted silence.

"As soon as night fell, the family, including me, was invited into the lodge. I was now asked not to speak, as a feast was about to be held for the dead, whose spirits enjoy complete silence."

"As we entered, each was presented with his wooden dish and spoon, after receiving which we seated ourselves. The door was next shut, and we remained in perfect darkness.

"As we walked in, everyone was given a wooden dish and spoon, and after that, we took our seats. Then the door was closed, and we were left in complete darkness."

"The master of the family was the master of the feast. Still in the dark, he asked everyone, by turn, for his dish, and put into each two boiled ears of maize. The whole being served, he began to speak. In his discourse, which lasted half an hour, he called upon the manes of his deceased relations and friends, beseeching them to be present, to assist him in the chase, and to partake of the food which he had prepared for them. When he had ended, we proceeded to eat our maize, which we did without other noise than what was occasioned by our teeth. The maize was not half boiled, and it took me an hour to consume my share. I was requested not to break the spikes,[7] as this would be displeasing to the departed spirits of their friends.

"The head of the family was the one in charge of the feast. Still in the dark, he asked everyone in turn for their dish and added two boiled ears of corn to each plate. Once everything was served, he began to speak. During his half-hour speech, he called upon the spirits of his deceased relatives and friends, asking them to be present, to help him in the meal, and to enjoy the food he had prepared for them. After he finished, we started to eat our corn, making no noise other than the sound of our chewing. The corn wasn’t fully boiled, and it took me an hour to finish my portion. I was asked not to break the cobs, as that would upset the spirits of their loved ones."

"When all was eaten, Wáwátam made another speech, with which the ceremony ended. A new fire was kindled, with fresh sparks, from flint and steel; and the pipes being smoked, the spikes were carefully buried, in a hole made in the ground for that purpose, within the lodge. This done, the whole family began a dance, Wáwátam singing, and beating a drum. The dance continued the greater part of the night, to the great pleasure of the lodge. The night of the feast was that of the first day of November."

"When everything was finished, Wáwátam gave another speech, wrapping up the ceremony. A new fire was lit using fresh sparks from flint and steel; after smoking the pipes, the spikes were carefully buried in a hole prepared for that purpose inside the lodge. Once that was done, the entire family started dancing, with Wáwátam singing and drumming. The dance went on for most of the night, much to the joy of everyone in the lodge. The feast took place on the night of November 1st."

In the month of January, Henry happened to observe that the trunk of a very large pine tree was much torn by the claws of a bear, made both in going up and down. On further examination he saw there was a large opening, in the upper part, near which the smaller branches were broken. From these marks, and from the additional circumstances that there were no tracks on the snow, there was reason to believe that a bear lay concealed in the tree.

In January, Henry noticed that the trunk of a huge pine tree was scratched up by a bear's claws, both from climbing up and coming down. Upon closer inspection, he saw a big opening at the top where the smaller branches were broken. Given these signs, and the fact that there were no tracks in the snow, he suspected that a bear was hiding in the tree.

He communicated his discovery to his Indian friends, and it was agreed that all the family should go together in the morning to cut down the tree, the girth of which was not less than eighteen feet! This task occupied them for one and a half days with their poor little axes, till about two o'clock in the second afternoon the tree fell to the ground. For a few minutes everything remained quiet, and Henry feared that all his expectations would be disappointed; but, as he advanced to the opening, there came out a female bear of extraordinary size, which he had shot and killed before she had proceeded many yards.

He shared his discovery with his Indian friends, and they all agreed that the family should go together in the morning to cut down the tree, which was at least eighteen feet around! This task took them a day and a half with their small axes, and around two o'clock on the second afternoon, the tree finally fell. For a few minutes, everything was silent, and Henry worried that all his hopes would be dashed; but as he approached the opening, a huge female bear came out, which he shot and killed before she could get far.

"The bear being dead, all my assistants approached, and all, but more particularly my old mother, (as I was won't to call her), took the bear's head in their hands, stroking and kissing it several times; begging a thousand pardons for taking away her life; calling her their relation and grandmother; and requesting her not to lay the fault upon them, since it was truly an Englishman that had put her to death.

"The bear was dead, and all my assistants came over, especially my old mother (as I used to call her). They took the bear's head in their hands, stroking and kissing it several times, begging for forgiveness for taking her life, referring to her as their relative and grandmother, and asking her not to blame them, since it was really an Englishman who had killed her."

"This ceremony was not of long duration; and if it was I that killed their grandmother, they were not themselves behindhand in what remained to be performed. The skin being taken off, we found the fat in several places six inches deep. This, being divided into two parts, loaded two persons; and the flesh parts were as much as four persons could carry. In all, the carcass must have exceeded five hundredweight.

"This ceremony didn't last long; and even if I was the one who killed their grandmother, they certainly weren't slow in what needed to be done next. Once the skin was removed, we found fat in several places that was six inches thick. This was divided into two parts, which weighed down two people, and the meat was as much as four people could carry. Altogether, the carcass must have weighed over five hundred pounds."

"As soon as we reached the lodge, the bear's head was adorned with all the trinkets in the possession of the family, such as silver armbands and wristbands, and belts of wampum; and then laid upon a scaffold, set up for its reception, within the lodge. Near the nose was placed a large quantity of tobacco.

"As soon as we arrived at the lodge, the bear's head was decorated with all the trinkets the family had, like silver armbands and wristbands, along with wampum belts; then it was placed on a scaffold that had been set up for it inside the lodge. A large amount of tobacco was placed near its nose."

"The next morning no sooner appeared, than preparations were made for a feast to the manes. The lodge was cleaned and swept; and the head of the bear lifted up, and a new Stroud blanket, which had never been used before, spread under it. The pipes were now lit; and Wáwátam blew tobacco smoke into the nostrils of the bear, telling me to do the same, and thus appease the anger of the bear, on account of my having killed her.

"The next morning, as soon as it arrived, preparations were made for a feast to honor the spirits. The lodge was cleaned and swept; the head of the bear was raised, and a new Stroud blanket, which had never been used before, was spread underneath it. The pipes were lit; and Wáwátam blew tobacco smoke into the bear's nostrils, telling me to do the same to appease her anger for my having killed her."

"At length, the feast being ready, Wáwátam commenced a speech, resembling, in many things, his address to the manes of his relations and departed companions; but, having this peculiarity, that he here deplored the necessity under which men laboured, thus to destroy their friends. He represented, however, that the misfortune was unavoidable, since without doing so, they could by no means subsist. The speech ended, we all ate heartily of the bear's flesh; and even the head itself, after remaining three days on the scaffold, was put into the kettle. The fat of our bear was melted down, and the oil filled six porcupine-skin bags. A part of the meat was cut into strips, and fire-dried, after which it was put into the vessels containing the oil, where it remained in perfect preservation, until the middle of summer."

"Finally, when the feast was ready, Wáwátam started a speech, similar to his previous addresses to the spirits of his relatives and departed friends. However, this time he expressed sorrow over the necessity that forced people to kill their friends. He explained that this unfortunate situation was unavoidable, as they wouldn't be able to survive without doing so. Once the speech was over, we all enjoyed the bear's meat, even the head, which had been on the scaffold for three days, was cooked in the kettle. We melted down the bear's fat, which filled six bags made from porcupine skin with oil. A portion of the meat was cut into strips, dried over the fire, and then stored in the containers with the oil, where it remained perfectly preserved until the middle of summer."

In the spring of 1762 Henry once more returned to Fort Michili-Makinak, and went sugar-making with his Indian companions. Whilst engaged in this agreeable task, a child belonging to one of the party fell into a kettle of boiling syrup. It was instantly snatched out, but with little hope of its recovery. So long, however, as it lived, a continual feast was observed; and this was made "to the Great Spirit and Master of Life", that he might be pleased to save and heal the child. At this feast Henry was a constant guest; and often found some difficulty in eating the large quantity of food which, on such occasions as these, was put upon his dish.

In the spring of 1762, Henry returned to Fort Michili-Makinak and went sugar-making with his Native friends. While they were engaged in this enjoyable task, a child from the group fell into a kettle of boiling syrup. It was quickly rescued, but there was little hope for its recovery. However, as long as the child lived, they held a continuous feast, offering it "to the Great Spirit and Master of Life," asking for his help to save and heal the child. Henry was a regular guest at this feast and often struggled to eat the large portions of food that were served to him on these occasions.

Several sacrifices were also offered; among which were dogs, killed and hung upon the tops of poles, with the addition of blankets and other articles. These, also, were yielded to the Great Spirit, in the humble hope that he would give efficacy to the medicines employed. But the child died. To preserve the body from the wolves it was placed upon a scaffold, and then later carried to the borders of a lake, on the border of which was the burial ground of the family.

Several sacrifices were also made, including dogs that were killed and hung on top of poles, along with blankets and other items. These were offered to the Great Spirit, with the humble hope that he would make the medicines effective. But the child died. To protect the body from wolves, it was placed on a scaffold, and later taken to the edge of a lake, where the family's burial ground was located.

"On our arrival there, which happened in the beginning of April, I did not fail to attend the funeral. The grave was made of a large size, and the whole of the inside lined with birch bark. On the bark was laid the body of the child, accompanied with an axe, a pair of snowshoes, a small kettle, several pairs of common shoes, its own strings of beads, and—because it was a girl—a carrying belt and a paddle. The kettle was filled with meat. All this was again covered with bark; and at about two feet nearer the surface logs were laid across, and these again covered with bark, so that the earth might by no means fall upon the corpse.

"Upon our arrival there in early April, I made sure to attend the funeral. The grave was quite large, and the entire interior was lined with birch bark. The body of the child was laid on the bark, accompanied by an axe, a pair of snowshoes, a small kettle, several pairs of regular shoes, its own strings of beads, and—since it was a girl—a carrying belt and a paddle. The kettle was filled with meat. All of this was covered again with bark; and about two feet below the surface, logs were laid across, which were also covered with bark, ensuring that the earth could not fall onto the corpse."

"The last act before the burial, performed by the mother, crying over the dead body of her child, was that of taking from it a lock of hair for a memorial. While she did this, I endeavoured to console her by offering the usual arguments: that the child was happy in being released from the miseries of this present life, and that she should forbear to grieve, because it would be restored to her in another world, happy and everlasting. She answered that she knew it, and that by the lock of hair she should discover her daughter; for she would take it with her. In this she alluded to the day when some pious hand would place in her own grave, along with the carrying belt and paddle, this little relic, hallowed by maternal tears."

"The final act before the burial, carried out by the mother, who was crying over her dead child, was taking a lock of hair for a keepsake. While she did this, I tried to comfort her by sharing the usual reassurances: that her child was now at peace, free from the suffering of this life, and that she should refrain from grieving because they would be reunited in another world, where happiness and eternity awaited. She replied that she understood this and that the lock of hair would help her recognize her daughter; she planned to take it with her. In saying this, she referred to the day when some kind person would lay this cherished keepsake, along with the carrying belt and paddle, in her own grave, blessed by a mother's tears."

After many ups and downs of hope and despair, and many narrow escapes of being killed and made into broth for warlike Ojibwés, Henry at length obtained permission to travel with a party of Ojibwé Indians who were invited to visited Sir William Johnson at Niagara. This British Governor of Canada was attempting to enter into friendly relations with the Amerindian tribes, and induce them to accept quietly the transference of Canada from French to English control.

After many highs and lows of hope and despair, and several close calls of being killed and turned into soup for the warring Ojibwé, Henry finally got permission to travel with a group of Ojibwé Indians who were invited to visit Sir William Johnson at Niagara. This British Governor of Canada was trying to establish friendly relations with the Native American tribes and persuade them to peacefully accept the transfer of Canada from French to English control.

Scene on Canadian River: Wild Swans Flying up Disturbed By Bear
SCENE ON CANADIAN RIVER: WILD SWANS FLYING UP DISTURBED BY BEAR

Before starting, however, to interview this great White Governor, the Ojibwés decided to consult their oracle, the Great Turtle, after which Fort Michili-Makinak was named.[8] Behind Fort Michili-Makinak is an extraordinary mound or hill of stone supposed to resemble this reptile exactly, and in fact to be in some way the residence of a supernatural giant turtle.

Before starting to interview this great White Governor, the Ojibwés decided to consult their oracle, the Great Turtle, after which Fort Michili-Makinak was named.[8] Behind Fort Michili-Makinak is an amazing mound or hill of stone that’s supposed to look exactly like this reptile and is, in fact, believed to be the home of a supernatural giant turtle.

For invoking and consulting the Great Turtle, the first thing to be done was to build a large house, within which was placed a kind of tent, for the use of the priest and reception of the spirit. The tent was formed of moose skins, hung over a framework of wood made out of five pillars of five different species of timber, about ten feet in height and eight inches in diameter, set up in a circle of four feet in diameter, with their bases two feet deep in the soil. At the top the pillars were bound together by a circular hoop of withies. Over the whole of this edifice were spread the moose skins, covering it at top and round the sides, and made fast with thongs of the same, except that on one side a part was left unfastened, to admit of the entrance of the priest.

To summon and consult the Great Turtle, the first step was to build a large house, which contained a kind of tent for the priest's use and the reception of the spirit. The tent was made from moose skins, draped over a wooden frame built from five pillars of different types of timber, about ten feet high and eight inches wide, arranged in a circle four feet across, with their bases buried two feet deep in the ground. At the top, the pillars were connected by a circular hoop of flexible branches. The entire structure was covered with moose skins, which protected the top and sides, secured with thongs made from the same material, except for one side that was left unfastened to allow the priest to enter.

The ceremonies did not commence till the approach of night. To give light inside the house several fires were kindled round the tent. Nearly the whole village assembled in the house, Alexander Henry among the rest. It was not long before the priest appeared, almost in a state of nakedness. As he approached the tent the skins were lifted up, as much as was necessary to allow of his creeping under them on his hands and knees. His head was scarcely within side when the edifice, massive as it has been described, began to shake; and the skins were no sooner let fall than the sounds of numerous voices were heard beneath them—some yelling, some barking as dogs, some howling like wolves; and in this horrible concert were mingled screams and sobs of despair, anguish, and the sharpest pain. Articulate speech was also uttered, as if from human lips, but in a tongue unknown to any of the audience.

The ceremonies didn’t start until night fell. To light up the inside of the house, several fires were lit around the tent. Almost the entire village gathered inside, including Alexander Henry. It wasn’t long before the priest showed up, nearly naked. As he approached the tent, the skins were lifted just enough for him to crawl underneath on his hands and knees. His head barely made it inside when the structure, massive as it was said to be, began to shake; and no sooner had the skins been dropped than sounds of many voices erupted from below—some yelling, some barking like dogs, some howling like wolves; along with this horrifying cacophony were screams and sobs of despair, anguish, and intense pain. There were even spoken words, seeming to come from human lips, but in a language none in the audience understood.

After some time these confused and frightful noises were succeeded by a perfect silence; and now a voice, not heard before, seemed to manifest the arrival of a new character in the tent. This was low and feeble, resembling the cry of a young puppy. The sound was no sooner distinguished than all the Indians clapped their hands for joy, exclaiming that this was the Chief Spirit, the Turtle, the Spirit that never lied! Other voices, which they had distinguished from time to time, they had previously hissed, as recognizing them to belong to evil and lying spirits, the deceivers of mankind.

After a while, the confusing and terrifying noises stopped completely, replaced by a perfect silence. Then, a new voice, which hadn't been heard before, indicated the arrival of a new character in the tent. It was low and weak, like the whimper of a young puppy. As soon as they recognized the sound, all the Indians clapped their hands in joy, declaring that this was the Chief Spirit, the Turtle, the Spirit that never lied! Other voices they had occasionally heard before were hissed at, as they recognized them as belonging to evil and deceitful spirits, the tricksters of humanity.

Then came from the tent a succession of songs, in which a diversity of voices met the ear. From his first entrance, till these songs were finished, we heard nothing in the proper voice of the priest. But now he addressed the multitude, declaring the presence of the Great Turtle, and the spirit's readiness to answer such questions as should be proposed. The questions were to come from the chief of the village, who was silent, however, till after he had put a large quantity of tobacco into the tent, introducing it at the aperture. This was a sacrifice offered to the spirit; for the spirits were supposed by the Indians to be as fond of tobacco as themselves. This done, the chief desired the priest to enquire: Whether or not the English were preparing to make war upon the Indians? and whether or not there were at Fort Niagara a large number of English troops?

Then a series of songs came from the tent, with different voices blending together. From the moment he arrived until the songs ended, we didn’t hear the priest’s actual voice. Finally, he spoke to the crowd, announcing the presence of the Great Turtle and that the spirit was ready to answer any questions that would be asked. The questions were to be asked by the village chief, who, however, remained silent until he had offered a large amount of tobacco into the tent through the opening. This was a sacrifice to the spirit, as the Indians believed spirits enjoyed tobacco as much as they did. Once that was done, the chief asked the priest to inquire whether the English were planning to go to war against the Indians and if there were a significant number of English troops at Fort Niagara.

The priest was heard to put the questions, and then the tent shook and rocked so violently that Henry expected to see it levelled with the ground. But apparently answers were given, after which a terrific cry announced, with sufficient intelligibility, the departure of the Turtle. Subsequently the priest interpreted the Great Turtle's answers, which gave a great deal of information regarding the disposition and numbers of the English soldiers, and the presents which Sir William Johnson was preparing for the Ojibwés; and which finally approved the wisdom of the embassy proceeding on its way.

The priest was heard asking questions, and then the tent shook and rocked so violently that Henry thought it would collapse to the ground. But it seemed answers were given, after which a loud cry clearly announced the departure of the Turtle. Later, the priest interpreted the Great Turtle's responses, which provided a lot of information about the position and numbers of the English soldiers, as well as the gifts Sir William Johnson was preparing for the Ojibwés; and ultimately confirmed that it was wise for the embassy to continue on its way.

Journeying along the shores of Lake Huron, they stopped to avoid a gale of wind and to rest. Henry, gathering firewood, disturbed a rattlesnake which manifested hostile intentions. He went back to the canoe to fetch his gun; but upon telling the Ojibwés that he was about to kill a rattlesnake they begged him to desist. They then seized their pipes and tobacco pouches and returned with him to the place where he had left the rattlesnake, which was still coiled up and angry.

While traveling along the shores of Lake Huron, they stopped to take shelter from a strong wind and to rest. Henry, while collecting firewood, disturbed a rattlesnake that seemed aggressive. He returned to the canoe to grab his gun; however, when he told the Ojibwés that he was planning to kill the rattlesnake, they urged him to stop. They then took their pipes and tobacco pouches and accompanied him back to where he had left the rattlesnake, which was still coiled up and hostile.

"The Indians, on their part, surrounded it, all addressing it by turns, and calling it their grandfather; but yet keeping at some distance. During this part of the ceremony they filled their pipes; and now each blew the smoke towards the snake, who, as it appeared to me, really received it with pleasure. In a word, after remaining coiled, and receiving incense for the space of half an hour, it stretched itself along the ground, in visible good humour. Its length was between four and five feet. Having remained outstretched for some time, at last it moved slowly away, the Indians following it, and still addressing it by the title of grandfather, beseeching it to take care of their families during their absence, and to be pleased to open the heart of Sir William Johnson, so that he might show them charity, and fill their canoe with rum.

The Indians surrounded it, taking turns to address it and calling it their grandfather; yet they kept a distance. During this part of the ceremony, they filled their pipes; each one then blew the smoke towards the snake, which, from my perspective, seemed to enjoy it. In short, after staying coiled and receiving the incense for about half an hour, it stretched out along the ground, clearly in a good mood. It was between four and five feet long. After lying out for a while, it finally moved away slowly, with the Indians following it, still referring to it as grandfather, asking it to watch over their families while they were gone, and to please open Sir William Johnson's heart so that he might show them charity and fill their canoe with rum.

"One of the chiefs added a petition, that the snake would take no notice of the insult which had been offered him by the Englishman, who would even have put him to death, but for the interference of the Indians, to whom it was hoped he would impute no part of the offence."

"One of the chiefs added a request that the snake would ignore the insult from the Englishman, who would have even killed him if it weren't for the intervention of the Indians, to whom it was hoped he would not blame for any part of the offense."

Early the next morning they proceeded on their way, with a serene sky and very little wind, so that to shorten the journey they determined to steer across the lake to an island which just appeared on the horizon. But after hoisting a sail the wind increased, and the Indians, beginning to be alarmed, frequently called on the rattlesnake to come to their assistance. By degrees the waves grew high, and at last it blew a hurricane, Henry and his companions expecting every moment to be swallowed up. From prayers the Indians now proceeded to sacrifices, both alike offered to the god-rattlesnake, or manito-kinibik. One of the chiefs took a dog, and, after tying its fore legs together, threw it overboard, at the same time calling on the snake to preserve the party from being drowned, and desiring him to satisfy his hunger with the carcass of the dog. The snake was unpropitious, and the wind increased. Another chief sacrificed another dog, with the addition of some tobacco. In the prayer which accompanied these gifts he besought the snake, as before, not to avenge upon the Indians the insult which he had received from the Englishman. "He assured the snake that I was absolutely an Englishman, and of kin neither to him nor to them."

Early the next morning, they set off with a clear sky and very little wind, so to make the journey quicker, they decided to head across the lake to an island that just appeared on the horizon. But after raising the sail, the wind picked up, and the Indians, starting to get worried, frequently called on the rattlesnake for help. Gradually, the waves got higher, and soon it turned into a hurricane, with Henry and his friends fearing they would be swallowed up at any moment. The Indians switched from prayers to sacrifices, both meant for the god-rattlesnake, or manito-kinibik. One of the chiefs took a dog, tied its front legs together, and threw it overboard, while calling on the snake to save them from drowning and asking it to satisfy its hunger with the dog's body. The snake didn't respond favorably, and the wind got stronger. Another chief sacrificed another dog, along with some tobacco. In the prayer that accompanied these offerings, he pleaded with the snake not to seek revenge against the Indians for the insult it received from the Englishman. "He assured the snake that I was absolutely an Englishman and had no ties to either him or them."

"At the conclusion of this speech, an Indian, who sat near me, observed, that if we were drowned it would be for my fault alone, and that I ought myself to be sacrificed, to appease the angry manito; nor was I without apprehensions, that in case of extremity this would be my fate; but, happily for me, the storm at length abated, and we reached the island safely."

"At the end of this speech, an Indian sitting close to me said that if we drowned, it would be solely my fault, and I should be sacrificed to calm the angry spirit; I also worried that if things got really bad, this could be my fate. Fortunately for me, the storm finally calmed down, and we safely reached the island."

The next day they arrived at the shore of Lake Ontario. Here they remained two days to make canoes out of the bark of the elm tree, in which they might travel to Niagara. For this purpose the Indians first cut down a tree, then stripped off the bark in one entire sheet of about eighteen feet in length, the incision being lengthwise. The canoe was now complete as to its bottom and sides. Its ends were next closed, by sewing the bark together; and a few ribs and bars being introduced, the architecture was finished. In this manner they made two canoes; of which one carried eight men, and the other nine.

The next day, they reached the shores of Lake Ontario. They stayed there for two days to make canoes from elm tree bark so they could travel to Niagara. The Indians began by cutting down a tree, then carefully peeling off a single sheet of bark about eighteen feet long, making a lengthwise cut. The canoe was now finished regarding its bottom and sides. They then closed the ends by sewing the bark together, and after adding a few ribs and crossbars, the construction was complete. In this way, they created two canoes; one could hold eight men, and the other could hold nine.

A few days later Henry was handed over safe and sound to Sir William Johnson at Niagara. He was then given the command of a corps of Indian allies which was to accompany the expedition under General Bradstreet to raise the siege of Detroit, which important place had been long invested by a great Indian chief, Pontiac, who still carried on the war on behalf of King Louis XV. This enterprise was successful, and British control was extended to many places in central Canada. Henry returned to Fort Michili-Makinak and regained much of the property which he had lost in the Indian attacks. As some compensation for his former sufferings he received from the British commandant of Michili-Makinak the exclusive fur trade of Lake Superior.

A few days later, Henry was safely handed over to Sir William Johnson at Niagara. He was then put in charge of a group of Indian allies that would join General Bradstreet's expedition to lift the siege of Detroit, which had been under attack for a long time by a powerful Indian chief, Pontiac, who was still fighting for King Louis XV. This mission was successful, and British control expanded to several areas in central Canada. Henry returned to Fort Michili-Makinak and recovered much of the property he had lost during the Indian attacks. As some compensation for his previous hardships, he received the exclusive fur trade rights for Lake Superior from the British commandant of Michili-Makinak.

The currency at that period, and long before, in Canadian history, was in beaver skins, which were approximately valued at the price of two shillings and sixpence a pound. Otter skins were valued at six shillings each, and marten skins at one shilling and sixpence, and others in proportion; but all these things were classed at being worth so many beaver skins or proportion of beaver skins. Thus, for example, the native canoemen and porters engaged by Henry for his winter hunts were paid each at the rate of a hundred pounds weight of beaver skins.[9]

The currency during that time, and for a long time before, in Canadian history, was beaver skins, which were roughly valued at two shillings and sixpence per pound. Otter skins were valued at six shillings each, and marten skins at a shilling and sixpence, with other items valued similarly; however, everything was essentially priced in terms of beaver skins or fractions of them. For instance, the Indigenous canoemen and porters hired by Henry for his winter hunts were each paid based on the equivalent of a hundred pounds of beaver skins.[9]

At various places on the River Ontonagan, which flows into Lake Superior, Henry was shown the extraordinary deposits of copper, which presented itself to the eye in masses of various weight. The natives smelted the copper and beat it into spoons and bracelets. It was so absolutely pure of any alloy that it required nothing but to be beaten into shape. In one place Henry saw a mass of copper weighing not less than five tons, pure and malleable, so that with an axe he was able to cut off a portion weighing a hundred pounds. He conjectured that this huge mass of copper had at some time been dislodged from the side of a lofty hill and thence rolled into the position where he found it. Farther to the north of Lake Superior he found pieces of virgin copper remarkable for their form, some resembling leaves of vegetables, and others the shapes of animals.

At various spots along the Ontonagan River, which flows into Lake Superior, Henry saw incredible deposits of copper, appearing in masses of different weights. The locals smelted the copper and shaped it into spoons and bracelets. It was completely pure without any alloy, so it only needed to be hammered into shape. At one site, Henry observed a copper mass weighing at least five tons, which was pure and malleable; he was able to cut off a piece weighing a hundred pounds with an axe. He guessed that this massive chunk of copper had once been dislodged from the side of a tall hill and had rolled to where he found it. Further north of Lake Superior, he discovered pieces of raw copper that were notable for their shapes, some looking like vegetable leaves and others resembling animals.

In these journeys he collected some of the native traditions, amongst others that of the Great Hare, Naniboju, who was represented to him as the founder or creator of the Amerindian peoples. An island in Lake Superior was called Naniboju's burial place. Henry landed there, and "found on the projecting rocks a quantity of tobacco, rotting in the rain; together with kettles, broken guns, and a variety of other articles. His spirit is supposed to make this its constant residence; and here to preside over the lake, and over the Indians, in their navigation and fishing."

In these travels, he gathered some of the local traditions, including the one about the Great Hare, Naniboju, who was described to him as the founder or creator of the Indigenous peoples. An island in Lake Superior was known as Naniboju's burial place. Henry arrived there and "found on the protruding rocks a lot of tobacco, decaying in the rain; along with kettles, broken guns, and various other items. His spirit is believed to make this its permanent home; and here to oversee the lake, as well as the Indigenous people, in their navigation and fishing."

In the spring of the following year (1768), whilst the snow still lay many feet thick on the ground, he and his men made sugar from the maple trees on a mountain, and for nearly three weeks none of them ate anything but maple sugar, consuming a pound a day, desiring no other food, and waxing fat and strong on this diet. Then they returned to the banks of the Ontonagan River, where the wild fowl appeared in such abundance that one man, with a muzzle-loading gun, could kill in a day sufficient birds for the sustenance of fifty men. As soon as the ice and snow had melted, parties of Indians came in from their winter's hunt, bringing to Henry furs to pay him for all the goods he had advanced. In this way the whole of his outstanding credit was satisfied, with the exception of thirty skins, which represented the contribution due from one Indian who had died. In this case even, the man's family had sent all the skins they could gather together, and gradually acquitted themselves of the amount due, in order that the spirit of the dead man might rest in peace, which it could not do if his debts were not acquitted.

In the spring of the following year (1768), while the snow still covered the ground many feet deep, he and his men made sugar from the maple trees on a mountain, and for nearly three weeks, none of them ate anything but maple sugar, consuming a pound a day, craving no other food, and getting fat and strong on this diet. Then they returned to the banks of the Ontonagan River, where the wild fowl appeared in such numbers that one man, with a muzzle-loading gun, could kill enough birds in a day to feed fifty men. As soon as the ice and snow melted, groups of Indians came in from their winter hunts, bringing Henry furs to pay him back for all the goods he had given them. In this way, all of his outstanding credit was settled, except for thirty skins, which represented what was owed by one Indian who had died. In this case, even the man's family had sent all the skins they could gather, gradually paying off the debt, so that the spirit of the deceased could rest in peace, which it could not do if his debts were unpaid.

In the following autumn he had an experience which showed him how near famine was to great abundance, and how ready the Amerindians were in cases of even slight privation to turn cannibal, kill and eat the weaker members of the party. He was making an excursion to the Sault de Sainte Marie, and took with him three half-breed Canadians and a young Indian woman who was journeying in that direction to see her relations. As the distance was short, and they expected to obtain much fish by the way, they only took with them as provisions a quart of maize for each person. On the first night of their journey they encamped on the island of Naniboju and set their net to catch fish. But there arose a violent storm, which continued for three days, during which it was impossible for them to take up the net or to leave the island. In consequence of this they ate up all their maize. On the evening of the third day the storm abated, and they rushed to examine the net. It was gone! It was impossible to return to the point of their departure, where there would have been plenty of food, on account of the strong wind against them. They therefore steered for the Sault de Sainte Marie. But the wind veered round, and for nine days blew a strong gale against their progress in this direction, making the waves of the lake so high that they were obliged to take refuge on the shore.

In the following autumn, he had an experience that revealed how close famine is to great abundance, and how quickly the Native Americans could resort to cannibalism, preying on the weaker members of their group during even minor hardships. He was on a trip to Sault de Sainte Marie and brought along three half-breed Canadians and a young Native woman traveling to see her family. Since the distance was short and they expected to catch a lot of fish along the way, they only packed a quart of corn for each person. On the first night of their journey, they camped on Naniboju Island and set their net to catch fish. But a violent storm hit, lasting three days, making it impossible for them to retrieve the net or leave the island. As a result, they ate all their corn. On the evening of the third day, the storm finally calmed down, and they rushed to check the net. It was gone! They couldn’t return to where they started, where there would have been plenty of food, because of the strong headwind. So, they decided to head to Sault de Sainte Marie. However, the wind changed direction and for nine days, it blew a strong gale against their path, causing such high waves on the lake that they had to seek refuge on the shore.

Henry went out perpetually to hunt, but all he got during those nine days were two small snow-buntings. The Canadian half-breeds with him then calmly proposed to kill and feed upon the young woman. One of these men, indeed, admitted that he had had recourse to this expedient for sustaining life when wintering in the north-west and running out of food. But Henry indignantly repudiated the suggestion. Though very weak, he searched everywhere desperately for food, and at last found on a very high rock a thick lichen, called by the French Canadians tripe de roche,[10] looking, in fact, very much like slices of tripe. Henry fetched the men and the Indian woman, and they set to work gathering quantities of this lichen. The woman was well acquainted with the mode of preparing it, which was done by boiling it into a thick mucilage, looking rather like the white of an egg. On this they made hearty meals, though it had a bitter and disagreeable taste. After the ninth day of their sufferings the wind fell, they continued their journey, and met with kindly Indians, who supplied them with as many fish as they wanted. Nevertheless, they all were so ill afterwards that they nearly died, from the effects of the lichen diet.

Henry was constantly out hunting, but all he managed to catch during those nine days were two small snow-buntings. The Canadian half-breeds with him then calmly suggested killing and eating the young woman. One of these men even admitted that he had resorted to this solution for survival when he was wintering in the northwest and ran out of food. But Henry angrily rejected the idea. Although he was very weak, he desperately searched everywhere for food and eventually found a thick lichen on a very high rock, known by the French Canadians as tripe de roche,[10], which actually looked a lot like slices of tripe. Henry brought the men and the Indian woman over, and they started gathering large quantities of this lichen. The woman was familiar with how to prepare it, which involved boiling it into a thick mucilage that resembled egg white. They made hearty meals from it, even though it had a bitter and unpleasant taste. After enduring their suffering for nine days, the wind calmed down, they continued their journey, and came across some friendly Indians who provided them with as many fish as they wanted. However, they all ended up very sick afterwards, nearly dying from the effects of the lichen diet.

Some time after this Henry resolved to search for the marvellous island of Yellow Sands,[11] an island of Lake Superior which, it is true, the French had discovered, but about which they kept up a good deal of mystery. The Indian legend was that the sands of this small island consisted of gold dust, and the Ojibwé Indians, having discovered this, and attempting to bring some away, they were disturbed by a supernatural being of amazing size, sixty feet in height, which strode into the water and commanded them to deliver back what they had taken away. Terrified at his gigantic stature, they complied with his request, since which time no Indian has ever dared to approach the haunted coast. Henry, however, with his men, finally discovered this Island of Yellow Sands in 1771, in the north-east part of Lake Superior. It was much smaller than he had been led to expect, and very low and studded with small lakes, probably made by the action of beavers damming up the little streams. He found no supernatural monster to dispute the island with him, but a number of large reindeer, so unused to the sight of man that they scarcely got out of his way, so that he was able to shoot as many as he wanted. The ancestors of these reindeer may have reached the island either by floating ice or by swimming. They seem, with the birds, to have been the island's only inhabitants, and to have increased and multiplied to a remarkable extent, small portions of the island's surface being actually formed of immense accumulations of reindeer bones.

Some time later, Henry decided to look for the incredible island of Yellow Sands,[11] an island in Lake Superior that, while discovered by the French, remained shrouded in mystery. According to Indian legend, the sands of this small island were made of gold dust, and the Ojibwé Indians, who found this out and tried to take some, were confronted by a supernatural being of enormous size, standing sixty feet tall. This giant waded into the water and ordered them to return what they'd taken. Terrified by his massive stature, they obeyed his command, and since then, no Indian has dared to approach the cursed shore. However, Henry and his men eventually found the Island of Yellow Sands in 1771, in the northeastern part of Lake Superior. It was much smaller than he had anticipated, very low, and dotted with small lakes likely created by beavers damming streams. He didn't encounter any supernatural monster defending the island, but he did see a number of large reindeer, so unaccustomed to humans that they barely moved out of his way, allowing him to hunt as many as he wanted. The ancestors of these reindeer may have arrived on the island by floating ice or by swimming. It appeared that they, along with the birds, were the only inhabitants of the island and had multiplied extensively, with parts of the island's surface actually formed from massive piles of reindeer bones.

Amongst the birds of the island, besides geese and pigeons, were hawks. No serpents whatever were seen by the party, but Henry remarks that the hawks nearly made up for them in abundance and ferocity. They appeared very angry at the intrusion of these strangers on the sacred island, and hovered round perpetually, swooping at their faces and even carrying off their caps.

Among the birds on the island, in addition to geese and pigeons, there were hawks. The group didn’t see any snakes, but Henry notes that the hawks almost made up for that with their number and aggression. They seemed really upset about these strangers invading their sacred island, constantly circling around, diving at their faces, and even snatching their caps.

In 1775 Henry, having been greatly disappointed over an attempt to work the copper of Lake Superior, entered with vigour into a fur trade with the north-west. He penetrated from Lake Superior to the Lake of the Woods and reached the great Lake Winnipeg. Here he encountered the Kristino,[12] Knistino, or Kri Indians. He found these people very different in appearance from the other Amerindian tribes farther south. The men were almost entirely naked in spite of the much colder climate. Their bodies were painted with an ochre or clay so red that it was locally known by the French Canadians as vermilion. Every man and boy had his bow strung and in his hand, with the arrow, ready to attack in case of need. Their heads were shaved all over except for a large spot on the crown. Here the hair grew very long, and was rolled and gathered into a tuft; and this tuft, which was the object of the greatest care, was covered with a piece of skin. The lobes of their ears were pierced, and through the opening was inserted the bones of fish or small beasts. The women wore their hair in great length all over the head. It was divided by a parting, and on each side was collected into a roll fastened above the ear and covered with a piece of painted skin or ornamented with beads. The clothing of the women was of leather, the dressed skins of buffalo or deer. This cloak was fastened round the waist by a girdle, and the legs were covered with leather gaiters. The Kristino men were eager that their women should marry Europeans, because the half-breed children proved to be bolder warriors and better hunters than themselves. Henry found that although the Kris were much addicted to drunkenness they were peaceable when inebriated, and, moreover, detached two of their number, who refused ever to touch the liquor under such circumstances, in order that they might guard the white men, and not allow any drunken Indian to approach their camp.

In 1775, Henry, feeling quite disappointed after a failed attempt to mine copper at Lake Superior, jumped into the fur trade in the northwest with enthusiasm. He traveled from Lake Superior to the Lake of the Woods and reached the vast Lake Winnipeg. There, he met the Kristino,[12] Knistino, or Kri Indians. He noticed that these people looked very different from the other Native American tribes further south. The men were almost completely naked despite the much colder climate. Their bodies were painted with a bright red ochre or clay, which the French Canadians referred to as vermilion. Every man and boy had a strung bow and an arrow in hand, ready to defend themselves if needed. Their heads were shaved everywhere except for a large patch on the crown, where the hair grew long, rolled, and gathered into a tuft, which was carefully covered with a piece of skin. The lobes of their ears were pierced, and through the holes, they inserted bones from fish or small animals. The women wore their hair long all over their heads, parted down the middle, with both sides rolled up and fastened above the ear, sometimes covered with a piece of decorated skin or adorned with beads. The women's clothing was made from leather, using the hides of buffalo or deer. This cloak was secured at the waist with a belt, and their legs were covered with leather gaiters. The Kristino men were eager for their women to marry Europeans, believing that mixed-race children would become braver warriors and better hunters than they were. Henry observed that while the Kris had a tendency toward drunkenness, they remained peaceful when intoxicated. Additionally, they appointed two of their members—who pledged to never drink—to watch over the white men and prevent any intoxicated Indians from approaching their camp.

Henry and his party, after crossing Lake Winnipeg, ascended the Saskatchewan (in the autumn of 1775). On their way up this river they came to a village of Paskwaya Indians, which consisted of thirty families, who were lodged in tents of a circular form, composed of dressed bison skins stretched upon poles twelve feet in length. On their arrival the chief of this village, named Chatik, which name meant Pelican,[13] called the party rather imperiously into his lodge or meeting house, and then told them very plainly that his armed men exceeded theirs in number, and that he would put the whole of the party to death unless they were very liberal in their presents. To avoid misunderstanding, he added that he would inform them exactly what it was that he required: Three casks of gunpowder, four bags of shot and ball, two bales of tobacco, three kegs of rum, and three guns, together with knives, flints, and other articles. He went on to say that he had already seen white men, and knew that they promised more than they performed. He, personally, was a peaceful man, who contented himself with moderate views in order to avoid quarrels; nevertheless, he desired that an immediate answer should be given before the strangers quitted his lodge. A hurried consultation took place, and Henry could do nothing but comply with the chief's demands, for he was powerless to resist. Having, therefore, intimated his acceptance of these demands, he was invited to smoke the pipe of peace, and then obtained permission to depart. After this the goods demanded were handed over, but Chatik managed to snatch more rum from them before they got safely away.

Henry and his group, after crossing Lake Winnipeg, traveled up the Saskatchewan River in the autumn of 1775. On their journey, they encountered a village of Paskwaya Indians, which had thirty families living in circular tents made from dressed bison skins stretched over twelve-foot poles. Upon their arrival, the village chief, named Chatik—meaning Pelican—called the group into his lodge or meeting house in a rather commanding way. He then bluntly informed them that his armed men outnumbered theirs and that he would kill all of them unless they offered generous gifts. To avoid any confusion, he specified exactly what he wanted: three casks of gunpowder, four bags of shot and ball, two bales of tobacco, three kegs of rum, and three guns, along with knives, flints, and other items. He mentioned that he had encountered white men before and knew they often promised more than they delivered. He insisted that he was a peaceful man who preferred to keep things simple to avoid conflicts; however, he demanded an immediate response before the strangers left his lodge. A quick discussion ensued, and Henry felt he had no choice but to agree to the chief's demands, as he had no power to fight back. After indicating his acceptance, he was invited to smoke the peace pipe and received permission to leave. The requested goods were handed over, but Chatik managed to grab more rum from them before they could safely depart.

In the winter of 1776 Henry, who, together with his party, had received welcome hospitality from the Hudson's Bay Company's station at Cumberland House, resolved to reach the western region known as the Great Plains, or Prairies—that immense tract of country through which flow the Athabaska, the Saskatchewan, the Red River, and the Missouri. He and his party, of course, travelled on snowshoes, and their goods were packed on sledges made of thin boards, and drawn after them by the men. The cold was intense, so that, besides wearing very warm woollen clothes, they were obliged to wrap themselves in blankets of beaver skin and huge bison robes. On these plains there were occasional knolls covered with trees, which were usually called "islands". These provided the precious fuel which alone enabled the travellers to support the intense cold of the nights.

In the winter of 1776, Henry and his group, who had received warm hospitality from the Hudson's Bay Company's station at Cumberland House, decided to head to the western area known as the Great Plains, or Prairies—an enormous region through which the Athabaska, Saskatchewan, Red River, and Missouri rivers flow. He and his group traveled on snowshoes, with their supplies packed on sledges made of thin boards, pulled behind them by the men. The cold was severe, so in addition to wearing very warm woolen clothing, they had to wrap themselves in beaver skin blankets and large bison robes. On these plains, there were occasional knolls covered with trees, commonly referred to as "islands." These provided the precious fuel that was essential for the travelers to endure the intense cold of the nights.

After fifteen days of very difficult travel, during which it had been impossible to kill any game, as the beasts were mostly hidden in the dense woods on these rare hillocks, the situation of his party became alarming. They were now on the borders of the plains, and the trees were getting small and scanty. On the twentieth day of their journey they had finished the last remains of their provisions. But Henry had taken the precaution of concealing a large cake of chocolate[14] as a reserve in case of great need. His men had walked till they were exhausted, and had lost both strength and hope, when Henry informed them of the treasure which was still in store. They filled the big kettle with snow. It held two gallons of water, and into this was put one square of the chocolate. The quantity was scarcely sufficient to give colour to the water, but each man drank off a gallon of this hot liquor and felt much refreshed. The next day they marched vigorously for six hours on another two gallons of chocolate and water. For five days the chocolate kept them going, though more by faith than by any actual nourishment that it imparted. They now began to be surrounded by large herds of wolves, who seemed to be conscious of their dire extremity and the probability that they would soon fall an easy prey, yet were cunning enough to keep out of gunshot. At last, however, at sunset on the fifth day, they discovered on the ice the remains of an elk's carcass on which the wolves had left a little flesh. From these elk bones a meal of strong and excellent soup was soon prepared, and the men's bodies thrilled with new life.

After fifteen days of tough travel, during which they couldn’t hunt any game because the animals were mostly hidden in the thick woods on these rare hills, the condition of his group became serious. They were now at the edge of the plains, and the trees were getting smaller and more sparse. By the twentieth day of their journey, they had finished their last supplies. However, Henry had been smart enough to hide a large cake of chocolate[14] as a backup in case of an emergency. His men had walked until they were completely worn out, losing both their strength and their hope, when Henry told them about the treasure he still had. They filled a big kettle with snow. It held two gallons of water, and one square of chocolate was added to it. The amount barely colored the water, but each man drank a gallon of this hot drink and felt much better. The next day, they marched vigorously for six hours on another two gallons of chocolate and water. The chocolate sustained them for five days, though more out of hope than any actual nourishment it provided. They began to be surrounded by large packs of wolves, who seemed aware of their desperate situation and the likelihood that they would soon be easy prey, yet were clever enough to stay out of range. Finally, at sunset on the fifth day, they found the remains of an elk’s carcass on the ice, where the wolves had left a little meat. From those elk bones, they quickly prepared a strong and delicious soup, and the men felt a surge of new energy.

"Want had lost his dominion over us. At noon we saw the horns of a red deer, standing in the snow, on the river. On examination we found that the whole carcass was with them, the animal having broken through the ice in the beginning of the winter, in attempting to cross the river, too early in the season; while his horns, fastening themselves in the ice, had prevented him from sinking. By cutting away the ice we were enabled to lay bare a part of the back and shoulders, and thus procure a stock of food amply sufficient for the rest of our journey. We accordingly encamped, and employed our kettle to good purpose, forgot all our misfortunes, and prepared to walk with cheerfulness the twenty leagues which, as we reckoned, still lay between ourselves and Fort des Prairies. Though the deer must have been in this situation ever since the month of November, yet its flesh was perfectly good. Its horns alone were five feet high or more, and it will therefore not appear extraordinary that they should be seen above the snow."

Want had lost its hold over us. At noon, we spotted the antlers of a red deer standing in the snow by the river. Upon closer inspection, we found the entire body nearby; the animal had fallen through the ice early in the winter while trying to cross the river, too soon in the season. Its antlers had gotten stuck in the ice, which kept it from sinking. By cutting away the ice, we were able to expose part of the back and shoulders, giving us enough food to last for the rest of our journey. We set up camp and made good use of our kettle, forgetting all our misfortunes, and prepared to cheerfully walk the twenty leagues we estimated still lay between us and Fort des Prairies. Although the deer had been in this situation since November, its meat was perfectly good. Its antlers were over five feet tall, so it wasn't surprising they were visible above the snow.

The next day they reached the Fort des Prairies, established by the Hudson's Bay people, on the verge of the Assiniboin country. The journey was resumed in company with Messrs. Patterson and Holmes, and accompanied by a band of natives. They had entered the bison country, and were regaled by the Indians with bison tongue and beef.

The next day, they arrived at Fort des Prairies, set up by the Hudson's Bay Company, right on the border of Assiniboine territory. They continued their journey alongside Messrs. Patterson and Holmes, joined by a group of locals. They had entered bison territory and were treated by the Indians to bison tongue and beef.

"Soon after sunrise we descried a herd of oxen (bison) extending a mile and a half in length, and too numerous to be counted. They travelled, not one after another, as, in the snow, other animals usually do, but, in a broad phalanx, slowly, and sometimes stopping to feed.... Their numbers were so great that we dreaded lest they should fairly trample down the camp; nor could it have happened otherwise, but for the dogs, almost as numerous as they, who were able to keep them in check. The Indians killed several when close upon their tents, but neither the fire of the Indians nor the noise of the dogs could soon drive them away." The poor animals were more frightened of the frightful snowstorm which was raging than of what man or dog might do to them in the shelter of the woods.

"Soon after sunrise, we spotted a herd of bison stretching a mile and a half long, way too many to count. They moved in a wide group instead of single file like other animals usually do in the snow, slowly advancing and sometimes stopping to graze. Their numbers were so massive that we worried they might trample our camp; it could have happened if not for the dogs, nearly as numerous as the bison, keeping them at bay. The Indians shot several bison when they got close to their tents, but neither the gunfire nor the barking dogs could drive them away for a while." The poor creatures were more scared of the raging snowstorm than of what humans or dogs might do to them in the safety of the woods.

At last the party reached the residence of the great chief of the Assiniboins, whose name was "Great Road". These Amerindians received Henry and his people with the greatest respect, giving them a bodyguard, armed with bows and spears, who escorted them to the lodge or tent prepared for their reception. This was of circular form, covered with leather, and not less than twenty feet in diameter. On the ground within, bison skins were spread for beds and seats.

At last, the group arrived at the home of the great leader of the Assiniboins, known as "Great Road." These Indigenous people welcomed Henry and his companions with the highest respect, providing them with a bodyguard armed with bows and spears, who escorted them to the lodge or tent set up for their arrival. This tent was circular, covered with leather, and at least twenty feet in diameter. Inside, bison skins were spread out to serve as beds and seats.

"One-half of the tent was appropriated to our use. Several women waited upon us, to make a fire and bring water, which latter they fetched from a neighbouring tent. Shortly after our arrival these women brought us water, unasked for, saying that it was for washing. The refreshment was exceedingly acceptable, for on our march we had become so dirty that our complexions were not very distinguishable from those of the Indians themselves."

"Half of the tent was set aside for us. Several women helped us by making a fire and bringing water, which they got from a nearby tent. Shortly after we arrived, these women brought us water without us even asking, saying it was for washing. The refreshment was very welcome because we had gotten so dirty during our march that our appearances were hardly distinguishable from those of the Indians themselves."

Invited to feast with the great chief, they proceeded to the tent of "Great Road", which they found neither more ornamented nor better furnished than the rest. At their entrance the chief arose from his seat, saluted them in the Indian manner by shaking hands, and addressed them in a few words, in which he offered his thanks for the confidence which they had reposed in him in trusting themselves so far from their own country. After all were seated, on bearskins spread on the ground, the pipe, as usual, was introduced, and presented in succession to each person present. Each took his whiff, and then let it pass to his neighbour. The stem, which was four feet in length, was held by an officer attendant on the chief. The bowl was of red marble or pipe stone.

Invited to eat with the great chief, they made their way to the tent of "Great Road," which they found to be no more decorated or better equipped than the others. Upon their arrival, the chief stood up from his seat, greeted them in the traditional Indian manner by shaking hands, and spoke a few words, expressing his gratitude for the trust they had placed in him by journeying so far from their homeland. Once everyone was seated on bearskins laid out on the ground, the ceremonial pipe was brought out and presented to each person in turn. Each took a puff and then passed it to the next person. The four-foot-long stem was held by an aide to the chief, and the bowl was made of red marble or pipe stone.

When the pipe had gone its round, the chief, without rising from his seat, delivered a speech of some length, after which several of the Indians began to weep, and they were soon joined by the whole party. "Had I not previously been witness" (writes Henry) "to a weeping scene of this description, I should certainly have been apprehensive of some disastrous catastrophe; but, as it was, I listened to it with tranquillity. It lasted for about ten minutes, after which all tears were dried away, and the honours of the feast were performed by the attending chiefs." This consisted in giving to every guest a dish containing a boiled bison's tongue. Henry having enquired why these people always wept at their feasts, and sometimes at their councils, he was answered that their tears flowed to the memory of their deceased relations, who were formerly present on these occasions, and whom they remembered as soon as they saw the feast or the conference being got ready.[15]

When the pipe made its rounds, the chief, still seated, gave a speech that was quite lengthy. Afterward, some of the Indians started to cry, and soon everyone joined in. "If I hadn't seen a scene like this before" (Henry writes), "I would have been worried about some terrible disaster; but since I had, I listened to it calmly. It went on for about ten minutes, after which everyone dried their tears, and the chiefs in attendance performed the honors of the feast." This involved serving every guest a dish with a boiled bison's tongue. When Henry asked why these people always cried at their feasts and sometimes during their councils, he was told that their tears were in memory of their deceased relatives who used to be there for these occasions, and they remembered them as soon as they saw the feast or the meeting being prepared.[15]

The chief to whose kindly reception they were so much indebted was about five feet ten inches high, and of a complexion rather darker than that of the Indians in general. His appearance was greatly injured by the condition of his head of hair, and this was the result of an extraordinary superstition.

The chief, to whom they owed so much gratitude for his warm welcome, was about five feet ten inches tall and had a complexion somewhat darker than most Indians. His look was significantly affected by the state of his hair, which was a result of an unusual superstition.

"The Indians universally fix upon a particular object, as sacred to themselves; as the giver of their prosperity, and as their preserver from evil. The choice is determined either by a dream, or by some strong predilection of fancy; and usually falls upon an animal, or part of an animal, or something else which is to be met with, by land, or by water; but 'Great Road' had made choice of his hair—placing, like Samson, all his safety in this portion of his proper substance! His hair was the fountain of all his happiness; it was his strength and his weapon, his spear and his shield. It preserved him in battle, directed him in the chase, watched over him on the march, and gave length of days to his wife and children. Hair, of a quality like this, was not to be profaned by the touch of human hands. I was assured that it had never been cut nor combed from his childhood upward, and, that when any part of it fell from his head, he treasured up that part with care: meanwhile, it did not escape all care, even while growing on the head; but was in the special charge of a spirit, who dressed it while the owner slept. All this might be; but the spirit's style of hairdressing was at least peculiar; the hair being suffered to remain very much as if it received no dressing at all, and matted into ropes, which spread themselves in all directions."

"The Indians universally choose a specific object that they regard as sacred, seeing it as the source of their prosperity and protection from evil. This choice is often influenced by a dream or a strong preference, usually falling on an animal, a part of an animal, or something found on land or in water; but 'Great Road' chose his hair—placing, like Samson, all his safety in this part of his very being! His hair was the source of all his happiness; it was his strength and weapon, his spear and shield. It protected him in battle, guided him in the hunt, watched over him during travel, and ensured longevity for his wife and children. Hair of this nature was not to be defiled by human hands. I was told that it had never been cut or combed since his childhood, and that whenever a piece fell from his head, he carefully preserved it. Additionally, it was not left unattended while growing; it was under the special care of a spirit who styled it while he slept. All this may have been true, but the spirit's way of hairdressing was certainly unusual; the hair appeared to remain mostly untouched, matting into ropes that spread in all directions."

From this Assiniboin village Henry saw, for the first time, one of those herds of horses which the Assiniboins possessed in numbers. The herd was feeding on the skirts of the plain. The horses were provided with no fodder, but were left to find food for themselves, which they did in winter by removing the snow with their feet till they reach the grass. This was everywhere on the ground in plenty.

From this Assiniboin village, Henry saw, for the first time, one of those herds of horses that the Assiniboins owned in large numbers. The herd was grazing on the edge of the plain. The horses weren’t given any feed; they were left to forage for themselves, which they did in winter by using their hooves to clear away the snow until they reached the grass. There was plenty of grass available everywhere on the ground.

Amongst these people they saw the paunch or stomach of a bison employed as a kettle. This was hung in the smoke of a fire and filled with snow. As the snow melted, more was added, till the paunch was full of water. The lower orifice of the organ was used for drawing off the water, and stopped with a plug and string.

Among these people, they saw the stomach of a bison being used as a kettle. It was hung in the smoke of a fire and filled with snow. As the snow melted, more was added until the stomach was full of water. The lower opening of the stomach was used to drain the water, which was plugged with a stopper and string.

Henry also noticed amongst the Assiniboins the celebrated lariat. This is formed of a stone of about two pounds weight, which is sewed up in leather and made fast to a wooden handle two feet long. In using it the stone is whirled round the handle by a warrior sitting on horseback and riding at full speed. Every stroke which takes effect brings down a man, a horse, or a bison. To prevent the weapon from slipping out of the hand, a string, which is tied to the handle, is also passed round the wrist of the wearer.

Henry also noticed among the Assiniboins the famous lariat. This is made up of a stone weighing about two pounds, which is sewn into leather and attached to a wooden handle that’s two feet long. When using it, a warrior spins the stone around the handle while riding a horse at full speed. Each successful swing takes down a person, a horse, or a bison. To keep the weapon from slipping out of their hand, a string tied to the handle is also wrapped around the wearer’s wrist.

Alexander Henry extended his travels in the north-west within four hundred and fifty miles of Lake Athabaska. He met at this point some Chipewayan slaves in the possession of the Assiniboins, and heard from them (1) of the Peace River in the far west which led one through the Rocky Mountains (he uses that name) to a region descending towards a great sea (the Pacific Ocean); and (2) of the Slave River which, after passing through several lakes, also reached a great sea on the north. This, of course, was an allusion to the Mackenzie River. Here were given and recorded the chief hints at possible lines of exploration which afterwards sent Alexander Mackenzie and other explorers on the journeys that carried British-Canadian enterprise and administration to the shores of the Pacific and Arctic Oceans.

Alexander Henry expanded his travels in the northwest, within four hundred and fifty miles of Lake Athabaska. At this point, he encountered some Chipewayan slaves who were held by the Assiniboins and learned from them (1) about the Peace River in the far west that led through the Rocky Mountains (he uses that term) to an area that slopes down towards a great sea (the Pacific Ocean); and (2) about the Slave River, which, after flowing through several lakes, also reached a great sea to the north. This, of course, referred to the Mackenzie River. Here, he noted the main clues for possible exploration routes that later inspired Alexander Mackenzie and other explorers on journeys that brought British-Canadian efforts and governance to the shores of the Pacific and Arctic Oceans.

After 1776 Alexander Henry ceased his notable explorations of the far west. In that year he paid a visit to England and France, returning to Canada in 1777. Whilst in France he was received at the French Court and had the privilege of relating to Queen Marie Antoinette some of his wonderful adventures and experiences. After two more visits to England he settled down at Montreal as a merchant (autumn of 1780), and in 1784 he joined with other great pioneers in founding, at Montreal, The North-west Trading Company. Eventually he handed over his share in this enterprise to his nephew, Alexander Henry the Younger, and established himself completely in a life of ease and quiet. He died at Montreal in 1824, aged eighty-five years.

After 1776, Alexander Henry stopped his significant explorations of the West. That year, he visited England and France, returning to Canada in 1777. While in France, he was welcomed at the French Court, where he had the chance to share some of his amazing adventures with Queen Marie Antoinette. After two more trips to England, he settled in Montreal as a merchant in the autumn of 1780. In 1784, he teamed up with other pioneering figures to establish The North-west Trading Company in Montreal. Eventually, he passed his share of the business to his nephew, Alexander Henry the Younger, and embraced a life of comfort and tranquility. He died in Montreal in 1824 at the age of eighty-five.


1 Carver was not so remarkable for his actual journeys as for his confident predictions of a feasible transcontinental route being found to the Pacific coast.

1 Carver wasn't particularly notable for the journeys he took, but rather for his strong belief that a practical transcontinental route to the Pacific coast would be discovered.

2 The white-barked conifer, which gives its name to this lake, is Thuja occidentalis. There are no real "cedars" in America.

2 The white-barked conifer that names this lake is Thuja occidentalis. There are actually no true "cedars" in America.

3 The famous place of call (the name means "Turtle Island") in the narrow strait between Lakes Huron and Michigan, and near Lake Superior. (See p. 230.) But some authorities declare that Michili-makinak means "Island of the great wounded person".

3 The well-known destination (the name translates to "Turtle Island") in the narrow strait between Lakes Huron and Michigan, and close to Lake Superior. (See p. 230.) However, some experts claim that Michili-makinak means "Island of the great wounded person."

4 There are at least two species of maple in Canada yielding sugar from their sap; but the best is Acer saccharinum. The maple leaf is the national emblem of Canada.

4 Canada has at least two types of maple trees that produce sugar from their sap, but the best one is Acer saccharinum. The maple leaf is the national symbol of Canada.

5 Shell beads.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Shell beads.

6 Populus nigra, called by the French Canadians liard.

6 Populus nigra, known as liard by French Canadians.

7 The grains of maize (Indian corn) grow in compact cells, round a pithy core.

7 The kernels of corn (Indian corn) grow in tight clusters around a soft center.

8 Michili, pronounced "Mishili", means "great", and Makinak, "turtle", in the translation of some Canadian writers. The turtle in question is, of course, not the turtle of sea waters, but the Snapping Turtle (Chelydra serpentina) found in most Canadian lakes and the big rivers of North America, east of the Rocky Mountains.

8 Michili, pronounced "Mishili," means "great," and Makinak means "turtle," according to some Canadian writers. The turtle being referred to is not a sea turtle but the Snapping Turtle (Chelydra serpentina), which can be found in most Canadian lakes and the major rivers of North America, east of the Rocky Mountains.

9 The smallest change, so to speak, was the skin of a marten, worth one shilling and sixpence. If you went to a canteen for a drink you paid your score with a marten skin, unless the value of your refreshment exceeded the sum of eighteen pence.

9 The smallest change, so to speak, was the skin of a marten, worth one shilling and sixpence. If you went to a canteen for a drink, you paid your bill with a marten skin, unless the cost of your refreshment was more than eighteen pence.

10 See p. 128.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See page __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

11 The Isle of Yellow Sands, famed in legend for its terrible serpents and ogre sixty feet high, was subsequently identified with the Ile de Pont Chartrain, which is distant sixty miles from the north shore of Lake Superior.

11 The Isle of Yellow Sands, known in legend for its fearsome serpents and sixty-foot ogre, was later identified as the Ile de Pont Chartrain, which is located sixty miles from the north shore of Lake Superior.

12 See p. 166.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See p. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

13 Elsewhere Henry observes the great numbers of pelicans to be seen on Lake Winnipeg.

13 Elsewhere, Henry notices the large number of pelicans that can be seen on Lake Winnipeg.

14 Chocolate from St. Domingue (Haiti) was a favourite form of portable nutriment among the French Canadians, who also provided a means of subsistence for long journeys called praline. This was made of roasted Indian corn on which sugar had been sprinkled. It was a most nourishing food, as well as being an agreeable sweet-meat.

14 Chocolate from St. Domingue (Haiti) was a popular snack among the French Canadians, who also created a type of sustenance for long trips called praline. This was made from roasted corn with sugar sprinkled on it. It was very nourishing and also a tasty treat.

15 The Assiniboins (whom Henry calls the Osinipoilles) are the Issati of older travellers, and have sometimes been called the Weeper Indians, from their tendency to tears.

15 The Assiniboins (whom Henry refers to as the Osinipoilles) are the Issati known by earlier explorers and have occasionally been called the Weeper Indians because of their tendency to cry.

[__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]






CHAPTER X

Samuel Hearne

The first noteworthy explorer of the far north was SAMUEL HEARNE, [1] who had been mate of a vessel in the employ of the whale fishery of Hudson Bay. He entered the service of the Hudson's Bay Company about 1765, and was selected four years afterwards by the Governor of Prince of Wales's Fort (a certain Moses Norton, a half-breed) to lead an expedition of discovery in search of a mighty river flowing northwards, which was rumoured to exist by the Eskimo. This "Coppermine" River was said to flow through a region rich in deposits of copper. From this district the northern tribes of Indians derived their copper ornaments and axeheads.

The first notable explorer of the far north was SAMUEL HEARNE, [1] who had been an officer on a ship involved in the whale fishery in Hudson Bay. He joined the Hudson's Bay Company around 1765 and was chosen four years later by the Governor of Prince of Wales's Fort (a man named Moses Norton, who was of mixed heritage) to lead a discovery expedition in search of a great river that was rumored to flow north, as told by the Eskimos. This "Coppermine" River was believed to pass through an area rich in copper deposits. The northern tribes of Indigenous people obtained their copper ornaments and axeheads from this region.

Samuel Hearne started on the 6th of November, 1769, from Prince of Wales's Fort at the mouth of the Churchill River, on the north-west coast of Hudson Bay. Presumably he and the two "common white men" who were with him travelled on snowshoes and hauled small sledges after them. Travelling westward they passed over bleak hills with very little vegetation—"the barren grounds, where, in general, we thought ourselves well off if we could scrape together as many shrubs as would make a fire; but it was scarcely ever in our power to make any other defence against the weather than by digging a hole in the snow down to the moss, wrapping ourselves up in our clothing, and lying down in it, with our sledges set up edgeways to windward". But the principal Indian guide that he engaged was so obviously determined to make the expedition a failure that Hearne returned to his base, Prince of Wales's Fort, and made a second start on the 23rd of February, 1770, this time taking care not to be accompanied by any other white men, and insisting that the Indians who accompanied him should be more carefully chosen.

Samuel Hearne set out on November 6, 1769, from Prince of Wales's Fort at the mouth of the Churchill River, on the northwest coast of Hudson Bay. He and the two "common white men" with him presumably traveled on snowshoes and dragged small sledges behind them. As they headed west, they crossed bleak hills with very little vegetation—"the barren grounds, where, in general, we thought ourselves lucky if we could gather enough shrubs to make a fire; but it was rarely in our power to create any other defense against the weather than by digging a hole in the snow down to the moss, wrapping ourselves in our clothes, and lying down in it, with our sledges propped up sideways to block the wind." However, the main Indian guide he hired was so clearly intent on sabotaging the expedition that Hearne returned to his base at Prince of Wales's Fort and made a second attempt on February 23, 1770, this time ensuring he wasn’t accompanied by any other white men and that the Indians with him were carefully selected.

It must be remembered that in all these early expeditions, French and English, the explorers relied for their food almost entirely on what could be obtained as they went along, in the way of venison, grouse, geese, fish, and wild fruits. In the springtime they would probably get goose eggs and some form of maple sugar through the Indians. From the summer to the autumn there would be an abundance of wild fruits and nuts, but for the rest of the year it would be a diet almost entirely of flesh or fish. As a stand-by there was probably pemmican, made in times of plenty from fish, from bison meat and fat, or from the dried flesh of deer or musk oxen; but tea, coffee, bread, biscuits, and such like accessories were absolutely unknown to them, in fact they lived exactly as the Amerindians did. Their habitations, of course, were the tents or houses of the natives, or what they made for themselves.

It should be noted that during all these early expeditions, both French and English, the explorers mostly depended on whatever food they could find along the way, including deer, grouse, geese, fish, and wild fruits. In the spring, they would likely collect goose eggs and some kind of maple sugar from the Indigenous people. From summer to autumn, there would be plenty of wild fruits and nuts, but for the rest of the year, their diet consisted almost entirely of meat or fish. As a backup, they probably had pemmican, which was made during times of plenty from fish, bison meat and fat, or the dried meat of deer or musk oxen; however, tea, coffee, bread, biscuits, and similar items were completely unknown to them. In fact, they lived just like the Native Americans did. Their shelters were typically the tents or houses of the locals, or whatever they constructed for themselves.

In order to pitch an Indian tent in winter it was first necessary to search for a level piece of dry ground, and this could only be ascertained by thrusting a stick through the snow, down to the ground, all over the proposed plot. When a suitable site had been found the snow was then cleared away down to the very moss, in the shape of a circle. When a prolonged stay was contemplated, even the moss was cut up and removed, as it was very liable when dry to catch fire. A quantity of poles were then procured, proportionate in number and length to the size of the tent cloth and the number of persons the tent was intended to contain. Two of the longest poles were tied together at the top and raised to an angle of about 45 degrees from the ground, so that the lower ends extended on either side as widely as the proposed diameter of the tent. The other poles were then arranged on either side of the first two, so that they formed a complete circle round the bottom, and their points were tied together at the top. The tent cloth was usually of thin moose leather, and in shape resembled the vane of a fan, so that the large outer curve enclosed the bottom of the poles, and the smaller one fitted round the apex of the poles at the top, leaving an open space which let out the smoke and let in air and light. The fire was made on the ground in the centre of the floor, which floor was covered all over with small branches of firs and pines serving as seats and beds. Pine foliage and branches were laid round the bottom of the poles on the outside, and a quantity of snow was packed all round the exterior of the tent, thus excluding a great part of the external air, and contributing much to the warmth within.

To set up an Indian tent in winter, you first had to find a flat, dry spot, which you could only determine by poking a stick through the snow down to the ground in various places across the chosen area. Once a suitable location was found, the snow was cleared away down to the moss, forming a circle. If a longer stay was planned, even the moss would be cut out and removed because it could easily catch fire when dry. A number of poles were then collected, in both quantity and length, based on the size of the tent fabric and the number of people it was meant to accommodate. Two of the longest poles were tied together at the top and raised to about a 45-degree angle from the ground, with the lower ends spreading out to match the intended diameter of the tent. The other poles were positioned on either side of the first two, creating a complete circle at the bottom, and their tops were tied together. The tent fabric was typically made from thin moose leather and was shaped like a fan, with the large outer curve covering the bottom of the poles and the smaller curve fitting around the tops, leaving an opening for smoke to escape while allowing air and light to enter. A fire was set up in the center of the floor, which was covered in small branches from firs and pines that served as seating and bedding. Pine foliage and branches were arranged around the base of the poles on the outside, and snow was packed all around the tent's exterior, helping to block a lot of the outside air and keeping the interior warm.

For a month or more Hearne camped in this fashion by the side of a lake, waiting till the season was sufficiently open for him to continue his journey by water. He and his party of Indians lived mainly on fish, but when these became scarce they attempted to snare grouse or kill deer. In the intervals of rare meals all the party smoked or slept, unless they were obliged to go out to hunt and fish. They would delight, after killing deer, in securing as much as possible of the blood and turning it into broth by boiling it in a kettle with fat and scraps of meat. This was reckoned a dainty dish. Their spoons, dishes, and other necessary household furniture were cut out of birch bark.

For a month or more, Hearne camped like this by the lake, waiting for the season to be right so he could continue his journey by water. He and his group of Indians mostly lived on fish, but when those became hard to find, they tried to catch grouse or hunt deer. During the long stretches between meals, everyone in the group either smoked or slept unless they had to go out to hunt or fish. After killing a deer, they would take as much blood as they could and turn it into broth by boiling it with fat and scraps of meat in a kettle. This was considered a tasty dish. Their spoons, bowls, and other essential kitchen items were made from birch bark.

Lake Louise, the Rocky Mountains
LAKE LOUISE, THE ROCKY MOUNTAINS

By the 19th of May, geese, swans, ducks, gulls, and other birds of passage were so plentiful, flying from south to north, and halting to rest at the lake, that Hearne felt the time had come to resume his journey, provisions being now very plentiful and the worst of the thaw over. The weather was remarkably fine and pleasant as the party travelled northwards.

By May 19th, geese, swans, ducks, seagulls, and other migratory birds were so abundant, flying from south to north and stopping to rest at the lake, that Hearne decided it was time to continue his journey, as supplies were now plentiful and the worst of the thaw was over. The weather was surprisingly nice and pleasant as the group traveled north.

There must have been good patent medicines even in those days. Of these Hearne possessed "Turlington's Drops" and "Yellow Basilicon", and with these he not only healed the terrible wounds of a valuable Indian who had cut his leg most severely (when making birch-bark dishes, spoons, &c), but also the hand of another Indian, which was shattered with the bursting of a gun. These medicines soon restored the use of his hand, so that in a short time he was out of danger, while the carver of birch-bark spoons was able to walk. Nevertheless, although they were to the south of the 60th degree of latitude, the snow was not completely melted until the end of June.

There must have been good patent medicines back then. Hearne had "Turlington's Drops" and "Yellow Basilicon," and with these, he not only treated the severe wounds of a valuable Indian who had badly cut his leg while making birch-bark dishes, spoons, etc., but also healed the hand of another Indian that was shattered from a gun going off. These medicines quickly restored the use of his hand, so he was out of danger in no time, while the birch-bark spoon carver was able to walk again. Still, even though they were south of the 60th degree of latitude, the snow didn’t completely melt until the end of June.

All at once the weather became exceedingly hot, the sledges had to be thrown away, and each man had to carry on his back a heavy load. For instance, Hearne was obliged to carry his quadrant for taking astronomical observations, and its stand; a trunk containing books and papers, &c.; a large compass; and a bag containing all his wearing apparel; also a hatchet, a number of knives, files, &c., and several small articles intended for presents to the natives—in short, a weight of sixty pounds. Moreover, the barren ground was quite unsuited to the pitching of the southern type of tent, the poles of which obviously could not be driven into the bare rock, so that Hearne was obliged to sleep in the open air in all weathers. Very often he was unable to make a fire, and was constantly reduced to eating his meat quite raw. "Notwithstanding these accumulated and complicated hardships, we continued in perfect health and good spirits." The average day's walk was twenty miles, sometimes without any other subsistence than a pipe of tobacco and a drink of water.

Suddenly, the weather got extremely hot, forcing them to abandon the sledges, and each person had to carry a heavy load on their back. For example, Hearne had to lug around his quadrant for astronomical observations and its stand; a trunk filled with books and papers; a large compass; a bag with all his clothing; a hatchet; several knives, files, etc.; and a bunch of small items meant as gifts for the natives—in total, a weight of sixty pounds. Plus, the barren ground was not suitable for setting up a southern-style tent, as the poles clearly couldn’t be driven into the bare rock, which meant Hearne had to sleep outside in any weather. Often, he couldn’t make a fire and had to eat his meat raw. "Despite these numerous and complicated hardships, we maintained good health and high spirits." The typical day’s walk was twenty miles, sometimes with nothing to eat but a pipe of tobacco and a sip of water.

At last they saw three musk oxen grazing by the side of a small lake. This seemed a splendid piece of fortune, but, to their mortification, before they could get one of them skinned, a tremendous downpour of rain ensued, so as to make it out of their power to have a fire, for their only form of fuel was moss. And the flesh of the musk ox eaten raw was disgusting; it was coarse and tough, and tasted so strongly of musk that Hearne could hardly swallow it. "None of our natural wants," he writes, "except thirst, are so distressing or hard to endure as hunger.... For want of action, the stomach so far loses its digestive powers that, after long fasting, it resumes its office with pain and reluctance." After these prolonged fasts, his stomach was scarcely able to contain two or three ounces of food without producing the most agonizing pain. "We fasted many times two whole days and nights, and twice for three days; once for nearly seven days, during which we tasted not a mouthful of anything, except a few cranberries, water, scraps of old leather, and burnt bones."

At last, they spotted three musk oxen grazing by a small lake. This seemed like a stroke of luck, but to their dismay, before they could skin one, a heavy downpour of rain came, making it impossible to start a fire since their only fuel was moss. Eating the raw musk ox meat was disgusting; it was tough and coarse, and the strong musk flavor made it hard for Hearne to swallow. "None of our natural wants," he writes, "except thirst, are as distressing or hard to endure as hunger... Due to lack of activity, the stomach loses its ability to digest, so after long fasting, it resumes its function with pain and reluctance." After these extended fasts, his stomach could barely handle two or three ounces of food without causing unbearable pain. "We often fasted for two entire days and nights, and twice for three days; once for nearly seven days, during which we didn't eat anything except a few cranberries, water, scraps of old leather, and burned bones."

At a place 63° north latitude he bought a canoe for a single knife "the full value of which did not exceed one penny", having been told that they would soon reach rivers through which they could not wade. And, moreover, they found an Indian who was willing to carry it. In July his guide persuaded him to join an encampment of natives—about six hundred persons living in seventy tents—asserting that, as it was no use proceeding much farther north in their search for the Coppermine River that season, it would be well to winter to the west, and resume their northern journey in the spring. The country, though quite devoid of trees, and mostly barren rock, was covered with a herb or shrub called by the Indian name of Wishakapakka, [2] from which the European servants of the Hudson's Bay Company had long been used to prepare a kind of tea by steeping it in boiling water. Here there were multitudes of reindeer feeding on the Cladina lichen and the Indians with Hearne killed large numbers for the food of the party, and also for their skins and the marrow in their bones.

At a location at 63° north latitude, he bought a canoe for a single knife, "the full value of which did not exceed one penny," after being informed that they would soon reach rivers that they couldn't wade through. Additionally, they found an Indian who was willing to carry it. In July, his guide convinced him to join a camp of natives—about six hundred people living in seventy tents—claiming that since it wouldn’t be useful to go much farther north in their search for the Coppermine River that season, it would be better to winter to the west and continue their northern journey in the spring. The area, though completely lacking in trees and mostly barren rock, was covered with a herb or shrub called Wishakapakka, [2] from which the European servants of the Hudson's Bay Company had long prepared a type of tea by steeping it in boiling water. Here, there were many reindeer grazing on the Cladina lichen, and the Indians, along with Hearne, killed a large number for the party's food, as well as for their skins and the marrow in their bones.

The Indian who had volunteered to carry the canoe proved unequal to his task. But Hearne found another of his carriers who was willing to take the burden. In order, therefore, to be readier with his gun to shoot deer, he transferred a portion of his own load to the ex-canoe carrier. This portion consisted of the invaluable quadrant and its stand, and a bag of gunpowder. The gunpowder was of such importance to Hearne and his party that one wonders he made this exchange; for if he lost this powder he had no means of killing game, and was entirely dependent for food on the troop of Indians with whom he was travelling, and whom he knew to be most niggardly and inhospitable. Judge, therefore, of his horror when, at the end of a day's march, this weakly Indian porter was missing with his load. All night Hearne was unable to sleep with anxiety, and the whole of the next day he spent searching the rocky ground for miles to discover some sign of the missing man. At that season of the year it was like looking for a needle in a pottle of hay, for there was no snow, and equally no herbage, on which a man's foot could leave traces. However, at last, by some miracle, they discovered the load by the banks of a little river where a party of Indians had crossed.

The Indian who had volunteered to carry the canoe turned out to be unfit for the job. But Hearne found another carrier who was ready to take on the load. To be more prepared with his gun to shoot deer, he shifted part of his own load to the former canoe carrier. This part included the crucial quadrant and its stand, along with a bag of gunpowder. The gunpowder was so important to Hearne and his party that it’s surprising he made this trade; losing that powder meant he wouldn’t be able to hunt for game and would have to rely entirely on the group of Indians he was traveling with, who he knew to be quite stingy and unfriendly. Imagine his horror when, after a day's march, this weak Indian porter was nowhere to be found along with his load. Hearne spent the entire night restless with worry, and the next day searching the rocky ground for miles to find any sign of the missing man. At that time of year, it was like searching for a needle in a haystack since there was no snow and no plants to leave traces of footsteps. However, finally, by some miracle, they found the load by the bank of a small river where a group of Indians had crossed.

Shortly afterwards, leaving his quadrant on its stand for a few minutes, whilst he went to eat his dinner, a violent wind arose and blew the whole thing on to the rocks, so that the quadrant was smashed and rendered useless. On this account he determined once more to return to Fort Prince of Wales. The Northern Indians[3] with whom Hearne travelled backwards towards the fort were most inhospitable, not to say dangerous. They robbed him of most of his goods, and refused to allow their women to assist his people to dress the reindeer skins out of which it would be necessary shortly to make coverings to protect them from the severe cold of the autumn. In fact Hearne was in rather a desperate condition by September, 1770, when he was joined by a party of Indians under a famous leader, whom he calls Matonabi.

Shortly after, he left his quadrant on its stand for a few minutes while he went to have dinner. A strong wind suddenly came up and blew everything onto the rocks, shattering the quadrant and making it useless. Because of this, he decided to return to Fort Prince of Wales. The Northern Indians[3] that Hearne traveled back with toward the fort were very unfriendly, not to mention dangerous. They stole most of his belongings and wouldn’t let their women help his group prepare the reindeer skins, which he needed to make coverings to protect them from the harsh autumn cold. By September 1770, Hearne was in quite a dire situation when he was joined by a group of Indians led by a well-known leader he referred to as Matonabi.

Matonabi, though of Athapaskan stock, had, when a boy, resided several years at Prince of Wales's Fort, and learnt a little English, and, above all, was a master of several Algonkin dialects or languages, so that he could discourse with the Southern Indians. As soon as he heard of Hearne's distress he furnished him with a good, warm suit of skins, and had the reindeer skins dressed for the Indian carriers who accompanied Hearne. In journeying together, Matonabi invited him to return once more, with himself as guide, to discover the copper mines.

Matonabi, although he was of Athapaskan descent, had spent several years as a boy at Prince of Wales's Fort, where he learned some English and, most importantly, became fluent in several Algonkin dialects. This allowed him to communicate with the Southern Indians. When he heard about Hearne's troubles, he provided him with a warm suit made of skins and had the reindeer skins prepared for the Indian carriers accompanying Hearne. While traveling together, Matonabi invited Hearne to come back with him as a guide to find the copper mines.

"He attributed all our misfortunes to the misconduct of my guides, and the very plan we pursued, by the desire of the Governor, in not taking any women with us on this journey, was, he said, the principal thing that occasioned all our wants. 'For,' said he, 'when all the men are heavy laden, they can neither hunt nor travel to any considerable distance; and in case they meet with success in hunting, who is to carry the produce of their labour?' 'Women,' added he, 'were made for labour; one of them can carry, or haul, as much as two men can do. They also pitch our tents, make and mend our clothing, keep us warm at night; and, in fact, there is no such thing as travelling any considerable distance, or for any length of time, in this country, without their assistance.' 'Women,' said he again, 'though they do everything, are maintained at a trifling expense; for as they always stand cook, the very licking of their fingers in scarce times is sufficient for their subsistence.'

"He blamed all our troubles on the mistakes of my guides, and he said that the plan we followed, which was the Governor’s idea of not bringing any women on this journey, was the main reason for all our struggles. 'Because,' he said, 'when all the men are heavily loaded, they can't hunt or travel far; and if they do manage to catch something, who’s going to carry what they’ve caught?' 'Women,' he added, 'are meant for hard work; one can carry or haul as much as two men. They also set up our tents, make and fix our clothes, and keep us warm at night. In fact, it's impossible to travel any significant distance or for any length of time in this country without their help.' 'Women,' he emphasized again, 'though they do everything, cost very little to take care of; since they're always cooking, just the leftovers from their meals during tough times is enough for them to get by.'"

"This," added Hearne, "however odd it may appear, is but too true a description of the situation of women in this country: it is at least so in appearance; for the women always carry the provisions, though it is more than probable they help themselves when the men are not present."

"This," Hearne added, "no matter how strange it may seem, is a pretty accurate description of women's situation in this country: at least it looks that way; because women always carry the supplies, although it's likely they take what they need when the men aren't around."

On the 7th of December, 1770, Samuel Hearne started again from Prince of Wales's Fort, Hudsons Bay, but under very much happier circumstances, Matonabi being practically in charge of the expedition.

On December 7, 1770, Samuel Hearne set out again from Prince of Wales's Fort, Hudson's Bay, but under much more positive circumstances, with Matonabi basically in charge of the expedition.

Unfortunately, on reaching the Egg River, where Matonabi's people had made a cache or hiding place in which they had stored a quantity of provisions and implements, they found that other Indians had discovered this hiding place and robbed it of nearly every article. This was a great disappointment to Matonabi's people; but Hearne remarks the fortitude with which they bore this, nor did one of them ever speak of revenge. But the expedition's scarcity of food obliged them to push on from morning till night, day after day; yet the road being very bad, and their sledges heavy, they were seldom able to do more than eighteen miles a day. Hearne himself writes that he never spent so dull a Christmas. For the last three days he had not tasted a morsel of anything, except a pipe of tobacco and a drink of snow water, yet he had to walk daily from morning till night heavily laden. However, at the end of December they reached Island Lake, where they entered a camp of Matonabi's people, and here they found a little food in the way of fish and dried venison. From Island Lake they made their way in a zigzag fashion, stopping often to drive reindeer into pounds to secure large supplies of venison and of skins, till, in the month of April, 1771, they reached a small lake with an almost unpronounceable name, which meant "Little Fish Hill", from a high hill which stood at the west end of this sheet of water.

Unfortunately, when they reached the Egg River, where Matonabi's people had created a cache to store a supply of food and tools, they discovered that other Native Americans had found the stash and taken almost everything. This was a big disappointment for Matonabi's people, but Hearne noted how bravely they handled it; none of them ever mentioned revenge. However, the group's lack of food forced them to keep moving from morning to night, day after day. The poor condition of the road and the heavy sledges meant they could rarely travel more than eighteen miles a day. Hearne himself wrote that he had never spent such a dull Christmas. For the last three days, he hadn't eaten anything except a pipe of tobacco and a bit of snow water, yet he had to walk all day while heavily loaded. By the end of December, they reached Island Lake, where they joined Matonabi's people and found some food in the form of fish and dried deer meat. From Island Lake, they moved in a zigzag pattern, frequently stopping to herd reindeer into fenced areas to gather large amounts of venison and skins, until they arrived in April 1771 at a small lake with a nearly unpronounceable name that meant "Little Fish Hill," named for a high hill located at the west end of the lake.

On an island in this lake they pitched their tents, as deer were very numerous. During this time also they were busily employed in preparing staves of birch wood, about seven or eight feet long, to serve as tent poles in the summer, and in the winter to be converted into snowshoe frames. Here also Chief Matonabi purchased another wife. He had now with him no less than seven, most of whom would for size have made good grenadiers. He prided himself much on the height and strength of his wives, and would frequently say few women could carry off heavier loads. In fact in this country wives were very seldom selected for their beauty, but rather for their strength.

On an island in this lake, they set up their tents because there were plenty of deer around. During this time, they were also busy making birch wood poles about seven or eight feet long to use as tent poles in the summer, which would be turned into snowshoe frames in the winter. Here, Chief Matonabi also got another wife. Now, he had no fewer than seven wives, most of whom were big enough to be good grenadiers. He took great pride in the height and strength of his wives and often mentioned that few women could carry heavier loads. In fact, in this country, wives were rarely chosen for their beauty but rather for their strength.

"Ask a Northern Indian," wrote Hearne, "'What is beauty?' He will answer: 'A broad, flat face, small eyes, high cheekbones, three or four broad black lines across each cheek, a low forehead, a broad chin, a clumsy hook nose, and a tawny hide.'"

"Ask someone from Northern India," wrote Hearne, "'What is beauty?' They will answer: 'A broad, flat face, small eyes, high cheekbones, three or four thick black lines across each cheek, a low forehead, a broad chin, a bulky hook nose, and a tan complexion.'"

But the model woman amongst these Indians was one who was capable of dressing all kinds of skins and making them into clothing, and who was strong enough to carry a load of about a hundred pounds in weight in summer, and to haul perhaps double that weight on a sledge in winter. "As to their temper, it is of little consequence; for the men have a wonderful facility in making the most stubborn comply with as much alacrity as could possibly be expected." When the men kill any large beast the women are always sent to bring it to the tent. When it is brought there, every operation it undergoes, such as splitting, drying, pounding, is performed by the women. When anything is prepared for eating it is the women who cook it; and when it is done, not even the wives and daughters of the greatest chiefs in the country are served until all the males—even the male slaves—have eaten what they think proper. In times of scarcity it was frequently the lot of the women to be left without a single mouthful; though, no doubt, they took good care to help themselves in secret.

But the ideal woman among these Indians was someone who could dress all kinds of animal skins to make clothing and was strong enough to carry about a hundred pounds in the summer and haul maybe double that weight on a sled in the winter. "As for their attitude, it doesn’t really matter; the men have an incredible ability to get even the most stubborn to comply with as much willingness as anyone could expect." When the men kill a large animal, the women are always sent to bring it back to the tent. Once it’s there, every task it goes through, like splitting, drying, and pounding, is done by the women. When food is prepared, it’s the women who cook it; and when it’s ready, not even the wives and daughters of the highest chiefs in the land are served until all the men—even the male slaves—have eaten what they want. During times of shortage, the women often ended up without a single bite to eat; though, no doubt, they made sure to sneak some food for themselves in secret.

Samuel Hearne; Alexander Mackenzie
SAMUEL HEARNE and ALEXANDER MACKENZIE

Hearne mentions that in this country among the Northern Indians the names of the boys were various and generally derived from some place, or season of the year, or animal; whilst the names of the girls were chiefly taken from some part or property of a marten, [4] such as the white marten, the black marten, the summer marten, the marten's head, foot, heart, or tail.

Hearne notes that in this country among the Northern Indians, the boys' names were diverse and usually came from a location, a season of the year, or an animal; while the girls' names were mainly derived from some feature or characteristic of a marten, [4] like the white marten, the black marten, the summer marten, or parts like the marten's head, foot, heart, or tail.

From the Lake of Little Fish Hill the party moved on to Lake Clowey, and here the Northern Indians set to work to build their canoes in the warm and dry weather, which was about to come in at the end of May. These canoes were very slight and simple in construction and wonderfully light, which was necessary, for some of the northern portages might be a hundred to one hundred and fifty miles in length, over which the canoes would have to be carried by the Indians. All the tools employed in those days, in building such canoes and making snowshoes and all the other furniture and utensils of Indian life, consisted of a hatchet, a knife, a file, and an awl obtained from the stores of the Hudson's Bay Company. In the use of these tools they were so dexterous that everything they manufactured was done with a neatness which could not be excelled by the most expert mechanic. These northern canoes were flat-bottomed, with straight, upright sides, and sharp prow and peak. The stern part of the canoe was wider than the rest in order to receive the baggage. The average length of the canoe would be from twelve to thirteen feet, and the breadth in the widest part about two feet. Generally but a single paddle was used, and that rather attenuated. When transporting the canoes from one river to another, a strong band of bark or fibre would be fastened round the thwarts of the canoe, and then slung over the breast and shoulders of the Indian that was carrying it.

From Little Fish Hill Lake, the group continued on to Lake Clowey, where the Northern Indians began to build their canoes in the warm, dry weather that was arriving at the end of May. These canoes were lightweight and simple in design, which was essential because some of the northern portages could be between a hundred and a hundred and fifty miles long, requiring the Indians to carry the canoes. The tools used back then to build these canoes and make snowshoes, along with the other equipment and utensils used in Indian life, included a hatchet, a knife, a file, and an awl from the Hudson's Bay Company stores. Their skill with these tools was so impressive that everything they made was done with a precision that could rival the best mechanics. These northern canoes had flat bottoms, straight, upright sides, and sharp bows and peaks. The back of the canoe was wider than the rest to accommodate baggage. The average length of the canoe was between twelve and thirteen feet, with the widest part being about two feet across. Typically, only a single, slender paddle was used. When moving the canoes from one river to another, a strong band of bark or fiber would be secured around the thwarts of the canoe and then slung over the chest and shoulders of the Indian carrying it.

From Lake Clowey the northern progress was made on foot, steady and fatiguing walking over the barren grounds. The wooded region had been left behind to the south; but for a distance of about twenty miles outside the living woods there was a belt of dry stumps more or less ancient. According to Hearne, these vestiges of trees to the north of the present forest limit were an indication that the climate had grown colder during the seventeenth and eighteenth centuries, because, according to the traditions of the Indians and the remembrances of their old people, the forest had formerly extended much farther to the north.

From Lake Clowey, we made our way north on foot, trudging through the exhausting, barren land. We had left the wooded area behind us to the south; however, for about twenty miles beyond the living woods, there was a strip of dry stumps, some quite old. According to Hearne, these remnants of trees north of the current forest line suggested that the climate had become colder during the seventeenth and eighteenth centuries. This is based on the Indian traditions and memories of their elders, who recalled that the forest used to stretch much further north.

Whilst they were staying for the canoe building at Lake Clowey, Hearne was a great deal bothered by the domestic troubles of his Indian friend Matonabi. This man had been constantly trying to add to his stock of wives as he passed up country, and at Clowey he had met the former husband of one of these women whom he had carried off by force. The man ventured to reproach him, whereupon Matonabi went into his tent, opened one of his wives' bundles, and with the greatest composure took out a new, long, box-handled knife; then proceeded to the tent of the man who had complained, and without any parley whatever took him by the collar and attempted to stab him to death. The man had already received three bad knife wounds in the back before other people, rushing in to his assistance, prevented Matonabi from finishing him. After this, Matonabi returned to his tent as though nothing had happened, called for water, washed the blood off his hands and knife, and smoked his pipe as usual, asking Hearne if he did not think he had done quite right!

While they were at Lake Clowey for canoe building, Hearne was really troubled by the personal issues of his Indian friend Matonabi. This guy had been constantly trying to increase his number of wives as he traveled upcountry, and at Clowey, he met the former husband of one of the women he had forcibly taken. The man dared to confront him, and in response, Matonabi went into his tent, opened one of his wives' bundles, and calmly pulled out a new, long knife with a handle. He then headed over to the tent of the man who complained and, without any hesitation, grabbed him by the collar and tried to stab him to death. The man had already suffered three serious knife wounds in the back before others rushed in to help and stopped Matonabi from finishing the job. Afterward, Matonabi returned to his tent as if nothing had happened, asked for water, washed the blood off his hands and knife, and smoked his pipe as usual, asking Hearne if he didn’t think he had done the right thing!

"It has ever been the custom among those people for the men to wrestle for any woman to whom they are attached; and of course the strongest party always carries off the prize. A weak man, unless he be a good hunter and well beloved, is seldom permitted to keep a wife that a stronger man thinks worth his notice; for at any time when the wives of those strong wrestlers are heavy laden either with furs or provisions, they make no scruple of tearing any other man's wife from his bosom and making her bear a part of his luggage. This custom prevails throughout all their tribes, and causes a great spirit of emulation among their youth, who are upon all occasions, from their childhood, trying their strength and skill in wrestling. This enables them to protect their property, and particularly their wives, from the hands of those powerful ravishers, some of whom make almost a livelihood by taking what they please from the weaker parties without making them any return. Indeed it is represented as an act of great generosity if they condescend to make an unequal exchange, as, in general, abuse and insult are the only return for the loss which is sustained.

It has always been common among these people for the men to wrestle for any woman they are interested in; naturally, the strongest one wins the prize. A weaker man, unless he’s a skilled hunter and well-liked, rarely gets to keep a wife that a stronger man desires. Whenever the wives of those strong wrestlers are burdened with furs or food, they have no hesitation in taking another man's wife from him and making her carry some of their load. This practice exists across all their tribes and fuels a strong competitive spirit among their youth, who from childhood are constantly testing their strength and wrestling skills. This training helps them protect their belongings, especially their wives, from those powerful captors, some of whom almost make a living by taking what they want from weaker individuals without providing anything in return. It's even seen as an act of great generosity if they agree to an unfair exchange, as in general, abuse and insult are the only things given back for the loss experienced.

"The way in which they tear the women and other property from one another, though it has the appearance of the greatest brutality, can scarcely be called fighting. I never knew any of them receive the least hurt in these rencontres; the whole business consists in hauling each other about by the hair of the head; they are seldom known either to strike or kick one another. It is not uncommon for one of them to cut off his hair and to grease his ears immediately before the contest begins. This, however, is done privately; and it is sometimes truly laughable to see one of the parties strutting about with an air of great importance, and calling out: 'Where is he? Why does he not come out?' when the other will bolt out with a clean-shorn head and greased ears, rush on his antagonist, seize him by the hair, and, though perhaps a much weaker man, soon drag him to the ground, while the stronger is not able to lay hold of him. It is very frequent on those occasions for each party to have spies, to watch the other's motions, which puts them more on a footing of equality. For want of hair to pull, they seize each other about the waist, with legs wide extended, and try their strength by endeavouring to vie who can first throw the other down."

"The way they pull each other’s hair and drag women and property around, although it looks really brutal, can't really be called fighting. I’ve never seen any of them get hurt in these skirmishes; it’s mostly just about yanking each other by the hair. They hardly ever hit or kick each other. It’s not unusual for one of them to cut his hair and oil his ears right before the fight starts. However, this is done in private, and it can be pretty funny to watch one of them strut around like he’s a big deal, shouting, 'Where is he? Why isn’t he coming out?' while the other one bolts out with a freshly shaved head and oiled ears, charges at him, grabs him by the hair, and even if he’s the weaker one, he often manages to bring the other guy down, while the stronger one can't get a grip on him. It's common for both sides to have spies watching each other's moves, which makes things a bit more even. When there’s no hair to grab, they grab each other around the waist, with their legs spread wide, and try to outmuscle each other to see who can throw the other down first."

"Early in the morning of the twenty-ninth 'Captain' Keelshies (an Indian) joined us. He delivered to me a packet of letters and a two-quart keg of French brandy, but assured me that the powder, shot, tobacco, knives, &c, which he received at the fort for me, were all expended. He endeavoured to make some apology for this by saying that some of his relations died in the winter, and that he had, according to native custom, thrown all his own things away; after which he was obliged to have recourse to my ammunition and other goods to support himself and a numerous family. The very affecting manner in which he related this story, often crying like a child, was a great proof of his extreme sorrow, which he wished to persuade me arose from the recollection of his having embezzled so much of my property; but I was of a different opinion, and attributed his grief to arise from the remembrance of his deceased relations. However, as a small recompense for my loss, he presented me with four ready-dressed moose skins, which was, he said, the only retribution he could then make. The moose skins, though not the twentieth part of the value of the goods which he had embezzled, were in reality more acceptable to me than the ammunition and the other articles would have been, on account of their great use as shoe leather, which at that time was a very scarce article with us, whereas we had plenty of powder and shot."

"Early in the morning of the twenty-ninth, 'Captain' Keelshies (an Indian) joined us. He gave me a packet of letters and a two-quart keg of French brandy, but he assured me that the powder, shot, tobacco, knives, etc., which he received at the fort for me, were all used up. He tried to explain this by saying that some of his relatives died during the winter and, according to native tradition, he had thrown away all his belongings. After that, he had to rely on my ammunition and other supplies to support himself and his large family. The very emotional way he told this story, often crying like a child, showed his deep sorrow, which he tried to convince me was due to his theft of my property. However, I thought differently and believed his sadness came from the memory of his deceased relatives. Still, as a small compensation for my loss, he gave me four prepared moose skins, which he said was the only payback he could offer me at that moment. Although the moose skins were not worth even a fraction of the goods he had taken, they were actually more useful to me than the ammunition and other items would have been, as they served as shoe leather, which was very scarce for us at the time, while we had plenty of powder and shot."

During Hearne's stay at Lake Clowey a great number of Indians entered into a combination with those of his party to travel together to the Coppermine River, with no other intent than to murder the Eskimo who frequented that river in considerable numbers. Before leaving Lake Clowey all the Northern Indians who had assembled there prepared their arms for the encounter, and did not forget to make shields before they left the woods of Clowey. These shields were composed of thin boards about three-quarters of an inch thick, two feet broad, and three feet long, and were intended to ward off the arrows of the Eskimo.

During Hearne's time at Lake Clowey, many Native Americans came together with his group to travel to the Coppermine River, solely with the intention of killing the Eskimo people who gathered there in large numbers. Before leaving Lake Clowey, all the Northern Indians gathered there got their weapons ready for the fight and made sure to create shields before they left the woods of Clowey. These shields were made of thin boards about three-quarters of an inch thick, two feet wide, and three feet long, designed to block the Eskimo's arrows.

When the now large expedition reached a river with the fearful name of Congecathawhachaga, they found a portion of the tribe known as Copper Indians,[5] and these had never before seen a white man. They gave a very friendly reception to Hearne on account of Matonabi.

When the now large expedition reached a river with the scary name of Congecathawhachaga, they encountered a part of the tribe known as the Copper Indians,[5] and these people had never seen a white man before. They welcomed Hearne warmly because of Matonabi.

"They expressed as much desire to examine me from top to toe as a European naturalist would a nondescript animal. They, however, found and pronounced me to be a perfect human being, except in the colour of my hair and eyes; the former, they said, was like the stained hair of a buffalo's tail, and the latter, being light, were like those of a gull. The whiteness of my skin also was, in their opinion, no ornament, as they said it resembled meat which had been sodden in water till all the blood was extracted. On the whole I was viewed as so great a curiosity in this part of the world that during my stay there, whenever I combed my head, some or other of them never failed to ask for the hairs that came off, which they carefully wrapped up, saying: 'When I see you again, you shall again see your hair'."

"They showed as much interest in examining me from head to toe as a European naturalist would with an unidentified animal. However, they concluded that I was a perfect human being, except for my hair and eye color; they said my hair looked like the stained hair of a buffalo's tail, and my light eyes resembled those of a gull. They also thought the whiteness of my skin was not a good thing, claiming it looked like meat that had been boiled in water until all the blood had been drained. Overall, I was seen as such a curiosity in this part of the world that during my stay, whenever I combed my hair, at least one of them would always ask for the hairs that came out, which they carefully wrapped up, saying, 'When I see you again, you shall see your hair again.'"

The Copper Indians sent a detachment of their men in the double capacity of guides and warriors, and the whole party now turned towards the north-west, and after some days' walking reached the Stony Mountains. "Surely no part of the world better deserves that name", wrote, Hearne. They appeared to be a confused heap of stones quite inaccessible to the foot of man. Nevertheless, with the Copper Indians as guides, they got over this range, though not without being obliged frequently to crawl on hands and knees. This range, however, had been so often crossed by Indians coming to and fro that there was a very visible path the whole way, the rocks, even in the most difficult places, being worn quite smooth. By the side of the path there were several large, flat stones covered with thousands of small pebbles. These marks had been gradually built up by passengers going to and fro from the copper mines in the far north. The weather all this time, although the month was July, was very bad—constant snow, sleet, and rain. Hearne seldom had a dry garment of any kind, and in the caves where they lodged at night the water was constantly dropping from the roof. Their food all this time was raw venison. One snowstorm which fell on them was heavier than was customary even in the winter, but at last the weather cleared up and sunshine made the journey far more tolerable.

The Copper Indians sent a group of their men to act as both guides and warriors, and the entire party now headed northwest. After several days of walking, they reached the Stony Mountains. "Surely no part of the world deserves that name more," wrote Hearne. They seemed like a chaotic pile of stones that was nearly impossible for a person to navigate. However, with the Copper Indians leading the way, they managed to cross this range, though they often had to crawl on their hands and knees. Fortunately, this route had been crossed so many times by Indians traveling back and forth that a clear path had formed, with even the most challenging areas worn smooth. Alongside the path, there were several large, flat stones covered in thousands of small pebbles. These markers had built up over time from travelers going to and from the copper mines in the far north. During this time, even though it was July, the weather was really bad—constant snow, sleet, and rain. Hearne rarely had a dry piece of clothing, and in the caves where they stayed at night, water constantly dripped from the ceiling. Their food during this time was raw venison. One snowstorm they encountered was heavier than typical winter storms, but eventually, the weather cleared up and the sunshine made the journey much more bearable.

As they descended the northern side of the Stony Mountains they crossed a large lake, passing over its unmelted ice, and called it Musk-ox Lake, from the number of these creatures which they found grazing on the margin of it.

As they went down the northern side of the Stony Mountains, they crossed a big lake, walking over its frozen surface, and named it Musk-ox Lake because of the many of these animals they saw grazing along its edge.

This was not the first time that Hearne had seen the musk ox. These animals were wont to come down as far south as the shores of Hudson Bay.

This wasn't the first time Hearne had seen the musk ox. These animals usually came as far south as the shores of Hudson Bay.

On the northern side of the Stony Mountains Hearne was taken by the Indians to see a place which he called Grizzly-bear Hill, which took its name from the numbers of those animals (presumably what we call grizzly bears) which resorted here for the purpose of bringing forth their young in a cave in this hill. On the east side of the adjoining marsh Hearne was amazed at the sight of the many hills and dry ridges, which were turned over like ploughed land by the long claws of these bears in searching for the ground squirrels and mice which constitute a favourite part of their food. It was surprising to see the enormous stones rolled out of their beds by the bears on these occasions.

On the northern side of the Stony Mountains, Hearne was taken by the Indians to see a place he named Grizzly-bear Hill, so-called because of the number of these animals (what we now refer to as grizzly bears) that came here to give birth in a cave on the hill. On the east side of the nearby marsh, Hearne was astounded by the view of the many hills and dry ridges, which were turned over like plowed fields by the bears' long claws as they searched for ground squirrels and mice, a favorite part of their diet. It was surprising to see the huge stones rolled out of their places by the bears during these times.

As they neared the Coppermine River the weather became very warm, and the country had a good supply of firewood. Reindeer were abundant, and, the Indians having killed some of these, Hearne sat down to the most comfortable meal he had had for some months.

As they got closer to the Coppermine River, the weather got really warm, and there was plenty of firewood around. There were lots of reindeer, and after the Indians hunted a few, Hearne enjoyed the most comfortable meal he had in months.

It was a kind of haggis, called by the Amerindians "biati", made with the blood of the reindeer, a good quantity of fat shredded small, some of the tenderest of the flesh, together with the heart and lungs, cut, or more commonly torn, into small slivers—all which would be put into the stomach, and roasted by being suspended before the fire by a string. Care had to be taken that it did not get too much heat at first, as the bag would thereby be liable to be burnt and the contents be let out. When it was sufficiently done it emitted steam, "which", writes Hearne, "is as much as to say: 'Come, eat me now'; and if it be taken in time, before the blood and other contents are too much done, it is certainly a most delicious morsel, even without pepper, salt, or any other seasoning."

It was a type of haggis, referred to by the Native Americans as "biati." It was made with reindeer blood, a good amount of finely shredded fat, some of the tenderest meat, along with the heart and lungs, which were cut, or more often ripped, into small strips. All of this was placed inside the stomach and roasted by being hung in front of the fire with a string. Care had to be taken not to expose it to too much heat initially, as the bag could burn, causing the contents to spill out. When it was cooked properly, it released steam, "which," as Hearne wrote, "means: 'Come, eat me now'; and if eaten at the right time, before the blood and other contents are overcooked, it is definitely a delicious treat, even without pepper, salt, or any other seasoning."

It was now almost impossible to sleep at night for the mosquitoes, which swarmed in myriads as soon as the warmth of the sun melted the ice and snow. When Hearne actually reached the banks of the Coppermine River he was a little disappointed at its appearance, as it seemed to be only one hundred and eighty yards wide, shallow, and full of shoals. The Chipewayan Amerindians with him now sent out their spies to try and locate the Eskimo. Presently they found that there were five tents of them on the west side of the river.

It was nearly impossible to sleep at night because of the mosquitoes, which swarmed in huge numbers as soon as the warmth from the sun melted the ice and snow. When Hearne finally reached the banks of the Coppermine River, he was a bit disappointed by its appearance; it looked only about one hundred eighty yards wide, shallow, and full of sandbars. The Chipewayan Amerindians accompanying him sent out scouts to locate the Eskimos. Soon, they discovered that there were five of their tents on the west side of the river.

"When the Indians received this intelligence no further attendance or attention was paid to my survey, but their whole thoughts were immediately engaged in planning the best method of attack, and how they might steal on the poor Eskimo the ensuing night and kill them all when asleep. To accomplish this bloody design more effectually the Indians thought it necessary to cross the river as soon as possible; and, by the account of the spies, it appeared that no part was more convenient for the purpose than that where we had met them, it being there very smooth, and at a considerable distance from any fall. Accordingly, after the Indians had put all their guns, spears, shields, &c, in good order, we crossed the river....

"When the Indigenous people got this news, they completely lost interest in my survey and instead focused all their energy on figuring out the best way to attack. They planned to sneak up on the poor Eskimo that night and kill them while they slept. To carry out this brutal plan more effectively, the Indians decided they needed to cross the river as soon as possible; the spies reported that there was no better place to do this than where we had met them, as the river was smooth there and far from any rapids. So, after the Indians got their guns, spears, shields, etc., ready, we crossed the river..."

"When we arrived on the west side of the river, each painted the front of his shield; some with the figure of the sun, others with that of the moon, several with different kinds of birds and beasts of prey, and many with the images of imaginary beings, which, according to their silly notions, are the inhabitants of the different elements, Earth, Sea, Air, &c. On enquiring the reason of their doing so, I learned that each man painted his shield with the image of that being on which he relied most for success in the intended engagement. Some were content with a single representation; while others, doubtful, as I suppose, of the quality and power of any single being, had their shields covered to the very margin with a group of hieroglyphics quite unintelligible to everyone except the painter. Indeed, from the hurry in which this business was necessarily done, the want of every colour but red and black, and the deficiency of skill in the artist, most of those paintings had more the appearance of a number of accidental blotches, than 'of anything that is on the earth, or in the water under the earth'....

"When we got to the west side of the river, everyone painted the front of their shield; some depicted the sun, others the moon, several chose different types of birds and predatory animals, and many illustrated imaginary creatures that, according to their silly beliefs, inhabit various elements like Earth, Sea, Air, etc. When I asked why they did this, I found out that each person painted their shield with the image of the being they relied on most for success in the upcoming battle. Some were satisfied with just one image, while others, probably unsure of the abilities of any single being, had their shields covered right to the edge with a collection of symbols that only the painter could understand. In fact, due to the rush in which this task had to be completed, the lack of colors except for red and black, and the artist's lack of skill, most of those paintings looked more like random splotches than anything that exists on land or in the water below the earth..."

"After this piece of superstition was completed, we began to advance towards the Eskimo tents; but were very careful to avoid crossing any hills, or talking loud, for fear of being seen or overheard by the inhabitants."

"Once we finished this superstitious ritual, we started moving toward the Eskimo tents; but we were very careful not to cross any hills or speak loudly, afraid of being noticed or overheard by the locals."

When the attacking party was within two hundred yards of the Eskimo tents, they lay in ambush for some time, watching the motions of their intended victims; and here the Indians wanted Hearne (for whom they had a sincere affection) to stay till the fight was over; but to this he would not consent, lest, when the Eskimo came to be surprised, they should try every way to escape, and, finding him alone, kill him in their desperation.

When the attacking group was about two hundred yards from the Eskimo tents, they hid and waited for a while, observing the movements of their intended targets. The Indians wanted Hearne, whom they genuinely cared for, to stay until the fight was finished; however, he refused to do so because he worried that when the Eskimo were caught off guard, they might look for any way to escape and, finding him alone, could kill him out of desperation.

While they lay in ambush the Northern Indians performed the last ceremonies which were thought necessary before the engagement. These chiefly consisted in painting their faces: some all black, some all red, and others with a mixture of the two; and to prevent their hair from blowing into their eyes, it was either tied before or behind, and on both sides, or else cut short all round. The next thing they considered was to make themselves as light as possible for running, which they did by pulling off their stockings, and either cutting off the sleeves of their jackets, or rolling them up close to their armpits; and though the mosquitoes at that time "were so numerous as to surpass all credibility", yet some of the Indians actually pulled off their jackets and entered the lists nearly or quite naked. Hearne, fearing he might have occasion to run with the rest, thought it also advisable to pull off his stockings and cap, and to tie his hair as close up as possible.

While they waited in ambush, the Northern Indians carried out the final rituals they believed were necessary before the fight. This mainly involved painting their faces: some went completely black, others entirely red, and some mixed the two colors. To keep their hair out of their eyes, they either tied it back or cut it short all around. Next, they aimed to reduce their weight for running, so they removed their stockings and either cut off the sleeves of their jackets or rolled them up to their armpits. Despite the mosquitoes being "so numerous that it was hard to believe," some of the Indians actually took off their jackets and prepared for battle nearly or entirely naked. Hearne, concerned he might need to run with them, decided it was wise to remove his stockings and cap and tie his hair back as tightly as possible.

By the time the Indians had made themselves thus "completely frightful", it was nearly one in the morning. Then, finding all the Eskimo quiet in their tents, they rushed forth from their ambuscade, and fell on the poor, unsuspecting creatures, unperceived till they were close to the very eaves of the tents. A horrible massacre forthwith took place, while Hearne stood neutral in the rear.

By the time the Native Americans had made themselves "completely terrifying," it was almost one in the morning. Finding all the Eskimos quiet in their tents, they rushed out from their hiding place and attacked the poor, unsuspecting people, who didn’t notice them until they were right by the tents. A horrific massacre happened immediately, while Hearne stood back, doing nothing.

"The scene was shocking beyond description. The poor unhappy victims were surprised in the midst of their sleep, and had neither time nor power to make any resistance; men, women, and children, in all upward of twenty, ran out of their tents stark naked, and endeavoured to make their escape; but the Indians having possession of all the landside, to no place could they fly for shelter. One alternative only remained, that of jumping into the river; but, as none of them attempted it, they all fell a sacrifice to Indian barbarity!

The scene was beyond shocking. The unfortunate victims were caught off guard in their sleep and didn’t have time or ability to defend themselves; men, women, and children, all over twenty, ran out of their tents completely naked, trying to escape. However, since the Indians controlled all the land around them, there was nowhere for them to run for safety. The only option left was to jump into the river, but since none of them tried it, they all became victims of Indian brutality!

"The shrieks and groans of the poor expiring wretches were truly dreadful; and my horror was much increased at seeing a young girl, seemingly about eighteen years of age, killed so near me, that when the first spear was stuck into her side she fell down at my feet, and twisted round my legs, so that it was with difficulty that I could disengage myself from her dying grasp. As two Indian men pursued this unfortunate victim, I solicited very hard for her life; but the murderers made no reply till they had stuck both their spears through her body, and transfixed her to the ground. They then looked me sternly in the face, and began to ridicule me by asking if I wanted an Eskimo wife; and paid not the smallest regard to the shrieks and agony of the poor wretch, who was twining round their spears like an eel!"

"The screams and cries of the poor dying people were truly awful; and my horror increased when I saw a young girl, probably around eighteen years old, get killed so close to me that when the first spear was plunged into her side, she fell down at my feet and wrapped her legs around mine, making it difficult for me to free myself from her dying grip. As two Native men chased this unfortunate girl, I pleaded hard for her life; but the killers didn’t respond until they had driven both their spears through her body, pinning her to the ground. They then looked me straight in the face and started mocking me by asking if I wanted an Eskimo wife, showing no concern at all for the screams and suffering of the poor girl, who was writhing around their spears like an eel!"

On his requesting that they would at least put the woman out of her misery, one of the Indians hastily drew his spear from the place where it was first lodged, and pierced it through her breast near the heart. The love of life, however, even in this most miserable state, was so predominant, that "though this might justly be called the most merciful act that could be done for the poor creature, it seemed to be unwelcome, for, though much exhausted by pain and loss of blood, she made several efforts to ward off the friendly blow."... "My own situation and the terror of my mind at beholding this butchery, cannot easily be conceived, much less described; though I summed up all the fortitude I was master of on the occasion, it was with difficulty that I could refrain from tears; and I am confident that my features must have feelingly expressed how sincerely I was affected at the barbarous scene I then witnessed; even at this hour I cannot reflect on the transactions of that horrid day without shedding tears."

On his request that they at least end the woman's suffering, one of the Indians quickly pulled out his spear from where it was lodged and thrust it through her chest near the heart. However, the instinct to live, even in such a terrible state, was so strong that "while this might rightfully be seen as the most merciful act for the poor woman, it seemed unwelcome, for despite being greatly weakened by pain and blood loss, she made several attempts to fend off the helpful strike."... "My own situation and the fear I felt witnessing this slaughter are difficult to imagine, let alone describe; even though I gathered all the strength I had at the time, it was hard to hold back my tears. I'm sure my face showed just how deeply affected I was by the brutal scene I was witnessing; even now, I can’t think about the events of that dreadful day without crying."

There were other Eskimo on the opposite shore of the river. Though they took up their arms to defend themselves, they did not attempt to abandon their tents, for they were utterly unacquainted with the nature of firearms; so much so that when the bullets struck the ground, they ran in crowds to see what was sent them, and seemed anxious to examine all the pieces of lead which they found flattened against the rocks. At length one of the Eskimo men was shot in the calf of his leg, which put them in great confusion. They all immediately embarked in their little canoes, and paddled to a shoal in the middle of the river, which being somewhat more than a gunshot from any part of the shore, put them out of the reach of our barbarians.

There were other Eskimo on the opposite side of the river. Although they picked up their weapons to defend themselves, they didn’t try to leave their tents because they had no idea how firearms worked. When the bullets hit the ground, they rushed over in groups to see what had landed near them and seemed eager to check out all the pieces of lead they found flattened against the rocks. Eventually, one of the Eskimo men was shot in the calf, which caused a lot of panic. They all quickly got into their small canoes and paddled to a sandbar in the middle of the river, which was a bit more than a gunshot away from any part of the shore, putting them out of reach of our attackers.

"When the savages discovered that the surviving Eskimo had gained the shore above-mentioned, the Northern Indians began to plunder the tents of the deceased of all the copper utensils they could find; such as hatchets, bayonets, knives, &c, after which they assembled on the top of an adjacent hill, and, standing all in a cluster, so as to form a solid circle, with their spears erect in the air, gave many shouts of victory, constantly clashing their spears against each other, and frequently calling out tima! tima![6] by way of derision to the poor surviving Eskimo, who were standing on the shoal almost knee deep in water."

"When the savages found out that the surviving Eskimo had reached the shore mentioned earlier, the Northern Indians started to loot the tents of the deceased for any copper utensils they could find, like hatchets, bayonets, knives, etc. Afterward, they gathered on top of a nearby hill and stood close together to form a solid circle, with their spears raised in the air. They shouted many victory cries, constantly clashing their spears against each other, and frequently yelled tima! tima![6] in mockery of the poor surviving Eskimo, who were standing on the shore almost knee-deep in water."

"It ought to have been mentioned in its proper place," writes Hearne, after describing further atrocities, "that in making our retreat up the river, after killing the Eskimo on the west side, we saw an old woman sitting by the side of the water killing salmon, which lay at the foot of the fall as thick as a shoal of herrings. Whether from the noise of the fall, or a natural defect in the old woman's hearing, it is hard to determine, but certain it is, she had no knowledge of the tragical scene which had been so lately transacted at the tents, though she was not more than two hundred yards from the place. When we first perceived her she seemed perfectly at ease, and was entirely surrounded with the produce of her labour. From her manner of behaviour, and the appearance of her eyes, which were as red as blood, it is more than probable that her sight was not very good; for she scarcely discerned that the Indians were enemies, till they were within twice the length of their spears of her. It was in vain that she attempted to fly, for the wretches of my crew transfixed her to the ground in a few seconds, and butchered her in the most savage manner. There was scarcely a man among them who had not a thrust at her with his spear; and many in doing this aimed at torture rather than immediate death, as they not only poked out her eyes, but stabbed her in many parts very remote from those which are vital.

"It should have been mentioned earlier," writes Hearne, after detailing more atrocities, "that while we were retreating up the river, after killing the Eskimo on the west side, we saw an old woman sitting by the water, catching salmon, which were laying at the foot of the falls as thick as a school of herring. Whether it was because of the noise from the falls or a natural issue with the old woman’s hearing, it’s hard to say, but one thing is certain: she was completely unaware of the tragic scene that had just unfolded at the tents, even though she was only about two hundred yards away. When we first noticed her, she appeared completely relaxed and was surrounded by the fruits of her labor. Based on her behavior and the look in her eyes, which were as red as blood, it’s likely her vision wasn’t very good; she barely recognized the Indians were enemies until they were within twice the length of their spears from her. It was futile for her to try to escape, as the monsters in my crew pinned her to the ground in seconds and butchered her in the most brutal way. Almost every man among them took a stab at her with his spear, and many seemed to aim for torture rather than immediate death, as they not only gouged out her eyes but stabbed her in several places far from anything vital."

"It may appear strange that a person supposed to be almost blind should be employed in the business of fishing, and particularly with any degree of success; but when the multitude of the fish is taken into the account, the wonder will cease. Indeed they were so numerous at the foot of the fall, that when a light pole, armed with a few spikes, which was the instrument the old woman used, was put under water, and hauled up with a jerk, it was scarcely possible to miss them. Some of my Indians tried the method, for curiosity, with the old woman's staff, and seldom got less than two at a jerk, sometimes three or four. Those fish, though very fine, and beautifully red, are but small, seldom weighing more (as near as I could judge) than six or seven pounds, and in general much less. Their numbers at this place were almost incredible, perhaps equal to anything that is related of the salmon in Kamschatka, or any other part of the world."

"It might seem odd that someone who is nearly blind would be involved in fishing, especially with any level of success; however, considering the sheer number of fish, the surprise fades away. In fact, they were so plentiful at the base of the waterfall that when a light pole, fitted with a few spikes— which is the tool the old woman used—was submerged and then yanked up with a quick pull, it was nearly impossible to not catch them. Some of my Native American friends tried this technique out of curiosity with the old woman’s pole and often pulled up at least two fish at a time, and sometimes three or four. Although those fish are quite stunning and beautifully red, they are small, usually weighing no more (from what I could tell) than six or seven pounds, and often much less. The quantity of fish in this location was almost unbelievable, perhaps comparable to the accounts of salmon in Kamchatka or any other place in the world."

Hearne seems to have been so intent on geographical discovery that he did not allow his feelings to influence him very long against the society of his Amerindian companions, who apparently sat down and ate a dish of salmon with him an hour or so after they had killed this last old woman! The Indians now told him that they were ready again to assist him in making an end of his survey, and apparently on foot, for the Coppermine River was not navigable here, even for a boat.

Hearne was so focused on discovering new territories that he didn't let his feelings for long affect his time spent with his Indigenous companions, who, it seems, sat down and shared a salmon meal with him about an hour after they had killed the last old woman! The Indians then informed him that they were prepared to help him finish his survey, and it appeared they were going to do it on foot, since the Coppermine River wasn't navigable here, even by boat.

Thus, first of all white men coming overland, he reached the sea coast of the Arctic Ocean. The tide was then out, and a good deal of the sea surface was covered with ice, on which he observed many seals lying about. Along the sea coast and river banks were many birds; gulls, divers or loons, golden plovers, green plovers, curlews, geese, and swans. The country a little way inland was obviously inhabited by numbers of musk oxen, reindeer, bears, wolves, gluttons, foxes, polar hares, snowy owls, ravens, ptarmigans, gopher ground-squirrels, stoats (ermines), and mice. In this region also he saw a bird which the Copper Indians called the Alarm Bird. He tells us that in size and colour it resembles a "Cobadekoock"; but as none of us know what that is, we can only go on to imagine that the Alarm Bird was a kind of owl, as Hearne says it was "of the owl genus". When it perceived people or beasts it directed its way towards them immediately, and, after hovering over them for some time, flew over them in circles or went away with them in the same direction as they walked. All this time the bird made a loud screaming noise like the cry of a child. These owls were sometimes accustomed to follow the Indians for a whole day, and the Copper Indians believed that they would in some way conduct them to herds of deer and musk oxen, which without the birds' assistance might never be found. They also warned Indians of the arrival of strangers. The Eskimo, according to Hearne, paid no heed to these birds, and it was thus that they allowed themselves to be surprised and massacred, for if they had looked out from the direction in which the Chipewayans were lying in ambush, they would have seen a large flock of these owls continually flying about and making sufficient noise to awaken any man out of the soundest sleep.

So, first of all, as white men traveled overland, they reached the coast of the Arctic Ocean. The tide was out, and a lot of the sea surface was covered with ice, where they noticed many seals lounging. Along the coastline and riverbanks, there were numerous birds: gulls, loons, golden plovers, green plovers, curlews, geese, and swans. A little way inland, the area was clearly home to many musk oxen, reindeer, bears, wolves, wolverines, foxes, polar hares, snowy owls, ravens, ptarmigans, gopher ground squirrels, stoats, and mice. In this region, they also spotted a bird that the Copper Indians called the Alarm Bird. It was described as being similar in size and color to a "Cobadekoock"; however, since none of us know what that is, we can only assume that the Alarm Bird was a kind of owl, as Hearne mentioned it was "of the owl genus." When it noticed people or animals, it would fly directly towards them and, after hovering for a while, would circle above them or follow them in the same direction they were going. The entire time, the bird emitted a loud screeching sound like a child's cry. These owls sometimes followed the Indians for an entire day, and the Copper Indians believed they would somehow guide them to herds of deer and musk oxen that might otherwise go unnoticed. They also alerted the Indians to the arrival of strangers. According to Hearne, the Eskimo ignored these birds, which led them to be caught off guard and slaughtered, as if they had looked in the direction where the Chipewayans were lying in ambush, they would have seen a large group of these owls constantly flying around and making enough noise to wake even the heaviest sleeper.

The country on either side of the estuary of the Coppermine River was not without vegetation. There were stunted pines and tufts of dwarf willows, and the ground was covered with a lichen or herb, which the English of the Hudson's Bay Company knew by the name of Wishakapaka,[7] and which they dried and used instead of tea. There were also cranberry and heathberry bushes, but without fruit. The scrub grew gradually thinner and smaller as one approached the sea, and at the mouth of the river there was nothing but barren hills and marsh.

The land on either side of the Coppermine River estuary had some vegetation. There were stunted pines and clumps of dwarf willows, and the ground was covered with a lichen or herb that the English of the Hudson's Bay Company called Wishakapaka,[7] which they dried and used as a substitute for tea. There were also cranberry and heathberry bushes, but they had no fruit. The scrub gradually became thinner and smaller as you got closer to the sea, and at the river's mouth, it was just barren hills and marsh.

The unfortunate Eskimo of this region, judging by the examples seen by Hearne, were of low stature, with broad thickset bodies. Their complexion was a dirty copper colour, but some of the women were almost fair and ruddy. Their dress, their arms and fishing tackle were precisely similar to those of the Greenland Eskimo. Their tents were made of deerskins, and were pitched in a circular form. But these were only their summer habitations, those for the winter being partly underground, with a roof framework of poles, over which skins were stretched; and of course Nature did the rest, covering the roof with several feet of snow. Owing to being almost entirely surrounded by snow, these winter houses were very warm. Their household furniture consisted of stone kettles and wooden troughs of various sizes, also dishes, scoops, and spoons made of musk-ox horns. The stone kettles (which some people think they borrowed from the Norse discoverers of America in the eleventh century) were as large as to be capable of containing five or six gallons. They were, of course, carved out of solid blocks of stone, every one of them being ornamented with neat moulding round the rims, and some of the large ones with fluted work at each corner. In shape they were oblong, wider at the top than the bottom, and strong handles of solid stone were left at each end to lift them up.

The unfortunate Eskimos in this region, based on what Hearne observed, were of short stature with broad, sturdy bodies. Their skin tone was a dull copper color, though some of the women were almost fair and rosy. Their clothing, fishing gear, and tools were just like those of the Greenland Eskimos. Their tents were made from deerskin and set up in a circular shape. However, those were only their summer homes; their winter dwellings were partly underground, with a framework of poles for the roof, covered by skins, and naturally, nature took care of the rest, piling several feet of snow on top. Being almost fully surrounded by snow, these winter homes were quite warm. Their household items included stone kettles and wooden troughs of various sizes, plus dishes, scoops, and spoons made from musk-ox horns. The stone kettles (which some believe they borrowed from the Norse explorers of America in the eleventh century) could hold about five or six gallons. Each kettle was carved from solid stone blocks, with neat detailing around the rims, and some of the larger ones had fluted designs at each corner. They were oblong in shape, wider at the top than at the bottom, and had sturdy stone handles on either end for lifting.

The Eskimo hatchets were made of a thick lump of copper about five or six inches long, and one and a half to two inches broad. They were bevelled away at one end like a chisel. This piece of copper was lashed into the end of a piece of wood about twelve or fourteen inches long. The men's daggers and the women's knives were also made of copper. The former were in shape like the ace of spades, and the handle was made of reindeer antler.

The Eskimo hatchets were made from a thick chunk of copper about five to six inches long and one and a half to two inches wide. One end was tapered like a chisel. This piece of copper was fastened to the end of a wooden handle roughly twelve to fourteen inches long. The men's daggers and women's knives were also made of copper. The daggers were shaped like the ace of spades, and the handles were crafted from reindeer antlers.

With the Eskimo was a fine breed of dogs, with erect ears, sharp noses, bushy tails. They were all tethered to stones to prevent them from eating the flesh that was spread all over the rocks to dry. Apparently, these beautiful dogs were left behind still tethered by the wicked Amerindians, after the massacre of their owners. Hearne, however, noticed with these Coppermine River Eskimo that the men were entirely bald, having all their head hair pulled out by the roots. The women wore their hair at the usual length.

With the Eskimo was a fine breed of dogs, with upright ears, sharp noses, and bushy tails. They were all tied to stones to keep them from eating the meat that was laid out on the rocks to dry. Apparently, these beautiful dogs were left behind still tied by the cruel Amerindians after the massacre of their owners. Hearne, however, observed with these Coppermine River Eskimo that the men were completely bald, as all the hair on their heads had been pulled out by the roots. The women wore their hair at the usual length.

Before leaving this region to return southwards, Hearne was led by the Indians to one of the copper mines about thirty miles south-east of the river mouth. It was no more than a jumble of rocks and gravel, which had been rent in many ways, apparently by an earthquake shock. This mine was at the time of Hearne's visit very poor in copper, much of the metal having already been removed.

Before leaving this area to head back south, Hearne was guided by the Indians to one of the copper mines located about thirty miles southeast of the river mouth. It was just a mess of rocks and gravel, which had been shattered in various ways, likely by an earthquake. When Hearne visited, this mine had very little copper left, as much of the metal had already been taken out.

The Copper Indians set a great value on this native metal even at the present day, and prefer it to iron for almost every use except that of a hatchet, a knife, and an awl. "For these three necessary implements", writes Hearne, "copper makes but a very poor substitute."

The Copper Indians still place a high value on this native metal today and prefer it over iron for almost every purpose except for a hatchet, a knife, and an awl. "For these three essential tools," writes Hearne, "copper is a very poor substitute."

On the return journey, in the course of which the Great Slave Lake—which Hearne calls "Lake Athapuscow"—was discovered and crossed on the ice, the party travelled so hard and stayed so seldom to rest that Hearne suffered terribly with his legs and feet. "I had so little power to direct my feet when walking, that I frequently knocked them against the stones with such force, as not only to jar and disorder them, but my legs also; and the nails of my toes were bruised to such a degree, that several of them festered and dropped off. To add to this mishap, the skin was entirely chafed off from the tops of both my feet, and between every toe; so that the sand and gravel, which I could by no means exclude, irritated the raw parts so much, that for a whole day before we arrived at the women's tents, I left the print of my feet in blood almost at every step I took. Several of the Indians began to complain that their feet also were sore; but, on examination, not one of them was the twentieth part in so bad a state as mine. This being the first time I had been in such a situation, or seen anybody foot-foundered, I was much alarmed, and under great apprehensions for the consequences. Though I was but little fatigued in body, yet the excruciating pain I suffered when walking had such an effect on my spirits, that if the Indians had continued to travel two or three days longer at that unmerciful rate, I must unavoidably have been left behind; for my feet were in many places quite honeycombed by the dirt and gravel eating into the raw flesh."

On the way back, during which they discovered and crossed the Great Slave Lake—referred to as "Lake Athapuscow" by Hearne—the group pushed themselves so hard and rested so infrequently that Hearne suffered greatly in his legs and feet. "I had so little control over my feet while walking that I often knocked them against the stones with such force that it not only jarred and disordered them, but also my legs; the nails on my toes were bruised so badly that several festered and fell off. To make matters worse, the skin was completely chafed off the tops of both my feet and between every toe; so much so that the sand and gravel, which I could not keep out, irritated the raw areas so intensely that for an entire day before we reached the women's tents, I left bloody footprints with almost every step I took. Several of the Indians began to complain that their feet were sore as well; but upon checking, none of them were even a fraction as bad off as I was. Since this was the first time I had been in such a situation, or seen anyone suffering like this, I was quite worried and anxious about the outcomes. Although my body wasn’t too fatigued, the excruciating pain when I walked affected my spirits so much that if the Indians had continued traveling at that relentless pace for two or three more days, I surely would have been left behind; because my feet were badly damaged from the dirt and gravel eating into the raw flesh."

"Among the various superstitious customs of those people, it is worth remarking, and ought to have been mentioned in its proper place, that immediately after my companions had killed the Eskimo at the Copper River, they considered themselves in a state of uncleanness, which induced them to practise some very curious unusual ceremonies. In the first place, all who were absolutely concerned in the murder were prohibited from cooking any kind of victuals, either for themselves or others. As luckily there were two in company who had not shed blood, they were employed always as cooks till we joined the women. This circumstance was exceedingly favourable on my side; for had there been no persons of the above description in company, that task, I was told, would have fallen on me; which would have been no less fatiguing and troublesome, than humiliating and vexatious.

"Among the various superstitious customs of those people, it's important to note, and should have been mentioned earlier, that right after my companions killed the Eskimo at the Copper River, they believed they were unclean. This belief led them to perform some quite unusual ceremonies. First, anyone directly involved in the murder was forbidden from cooking any food, either for themselves or for others. Fortunately, there were two people in the group who hadn’t shed blood, so they were always appointed as cooks until we met up with the women. This situation was particularly beneficial for me; if there hadn’t been anyone who fit that description, I was told that cooking duty would have fallen on me, which would have been just as tiring and frustrating as it would have been humiliating."

"When the victuals were cooked, all the murderers took a kind of red earth, or ochre, and painted all the space between the nose and chin, as well as the greater part of their cheeks, almost to the ears, before they would taste a bit, and would not drink out of any other dish, or smoke out of any other pipe, but their own; and none of the others seemed willing to drink or smoke out of theirs."

"When the food was ready, all the murderers took some red earth or ochre and painted the area between their nose and chin, as well as most of their cheeks, almost to the ears, before they would eat a bit. They wouldn't drink from any other dish or use any other pipe but their own; and none of the others seemed willing to drink or smoke from theirs."

He goes on to relate that they practised the custom of painting the mouth and part of the cheeks before each meal, and drinking and smoking out of their own utensils, till the winter began to set in, and during the whole of that time they would never kiss any of their wives or children. They refrained also from eating many parts of the deer and other animals, particularly the head, entrails, and blood; and during their "uncleanness" their food was never cooked in water, but dried in the sun, eaten quite raw, or broiled. When the time arrived that was to put an end to these ceremonies, the men, without a female being present, made a fire at some distance from the tents, into which they threw all their ornaments, pipe stems, and dishes, which were soon consumed to ashes; after which a feast was prepared, consisting of such articles as they had long been prohibited from eating, and when all was over each man was at liberty to eat, drink, and smoke as he pleased, "and also to kiss his wives and children at discretion, which they seemed to do with more raptures than I had ever known them to do it either before or since".

He goes on to say that they had a tradition of painting their mouths and part of their cheeks before each meal and would drink and smoke from their own utensils. This continued until winter started to settle in, and during that entire time, they wouldn’t kiss any of their wives or children. They also avoided eating many parts of deer and other animals, especially the head, entrails, and blood; and during their "uncleanness," their food was never cooked in water but was dried in the sun, eaten completely raw, or broiled. When the time came to end these ceremonies, the men, with no women present, made a fire some distance from the tents and threw all their ornaments, pipe stems, and dishes into it, which were soon reduced to ashes. After that, they prepared a feast with all the foods they had been forbidden to eat, and when it was over, each man was free to eat, drink, and smoke as he wanted, "and also to kiss his wives and children as they wished, which they seemed to do with more enthusiasm than I had ever seen before or since."

On the 11th of January, as some of Hearne's companions were hunting, they saw the track of a strange snowshoe, which they followed, and at a considerable distance came to a little hut, where they discovered a young woman sitting alone. As they found that she understood their language, they brought her with them to the tents. On examination she proved to be one of the Western Dog-rib Indians, who had been taken prisoner by the Athapaska Indians in the summer of 1770. From these, in the following summer, she had escaped, with the intention of returning to her own country, but the distance being so great, and the way being unknown to her, she forgot the track, so she built the hut in which they found her, to protect her from the weather during the winter, and here she had resided from the first setting in of the cold weather. For seven months she had seen no human face. During all this time she had supported herself in comparative comfort by snaring grouse, rabbits, and squirrels; she had also killed two or three beaver, and some porcupines. That she did not seem to have been in want was evident, as she had a small stock of provisions by her when she was discovered, and was in good health and condition; and Hearne thought her "one of the finest women", of the real Indian type, that he had seen in any part of North America.

On January 11th, while some of Hearne's companions were out hunting, they noticed the tracks of an unusual snowshoe. They followed the tracks for quite a distance until they found a small hut where a young woman was sitting alone. When they realized she understood their language, they took her back to their tents. Upon further inspection, they discovered that she was one of the Western Dog-rib Indians who had been captured by the Athapaska Indians in the summer of 1770. The following summer, she had escaped with plans to return to her homeland, but since the journey was so long and unfamiliar to her, she lost the trail. To protect herself from the winter weather, she built the hut where they found her and had been living there since the cold weather began. For seven months, she hadn't seen another person. During this time, she managed to sustain herself fairly comfortably by trapping grouse, rabbits, and squirrels; she also hunted a couple of beavers and some porcupines. It was clear she wasn’t lacking for food, as she had a small supply of provisions when discovered and was in good health and shape. Hearne noted that she was "one of the finest women," embodying the true Indian type, that he had seen anywhere in North America.

"The methods practised by this poor creature to procure a livelihood were truly admirable, and are great proofs that necessity is the real mother of invention. When the few deer sinews that she had an opportunity of taking with her were all expended in making snares and sewing her clothing, she had nothing to supply their place but the sinews of the rabbits' [he means hares'] legs and feet; these she twisted together for that purpose with great dexterity and success. The rabbits, &c, which she caught in those snares, not only furnished her with a comfortable subsistence, but of the skins she made a suit of neat and warm clothing for the winter. It is scarcely possible to conceive that a person in her forlorn situation could be so composed as to be capable of contriving or executing anything that was not absolutely necessary to her existence; but there were sufficient proofs that she had extended her care much farther, as all her clothing, beside being calculated for real service, showed great taste and exhibited no little variety of ornament. The materials, though rude, were very curiously wrought and so judiciously placed as to make the whole of her garb have a very pleasing, though rather romantic, appearance.

"The methods used by this poor person to make a living were truly impressive and show that necessity is the real mother of invention. When the few deer sinews she managed to take with her were all used up making snares and sewing her clothes, she had to rely on the sinews from the legs and feet of rabbits (he meant hares). She skillfully twisted them together to fill in the gaps. The rabbits she caught in those snares not only provided her with a decent living but also allowed her to make a neat and warm suit of clothing for the winter from their skins. It’s hard to believe that someone in her desperate situation could remain so composed as to invent or create anything beyond what was absolutely necessary for survival; however, there was clear evidence that she had gone further, as all her clothing, while practical, also showed great taste and featured a good variety of decorations. The materials, though basic, were intricately crafted and arranged in such a way that her entire outfit had a very pleasing, albeit somewhat romantic, look."

"Her leisure hours from hunting had been employed in twisting the inner rind or bark of willows into small lines, like net twine, of which she had some hundred fathoms by her; with this she intended to make a fishing net as soon as the spring advanced. It is of the inner bark of willows, twisted in this manner, that the Dog-rib Indians make their fishing nets, and they are much preferable to those made by the Northern Indians.

"During her free time from hunting, she had been busy twisting the inner bark of willows into small strands, similar to fishing line, of which she had about a hundred fathoms. She planned to use this to make a fishing net as soon as spring arrived. The Dog-rib Indians use the inner bark of willows twisted like this to create their fishing nets, which are much better than those made by the Northern Indians."

"Five or six inches of an iron hoop, made into a knife, and the shank of an arrowhead of iron, which served her as an awl, were all the metals this poor woman had with her when she eloped, and with these implements she had made herself complete snowshoes, and several other useful articles.

"Five or six inches of an iron hoop turned into a knife, along with the shank of an iron arrowhead, which she used as an awl, were all the metal tools this poor woman had when she ran away. With these tools, she had crafted complete snowshoes and several other handy items."

"Her method of making a fire was equally singular and curious, having no other materials for that purpose than two hard sulphurous stones. These, by long friction and hard knocking, produced a few sparks, which at length communicated to some touchwood (a species of fungus which grew on decayed poplars); but as this method was attended with great trouble, and not always with success, she did not suffer her fire to go out all the winter...."

"Her way of starting a fire was unique and interesting, relying only on two hard, sulphurous stones. By rubbing them together and hitting them against each other for a long time, she created a few sparks that eventually ignited some touchwood (a type of fungus that grows on rotting poplars). However, since this method was very troublesome and didn't always work, she made sure her fire never went out all winter..."

Hearne regained Prince of Wales's Fort on Hudson Bay in June, 1772. Subsequently he was dispatched, in the year 1774, to found the first great inland trading station and fort of the Hudson's Bay Company which was established at any considerable distance westward of Hudson Bay—the first step, in fact, which led to this chartered company becoming in time the ruler and colonizing agent of Alberta and British Columbia. Hearne chose for his station of "Cumberland House" a site at the entrance to Pine Island Lake on the lower Saskatchewan River.

Hearne took back Prince of Wales's Fort on Hudson Bay in June 1772. In 1774, he was sent to establish the first major inland trading post and fort for the Hudson's Bay Company, which was located a significant distance west of Hudson Bay—this was the first move that eventually made this chartered company the governing and colonizing authority in Alberta and British Columbia. Hearne selected a location for his station, "Cumberland House," at the entrance to Pine Island Lake on the lower Saskatchewan River.

In 1775 he became Governor of his old starting-point on Hudson Bay—Fort Prince of Wales. During the American war with France, the French admiral, La Pérouse, made a daring excursion into Hudson Bay (1782), and summoned Hearne to surrender his fort. This he felt obliged to do, not deeming his small garrison strong enough to resist the French force.

In 1775, he became the Governor of his original base at Hudson Bay—Fort Prince of Wales. During the American war with France, the French admiral, La Pérouse, made a bold move into Hudson Bay in 1782 and demanded that Hearne surrender his fort. He felt he had no choice but to comply, as he didn’t believe his small garrison was strong enough to fight off the French forces.

Samuel Hearne returned to England in 1787, and died (probably in London) in 1792.

Samuel Hearne returned to England in 1787 and died (likely in London) in 1792.


1 Hearne was born in London in 1745. He entered the Royal Navy as a midshipman at the tender age of eleven, and remained in the Navy till about 1765, when he went out to Hudson Bay with the rank of quartermaster. He must have acquired a considerable education, even in botany and zoology. He not only wrote well, and was a good surveyor for rough map making, but he had a considerable talent as a draughtsman.

1 Hearne was born in London in 1745. He joined the Royal Navy as a midshipman at just eleven years old and stayed in the Navy until around 1765 when he went to Hudson Bay as a quartermaster. He must have received a solid education, including in botany and zoology. He not only wrote well and was skilled at rough map-making but also had a significant talent for drawing.

2 This word is said to be a corruption or altered form of Wishakagamiū, a liquid or broth (Kri language). The drink made from this shrub or herb (Ledum palustre) is now known as Labrador tea. It is a bitter aromatic infusion.

2 This word is thought to be a corrupted or modified version of Wishakagamiū, which means a liquid or broth (in the Kri language). The drink made from this shrub or herb (Ledum palustre) is now called Labrador tea. It is a bitter, aromatic infusion.

3 The Indians of the Athapaskan or Déné group were usually called the Northern Indians by the Hudson Bay people, in comparison to all the other tribes of the more temperate regions farther south, who were known as the Southern Indians (Algonkins, &c.).

3 The Athapaskan or Déné Indians were commonly referred to as the Northern Indians by the Hudson Bay people, in contrast to the other tribes from the milder southern regions, who were known as the Southern Indians (Algonkins, etc.).

4 A fur-bearing animal (Mustela americana), very like the British pine marten.

4 A fur-bearing animal (Mustela americana), similar to the British pine marten.

5 Or "Tantsawhūts". Like the "Dog-rib" Indians, mentioned farther on, they belonged to the "Northern", Tinné, Athabaskan type.

5 Or "Tantsawhūts". Like the "Dog-rib" Indians mentioned later, they belonged to the Northern Tinné Athabaskan group.

6 "Tima in the Eskimo language is a friendly word similar to what cheer?"—Hearne.

6 "Tima in the Eskimo language is a friendly word similar to what's up?"—Hearne.

7 Ledum palustre.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Marsh Labrador Tea.

[__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]






CHAPTER XI

Alexander Mackenzie's Journeys

It has been already mentioned that the conquest of Canada by the British led to a great increase in travel for the development of the fur trade. Previously, under the French, permission was only granted to a few persons to penetrate into the interior to trade with the natives, commerce being regarded as a special privilege or monopoly to be sold or granted by the Crown. But after the British had completely assumed control, nothing was done to bar access to the interior. So long as the Catholic missionaries had been practically placed in charge of the Amerindians, and had served as buffers between them and unscrupulous traders, they—the Amerindians—had been saved from two scourges, smallpox and strong drink.[1] But now, unhappily, all restrictions about trade in alcohol were removed. In their eagerness to obtain ardent spirits and "high" wine, the Indians eagerly welcomed British traders and French Canadians in their midst. The fur trade developed fast. The Hudson's Bay Company had established its trading stations only in the vicinity or on the coasts of that inland sea, far away from the two Canadas, from the Middle West and the vast North West. After a little reluctance and suspicion, most of the northern Amerindian tribes were persuaded to deflect their caravans from the routes leading to Hudson Bay, and to meet the British, the New Englander ("Bostonian"), and the French Canadian traders at various rendezvous on Lake Winnipeg and its tributary lakes and rivers. The principal depot and starting-point for the north-west traders was Grand Portage, on the north-west coast of Lake Superior, whence canoes and goods were transferred by a nine-mile portage to the waters flowing to Rainy Lake, and so onwards to the Winnipeg River and the vast system of the Saskatchewan, the Red River, and the Assiniboine.

It has already been mentioned that the British take over of Canada led to a significant increase in travel for the growth of the fur trade. Before, under the French, only a few people were allowed to go into the interior to trade with the natives, as commerce was seen as a special privilege or monopoly granted by the Crown. But after the British took full control, there were no restrictions on access to the interior. While Catholic missionaries had been mainly in charge of the Indigenous peoples and had acted as buffers between them and dishonest traders, the Indigenous peoples had been protected from two major threats: smallpox and strong alcohol. But now, unfortunately, all restrictions on alcohol trade were lifted. In their desire for spirits and strong wine, the Indigenous peoples welcomed British traders and French Canadians into their communities. The fur trade grew rapidly. The Hudson's Bay Company had set up its trading posts only around the coasts of that inland sea, far from the two Canadas, the Midwest, and the vast Northwest. After some initial hesitation and distrust, most of the northern Indigenous tribes were convinced to redirect their caravans from the routes leading to Hudson Bay and to meet British, New England ("Bostonian"), and French Canadian traders at various meeting points on Lake Winnipeg and its tributary lakes and rivers. The main depot and starting point for the northwest traders was Grand Portage on the northwest shore of Lake Superior, where canoes and goods were carried over a nine-mile portage to the waters flowing to Rainy Lake, and then on to the Winnipeg River and the extensive systems of the Saskatchewan, Red River, and Assiniboine.

Amongst the pioneers in this new development of the fur trade, who became also the great explorers of northernmost America, was Alexander Henry (already described), THOMAS CURRIE, JAMES FINLAY, PETER POND,[2] JOSEPH and BENJAMIN FROBISHER, and SIMON M'TAVISH. These and some of their supporting merchants in Montreal resolved to form a great fur-trading association, the celebrated North-west Trading Company, and did so in 1784.

Among the pioneers of the new fur trade, who also became the great explorers of northernmost America, were Alexander Henry (previously mentioned), Thomas Currie, James Finlay, Peter Pond,[2] Joseph and Benjamin Frobisher, and Simon M'Tavish. These individuals, along with some of their supporting merchants in Montreal, decided to create a large fur-trading organization, the famous North-west Trading Company, and established it in 1784.

Two of the Montreal merchant firms participating in this confederation (Gregory and M'Leod) were inclined to play a somewhat independent part, and called themselves the New North-west Trading Company. They had the foresight to engage as their principal agents in the north-west (Sir) ALEXANDER MACKENZIE and his cousin RODERICK MACKENZIE. Both these young men were Highlanders, probably of Norse origin. Alexander Mackenzie was born at Stornoway, in the Island of Lewis (Hebrides), in 1763. He was only sixteen when he started for Canada to take up a position as clerk in the partnership concern of Gregory & M'Leod at Montreal.

Two of the Montreal merchant firms involved in this confederation (Gregory and M'Leod) wanted to maintain a bit of independence and called themselves the New North-west Trading Company. They wisely chose (Sir) ALEXANDER MACKENZIE and his cousin RODERICK MACKENZIE as their main agents in the northwest. Both young men were Highlanders, likely of Norse descent. Alexander Mackenzie was born in Stornoway, on the Island of Lewis (Hebrides), in 1763. He was just sixteen when he left for Canada to work as a clerk in the partnership of Gregory & M'Leod in Montreal.

It may be said here briefly that this "New North-west Company" went at first by the nickname of "The Little Company" or "The Potties", this last being an Amerindian corruption of the French Les Petits. Later it developed into the "X.Y. Company", or "Sir Alexander Mackenzie & Co.". Although much in rivalry with the original "Nor'-westers", the rivalry never degenerated into the actual warfare, the indefensible deeds of violence and treachery, which later on were perpetrated by the Hudson's Bay Company on the agents of the North-west, and returned with interest by the latter. Often the New North-west agents and the original Nor'-westers would camp or build side by side, and share equably in the fur trade with the natives; their canoemen and French-Canadian voyageurs would sing their boating songs in chorus as they paddled side by side across the lakes and down the rivers, or marched with their heavy loads over the portages and along the trails. Eventually, in 1804, the X.Y. Company and the North-west fused into the North-west Trading Company, which until 1821 fought a hard fight against the encroachments and jealousy of the Hudson's Bay Company.

It can be said briefly that this "New North-west Company" was initially known by the nicknames "The Little Company" or "The Potties," with the latter being an Indigenous twist on the French Les Petits. Later, it evolved into the "X.Y. Company," or "Sir Alexander Mackenzie & Co." Although it was often in competition with the original "Nor'-westers," this rivalry never escalated into outright conflict, unlike the violent and treacherous acts that the Hudson's Bay Company later committed against the North-west's agents, which were avenged in kind by the latter. Frequently, the New North-west agents and the original Nor'-westers would camp or build their settlements next to each other and equally share in the fur trade with the locals; their canoemen and French-Canadian voyageurs would sing their boating songs in harmony as they paddled side by side across the lakes and down the rivers or marched with their heavy loads over the portages and along the trails. Ultimately, in 1804, the X.Y. Company and the North-west merged to form the North-west Trading Company, which, until 1821, fiercely resisted the advances and jealousy of the Hudson's Bay Company.

During the period, however, from 1785 to 1812 the men of the north-west, of Montreal, and Grand Portage (as contrasted with those of Hudson Bay) effected a revolution in Canadian geography. They played the rôle of imperial pioneers with a stubborn heroism, with little thought of personal gain, and in most cases with full foreknowledge and appreciation of what would accrue to the British Empire through their success. It is impossible to relate the adventures of all of them within the space of any one book, or even of several volumes. Moreover, this has been done already, not only in their own published journals and books, but in the admirable works of Elliot Coues, Dr. George Bryce, Dr. S.J. Dawson, Alexander Ross, and others. I must confine myself here to a description of the adventures of Sir Alexander Mackenzie, with a glance at incidents recorded by Simon Fraser and by Alexander Henry the Younger.

During the time from 1785 to 1812, the men from the northwest, Montreal, and Grand Portage (compared to those from Hudson Bay) made significant changes to Canadian geography. They acted as pioneering figures with incredible bravery, mostly without thinking about personal benefits, and often with a clear understanding of the advantages their success would bring to the British Empire. It’s impossible to cover all their adventures in just one book, or even several volumes. This has already been done, both in their own published journals and books, as well as in the excellent works by Elliot Coues, Dr. George Bryce, Dr. S.J. Dawson, Alexander Ross, and others. Here, I will focus on the adventures of Sir Alexander Mackenzie, while also noting events recorded by Simon Fraser and Alexander Henry the Younger.

Mackenzie, having been appointed at the age of twenty-two a partner in the New North-west Company, proceeded to Grand Portage in 1785, and by the year 1788 (after founding Fort Chipewayan on Lake Athabaska) conceived the idea of following the mysterious Slave River to its ultimate outlet into the Arctic or the Pacific Ocean. He left Fort Chipewayan on June 3, 1789, accompanied by four French-Canadian voyageurs, two French-Canadian women (wives of two voyageurs), a young German named John Steinbruck, and an Amerindian guide known as "English Chief". This last was a follower and pupil of the Matonabi who had guided Hearne to the Coppermine River and the eastern end of the Great Slave Lake. The party of eight whites packed themselves and their goods into one birch-bark canoe. English Chief and his two wives, together with an additional Amerindian guide and a hunter, travelled in a second and smaller canoe. The expedition, moreover, was accompanied as far as Slave River by LE ROUX, a celebrated French-Canadian exploring trader who worked for the X.Y. Company. The journey down the Slave River was rendered difficult and dangerous by the rapids. Several times the canoes and their loads had to be lugged past these falls by an overland portage. Mosquitoes tortured the whole party almost past bearance. The leaders of the expedition and their Indian hunter had to be busily engaged (the Indian women also) in hunting and fishing in order to get food for the support of the party, who seemed to have had little reserve provisions with them. Pemmican was made of fish dried in the sun and rubbed to powder. Swans, geese, cranes, and ducks fell to the guns; an occasional beaver was also added to the pot. When they reached the Great Slave Lake they found its islands—notwithstanding their barren appearance—covered with bushes producing a great variety of palatable fruits—cranberries, juniper berries, raspberries, partridge berries, gooseberries, and the "pathogomenan", a fruit like a raspberry.

Mackenzie, appointed as a partner in the New North-west Company at just twenty-two, headed to Grand Portage in 1785. By 1788, after establishing Fort Chipewayan on Lake Athabaska, he developed the idea of exploring the mysterious Slave River to see where it led—either to the Arctic or the Pacific Ocean. On June 3, 1789, he left Fort Chipewayan with four French-Canadian voyageurs, two French-Canadian women (the wives of two voyageurs), a young German named John Steinbruck, and an Amerindian guide known as "English Chief." This guide had previously followed and learned from Matonabi, who had led Hearne to the Coppermine River and the eastern end of Great Slave Lake. The group of eight packed themselves and their supplies into one birch-bark canoe, while English Chief, his two wives, an additional Amerindian guide, and a hunter took a second, smaller canoe. The expedition was also accompanied to the Slave River by LE ROUX, a well-known French-Canadian exploring trader for the X.Y. Company. The journey down the Slave River was challenging and perilous due to rapids. Several times, they had to haul the canoes and their cargo overland to bypass the falls. Mosquitoes tormented the entire party almost beyond endurance. The leaders of the expedition, along with their Indian hunter and the Indian women, had to actively hunt and fish to provide food for the group, which seemed to carry very few extra supplies. They made pemmican from fish that was dried in the sun and ground into powder. They hunted swans, geese, cranes, and ducks; an occasional beaver was also added to their meals. Upon reaching Great Slave Lake, they found its islands—despite looking barren—teeming with bushes that produced a wide range of tasty fruits, including cranberries, juniper berries, raspberries, partridge berries, gooseberries, and "pathogomenan," a fruit similar to a raspberry.

Slave Lake, however, was still, in mid-June, under the spell of winter, its surface obstructed with drifting ice. In attempting to cross the lake the frail birch-bark canoes ran a great risk of being crushed between the ice floes. However, at length, after halting at several islands and leaving Le Roux to go to the trading station he had founded on the shores of Slave Lake, Mackenzie and his two canoes found their way to the river outlet of Slave Lake, that river which was henceforth to be called by his name. Great mountains approached near to the west of their course. They appeared to be sprinkled with white stones, called by the natives "spirit stones"—indeed over a great part of North America the Rocky Mountains were called "the Mountains of Bright Stones"—yet these brilliant patches were nothing more wonderful than unmelted snow.

Slave Lake, however, was still, in mid-June, under the influence of winter, its surface covered with drifting ice. Attempting to cross the lake, the delicate birch-bark canoes faced a significant risk of being crushed between the ice floes. Eventually, after stopping at several islands and leaving Le Roux to go to the trading station he had established on the shores of Slave Lake, Mackenzie and his two canoes made their way to the river outlet of Slave Lake, which was to be named after him. Massive mountains loomed to the west of their path. They seemed to be dotted with white stones, referred to by the natives as "spirit stones"—in fact, across much of North America, the Rocky Mountains were called "the Mountains of Bright Stones"—yet these glowing patches were nothing more astonishing than unmelted snow.

A few days later the party encountered Amerindians of the Slave and Dog-rib tribes, who were so aloof from even "Indian" civilization that they did not know the use of tobacco, and were still in the Stone Age as regards their weapons and implements. These people, though they furnished a guide, foretold disaster and famine to the expedition, and greatly exaggerated the obstacles which would be met with—rapids near the entrance of the tributary from Great Bear Lake—before the salt water was reached.

A few days later, the party met Amerindians from the Slave and Dog-rib tribes, who were so detached from even "Indian" civilization that they didn't know how to use tobacco and were still in the Stone Age when it came to their weapons and tools. Although these people provided a guide, they predicted disaster and famine for the expedition and greatly exaggerated the challenges they would face—like the rapids near the entrance of the tributary from Great Bear Lake—before reaching the saltwater.

The canoes of these Slave and Dog-rib tribes of the Athapaskan (Tinné) group were covered, not with birch bark, but with the bark of the spruce fir.

The canoes of these Slave and Dog-rib tribes of the Athapaskan (Tinné) group were covered, not with birch bark, but with the bark of the spruce fir.

The lodges of the Slave Indians were of very simple structure: a few poles supported by a fork and forming a semicircle at the bottom, with some branches or a piece of bark as a covering. They built two of these huts facing each other, and made a fire between them. The furniture consisted of a few dishes of wood, bark, or horn. The vessels in which they cooked their victuals were in the shape of a gourd, narrow at the top and wide at the bottom, and made of wátápé.

The lodges of the Slave Indians were really simple structures: a few poles held up by a fork, forming a semicircle at the bottom, with some branches or a piece of bark as a roof. They built two of these huts facing each other and made a fire between them. The furniture was just a few dishes made of wood, bark, or horn. The pots they used for cooking their food were shaped like gourds, narrow at the top and wide at the bottom, and made of wátápé.

This was the name given to the divided roots of the spruce fir, which the natives wove into a degree of compactness that rendered it capable of containing a fluid. Wátápé fibre was also used to sew together different parts of the bark canoes. They also made fibre or thread from willow bark. Their cooking vessels made of this wátápé not only contained water, but water which was made to boil by putting a succession of hot stones into it. It would, of course, be impossible to place these vessels of fibre on a fire, and apparently none of the Amerindians of temperate North America knew anything about pottery. Those that were in some degree in touch with the Eskimo used kettles or cauldrons of stone. Elsewhere the vessels for boiling water and cooking were made of bark or fibre, and the water therein was made to boil by the dropping in of red-hot stones. The arrows of these Slave Indians were two and a half feet long, and the barb was made of bone, horn, flint, or copper. Iron had been quite lately introduced, indirectly obtained from the Russians in Alaska. Their spears were pointed with barbed bone, and their daggers were made of horn or bone. Their great club, the pógamagán, was made of a reindeer's antler. Axes were manufactured out of a piece of brown or grey stone, six to eight inches long and two inches thick. They kindled fire by striking together a piece of iron pyrites and touchwood, and never travelled without a small bag containing such materials.

This was the name given to the split roots of the spruce fir, which the natives wove tightly enough to hold liquids. Wátápé fiber was also used to stitch together different parts of the bark canoes. They made fiber or thread from willow bark too. Their cooking containers made of this wátápé could hold water, which was heated to a boil by adding a series of hot stones. Naturally, it was impossible to set these fiber vessels over a fire, and it seems that none of the Native Americans in temperate North America were familiar with pottery. Those who had some contact with the Eskimo used stone kettles or cauldrons. In other places, the containers for boiling water and cooking were made from bark or fiber, and they boiled the water by dropping in red-hot stones. The arrows of these Slave Indians were two and a half feet long, with barbs made of bone, horn, flint, or copper. Iron had recently been introduced, obtained indirectly from the Russians in Alaska. Their spears had barbed bone points, and their daggers were made of horn or bone. Their large club, the pógamagán, was crafted from a reindeer's antler. They made axes from a piece of brown or gray stone, measuring six to eight inches long and two inches thick. They lit fires by striking iron pyrites and touchwood together and never traveled without a small bag of those materials.

The Amerindians along the lower Mackenzie had heard vague and terrible legends about the Russians, far, far away on the coast of Alaska; they were represented as beings of gigantic stature, and adorned with wings; which, however, they never employed in flying (possibly the sails of their ships). They fed on large birds, and killed them with the greatest ease. They also possessed the extraordinary power of killing with their eyes (no doubt putting up a gun to aim), and they travelled in canoes of very large dimensions.

The Indigenous people along the lower Mackenzie had heard strange and frightening stories about the Russians, who lived far away on the coast of Alaska. They were described as giant beings with wings, which they never used to fly (probably referring to the sails of their ships). They hunted large birds effortlessly and had the unbelievable ability to kill just by looking at them (likely aiming a gun). They also traveled in very large canoes.

Big-horned Sheep of Rocky Mountains
BIG-HORNED SHEEP OF ROCKY MOUNTAINS

"I engaged one of these Indians," writes Mackenzie, "by a bribe of some beads, to describe the surrounding country upon the sand. This singular map he immediately undertook to delineate, and accordingly traced out a very long point of land between the rivers ... which he represented as running into the great lake, at the extremity of which he had been told by Indians of other nations there was a white man's fort." The same people described plainly the Yukon River westward of the mountains, and told Mackenzie it was a far greater stream than the one he was exploring. This was the first "hint" of the existence of the great Alaskan river which was ever recorded. They also spoke to Mackenzie of "small white buffaloes" (?the mountain goat), which they found in the mountains west of the Mackenzie.

"I hired one of these Indians," Mackenzie writes, "with some beads as a bribe to describe the surrounding area on the sand. He quickly agreed to create this unique map and began to draw a long stretch of land between the rivers ... which he showed as extending into the large lake, at the end of which he had heard from other tribes there was a white man's fort." The same people clearly described the Yukon River west of the mountains and told Mackenzie it was a much larger river than the one he was exploring. This was the first "hint" of the great Alaskan river that was ever recorded. They also mentioned to Mackenzie "small white buffaloes" (possibly referring to the mountain goat) that they found in the mountains west of the Mackenzie.

Whenever and wherever Mackenzie's party met these northernmost tribes of Athapascan Indians they were always ready to dance in between short spells of talking. This dancing and jumping was their only amusement, and in it old and young, male and female, went to such exertions that their strength was exhausted. As they jumped up and down they imitated the various noises produced by the reindeer, the bear, and the wolf.

Whenever and wherever Mackenzie's group came across these northernmost tribes of Athapascan Indians, they were always eager to dance in between brief conversations. This dancing and jumping were their only forms of entertainment, and everyone, old and young, male and female, put in so much effort that they became exhausted. As they hopped up and down, they mimicked the sounds made by reindeer, bears, and wolves.

In descending the Mackenzie River, and again on the return journey upstream, Mackenzie notices the abundance of berries on the banks of the river, especially the kind which was called "pears" by the French Canadians. These were of a purple hue, rather bigger than a pea, and of a luscious taste. There were also gooseberries and a few strawberries. Quantities of berries were collected and dried, but while on the lower Mackenzie the expedition fed mainly on fat geese. On the beach of the great river they found an abundance of a sweet fragrant root which Mackenzie calls "liquorice".

While traveling down the Mackenzie River and then back upstream, Mackenzie notices the plenty of berries along the riverbanks, especially the ones the French Canadians called "pears." These were purple, larger than peas, and very tasty. There were also gooseberries and a few strawberries. They collected and dried lots of berries, but while downriver, the expedition mostly ate fatty geese. On the riverside, they discovered plenty of a sweet-smelling root that Mackenzie refers to as "liquorice."

Mackenzie seemed to think that along the lower Mackenzie River, near the sea, there were not only reindeer, bears, wolverines, martens, foxes, and hares, but a species of white buffalo or white musk ox, which may have been the mountain goat above referred to. He noted, in the cliffs or banks of the lower Mackenzie, pieces of "petroleum" which bore a resemblance to yellow wax but was more friable. His Indian guide informed him that rocks of a similar kind were scattered about the country at the back of the Slave Lake, near where the Chipewayans collected copper. If so, there may be a great oilfield yet to be discovered in Arctic Canada.

Mackenzie seemed to believe that along the lower Mackenzie River, close to the sea, there were not just reindeer, bears, wolverines, martens, foxes, and hares, but also a type of white buffalo or white musk ox, which might have been the mountain goat mentioned earlier. He pointed out pieces of "petroleum" in the cliffs or banks of the lower Mackenzie that looked like yellow wax but were more crumbly. His Indian guide told him that similar rocks were scattered throughout the area behind Slave Lake, near where the Chipewayans gathered copper. If that's true, there could be a major oilfield yet to be found in Arctic Canada.

On the river coming out of the Bear Lake Mackenzie discovered coal; the whole beach was strewn with it. He was attracted towards it by seeing smoke and noticing a strong sulphurous smell. The whole bank of the river was on fire for a considerable distance, and he thought this was due to the natives having camped there and set fire to the coal in the bank from their hearths. But subsequent travellers have also found this lignite coal burning to waste, and imagine that, being full of gas, it catches fire spontaneously if any landslip or other accident exposes it to moist air. In 1906 it was still burning!

On the river coming out of Bear Lake, Mackenzie found coal; the entire beach was covered with it. He was drawn to it after seeing smoke and smelling a strong sulfur odor. The whole bank of the river was on fire for quite a distance, and he thought this was because the locals had camped there and ignited the coal in the bank from their fires. However, later travelers also discovered this lignite coal burning away, and they believe that, being full of gas, it can ignite spontaneously if a landslide or some other event exposes it to moist air. In 1906, it was still burning!

According to Mackenzie, the ground in the regions about the lower reaches of the Mackenzie River is always frozen at least five inches down from the surface, yet he found small spruce trees growing in patches near the delta of this river, besides pale-yellow raspberries of an agreeable flavour, and a great variety of other plants and herbs.

According to Mackenzie, the soil in the areas around the lower parts of the Mackenzie River is always frozen at least five inches below the surface, but he found small spruce trees growing in patches near the delta of the river, along with pale-yellow raspberries that taste good, and a wide range of other plants and herbs.

As the expedition drew near to the estuary of the great Mackenzie River a range of lofty snowy mountains rose into sight on the west. These mountains were said by the natives to swarm with large bears—probably of the huge chocolate-coloured Alaska type; and again a mention was made of "small white buffaloes", which were in all probability the large white mountain goat (Oreamnus). The Amerindians along the river greatly magnified the dangers, predicting impassable rapids between the confluence of the Great Bear River and the sea. But these stories were greatly exaggerated. Every now and then the river would narrow and flow between white precipitous limestone walls of rock, but there was no obstacle to navigation, though it was very deep and the current fast.

As the expedition got closer to the mouth of the great Mackenzie River, a range of tall snowy mountains appeared in the west. The locals claimed these mountains were filled with large bears—most likely the massive chocolate-colored Alaska type; they also mentioned "small white buffaloes," which were probably the large white mountain goat (Oreamnus). The Indigenous people along the river greatly exaggerated the threats, predicting unmanageable rapids between the confluence of the Great Bear River and the sea. However, these tales were greatly overstated. Occasionally, the river would narrow and flow between steep white limestone cliffs, but there were no barriers to navigation, even though it was quite deep and the current was fast.

The travellers now began to get within touch of the Eskimo and to hear of their occasional raids up the river from the sea. They were said to use slings, from which they flung stones with such dexterity as to prove formidable in their fights with the Amerindians, who regarded them with great respect, the more so because of their intercourse with the mysterious white people (Russians) from whom they obtained iron.

The travelers were starting to connect with the Eskimos and hear about their occasional raids up the river from the sea. It was said that they used slings to throw stones with such skill that they were quite intimidating in their fights with the Native Americans, who looked at them with great respect, especially because of their interactions with the mysterious white people (Russians) from whom they got iron.

Mackenzie just managed to reach within sight of the sea, beyond the delta of the river, his most northern point being about 69° 14" north latitude. Hence he gazed out northwards over a vast expanse of piled-up ice in which several small islands were embedded. In the spaces of open water whales were visible (the small white whale, Beluga). The water in between the islands was affected by the tide. The travellers had, in fact, reached the Arctic ocean. But, owing to the fickleness of their guides, and the danger of being detained by some obstacle in these northern latitudes without proper supplies for the winter, Mackenzie was afraid to stay for further investigations, and on July 16, 1789, turned his back on the sea and commenced his return journey up the stream of the great river which was henceforth to bear his name.

Mackenzie finally reached a spot where he could see the sea, just beyond the river delta, at a latitude of about 69° 14" north. He looked out over a huge area of stacked ice with several small islands scattered throughout. In the patches of open water, he spotted whales (specifically, the small white whale, Beluga). The water between the islands was affected by the tide. The travelers had actually made it to the Arctic Ocean. However, because their guides were unreliable and there was a risk of getting trapped by some obstacle in these northern areas without enough supplies for winter, Mackenzie decided it was too risky to stay for further exploration. So, on July 16, 1789, he turned away from the sea and started his journey back up the river that would eventually be named after him.

The strength of the current made the homeward travel much more lengthy and tedious. The Indians of the party were troublesome, and the principal guide, English Chief, was sulky and disobedient. This man had insisted on being accompanied by two of his wives, of whom he was so morbidly jealous that he could scarcely bring himself to leave them for an hour in order to go hunting or to prospect the country; consequently he did little or nothing in the killing of game, and this kept the expedition on very small rations. Mackenzie got wroth with him, and so gave him a sound rating. This irritated English Chief to a high degree, and after a long and vehement harangue he burst into tears and loud and bitter lamentations. Thereat his friends and wives commenced crying and wailing vociferously, though they declared that their tears were shed, not for any trouble between the white man and English Chief, but because they suddenly recollected all the friends and relations they had lost within the last few years! "I did not interrupt their grief for two hours, but as I could not well do without them, I was at length obliged to sooth it and induce the chief to change his resolution (to leave me), which he did with great apparent reluctance."

The strong current made the journey home much longer and more exhausting. The Native Americans in the group were difficult, and the main guide, English Chief, was sulky and disobedient. This guy insisted on bringing along two of his wives, and he was so possessively jealous that he could hardly leave them for even an hour to go hunting or explore the area; as a result, he did very little in terms of hunting, which left the expedition with very limited food supplies. Mackenzie got angry with him and gave him a stern talking-to. This really upset English Chief, and after a long and intense speech, he broke down in tears and began to cry loudly and bitterly. His friends and wives then started to cry and wail loudly, claiming that their tears were not for the conflict between the white man and English Chief but because they suddenly remembered all the friends and family they had lost in recent years! "I didn’t interrupt their mourning for two hours, but since I couldn’t manage without them, I eventually had to calm things down and persuade the chief to change his mind about leaving me, which he did, though with great reluctance."

Later on English Chief told Mackenzie that he feared he might have to go to war, because it was a custom amongst the Athapaskan chiefs to make war after they had given way to the disgrace attached to such a feminine weakness as shedding tears. Therefore he would undertake a warlike expedition in the following spring, but in the meantime he would continue with Mackenzie as long as he wanted him.

Later on, the English Chief told Mackenzie that he was worried he might have to go to war because it was common among the Athapaskan chiefs to go to battle after showing the shame that came with a weakness like crying. So, he planned to launch a military campaign the following spring, but in the meantime, he would stay with Mackenzie for as long as he wanted him.

Mackenzie, rejoining Le Roux at the Slave Lake, safely reached his station at Fort Chipewayan on September 12, 1789, just as the approach of winter was making travel in these northern regions dangerous to those who relied on unfrozen water as a means of transit.

Mackenzie met up with Le Roux at Slave Lake and safely arrived at his station at Fort Chipewayan on September 12, 1789, right as winter was starting to make travel in these northern areas risky for those depending on unfrozen water for transportation.

Mackenzie seems to have been a little disappointed with the results of his northward journey; perhaps he had thought that the outlet of Slave Lake and the Mackenzie River would be into the Pacific, the Mer de l'Ouest of his Canadian voyageurs. Yet he must have realized that he had discovered something very wonderful after all: the beginning of Alaska, the approach to a region which, though lying within the Arctic circle, has climatic conditions permitting the existence of trees, abundant vegetation, and large, strange beasts, and which, moreover, is highly mineralized. His work in this direction, however (and that of Hearne), was to be completed in the next century by SIR JOHN FRANKLIN, SIR GEORGE BACK, SIR JOHN RICHARDSON, and SIR JOHN ROSS—all knighthoods earned by magnificent services in geographical exploration—and by THOMAS SIMPSON, Dr. John Rae,[3] WARREN DEASE, JOHN M'LEOD, ROBERT CAMPBELL, and other servants of the Hudson's Bay Company.

Mackenzie seemed a bit disappointed with the outcome of his journey north. Maybe he thought the outlet of Slave Lake and the Mackenzie River would lead to the Pacific, the Mer de l'Ouest of his Canadian voyageurs. Still, he must have realized that he uncovered something truly amazing: the start of Alaska, approaching a region that, despite being within the Arctic circle, has weather conditions that support the growth of trees, lush vegetation, and large, unusual animals, and which is also rich in minerals. However, his work in this area (along with Hearne's) would be wrapped up in the next century by SIR JOHN FRANKLIN, SIR GEORGE BACK, SIR JOHN RICHARDSON, and SIR JOHN ROSS—all of whom earned their knighthoods through remarkable contributions to geographical exploration—and by THOMAS SIMPSON, Dr. John Rae,[3] WARREN DEASE, JOHN M'LEOD, ROBERT CAMPBELL, and other employees of the Hudson's Bay Company.

In October, 1792, Mackenzie had determined to make a great attempt to reach the Pacific Ocean. By this time he and his colleagues had explored the Peace River (the main tributary of Slave Lake), and had realized that they could travel up it into the heart of the Rocky Mountains. He wintered and traded at a place which he called "New Establishment", on the banks of the Peace River, near the foothills of the Rocky Mountains. He left this station on May 9, 1793, accompanied by ALEXANDER MACKAY,[4] six French Canadians, and two Indian guides. They travelled up the Peace River in a twenty-five-foot canoe, and at first passed through scenery the most beautiful Mackenzie had ever beheld. He describes it as follows:—

In October 1792, Mackenzie decided to make a significant effort to reach the Pacific Ocean. By this time, he and his team had explored the Peace River (the main tributary of Slave Lake) and realized they could travel up it into the heart of the Rocky Mountains. He spent the winter and traded at a spot he called "New Establishment" on the banks of the Peace River, near the foothills of the Rocky Mountains. He left this station on May 9, 1793, joined by ALEXANDER MACKAY,[4] six French Canadians, and two Indigenous guides. They traveled up the Peace River in a twenty-five-foot canoe, and at first, they passed through scenery that was the most beautiful Mackenzie had ever seen. He described it like this:—

"The ground rises at intervals to a considerable height, and stretching inwards to a considerable distance: at every interval or pause in the rise, there is a very gently ascending space or lawn, which is alternate with abrupt precipices to the summit of the whole, or at least as far as the eye could distinguish. This magnificent theatre of nature has all the decorations which the trees and animals of the country can afford it: groves of poplars in every shape vary the scene; and their intervals are enlivened with vast herds of elks and buffaloes: the former choosing the steeps and uplands and the latter preferring the plains. At this time the buffaloes were attended with their young ones, who were striking about them; and it appeared that the elks would soon exhibit the same enlivening circumstance. The whole country displayed an exuberant verdure; the trees that bear a blossom were advancing fast to that delightful appearance, and the velvet rind of their branches reflecting the oblique rays of a rising or setting sun, added a splendid gaiety to the scene which no expressions of mine are qualified to describe."

"The ground rises at intervals to a significant height, extending inward over a considerable distance. At each pause in the rise, there is a gently sloping area or lawn, alternating with steep cliffs leading to the summit, or at least as far as the eye can see. This stunning natural theater features all the embellishments that the trees and animals of the area can provide: groves of poplars in various shapes add variety to the landscape, and their spaces are livened up by large herds of elk and buffalo. The elks prefer the slopes and higher ground, while the buffalo favor the plains. At this moment, the buffalo were with their young, who were moving around them, and it seemed that the elks would soon show the same lively scene. The entire region displayed lush greenery; the flowering trees were rapidly approaching their beautiful bloom, and the soft texture of their branches reflecting the slanting rays of the rising or setting sun added a brilliant cheerfulness to the scene that my words can’t fully capture."

Of course, as they neared the Rocky Mountains the navigation of the Peace River became more and more difficult. At last they left the river to find their way across the mountains till they should reach the headwaters of a stream flowing towards the Pacific Ocean. Sometimes they only accomplished three miles a day, having to carry all their goods and their canoe. The mountainous country was covered with splendid forests of spruce, pine, cypress, poplar, birch, willow, and many other kinds of trees, with an undergrowth of gooseberries, currants, and briar roses. The travellers generally followed paths made by the elk,[5] just as in the dense forests of Africa the way sometimes is cleared for human travellers by the elephant. Every now and again they resumed their journey on the river between the falls and cascades. The mountains seemed to be a solid mass of limestone, in some places without any covering of foliage.

As they got closer to the Rocky Mountains, navigating the Peace River became increasingly challenging. Eventually, they left the river to trek across the mountains until they found the source of a stream that flowed toward the Pacific Ocean. Sometimes, they only managed to cover three miles a day, having to carry all their supplies and their canoe. The mountainous landscape was filled with beautiful forests of spruce, pine, cypress, poplar, birch, willow, and various other tree species, alongside a mix of gooseberries, currants, and wild roses. The travelers typically followed paths created by the elk, just like in the dense forests of Africa where elephants sometimes clear the way for humans. Now and then, they continued their journey on the river, navigating between the falls and cascades. The mountains appeared as a solid mass of limestone, with some areas completely bare of vegetation.

"In no part of the north-west", writes Mackenzie, "did I see so much beaver work" (along the eastern branch of the Peace River). In some places the beavers had cut down acres of large poplars, and were busily at work on their labours of dam-making during the night, between the setting and the rising sun.

"In no part of the northwest," writes Mackenzie, "did I see so much beaver work" (along the eastern branch of the Peace River). In some areas, the beavers had cut down acres of large poplars and were busy working on their dam-building during the night, between sunset and sunrise.

Gnats and mosquitoes came with the intense heat of June to make life almost unbearable. As they got close to the Rocky Mountains they encountered Amerindians who had never seen a white man before, and who at first received them with demonstrations of great hostility and fright. But owing to the diplomatic skill of Mackenzie they gradually yielded to a more friendly attitude, and here he decided to camp until the natives had become familiarized with him and his party, and could give them information as to his route. But they could only tell that, away to the west beyond the mountains, a month's travel, there was a vast "lake of stinking water", to which came, for purposes of trade, other white men with vessels as big as islands.

Gnats and mosquitoes arrived with the scorching heat of June, making life nearly unbearable. As they approached the Rocky Mountains, they encountered Native Americans who had never seen a white man before, and who initially reacted with intense hostility and fear. However, thanks to Mackenzie's diplomatic skills, they slowly started to adopt a more friendly attitude. He decided to set up camp there until the locals became familiar with him and his group, so they could provide information about his route. They could only say that, far to the west beyond the mountains, a month’s journey away, there was a vast "lake of stinking water," where other white men with boats as large as islands came for trade.

These Rocky Mountain Indians made their canoes from spruce bark[6] in the following manner: The bark is taken off the spruce fir to the whole length of the intended canoe, only about eighteen feet, and is sewed with wátápé at both ends. Two laths are then laid across the end of the gunwale. In these are fixed the bars, and against them the ribs or timbers, that are cut to the length to which the bark can be stretched; and to give additional strength, strips of wood are laid between them. To make the whole water-tight, gum is abundantly employed.

These Rocky Mountain Indians made their canoes from spruce bark[6] in the following way: The bark is removed from the spruce fir along the entire length of the planned canoe, about eighteen feet, and is sewn together at both ends. Two strips of wood are then placed across the end of the gunwale. In these, the bars are attached, and against them, the ribs or supports are positioned, cut to the length that allows the bark to be stretched. To provide extra strength, wood strips are placed between them. To ensure the entire structure is watertight, a lot of gum is used.

Obtaining a guide from these people, Mackenzie continued his journey along the Parsnip, or southern branch of the upper Peace River, partly by water, partly by land till he reached its source,[7] a lake, on the banks of which he saw innumerable swans, geese, and ducks. Wild parsnips grew here in abundance, and were a grateful addition to the diet of the travellers. As to birds, they not only saw blue jays and yellow birds, but the first humming bird which Mackenzie had ever beheld in the north-west.[8]

Obtaining a guide from these people, Mackenzie continued his journey along the Parsnip, the southern branch of the upper Peace River, partly by water and partly by land until he reached its source,[7] a lake, where he saw countless swans, geese, and ducks. Wild parsnips grew here in abundance and were a much-appreciated addition to the travelers' diet. As for birds, they not only spotted blue jays and yellow birds, but also the first hummingbird that Mackenzie had ever seen in the northwest.[8]

From this tiny lake he made his way over lofty mountains to another lake at no great distance, and from this a small stream called the Bad River flowed southwards to join a still bigger stream, which Mackenzie thought might prove to be one of the branches of the mighty Columbia River that flows out into the Pacific through the State of Oregon. It really was the Fraser River, and of the upper waters of the Fraser Mackenzie was the discoverer.[9]

From this small lake, he traveled over tall mountains to another lake not far away, and from there a small stream called the Bad River flowed south to join a larger stream, which Mackenzie believed could be one of the branches of the great Columbia River that flows into the Pacific Ocean through the State of Oregon. It was actually the Fraser River, and Mackenzie was the first to discover its upper waters.[9]

The Upper Waters of the Fraser River
THE UPPER WATERS OF THE FRASER RIVER

Their experiences down the little mountain stream which was to take them into the Fraser nearly ended in complete disaster. "The violence of the current being so great as to drive the canoe sideways down the river, and break her by the first bar, I instantly jumped into the water and the men followed my example; but before we could set her straight, or stop her, we came to deeper water, so that we were obliged to re-embark with the utmost precipitation.... We had hardly regained our situations when we drove against a rock which shattered the stern of the canoe in such a manner, that it held only by the gunwales, so that the steersman could no longer keep his place. The violence of this stroke drove us to the opposite side of the river, which is but narrow, when the bow met with the same fate as the stern.... In a few moments, we came across a cascade which broke several large holes in the bottom of the canoe, and started all the bars.... The wreck becoming flat on the water, we all jumped out ... and held fast to the wreck; to which fortunate resolution we owed our safety, as we should otherwise have been dashed against the rocks by the force of the water, or driven over the cascades.... At length we most fortunately arrived in shallow water, and at a small eddy, where we were enabled to make a stand, from the weight of the canoe resting on the stones, rather than from any exertions of our exhausted strength.... The Indians, when they saw our deplorable situation, instead of making the least effort to help us, sat down and gave vent to their tears."

Their experiences down the small mountain stream that was supposed to take them into the Fraser almost ended in total disaster. "The force of the current was so strong that it pushed the canoe sideways down the river, and it broke apart at the first sandbar. I immediately jumped into the water, and the men followed my lead; but before we could straighten it out or stop it, we reached deeper water, forcing us to get back on the canoe as quickly as possible.... We had barely settled back in when we crashed into a rock that shattered the stern of the canoe, leaving it only held together by the gunwales, making it impossible for the steersman to keep his position. The impact sent us to the opposite side of the river, which is quite narrow, and the bow suffered the same fate as the stern.... Moments later, we hit a cascade that created several large holes in the bottom of the canoe, and all the bars were knocked loose.... The wreck became flat on the water, so we all jumped out ... and clung tightly to the wreck; this fortunate decision saved us, as we would have otherwise been smashed against the rocks by the force of the water or swept over the cascades.... Finally, we miraculously reached shallow water and found a small eddy where we managed to stabilize ourselves, thanks to the canoe resting on the stones rather than from any effort of our exhausted strength.... The Indians, upon seeing our dire situation, instead of attempting to help us in any way, sat down and started to cry."

Nobody, however, had been killed, though much of the luggage was lost, and what remained had to be spread out to dry. Many of Mackenzie's people, however, when they took stock of their misfortunes, were rather pleased than otherwise, as they thought the disaster would stop him from any further attempt to reach the Western Sea. He wisely listened to their observations without replying, till their panic was dispelled, and they had got themselves warm and comfortable with a hearty meal and a glass of rum; though a little later only by their indifferent carelessness they nearly exploded the whole of the expedition's stock of gunpowder.

Nobody had been killed, but a lot of luggage was lost, and what was left had to be laid out to dry. Many of Mackenzie's crew, when they assessed their losses, felt more pleased than upset, as they believed the disaster would prevent him from trying to reach the Western Sea again. He wisely listened to their comments without saying anything until their panic faded, and they got warm and comfortable with a hearty meal and a glass of rum; although a little later, due to their careless attitude, they nearly blew up the entire stock of gunpowder for the expedition.

Fortunately the weather was fine. Mackenzie and his fellow countryman, Mackay, allowed nothing to dismay them or damp their spirits. Bark was obtained from the forest, the canoe was repaired, and they heard from their guide that this violent little stream would before long join a great and much smoother river. But they were tormented with sandflies and mosquitoes, and a day or two afterwards the guide bolted, while the expedition had to cross morasses in which they were nearly engulfed, and the water journey was constantly obstructed by driftwood. Nevertheless, at last they had "the inexpressible satisfaction of finding themselves on the bank of a navigable river on the western side of the first great range of mountains". Here they re-embarked, and were cheerful in spite of heavy rain.

Fortunately, the weather was nice. Mackenzie and his fellow countryman, Mackay, let nothing discourage them or bring them down. They collected bark from the forest, fixed the canoe, and heard from their guide that this rough little stream would soon connect with a much larger and smoother river. However, they were plagued by sandflies and mosquitoes, and a day or two later, the guide left unexpectedly while the expedition had to navigate through swamps where they nearly got stuck, and their water journey was constantly blocked by driftwood. Still, they eventually experienced "the inexpressible satisfaction of finding themselves on the bank of a navigable river on the western side of the first great range of mountains." Here, they got back in the canoe and remained cheerful despite the heavy rain.

As they paddled down this great stream, more than two hundred yards wide, snow-capped mountains rose immediately above the river. The current was strong, but perfectly safe. Flocks of ducks, entirely white, except the bill and a part of the wing, rose before them. Smoke ascending in columns from many parts of the woods showed that the country was well inhabited, and the air was fragrant with the strong odour of the gum of cypress and spruce fir.

As they paddled down this wide river, over two hundred yards across, snow-capped mountains towered right above the water. The current was strong, but completely safe. Flocks of ducks, all white except for their bills and part of their wings, took off in front of them. Smoke rising in columns from various parts of the forest indicated that the area was well-populated, and the air was filled with the strong scent of cypress and spruce fir resin.

Then came a series of cascades and falls and a most arduous portage of the heavy canoe. These labours were somewhat lightened by the discovery of quantities of wild onions growing on the banks; but these, when mixed with the pemmican, on which the party was subsisting, stimulated their appetites to an inconvenient degree, seeing that they were on short commons. Meeting with strange Indians they found no one to interpret, and had to use signs. But on the banks of the Fraser they were lucky enough to find the "real red deer", the great wapiti stag, which is absent from the far north-west, beyond the region of the Saskatchewan. The canoe was loaded with venison. The banks of the Fraser River sank to a moderate height and were covered with poplars and cypresses, birch trees, junipers, alders, and willows. The deserted house or lodge of some Amerindian tribe was visited on the banks. It was a finer structure than anything that Mackenzie had seen since he left Fort Michili-Makinak in upper Canada. It had been constructed for three families. There were three fireplaces and three beds and a kind of larder for the purpose of keeping fish. The whole "lodge" was twenty feet long by three wide, and had three doors. The walls were formed of straight spruce timbers with some skill of carpentry. The roof was covered with bark, and large rods were fixed across the upper part of the building, where fish might hang and dry.

Then came a series of rapids and waterfalls, along with a really tough portage of the heavy canoe. These efforts were made a bit easier by finding lots of wild onions growing along the banks; however, when mixed with the pemmican that the group was living on, these onions increased their hunger uncomfortably since they were low on supplies. When they encountered unfamiliar Indigenous people, they had no interpreter and had to communicate using gestures. But along the Fraser River, they were fortunate enough to find the "real red deer," the great wapiti stag, which is not found in the far northwest, beyond the Saskatchewan region. The canoe was loaded with venison. The banks of the Fraser River were moderately high and lined with poplars, cypress trees, birches, junipers, alders, and willows. They visited the abandoned house or lodge of some Indigenous tribe along the banks. It was a nicer structure than anything Mackenzie had seen since leaving Fort Michili-Makinak in upper Canada. It had been built for three families. There were three fireplaces, three beds, and a kind of pantry for storing fish. The entire "lodge" measured twenty feet long by three feet wide and had three doors. The walls were made of straight spruce logs, crafted with some skill. The roof was covered with bark, and large rods were attached across the upper part of the building for hanging and drying fish.

As they continued to descend the Fraser River, with here and there a rapid which nearly swamped the canoe, and lofty cliffs of red and white clay like the ruins of ancient castles (stopping on their way to bury supplies of pemmican against their return, and to light a fire on the top of the burial place so as to mislead bears or other animals that might dig it up), they were more or less compelled to seek intercourse with the new tribes of Amerindians, whose presence on the river banks was obvious. As usual, Mackenzie had to exercise great bravery, tact, and guile to get into peaceful conversation with these half-frightened, half-angry people. The peacemaking generally concluded with the distribution of trinkets amongst the men and women, and presents of sugar to the children. Talking with these folk, however, through such interpreters as there were amongst the Indians of his crew, he learnt that lower down on the Fraser River there was a peculiarly fierce, malignant race, living in vast caves or subterranean dwellings, who would certainly massacre the Europeans if they attempted to pass through their country on their way to the sea. He therefore stopped and set some of his men to work to make a new canoe. He noticed, by the by, that these Amerindians of the Fraser had small pointed canoes, "made after the fashion of the Eskimo".

As they kept going down the Fraser River, navigating through rapids that almost capsized the canoe and towering cliffs of red and white clay that looked like ancient castle ruins (stopping along the way to bury supplies of pemmican for their return and lighting a fire on the burial site to mislead bears or other animals that might dig it up), they had to seek interaction with the new tribes of Indigenous people, whose presence on the riverbanks was clear. As usual, Mackenzie had to show a lot of courage, sensitivity, and cleverness to start a peaceful conversation with these people, who were part scared and part angry. The peace-making usually ended with him handing out trinkets to the men and women and giving sugar to the children. However, while talking to these people through the few interpreters among the Indigenous crew members, he found out that further down the Fraser River lived a particularly fierce and hostile group in large caves or underground homes, who would likely kill the Europeans if they tried to pass through their territory on the way to the sea. So, he decided to stop and had some of his men start building a new canoe. He also noticed that these Indigenous people had small pointed canoes "made in the style of the Eskimo."

Renewing their voyage, they reached a house the roof of which just appeared above the ground. It was deserted by its inhabitants, who had been alarmed at the approach of the white men, but in the neighbourhood appeared gesticulating warriors with bows and arrows. Yet these people of underground houses turned out to be friendly and very ready to give information, partly because they were in communication with the Amerindian tribes to the east of the Rocky Mountains. From the elderly men of this tribe Mackenzie ascertained that the Fraser River flowed south by east, was often obstructed by rapids, and, though it would finally bring them to a salt lake or inlet, and then to the sea, it would cause them to travel for a great distance to the south. He noticed the complete difference in the language of these Atna or Carrier Indians[10] and that of the Nagailer or Chin Indians of the Athapaskan group on the eastern side of the Rocky Mountains.

Renewing their journey, they arrived at a house whose roof barely showed above the ground. The place was deserted by its inhabitants, who had been frightened by the approach of the white men, but nearby, warriors wielding bows and arrows gestured animatedly. However, these people from the underground houses turned out to be friendly and eager to provide information, partly because they were connected with the Amerindian tribes to the east of the Rocky Mountains. From the older men of this tribe, Mackenzie learned that the Fraser River flowed south-east, was frequently blocked by rapids, and while it would eventually lead them to a salt lake or inlet, and then to the sea, it would require a long journey to the south. He noticed the significant difference in the language of these Atna or Carrier Indians[10] compared to that of the Nagailer or Chin Indians of the Athapaskan group on the eastern side of the Rocky Mountains.

He, however, learnt from these Atna Indians that although the Fraser was out of the question as a quick route to the sea, if he retraced his journey a little up this river he would find another stream entering it from the west, and along this they could travel upstream. And then the route to the water "which was unfit to drink", and the region to which came people with large ships, would be of no great length. Accordingly, after having had a tree engraved with Mackenzie's name and the date, by the bank of the Fraser River, the expedition returned to the subterranean house which they had seen the day before.

He learned from the Atna Indians that, although the Fraser River wasn’t a good quick route to the sea, if he went a little upstream, he would find another stream coming in from the west, and they could travel up that. Then, the path to the water "which was unfit to drink" and the area where people with large ships came would not be too far. So, after carving Mackenzie's name and the date into a tree by the bank of the Fraser River, the expedition returned to the underground house they had seen the day before.

"We were in our canoe by four this morning, and passed by the Indian hut, which appeared in a state of perfect tranquillity. We soon came in sight of the point where we first saw the natives, and at eight were much surprised and disappointed at seeing Mr. Mackay and our two Indians coming alone from the ruins of a house that had been partly carried away by the ice and water, at a short distance below the place where we had appointed to meet. Nor was our surprise and apprehension diminished by the alarm which was painted in their countenances.... They informed me they had taken refuge in that place, with the determination to sell their lives ... as dear as possible. In a very short time after we had separated, they met a party of the Indians, whom we had known at this place, and were probably those whom we had seen landing from their canoe. These Indians appeared to be in a state of extreme rage, and had their bows bent, with their arrows across them. The guide stopped to ask them some questions, which our people did not understand, and then set off with his utmost speed. Mr. Mackay, however, followed, and did not leave him till they were both exhausted with running.... The guide then said that some treacherous design was meditated against them, ... and conducted them through very bad ways as fast as they could run. When he was desired to slacken his pace, he answered that they might follow him in any manner they pleased, but that he was impatient to get to his family, in order to prepare shoes and other necessaries for his journey. They did not, however, think it prudent to quit him, and he would not stop till ten at night. On passing a track that was but lately made, they began to be seriously alarmed, and on enquiring of the guide where they were, he pretended not to understand. Then they all laid down, exhausted with fatigue, and without any kind of covering; they were cold, wet, and hungry, but dared not light a fire, from the apprehension of an enemy. This comfortless spot they left at the dawn of day, and, on their arrival at the lodges, found them deserted; the property of the Indians being scattered about, as if abandoned for ever. The guide then made two or three trips into the woods, calling aloud, and bellowing like a madman. At length he set off in the same direction as they had come, and had not since appeared. To heighten their misery, as they did not find us at the place appointed, they concluded that we were all destroyed, and had already formed their plan to take to the woods, and cross in as direct a line as they could proceed, to the waters of the Peace River, a scheme which could only be suggested by despair. They intended to have waited for us till noon, and if we did not appear by that time, to have entered without further delay on their desperate expedition."

"We were in our canoe by four this morning and passed the Indian hut, which seemed completely peaceful. Soon, we spotted the spot where we first saw the natives, and by eight o'clock, we were shocked and disappointed to see Mr. Mackay and our two Indians coming alone from the remains of a house that had been partially taken away by ice and water, not far from where we had agreed to meet. Our surprise and concern only increased when we saw the fear on their faces.... They told me they had taken shelter there, ready to fight for their lives as fiercely as possible. Shortly after we had separated, they encountered a group of Indians we had recognized from this area, probably the same ones we saw landing from their canoe. These Indians looked extremely angry, with their bows drawn and arrows ready. The guide stopped to ask them some questions, which our folks didn’t understand, and then took off as quickly as he could. Mr. Mackay, however, followed him and didn’t leave his side until they were both worn out from running.... The guide then said that there was some sneaky plan against them, ... and led them through very rough paths as quickly as possible. When they asked him to slow down, he replied that they could follow at their own pace, but he was eager to reach his family to prepare shoes and other things for his journey. They didn’t think it was wise to leave him, and he wouldn’t stop until ten at night. When they passed a path that had recently been made, they began to be genuinely worried, and when they asked the guide where they were, he pretended not to understand. Then they all lay down, exhausted and without any covering; they were cold, wet, and hungry but were too afraid to start a fire, fearing an enemy. They left that bleak spot at dawn, and when they arrived at the lodges, they found them abandoned; the Indians' belongings were scattered around as if left behind forever. The guide then made two or three trips into the woods, shouting and yelling like a madman. Finally, he headed in the same direction they had come from and hasn’t been seen since. To make their situation worse, since we weren’t at the agreed spot, they feared we had all been killed and had already started planning to head into the woods, crossing as directly as they could towards the Peace River waters, a plan born out of despair. They intended to wait for us until noon, and if we didn’t show up by then, they would set off on their desperate journey without delay."

Making preparations for warfare, if necessary, yet neglecting no chance of re-entering into friendly relations with the natives, Mackenzie set to work to repair the wretched canoe, which was constantly having holes knocked through her. He dealt tactfully with the almost open mutiny of his French Canadians and Indians. At last everyone settled down to the making of a new canoe, on an island in the river where there were plenty of spruce firs to provide the necessary bark. Even here they were plagued with thunderstorms. Nevertheless, the men set to work, and as they worked Mackenzie addressed them with simple fervour, saying he knew of their plans to desert him, but, come what might, he was resolved to travel on to the westwards until he reached the waters of the Pacific.

Making preparations for war, if needed, while still trying to build good relationships with the locals, Mackenzie got to work fixing the damaged canoe, which constantly got holes in it. He handled the near-mutiny from his French Canadian and Indigenous crew with diplomacy. Eventually, everyone focused on building a new canoe on an island in the river where there were plenty of spruce trees to provide the necessary bark. Even there, they faced thunderstorms. Nevertheless, the men got to work, and as they did, Mackenzie spoke to them passionately, acknowledging that he knew about their plans to abandon him, but no matter what, he was determined to continue west until he reached the Pacific waters.

This calmed down the mutineers, and, to the great relief of all concerned, that very afternoon the runaway guide of the Atna people returned and apologized for having deserted them. He then offered once again to conduct them to the seacoast. Nevertheless, again he fled, and Mackenzie was obliged to guide the expedition, according to the information he had gathered from the natives, up the small western affluent of the upper Fraser, which he called the West Road River (now known as the Blackwater).

This calmed the mutineers, and to everyone's relief, that very afternoon the runaway guide of the Atna people came back and apologized for abandoning them. He then offered again to lead them to the seacoast. However, he ran away again, and Mackenzie had to guide the expedition based on the information he had gathered from the locals, up the small western tributary of the upper Fraser, which he named the West Road River (now known as the Blackwater).

His perseverance was rewarded, for after proceeding up this river for some distance he saw two canoes coming towards them containing the runaway guide and six of his relations. The guide was dressed in a painted beaver robe, and looked so splendid that they scarcely knew him again. Once more he declared it really was his intention not to disappoint them. Soon afterwards they landed, buried their property and provisions, and placed their canoe on a stage, shaded by a covering of small trees and branches from the sun. Each man carried on his back four bags and a half of pemmican, of an average weight of eighty-five pounds, or other loads (instruments, goods for presents, ammunition, &c.) of ninety pounds in weight. Moreover, each of the Canadians carried a gun. The Amerindian servants of the expedition were only asked to carry loads of forty-five pounds in weight. Mackenzie's pack, and that of his companion, Mackay, amounted to about seventy pounds. Loaded like this they had to scramble up the wooded mountains, first soaked in perspiration from the heat and then drenched with heavy rain. Nevertheless they walked for about thirteen miles the first day. Now they began to meet natives who were closely in touch with the seacoast, which lay to the west at a distance of about six days' journey.

His determination paid off when, after traveling up the river for a while, he saw two canoes approaching with the runaway guide and six of his relatives. The guide was wearing a painted beaver robe and looked so impressive that they barely recognized him. He reiterated that he truly intended to make things right. Soon after, they landed, buried their belongings and supplies, and set their canoe on a platform, shaded by a cover of small trees and branches to protect it from the sun. Each man carried on his back four and a half bags of pemmican, weighing about eighty-five pounds, or other loads (like tools, gift items, ammunition, etc.) totaling ninety pounds. Additionally, each of the Canadian crew members carried a gun. The Indigenous workers in the expedition were only required to carry loads of forty-five pounds. Mackenzie and his companion, Mackay, packed around seventy pounds each. Burdened like this, they had to scramble up the forested mountains, first sweating from the heat and then soaked from heavy rain. Still, they managed to walk about thirteen miles on the first day. They began to encounter locals who were closely connected to the coast, which lay to the west about six days’ journey away.

"We had no sooner laid ourselves down to rest last night than the natives began to sing, in a manner very different from what I had been accustomed to hear among savages. It was not accompanied either with dancing, drum, or rattle; but consisted of soft, plaintive tones, and a modulation that was rather agreeable: it had somewhat the air of church music." The country through which they travelled abounded in beavers. It was the month of July, however, and they were harassed with thunderstorms, some of which were followed by hailstones as big as musket balls. After one such storm the ground was whitened for two miles with these balls of ice.

"We had barely settled down to sleep last night when the locals started singing in a way that was very different from what I was used to hearing from tribes. There was no dancing, drumming, or rattling; just soft, mournful tones with a pleasant variation that felt somewhat like church music." The area they were traveling through was full of beavers. It was July, though, and they were hit by thunderstorms, some of which brought hailstones as large as musket balls. After one of those storms, the ground was covered in ice balls for two miles.

In order not to be deserted by all of their new guides, Mackenzie was obliged to insist on one of them sharing his hut. This young Amerindian was dressed in beaver garments which were a nest of vermin. His hair was greased with fish oil, and his body smeared with red earth, so that at first Mackenzie thought he would never be able to sleep; but such was his fatigue that he passed a night of profound repose, and found the guide still there in the morning. In this region he notes that the balsam fir of Canada was abundant, the tree which provided the gum that cured Cartier's expedition of scurvy. Some of the natives with whom they now came into contact were remarkable for their grey eyes, a feature often observed amongst the Amerindians of the North Pacific coast.

To avoid being abandoned by all of their new guides, Mackenzie had to insist that one of them share his hut. This young Amerindian was dressed in beaver clothing that was infested with pests. His hair was oiled with fish oil, and his body was coated with red earth, so at first, Mackenzie thought he wouldn’t be able to sleep. However, he was so exhausted that he had a deep, restful night and found the guide still there in the morning. In this area, he noted that the Canadian balsam fir was plentiful, the tree that provided the gum that cured Cartier's expedition of scurvy. Some of the natives they encountered were remarkable for their gray eyes, a trait often seen among the Amerindians of the North Pacific coast.

"On observing some people before us, our guides hastened to meet them, and, on their approach, one of them stepped forward with an axe in his hand. This party consisted only of a man, two women, and the same number of children. The eldest of the women, who probably was the man's mother, was engaged, when we joined them, in clearing a circular spot, of about five feet in diameter, of the weeds that infested it; nor did our arrival interrupt her employment, which was sacred to the memory of the dead. The spot to which her pious care was devoted contained the grave of a husband and a son, and whenever she passed this way she always stopped to pay this tribute of affection."

"While watching some people ahead of us, our guides quickly approached them, and as they got closer, one of them stepped forward with an axe in his hand. This group was made up of a man, two women, and two children. The oldest woman, who was likely the man's mother, was busy clearing a circular area about five feet wide of the weeds that were covering it when we joined them; our arrival didn’t interrupt her work, which was a tribute to the memory of the dead. The area she was caring for contained the grave of her husband and son, and whenever she passed by, she always stopped to honor them."

By this time, exposure to wind and sun, the attacks of mosquitoes and flies, the difficulty of washing or of changing their clothes, had made all the Europeans of the party as dark in skin colour as the Amerindians, so that such natives as they met who had the courage to examine them, did so with the intention of discovering whether they had any white skin left. The natives whom they now encountered (belonging to the maritime tribes) were comely in appearance, and far more cleanly than the tribes of the north-west. As already mentioned, they had grey eyes, sometimes tinged with hazel. Their stature was noble, one man measuring at least six feet four inches. They were clothed in leather, and their hair was nicely combed and dressed with beads. One of a travelling band of these Indians, finding that Mackenzie's party was on short rations and very hungry, offered to boil them a kettle of fish roes.

By this time, exposure to wind and sun, attacks from mosquitoes and flies, and the difficulty of washing or changing clothes had made all the Europeans in the group as dark-skinned as the Indigenous people, so any natives who had the guts to examine them did so to see if there was any white skin left. The natives they encountered now (from the coastal tribes) were good-looking and much cleaner than the tribes from the northwest. As mentioned before, they had gray eyes, sometimes with a hint of hazel. They had a strong stature, with one man standing at least six feet four inches tall. They wore leather clothing, and their hair was well-groomed and decorated with beads. One member of a traveling group of these Indians, noticing that Mackenzie's party was running low on food and very hungry, offered to boil a kettle of fish roe for them.

"He took the roes out of a bag, and having bruised them between two stones, put them in water to soak. His wife then took an handful of dry grass in her hand, with which she squeezed them through her fingers. In the meantime her husband was employed in gathering wood to make a fire, for the purpose of heating stones. When she had finished her operation, she filled a wátápé kettle nearly full of water, and poured the roes into it. When the stones were sufficiently heated, some of them were put into the kettle, and others were thrown in from time to time, till the water was in a state of boiling. The woman also continued stirring the contents of the kettle, till they were brought to a thick consistency; the stones were then taken out, and the whole was seasoned with about a pint of strong rancid oil. The smell of this curious dish was sufficient to sicken me without tasting it, but the hunger of my people surmounted the nauseous meal. When unadulterated by the stinking oil these boiled roes are not unpalatable food."

He took the fish eggs out of a bag, and after crushing them between two stones, put them in water to soak. His wife then grabbed a handful of dry grass, which she squeezed through her fingers. Meanwhile, her husband was busy gathering wood to make a fire to heat stones. Once she was done with her task, she filled a wátápé kettle almost to the top with water and poured the fish eggs into it. When the stones were hot enough, some were added to the kettle, while others were thrown in periodically until the water was boiling. The woman also kept stirring the kettle until everything reached a thick consistency; then the stones were removed, and the mixture was seasoned with about a pint of strong rancid oil. The smell of this unusual dish was enough to make me feel sick without even trying it, but my people’s hunger overcame the unpleasant meal. When not mixed with the stinky oil, these boiled fish eggs are decent enough to eat.

Farther on their journey their hunger was alleviated by wild parsnips, also roots which appeared, when pulled up, like a bunch of white peas, with the colour and taste of a potato. On their way they were obliged to cross snow mountains, where the snow was so compact that their feet hardly made any perceptible impression. "Before us appeared a stupendous mountain, whose snow-clad summit was lost in the clouds." These mountains, according to the Indians, abounded in white goats.[11] Emerging from the mountains on to the lower ground, sloping towards the sea, at nightfall they came upon a native village in the thickness of the woods. Desperate with his fatigue, and risking any danger to obtain rest, Mackenzie walked straight into one of the houses, where people were busily employed in cooking fish, threw down his burden, shook hands with the people, and sat down.

Farther along their journey, their hunger was relieved by wild parsnips and roots that, when pulled up, looked like a bunch of white peas and tasted like potatoes. They had to cross snowy mountains, where the snow was so packed that their feet hardly left a noticeable mark. "Before us loomed a huge mountain, its snow-covered peak lost in the clouds." According to the locals, these mountains were full of white goats.[11] After coming down from the mountains to the lower ground sloping towards the sea, they stumbled upon a native village in the thick woods at nightfall. Exhausted and willing to face any danger to find rest, Mackenzie walked straight into one of the houses, where people were cooking fish, dropped his load, shook hands with them, and sat down.

"They received me without the least appearance of surprise, but soon made signs for me to go up to the large house, which was erected, on upright posts, at some distance from the ground. A broad piece of timber with steps cut in it led to the scaffolding even with the floor, and by this curious kind of ladder I entered the house at one end; and having passed three fires, at equal distances in the middle of the building, I was received by several people, sitting upon a very wide board, at the upper end of it. I shook hands with them, and seated myself beside a man, the dignity of whose countenance induced me to give him that preference...."

"They welcomed me without any hint of surprise, but soon gestured for me to go up to the large house, which was built on tall posts, elevated above the ground. A wide beam with steps cut into it led to the platform level with the floor, and by this unusual ladder, I entered the house from one end. After passing three fires spaced evenly throughout the middle of the building, I was greeted by several people sitting on a very wide board at the far end. I shook hands with them and took a seat next to a man whose dignified expression made me choose him first..."

Later on, this man, seeing Mackenzie's people arriving tired and hungry, rose and fetched from behind a plank, four feet wide, a quantity of roasted salmon. A whole salmon was offered to Mackenzie, and another to Mackay; half a salmon was given to each of the French Canadian voyageurs. Their host further invited them to sleep in the house, but, Mackenzie thinking it preferable to camp outside, a fire was lit to warm the weary travellers, and each was lent a thick board on which to sleep, so that he might not lie on the bare ground.

Later on, this man, seeing Mackenzie's team arrive exhausted and hungry, got up and pulled out from behind a four-foot-wide plank a bunch of roasted salmon. He offered a whole salmon to Mackenzie and another to Mackay; half a salmon was given to each of the French Canadian voyageurs. Their host also invited them to stay in the house, but Mackenzie thought it better to camp outside, so a fire was made to warm the tired travelers, and each was given a thick board to sleep on, so they wouldn't have to lie on the bare ground.

"We had not long been seated round the fire when we received a dish of salmon roes, pounded fine and beat up with water so as to have the appearance of a cream. Nor was it without some kind of seasoning that gave it a bitter taste. Another dish soon followed, the principal article of which was also salmon roes, with a large proportion of gooseberries, and an herb that appeared to be sorrel. Its acidity rendered it more agreeable to my taste than the former preparation. Having been regaled with these delicacies, for such they were considered by that hospitable spirit which provided them, we laid ourselves down to rest with no other canopy than the sky. But I never enjoyed a more sound and refreshing rest, though I had a board for my bed and a billet for my pillow."

"We had only just settled around the fire when we were served a dish of salmon roe, finely crushed and mixed with water to give it a creamy look. It was also seasoned with something that added a bitter flavor. Soon after, another dish arrived, which also featured salmon roe, along with a good amount of gooseberries and what looked like sorrel. Its tang made it more enjoyable to me than the first dish. After indulging in these delicacies, which were seen as treats by our welcoming host, we laid down to rest under the open sky. I couldn't have asked for a more restful and refreshing sleep, even though my bed was just a board and my pillow was a piece of wood."

The gooseberries, wortleberries, and raspberries which Mackenzie ate at this hospitable village were the finest he ever saw or tasted of their respective kinds. They were generally eaten together with the dry roes of salmon. Salmon was the staple food of the country, and very abundant in the river which Mackenzie was following down to the Pacific shore. The fish were usually caught in weirs, and also by dipping nets. The natives were so superstitious about the salmon, that they believed they would give offence to the spirits if they ate any other animal food, especially meat. They would scarcely allow Mackenzie to carry venison in his canoe, in case the salmon should smell it and abandon the river.

The gooseberries, whortleberries, and raspberries that Mackenzie ate in this welcoming village were the best he had ever seen or tasted. They were usually eaten along with the dried roe of salmon. Salmon was the main food of the area and was very plentiful in the river that Mackenzie was following down to the Pacific coast. The fish were typically caught in weirs and with dip nets. The locals were so superstitious about salmon that they believed eating any other kind of meat would anger the spirits. They barely let Mackenzie carry venison in his canoe, worried that the smell would scare the salmon away from the river.

After this welcome rest they embarked in two canoes on the stream which Mackenzie calls the Salmon River. The stream was rapid, and they proceeded at a great rate, stopping every now and then to get out and walk round salmon weirs. Nevertheless, although other Indians ran before them announcing their approach towards a village, the noise of which was apparent in the distance, they were received at this place in a very hostile way, the men rapidly arming themselves with bows and arrows, spears, and axes. But Mackenzie walked on alone to greet them, and shook hands with the nearest man. Thereupon an elderly man broke from the crowd and took Mackenzie in his arms. Another then came and paid him the same compliment. One man to whom he presented his hand broke the string of a handsome robe of sea-otter skin and threw it over Mackenzie.

After a much-needed rest, they set off in two canoes on the river that Mackenzie calls the Salmon River. The current was fast, and they moved quickly, stopping occasionally to get out and walk around salmon traps. However, despite other locals running ahead to announce their arrival to a village, the reception was very unfriendly; the men quickly armed themselves with bows, arrows, spears, and axes. But Mackenzie continued on alone to meet them and shook hands with the nearest man. Then, an older man broke away from the crowd and embraced Mackenzie. Another man followed and did the same. One man, to whom he offered his hand, broke the string of a beautiful sea-otter skin robe and draped it over Mackenzie.

The chief made signs to the white men to follow him to his house, which Mackenzie found to be of larger dimensions and better materials than any he had yet seen. "Very clean mats" were spread in this house for the chief, his counsellors, and the two white men. A small roasted salmon was then placed before each person.

The chief signaled for the white men to follow him to his house, which Mackenzie noticed was bigger and made of better materials than any he had seen so far. "Very clean mats" were laid out in this house for the chief, his advisors, and the two white men. A small roasted salmon was then served in front of each person.

"When we had satisfied ourselves with the fish, one of the people who came with us from the last village approached, with a kind of ladle in one hand, containing oil, and in the other something that resembled the inner rind of the cocoanut, but of a lighter colour. This he dipped in the oil, and, having eaten it, indicated by his gestures how palatable he thought it. He then presented me with a small piece of it, which I chose to taste in its dry state, though the oil was free from any unpleasant smell. A square cake of this was next produced, when a man took it to the water near the house, and having thoroughly soaked it, he returned, and, after he had pulled it to pieces like oakum, put it into a well-made trough, about three feet long, nine inches wide, and five deep. He then plentifully sprinkled it with salmon oil, and manifested by his own example that we were to eat of it. I just tasted it, and found the oil perfectly sweet, without which the other ingredient would have been very insipid. The chief partook of it with great avidity after it had received an additional quantity of oil. This dish is considered by these people as a great delicacy; and on examination, I discovered it to consist of the inner rind of the hemlock pine tree, taken off early in summer, and put into a frame, which shapes it into cakes of fifteen inches long, ten broad, and half an inch thick; and in this form I should suppose it may be preserved for a great length of time. This discovery satisfied me respecting the many hemlock trees which I had observed stripped of their bark."

"When we were done with the fish, one of the people who came with us from the last village approached, holding a kind of ladle in one hand with oil in it and something that looked like the inner rind of a coconut in the other, but lighter in color. He dipped it in the oil, ate it, and used gestures to show how tasty he thought it was. He then offered me a small piece, which I decided to taste dry, even though the oil had no unpleasant smell. Next, a square cake of this was brought out, and a man took it to the water near the house, soaked it thoroughly, and returned. After pulling it apart like oats, he placed it into a well-made trough that was about three feet long, nine inches wide, and five deep. He then generously sprinkled it with salmon oil and demonstrated by his own example that we were to eat it. I just tasted it and found the oil perfectly sweet; without it, the other ingredient would have been very bland. The chief eagerly ate it after adding more oil. This dish is regarded by these people as a great delicacy; upon closer examination, I discovered it was made from the inner rind of the hemlock pine tree, removed early in summer and shaped into cakes that are fifteen inches long, ten wide, and half an inch thick. In this form, I suppose it can be preserved for a long time. This finding clarified my thoughts about all the hemlock trees I had seen stripped of their bark."

Mackenzie found some of the older men here with long beards, and to one of them he presented a pair of scissors for clipping his beard.

Mackenzie came across some of the older guys here with long beards, and to one of them, he offered a pair of scissors to trim his beard.

After describing some remarkable oblong "tables" (as they might be called) of cedar wood—twenty feet long by eight feet broad—made of thick cedar boards joined together with the utmost neatness, and painted with hieroglyphics and the figures of animals; and his visit to a kind of temple in the village, into the architecture of which strangely carved and painted figures were interwoven; Mackenzie goes on to relate an episode giving one a very vivid idea of the helplessness of "native" medicine in many diseases.

After describing some impressive long "tables" (as they could be called) made of cedar wood—twenty feet long by eight feet wide—crafted from thick cedar boards joined together with great precision, and decorated with hieroglyphics and animal figures; and his visit to a type of temple in the village, where oddly carved and painted figures were integrated into the architecture; Mackenzie continues to share an episode that vividly illustrates the ineffectiveness of "native" medicine in treating many diseases.

He was taken to see a son of the chief, who was suffering from a terrible ulcer in the small of his back, round which the flesh was gangrened, one of his knees being afflicted in the same way. The poor fellow was reduced to a skeleton, and apparently drawing very near to death.

He was taken to see a son of the chief, who had a terrible sore on his lower back, where the flesh was rotting, and one of his knees was similarly affected. The poor guy was nothing but skin and bones, and it seemed like he was close to death.

"I found the native physicians busy in practising their skill and art on the patient. They blew on him, and then whistled; at times they pressed their extended fingers with all their strength on his stomach; they also put their forefingers doubled into his mouth, and spouted water from their own with great violence into his face. To support these operations the wretched sufferer was held up in a sitting posture, and when they were concluded he was laid down and covered with a new robe made of the skin of a lynx. I had observed that his belly and breast were covered with scars, and I understood that they were caused by a custom prevalent among them of applying pieces of lighted touchwood to their flesh, in order to relieve pain or demonstrate their courage. He was now placed on a broad plank, and carried by six men into the woods, where I was invited to accompany them. I could not conjecture what would be the end of this ceremony, particularly as I saw one man carry fire, another an axe, and a third dry wood. I was, indeed, disposed to suspect that, as it was their custom to burn the dead, they intended to relieve the poor man from his pain, and perform the last sad duty of surviving affection. When they had advanced a short distance into the wood, they laid him upon a clear spot, and kindled a fire against his back, when the physician began to scarify the ulcer with a very blunt instrument, the cruel pain of which operation the patient bore with incredible resolution. The scene afflicted me, and I left it."

"I saw the local doctors busy practicing their skills on the patient. They blew on him, then whistled; sometimes, they pressed their fingers hard against his stomach; they also shoved their bent fingers into his mouth and forcefully sprayed water from their mouths into his face. To support these actions, the poor sufferer was propped up in a sitting position, and when they finished, he was laid down and covered with a new robe made from a lynx's skin. I noticed that his belly and chest were covered in scars, which I gathered were from their custom of applying pieces of burning wood to their skin to relieve pain or show their bravery. He was then placed on a wide plank and carried by six men into the woods, where I was invited to join them. I couldn’t guess what this ceremony would lead to, especially when I saw one man carrying fire, another an axe, and a third some dry wood. I started to suspect that since it was their tradition to burn the dead, they might intend to free the poor man from his suffering and fulfill the last sad duty of love. After they had gone a little way into the woods, they laid him on a clear spot and started a fire against his back while the doctor began to cut into the ulcer with a very blunt instrument, a painful process the patient endured with extraordinary resolve. The scene troubled me, and I walked away."

The chief of this village had probably met Captain Cook about ten years before. He had been down in a large canoe[12] with forty of his people to the seacoast, where he saw two large vessels.

The chief of this village had likely met Captain Cook around ten years earlier. He had traveled in a large canoe[12] with forty of his people to the seacoast, where he saw two large ships.

Farther down the river the natives, instead of regaling them with fish, placed before them a long, clean, and well-made trough full of berries, most of them resembling blackberries, though white in colour, and others similar to huckleberries. In this region the women were employed in beating and preparing the inner rind of the juniper bark, to which they gave the appearance of flax, and others were spinning with a distaff; again, others were weaving robes of this fibrous thread, intermixed with strips of sea-otter skin. The men were fishing on the river with drag nets between two canoes, thus intercepting the salmon coming up the river.

Further down the river, the locals, instead of treating them to fish, presented a long, clean, and well-made trough filled with berries, most of them resembling blackberries but white in color, and some similar to huckleberries. In this area, the women were busy beating and preparing the inner bark of the juniper tree, giving it a flax-like appearance, while others were spinning with a distaff. Still others were weaving robes from this fibrous thread, mixed with strips of sea otter skin. The men were fishing in the river with drag nets stretched between two canoes, catching the salmon swimming upstream.

At last, on Saturday, the 20th of July, 1793, they emerged from the Salmon River into an arm of the sea (probably near King Island). The tide was out, and had left a large space covered with seaweed. The surrounding hills were involved in fog.... The bay appeared to be some three miles in breadth, and on the coast the travellers saw a great number of sea otters.[13] At two in the afternoon the swell was so high, and the wind, which was against them, so boisterous, that they could not proceed along the seacoast in their leaky canoe. A young chief who had come with them as one of their guides, and who had been allowed to leave when the seacoast was reached, returned bearing a large porcupine on his back. He first cut the animal open and threw its entrails into the sea, then singed the skin and boiled it in separate pieces; nor did he go to rest till, with the assistance of two others who happened to be awake, every morsel of it had been devoured. This was fortunate, because their stock of provisions was reduced to twenty pounds' weight of pemmican, sixteen pounds of rice, and six pounds of flour amongst ten men, "in a leaky vessel, and on a barbarous coast".

Finally, on Saturday, July 20, 1793, they came out of the Salmon River into a bay (likely near King Island). The tide was out, leaving a large area covered with seaweed. The surrounding hills were shrouded in fog.... The bay seemed to be about three miles wide, and along the coast, the travelers spotted a lot of sea otters.[13] By two in the afternoon, the waves were so high, and the wind, which was against them, so rough, that they couldn’t continue along the coastline in their leaky canoe. A young chief who had joined them as one of their guides and had been allowed to leave when they reached the coast came back carrying a large porcupine on his back. He first cut it open and tossed its guts into the sea, then singed the skin and boiled it in separate pieces; he didn’t rest until, with help from two others who happened to be awake, every bit of it had been eaten. This was lucky because their supply of food had dwindled to twenty pounds of pemmican, sixteen pounds of rice, and six pounds of flour for ten men, "in a leaky vessel, and on a savage coast."

The rise and fall of the tide here was noted at fifteen feet in height. Mr. Mackay collected a quantity of small mussels, which were boiled and eaten by the two Scotchmen, but not by the Canadians, who were quite unacquainted with sea shellfish.

The rise and fall of the tide here was noted at fifteen feet in height. Mr. Mackay gathered a bunch of small mussels, which were boiled and eaten by the two Scotsmen, but not by the Canadians, who were completely unfamiliar with shellfish.

Near Point Menzies, which had already been reached and named by Captain VANCOUVER in the spring of 1793 on his great voyage of discovery up the North American coast,[14] Alexander Mackenzie met a party of Amerindians, amongst whom was a man of insolent aspect, who, by means of signs and exclamations, made him understand that he and his friends had been fired at by a white man named Makuba (Vancouver), and that another white man, called "Bensins", had struck him on the back with the flat of his sword. This man more or less compelled Mackenzie to accompany him in the direction of his village, and on the way explained that "Makuba" had come there with his "big boat". Indeed, Mackenzie's party perceived the remains of sheds or buildings on the shore where Europeans had probably made a camp, and here they established themselves, taking up a position of defence, because the attitude of the natives was rather threatening.

Near Point Menzies, which had already been reached and named by Captain Vancouver in the spring of 1793 during his major voyage of discovery along the North American coast,[14] Alexander Mackenzie encountered a group of Native Americans, among whom was a man with an arrogant demeanor. Through gestures and shouts, he communicated that he and his companions had been shot at by a white man named Makuba (Vancouver), and that another white man, called "Bensins," had hit him on the back with the flat side of his sword. This man more or less forced Mackenzie to go with him towards his village, and along the way, he explained that "Makuba" had arrived there with his "big boat." In fact, Mackenzie's group saw the remains of sheds or structures on the shore, where Europeans had likely set up camp, and here they decided to establish a defensive position, as the natives' demeanor was somewhat threatening.

At this camp there was a rock, and on this Alexander Mackenzie, mixing up some vermilion or red clay in melted grease, inscribed in large characters the following words: "Alexander Mackenzie, from Canada, by land, the twenty-second of July, one thousand seven hundred and ninety-three". He then shifted his camp to a place three miles to the north-east, below a precipice from which issued streams of fine water as cold as ice. And here he took careful observations with his astronomical and surveying instruments, in order to fix his position. Fortunately the day was one of bright sunshine. Otherwise, had there been a long persistence of cloud, he might have been obliged to leave the Pacific coast without being able to fix precisely the place where he had reached the sea.

At this campsite, there was a rock, and on it, Alexander Mackenzie mixed some red clay with melted grease and wrote in big letters: "Alexander Mackenzie, from Canada, by land, the twenty-second of July, eighteen ninety-three." He then moved his camp three miles northeast, below a cliff where cold, clear streams flowed. Here, he took careful measurements with his astronomical and surveying instruments to determine his location. Fortunately, it was a bright, sunny day. If it had been cloudy for a long time, he might have had to leave the Pacific coast without accurately identifying the spot where he reached the sea.

Then he yielded to the passionate desire of his people to withdraw inland from the possibly dangerous inhabitants of the coast, and returned with them to the encampment where the porcupine had been eaten. Here the guide made off into the woods. Mackenzie followed him, and thus reached a village from which two men issued armed with daggers and intending to attack him. While stopping to defend himself, many other people assembled, and amongst them he recognized the irritating person who incessantly repeated the names "Makuba" and "Benzins". However, this threatened danger was narrowly averted, and eventually they left the village with a supply of food; but also in a state of considerable irritation with—fleas! For some of the houses of these Pacific coast villages swarmed with fleas to such an extent that Mackenzie and his men were obliged to take to the water to rid themselves of these vermin, which swarmed also on the ground that was bare of grass.

Then he gave in to the strong urge of his people to move inland away from the potentially dangerous coastal inhabitants and returned with them to the campsite where they had eaten the porcupine. Here, the guide disappeared into the woods. Mackenzie followed him and ended up at a village from which two men emerged armed with daggers and ready to attack him. As he stopped to defend himself, a crowd gathered, including the annoying person who kept repeating the names “Makuba” and “Benzins.” Fortunately, this threat was narrowly avoided, and they eventually left the village with some food; however, they were also left quite irritated—by fleas! Some of the houses in these Pacific coast villages were so infested with fleas that Mackenzie and his men had to jump into the water to get rid of the pests, which also swarmed on the bare ground.

The return journey up the Salmon River was a series of bewildering vicissitudes. Sometimes Mackenzie and his party were received in the most threatening way by persons who had been warm friends on their downward journey, then seemingly inevitable war was transformed into peace, but guides deserted, or the Amerindians from across the Rocky Mountains attempted to mutiny. However, they struggled through all their difficulties, till at last they reached the place known as the Friendly Village, and were here fortunately received with great kindness, being once more entertained "with the most respectful hospitality". "In short, the chief behaved to us with so much attention and kindness that I did not withhold anything in my power to give which might afford him satisfaction.... I presented him with two yards of blue cloth, an axe, knives, and various other articles. He gave me in return a large shell which resembled the under shell of a Guernsey oyster, but was somewhat larger. Where they procure them I could not discover, but they cut and polish them for bracelets, ear-rings, and other personal ornaments...."

The trip back up the Salmon River was filled with confusing changes. Sometimes, Mackenzie and his group were met with hostility from people who had been friendly on their way down; then sudden threats of war turned into peace. However, their guides abandoned them, and the Indigenous people from across the Rocky Mountains tried to rebel. Still, they pushed through all their challenges until they finally arrived at a place called the Friendly Village, where they were welcomed with incredible kindness and treated "with the most respectful hospitality." "In short, the chief showed us so much attention and kindness that I did everything I could to offer him something that would please him.... I gave him two yards of blue cloth, an axe, knives, and several other items. In return, he gave me a large shell that looked like the bottom shell of a Guernsey oyster, but it was a bit bigger. I couldn't find out where they got them, but they cut and polish them for bracelets, earrings, and other personal decorations...."

The women of this place were employed in boiling sorrel and different kinds of berries in large square kettles made of cedar wood. This pottage, when it had attained a certain consistency, they took out with ladles, and poured it into frames about twelve inches square. These were then exposed to the sun, until their contents became so many dried cakes. This was their principal article of food, and probably of traffic. These people had also made portable chests of cedar, in which they packed these cakes, as well as their salmon, both dried and roasted. The only flesh they ate in addition to the salmon was that of the sea otter and the seal; except that one instance already mentioned of the young Indian who feasted on the flesh of the porcupine.

The women in this place were busy boiling sorrel and various kinds of berries in large square kettles made of cedar wood. Once the mixture reached a specific consistency, they used ladles to scoop it out and pour it into frames that were about twelve inches square. They then left these out in the sun until the contents turned into dried cakes. This was their main food source and likely a trade item as well. They also made portable cedar chests to pack these cakes along with their salmon, both dried and roasted. The only other meat they consumed besides salmon was from sea otters and seals, except for the one case previously mentioned of the young Indian who ate porcupine meat.

"Their faces are round, with high cheekbones, and their complexion between olive and copper. They have small grey eyes with a tinge of red,... their hair is of a dark-brown colour." The men wore their hair long, and either kept it well combed and hanging loose over the shoulders, or plaited it and bedaubed it with brown earth so as to make it quite impervious to the comb. Those who adopted this fashion had to carry a bone bodkin about with them to ease the frequent irritation which arose from the excessive abundance of vermin in their hair.

"Their faces are round, with high cheekbones, and their skin tone is between olive and copper. They have small gray eyes with a hint of red,... and their hair is dark brown." The men wore their hair long, either keeping it well-groomed and hanging loosely over their shoulders, or braiding it and covering it with brown earth to make it totally untouchable by a comb. Those who chose this style had to carry a bone hairpin with them to relieve the constant irritation caused by the overwhelming presence of lice in their hair.

The women, on the other hand, usually wore their hair short. Mackenzie noticed that the infants had their heads enclosed with boards covered with leather, to press the skull into the shape of a wedge. The women wore a fringed apron, and over that a long robe made of skins or leather, either loose or tied round the middle with a girdle. Over these in wet weather was worn a cap in the shape of an inverted bowl or dish. The men also wore this cap, and in cold weather used the robe, but in warm weather went about in no clothing at all, except that their feet were protected with shoes made of dressed elks' skins. In wet weather, over their robe they wore a circular mat with an opening in the middle sufficiently large to admit the head. This, spreading over the shoulders, threw off the wet. As compared with the Indians of the Rocky Mountains and the great plains, the men and boys were very cleanly, being constantly in the water. The women, however, were dirty.

The women typically wore their hair short. Mackenzie noticed that infants had their heads enclosed with boards covered in leather to shape their skulls into a wedge. The women wore a fringed apron, and over that a long robe made of skins or leather, either loose or cinched at the waist with a belt. In wet weather, they wore a cap shaped like an inverted bowl or dish. The men also wore this cap and used the robe in cold weather, but in warm weather, they went without clothing except for shoes made from dressed elk skins. In rainy weather, over their robe they wore a circular mat with a hole in the middle large enough for their head. This draped over their shoulders, keeping them dry. Compared to the Indians of the Rocky Mountains and the Great Plains, the men and boys were very clean, frequently washing in water. The women, however, were not clean.

At the end of July, 1793, Mackenzie left what he calls the Friendly Village, and prepared to return to the east across the Rocky Mountains, having distributed to each man about twenty pounds weight of smoked salmon, flour, and pemmican. The fatigue of ascending the precipices of the mountains was past description. When they arrived at a spot where water could be obtained, and a camp made, they were in such an extremity of weariness they could hardly crawl about to gather wood for the purpose of making a fire; but two hours afterwards the Amerindians of their party arrived and came to their assistance. Then when they were sitting round a blazing fire, and some of their fatigue had lessened, they could sit and talk of past dangers, and indulge in the delightful reflection that they were thus far advanced on their homeward journey. "Nor was it possible to be in this situation without contemplating the wonders of it. Such was the depth of the precipices below, and the height of the mountains above, with the rude and wild magnificence of the scenery around, that I shall not attempt to describe such an astonishing and awful combination of objects.... Even at this place, which is only, as it were, the first step towards gaining the summit of the mountains, the climate was very sensibly changed. The air that fanned the village which we left at noon, was mild and cheering; the grass was verdant, and the wild fruits ripe around it. But here the snow was not yet dissolved, the ground was still bound by the frost, the herbage had scarce begun to spring, and the crowberry bushes were just beginning to blossom."

At the end of July 1793, Mackenzie left what he called the Friendly Village and got ready to head back east across the Rocky Mountains. He had distributed about twenty pounds of smoked salmon, flour, and pemmican to each man. The exhaustion from climbing the steep mountains was beyond description. When they finally reached a spot where they could get water and set up camp, they were so worn out they could barely move to collect wood for a fire. But two hours later, the Native Americans in their group arrived and helped them out. As they sat around a roaring fire and started to feel a little less tired, they talked about their past dangers and enjoyed the comforting thought that they had made progress on their journey home. "It was impossible not to marvel at our surroundings. The depth of the cliffs below, the height of the mountains above, and the wild, rough beauty of the scenery around were too incredible and overwhelming to describe.... Even at this point, which was just the first step toward reaching the mountain summit, the climate had noticeably changed. The air that had greeted us in the village we left at noon was mild and pleasant, with lush grass and ripe wild fruits all around. But here the snow hadn’t melted yet, the ground was still frozen, the grass had barely started to grow, and the crowberry bushes were just beginning to bloom."

Eventually they found their canoe, and the property which they had left behind, in perfect safety. At this camp, where the canoe had been left behind, many natives arrived both from the upper and lower parts of the river, all of them dressed in beaver robes, which they were ready enough to sell for large knives. It struck Alexander Mackenzie as being very extraordinary that these people, who had left absolutely untouched the property stored at this place—when anyone passing by could have stolen it and never have been detected—should now be so ready to pilfer articles and utensils from the camp. So many small things had been picked up and taken away by them, when coming to sell their beaver robes, that he was obliged to take some action. So, before all these beaver-clad Amerindians had departed on their westward journey, he told the rearguard that he had noticed the thefts, and scarcely thought their relations who were guilty of stealing realized the awful mischief that would result from this dishonesty; that they were on their way now to the sea to procure large quantities of salmon from the rivers, but the salmon, which was absolutely necessary to their existence, came from the sea which belonged to the white men, and it only needed a message from the white men to the powers of nature to prevent the fish coming up from the sea into the rivers; and if this word were spoken they and their children might starve. He consequently advised them to hurry after their friends, and see that all the stolen articles were sent back. This plan succeeded. The stolen articles were restored, and then Mackenzie purchased from these people several large salmon, and his party enjoyed a delicious meal.

Eventually, they found their canoe and the belongings they had left behind, all in perfect condition. At this campsite, where the canoe had been stored, many locals arrived from both upstream and downstream, all dressed in beaver robes that they were eager to trade for big knives. Alexander Mackenzie thought it was quite strange that these people, who had left the property here completely untouched—when anyone could have come by and stolen it without being caught—were now so quick to steal items from the camp. They had taken so many small things when they came to sell their beaver robes that he felt he had to do something. So, before all these beaver-clad Indigenous people left on their journey west, he informed the rear guard that he had noticed the thefts, and he doubted that the relatives responsible for the stealing understood the serious trouble this dishonesty could cause. They were on their way to the sea to get plenty of salmon from the rivers, but the salmon, which was essential for their survival, came from the sea that belonged to the white men. It only took a message from the white men to nature's powers to stop the fish from swimming upstream into the rivers; if that happened, they and their children could starve. He then advised them to quickly follow their friends and make sure all the stolen items were returned. This plan worked. The stolen items were returned, and Mackenzie bought several large salmon from these people, allowing his group to enjoy a delicious meal.

Mackenzie declared that there were no bison to be found on the west side of the Rocky Mountains[15] (British Columbia), and no wolves.

Mackenzie stated that there were no bison to be found on the west side of the Rocky Mountains[15] (British Columbia), and no wolves.

Resuming their journey up the Fraser River, they passed through the narrow gut between mountainous rocks, which on the outward journey had been a passage of some risk. But now the state of the water was such that, they got up without difficulty, and had more time to examine these extraordinary rocks, which were as perpendicular as a wall, and gave the traveller the idea of a succession of enormous Gothic cathedrals. With little difficulty they transported their canoe across the water parting to the Peace River.

Resuming their journey up the Fraser River, they navigated through the narrow channel between steep rocky mountains that had been risky during their outward trip. But now the water was calm enough that they moved through easily, allowing them more time to take in the incredible rocks, which stood as straight up as walls, reminding the traveler of a series of massive Gothic cathedrals. They had little trouble transporting their canoe across the water separating them from the Peace River.

As they began to glide down this stream, homeward bound, they noticed at the entrance of a small tributary an object which proved to be four beaver skins hung up to attract their attention. These were the skins which had been given to Mackenzie as a present by a native as he travelled westwards. Not wishing to add to his loads, he had left the skins behind, saying he would call for them on his return. Mackenzie imagined, therefore, that, being under the necessity of leaving the river, this Indian had hung up the skins in the hope that they would attract the attention of the travellers on their return. "To reward his honesty, I left three times the value of the skins in trade goods in their place." As the Peace River carried them away from the great mountains, and the plains extended before their sight, they stopped to repair the canoe and to get in supplies of food from the herds of game that were visible. They began with a hearty meal of bison beef. "Every fear of future want was removed." Soon afterwards they killed an elk, the carcass of which weighed over two hundred and fifty pounds. "As we had taken a very hearty meal at one o'clock, it might naturally be supposed that we should not be very voracious at supper; nevertheless, a kettleful of elk flesh was boiled and eaten, and that vessel replenished with more meat and put on the fire. All that remained of the bones, &c, were placed after the Indian fashion round the fire to roast, and at ten the next morning the whole was consumed by ten persons and a large dog, who was allowed his share of the banquet. Nor did any inconvenience result from what may be considered as an inordinate indulgence."

As they started to glide down the stream, heading home, they noticed at the entrance of a small tributary something that caught their eye—four beaver skins hung up to get their attention. These were the skins that a native had given to Mackenzie as a gift when he traveled west. Not wanting to carry the extra weight, he had left the skins behind, saying he would pick them up on his way back. Mackenzie thought that the Indian, needing to leave the river, had hung up the skins in hopes that travelers would notice them on their return. "To reward his honesty, I left three times the value of the skins in trade goods in their place." As the Peace River carried them away from the great mountains and the plains spread out before them, they stopped to repair the canoe and gather food from the visible herds of game. They started with a hearty meal of bison beef. "Any concerns about future hunger were put to rest." Soon after, they hunted an elk, whose carcass weighed over two hundred and fifty pounds. "Even though we had just enjoyed a big meal at one o'clock, it might be expected that we wouldn't be very hungry for supper; however, we boiled and ate a kettleful of elk meat, and that pot was filled again with more meat and placed back on the fire. All that was left of the bones and such was laid out Indian-style around the fire to roast, and by ten the next morning, everything was gone, consumed by ten people and a large dog, who was also given his share of the feast. And no one experienced any issues from what might be seen as excessive indulgence."

On the 24th of August, 1793, Mackenzie was back again at Fort Chipewayan, after an absence of eleven months, having been the first white man to cross the broad continent of North America from the Atlantic to the Pacific, north of Mexico.

On August 24, 1793, Mackenzie returned to Fort Chipewayan after being away for eleven months. He was the first white man to cross the vast continent of North America from the Atlantic to the Pacific, north of Mexico.


1 See Sir Alexander Mackenzie's Travels, p. 5.

1 Check out Sir Alexander Mackenzie's Travels, p. 5.

2 Peter Pond was a native of Connecticut, and in the opinion of his trading associates rather a ruffian. He was strongly suspected of having murdered an amiable Swiss fur trader named Wadin, and at a later date he actually did kill his trading partner, Ross.

2 Peter Pond was originally from Connecticut, and his trading partners considered him quite a troublemaker. He was widely believed to have killed a friendly Swiss fur trader named Wadin, and later on, he actually did murder his trading partner, Ross.

3 See p. 125.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See page __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

4 Alexander Mackay long afterwards left the service of the North-west Company, and was killed by savages on the Alaska coast, near Nutka Sound.

4 Alexander Mackay later left the North-west Company and was killed by indigenous people on the Alaska coast, near Nutka Sound.

5 For the word "elk" Mackenzie uses "moose deer". "Elk" in the Canadian Dominion is misapplied to the great Wapiti red deer.

5 For the word "elk," Mackenzie uses "moose deer." "Elk" in the Canadian Dominion is incorrectly used for the large Wapiti red deer.

6 See p. 281.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See page __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

7 Mr. Burpee points out that this was really the southernmost source of the mighty congeries of streams which flowed northwards to form the Mackenzie River system. Having traced the Mackenzie to the sea, its discoverer now stood four years afterwards at its most remote source, 2420 miles from its mouth at which he had seen the ice floes and the whales.

7 Mr. Burpee notes that this was actually the southernmost source of the vast network of streams that flowed north to create the Mackenzie River system. After following the Mackenzie to the sea, its discoverer now stood, four years later, at its most distant source, 2,420 miles from its mouth, where he had witnessed the ice floes and the whales.

8 Humming birds arrive annually in British Columbia between April and May, and stay there till the autumn. They winter in the warmer parts of California.

8 Hummingbirds come to British Columbia every year between April and May and stay until fall. They spend the winter in the warmer areas of California.

9 The great surveyor and map maker, David Thompson, was the first white man to reach the upper waters of the Columbia River. The Fraser River was afterwards followed to its outlet in the Straits of Georgia (opposite Vancouver Island) by Simon Fraser.

9 The renowned surveyor and mapmaker, David Thompson, was the first white man to reach the upper waters of the Columbia River. Later, Simon Fraser followed the Fraser River to where it flows into the Straits of Georgia (across from Vancouver Island).

10 Apparently these were of the Sikanni tribe, and only another branch of the great Tinné (Athapaskan) stock.

10 It seems that these were from the Sikanni tribe, and just another branch of the larger Tinné (Athapaskan) family.

11 Oreamnus.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Oreamnus.

12 Mackenzie thus describes one of the large sea-going canoes of the coast natives: "This canoe was built of cedar, forty-five feet long, four feet broad, and three and a half in depth. It was painted black and decorated with white figures of different kinds. The gunwale fore and aft was inlaid with the teeth of the sea otter." He adds that "these coast tribes (north of Vancouver Island and of Queen Charlotte Sound) had been in indirect contact with the Spaniards since the middle of the sixteenth century, and with the Russians from the middle of the eighteenth century. Therefore, from these two directions they had learnt the use of metal, and had obtained copper, brass, and iron. They may possibly have had copper earlier still from the Northern Indians on the other side of the Rocky Mountains; but brass and iron they could, of course, only have obtained from Europeans. They had already become very deft at dealing with these metals, and twisted the iron into collars which weighed upwards of twelve pounds, also beating it into plates for their daggers and knives."

12 Mackenzie describes one of the large ocean-going canoes of the coastal natives: "This canoe was made of cedar, forty-five feet long, four feet wide, and three and a half feet deep. It was painted black and adorned with white figures of various kinds. The edges on both ends were inlaid with the teeth of sea otters." He adds that "these coastal tribes (north of Vancouver Island and Queen Charlotte Sound) had been in indirect contact with the Spaniards since the mid-sixteenth century and with the Russians since the mid-eighteenth century. Because of this, they had learned about metalworking and acquired copper, brass, and iron. They may have even had copper earlier from the Northern Indians on the other side of the Rocky Mountains, but they would have only been able to get brass and iron from Europeans. They had become quite skilled at working with these metals, shaping the iron into collars that weighed over twelve pounds and hammering it into plates for their daggers and knives."

13 These may have been small seals, but the sea otter (Enhydris lutris), now nearly extinct, was at one time found in numbers along the north-west American coast, from the Aleutian Islands and Alaska to Oregon. Owing to persecution it now leads an almost entirely aquatic life, resting at times on the masses of floating seaweed.

13 These may have been small seals, but the sea otter (Enhydris lutris), now nearly extinct, was once common along the north-west coast of America, from the Aleutian Islands and Alaska to Oregon. Due to hunting, it now lives almost entirely in the water, occasionally resting on floating seaweed.

14 GEORGE VANCOUVER (born about 1758, and probably descended from Dutch or Flemish ancestors) was one of the great pioneers of the British Empire. His name is commemorated in Vancouver's Island, an important portion of British Columbia. Vancouver entered the navy when only thirteen, sailed with Captain Cook, and eventually was appointed to command a naval expedition sent out in 1791 to survey and take over from the Spaniards the north-west American coast north of Oregon. It is remarkable that he should only have missed Mackenzie's arrival at Point Menzies by about two months. With what amazed rejoicing would these two heroic explorers have greeted one another had they met on this remote point of the Pacific coast, the one coming overland (so to speak) from Quebec and the Atlantic, and the other all the way by sea from Falmouth via the Cape of Good Hope, Australia, New Zealand, Tahiti, and Hawaii.

14 GEORGE VANCOUVER (born around 1758, likely descended from Dutch or Flemish ancestors) was one of the great pioneers of the British Empire. His name is remembered in Vancouver Island, a significant part of British Columbia. Vancouver joined the navy at just thirteen, sailed with Captain Cook, and was eventually appointed to lead a naval expedition sent out in 1791 to survey and take over the northwest American coast north of Oregon from the Spaniards. It's remarkable that he missed Mackenzie’s arrival at Point Menzies by only about two months. How amazed and joyful these two heroic explorers would have been to greet each other if they had met at this remote point on the Pacific coast, with one coming overland from Quebec and the Atlantic, and the other traveling by sea all the way from Falmouth via the Cape of Good Hope, Australia, New Zealand, Tahiti, and Hawaii.

15 He was not quite accurate: there were a few "wood" bison in the north and east of British Columbia.

15 He wasn't entirely correct: there were some "wood" bison in the northern and eastern parts of British Columbia.

[__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]






CHAPTER XII

Mackenzie's Successors

The Spaniards of California had been aware in the middle of the eighteenth century that there was a big river entering the sea to the north of the savage country known as Oregon. The estuary of this river was reached in May, 1792, by an American sea captain of a whaling ship—ROBERT GRAY, of Boston. He crossed the bar, and named the great stream after his own ship, the Columbia. Five months afterwards (October, 1792) Lieutenant BROUGHTON, of the Vancouver expedition, entered the Columbia from the sea, explored it upstream for a hundred miles, and formally took possession of it for the King of Great Britain. The news of this discovery reached Alexander Mackenzie (no doubt after his return from his overland journey to the Pacific coast), and he at once jumped to the conclusion that the powerful stream he had discovered in the heart of the Rocky Mountains, and had partially followed on its way to the Pacific, must be the Columbia. As a matter of fact it was the river afterwards called Fraser.

The Spaniards in California were aware in the mid-eighteenth century that there was a large river flowing into the ocean to the north of the wild area known as Oregon. In May 1792, an American sea captain of a whaling ship—ROBERT GRAY from Boston—reached the estuary of this river. He crossed the bar and named the great river after his ship, the Columbia. Five months later (October 1792), Lieutenant BROUGHTON from the Vancouver expedition entered the Columbia from the ocean, explored it upstream for a hundred miles, and officially claimed it for the King of Great Britain. The news of this discovery reached Alexander Mackenzie (likely after he returned from his overland journey to the Pacific coast), and he immediately assumed that the powerful river he found in the Rocky Mountains, which he had partially followed toward the Pacific, must be the Columbia. In reality, it was the river later known as the Fraser.

If you look at the map of British North America, and then at the map of Russian Asia—Siberia—you will notice a marked difference in the arrangement of the waterways. Those of the Canadian Dominion, on the whole, flow more eastwards and westwards, or at any rate radiate in all directions, so as to constitute the most wonderful system of natural canals possessed by any country or continent. On the contrary, the rivers of Siberia flow usually in somewhat parallel lines from south to north. Siberia also is far less well provided than British North America with an abundance of navigable rivers, streams, and great lakes. Therefore the traveller in pre-railway days wishing to cross Siberia from west to east or east to west was obliged to have recourse to wheeled traffic, to ride, or to walk. Consequently, until the beginning of the twentieth century, the "exploitation" (or turning to useful account) of Siberia was a far more difficult process than the development of North America, once the question of British versus French or Spanish was settled. Siberia at one time was almost as rich in fur-bearing animals as British North America; yet so difficult was transport (and so severe were the rigours of the climate) that the Russians, once they reached the shores of the Pacific at the beginning of the eighteenth century, began to stretch out their influence to the opposite peninsula of Alaska mainly on account of the fur trade. For it was easier and less expensive to bring furs from Alaska round Cape Horn, or the Cape of Good Hope, to Europe than to convey them overland from eastern Siberia. Then, also, the Chinese market was becoming of importance to the fur trade. Already Mackenzie, at the end of the eighteenth century, is found considering whether a sea trade between China and a British port on the North Pacific coast could not be arranged so as to develop a profitable market among the mandarins and grandees of the Celestial Empire for a good proportion of the North-west Company's skins.

If you look at the map of British North America and then at the map of Russian Asia—Siberia—you'll notice a big difference in how the waterways are arranged. In Canada, most of the rivers flow more east to west or radiate in all directions, creating the most amazing system of natural canals in any country or continent. In contrast, the rivers in Siberia usually flow in parallel lines from south to north. Siberia also has far fewer navigable rivers, streams, and large lakes compared to British North America. So, back in the days before railways, travelers wanting to cross Siberia from west to east or east to west had to rely on wheeled transport, ride, or walk. As a result, until the early twentieth century, the "exploitation" (or effective use) of Siberia was a much harder process than the development of North America, especially after the British, French, and Spanish conflicts were settled. At one time, Siberia had almost as many fur-bearing animals as British North America; however, transport was so difficult (and the climate so harsh) that when the Russians reached the Pacific shores in the early eighteenth century, they started extending their influence to Alaska primarily because of the fur trade. It was easier and cheaper to bring furs from Alaska around Cape Horn or the Cape of Good Hope to Europe than to transport them overland from eastern Siberia. Additionally, the Chinese market was starting to become important for the fur trade. By the late eighteenth century, Mackenzie was already thinking about whether a sea trade between China and a British port on the North Pacific coast could be arranged to create a profitable market among Chinese officials for a good portion of the North-west Company's furs.

Map of Part Of the Coast Region Of British Columbia

[__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]

Peter Pond, already referred to on p. 278, is said to have expressed his intention (in 1788) of going to treat with the Empress Catherine II for a Russian occupation of the Alaskan and Columbian coasts. For this reason, or the mere desire to have a proportion of this fur-producing country, the Emperor Paul, in 1799, created a Russian Chartered Company to occupy the Alaska and north Columbian coasts. Great Britain offered no objection—in spite of having acquired some rights here by an agreement with Spain—and that is why, when you look at the map of the vast Canadian Dominion, you find with surprise that it has been robbed (one might almost say) of at least half of its legitimate Pacific seaboard. The Russian Company was allowed to claim the north Columbian coast between Alaska proper and Queen Charlotte Islands.

Peter Pond, previously mentioned on p. 278, is said to have shown his intention (in 1788) to negotiate with Empress Catherine II for a Russian takeover of the Alaskan and Colombian coasts. For this reason, or simply the desire to gain a portion of this fur-producing territory, Emperor Paul established a Russian Chartered Company in 1799 to occupy the Alaskan and northern Colombian coasts. Great Britain raised no objections—despite having obtained some rights there through an agreement with Spain—and that’s why, when you look at the map of the immense Canadian Dominion, it's surprising to find that it has been stripped (one could almost say) of at least half of its rightful Pacific coastline. The Russian Company was permitted to claim the northern Colombian coast between Alaska proper and the Queen Charlotte Islands.

In 1867 the Russian Government sold all Alaska and the north Columbian coast to the United States, partly to annoy Great Britain, whom it had not forgiven for the Crimean War.

In 1867, the Russian Government sold all of Alaska and the northern Colombian coast to the United States, partly to irritate Great Britain, which it had not forgiven for the Crimean War.

You will have noticed that quite a number of United States citizens (mostly born British subjects in New England) had taken part in the north-west fur trade immediately after the British conquest of Canada disposed of French monopolies. There were Jonathan Carver and Peter Pond, for example; and a much more worthy person than the last named—Daniel W. Harmon, a New Englander, who entered the service of the North-west Company in 1800, and followed in Mackenzie's footsteps to the upper Fraser River and the vicinity of the Skeena. Simon Fraser also, whose tracing of the Fraser River from its upper waters to the Pacific coast we shall presently deal with, was a native of Vermont, though his father came from Scotland. The furs which began to penetrate into the United States by way of Detroit and Niagara, the rising scale of luxury in dress in the towns of the eastern seaboard of the United States, the voyages of American whalers up the west coast of North America (including the discovery of the Columbia River in 1792 by Captain Robert Gray), the purchase of Louisiana from the Emperor Napoleon in 1804—with the vague claim it gave to the coast line of Oregon on the Pacific: all these circumstances inspired far-sighted persons in the United States at the beginning of the nineteenth century with a wish to secure for their Government and commerce a share in the fur trade and in these wonderful new lands of the Pacific watershed. American ships (whaling ships) had already become accustomed to sail round Cape Horn and to visit the Oregon and Alaskan coasts. The American Government therefore, immediately after the Louisiana purchase, dispatched an American expedition under Captains Meriwether Lewis and Jonathan Clarke to travel up the Missouri River and so across the mountains to the coast of Oregon, a wonderful expedition, which they carried out with great success in two years (1804-6), reaching the lower Columbia River and following it down to the sea.

You may have noticed that quite a few United States citizens (mostly British-born individuals from New England) got involved in the northwest fur trade right after the British took control of Canada and ended the French monopolies. For example, there were Jonathan Carver and Peter Pond, and a much more notable figure—Daniel W. Harmon, a New Englander who joined the North-west Company in 1800 and followed in Mackenzie's footsteps to the upper Fraser River and around the Skeena. Simon Fraser, who traced the Fraser River from its upper reaches to the Pacific coast, was also from Vermont, although his father was from Scotland. The furs that began making their way into the United States via Detroit and Niagara, the growing demand for luxury clothing in the eastern coastal towns of the United States, the voyages of American whalers along the west coast of North America (including Captain Robert Gray's discovery of the Columbia River in 1792), the purchase of Louisiana from Emperor Napoleon in 1804—with the vague claim it gave to the Oregon coastline on the Pacific—all of these factors inspired forward-thinking individuals in the United States at the beginning of the nineteenth century to secure a stake for their government and commerce in the fur trade and these incredible new lands of the Pacific watershed. American whaling ships had already become accustomed to sailing around Cape Horn and visiting the Oregon and Alaskan coasts. Therefore, immediately after the Louisiana purchase, the American government sent an expedition led by Captains Meriwether Lewis and Jonathan Clarke to travel up the Missouri River and across the mountains to the Oregon coast, an incredible expedition that they successfully completed in two years (1804-6), reaching the lower Columbia River and following it down to the sea.

Consequently, with all this in the air, it is not very surprising that the far-sighted John Jacob Astor, a wealthy German merchant of New York, should have conceived the idea of founding a great American fur-trading company and of establishing it at the mouth of the Columbia River.

Consequently, with all this happening, it’s not very surprising that the visionary John Jacob Astor, a wealthy German merchant in New York, came up with the idea of starting a major American fur-trading company and setting it up at the mouth of the Columbia River.

At the beginning of the nineteenth century he had entered into arrangements with an Anglo-Canadian Company (the Mackinaw), which worked the southernmost part of Canada, to fuse its enterprise with his, and thus founded the South-west Company, the name of which (at any rate in current speech) was afterwards changed into the Pacific Fur-trading Company. After attempting in vain to come to a working arrangement with the great North-west Company, he decided to act quite independently and to establish the headquarters of his new concern at the mouth of the Columbia River. Accordingly, the expedition was sent out in duplicate to the mouth of the Columbia River, one-half going a six-months' voyage round Cape Horn in a sailing ship, the Tonquin, and the other marching overland or canoeing on lakes and rivers in eighteen months from Montreal via the Mississippi and Missouri. These two parties together founded "Astoria", at the mouth of the Columbia. But most of Astor's employees were British subjects derived from men of the North-west and Mackinaw Companies; and when, in 1812, war broke out between the United States and Great Britain, a British war vessel came up the Pacific coast to Astoria and promptly turned it into "Fort George". Forthwith the North-west Company bought up the derelict property of Mr. Astor's Company from his not very honest British employees, and the few Americans in the concern retreated inland, and, after almost incredible sufferings from the attacks of unfriendly Indians, succeeded in reaching the Mississippi.

At the start of the nineteenth century, he made deals with an Anglo-Canadian company (the Mackinaw), which operated in the southernmost area of Canada, to combine their business with his, thereby forming the South-west Company. This name was later changed, at least in everyday conversation, to the Pacific Fur-trading Company. After unsuccessfully trying to reach a partnership with the large North-west Company, he chose to go solo and set up his new company’s headquarters at the mouth of the Columbia River. As a result, an expedition was sent out in two parts to the mouth of the Columbia River, with one group taking a six-month journey around Cape Horn in a sailing ship, the Tonquin, while the other traveled overland or paddled through lakes and rivers for eighteen months from Montreal via the Mississippi and Missouri. Together, these two groups established "Astoria" at the mouth of the Columbia. However, most of Astor's workers were British nationals from the North-west and Mackinaw Companies; when war broke out between the United States and Great Britain in 1812, a British warship arrived at Astoria and quickly renamed it "Fort George." Immediately, the North-west Company acquired the abandoned assets of Mr. Astor's Company from his not-so-honest British employees, and the few Americans involved withdrew inland, facing incredible hardships from hostile Native American tribes, but ultimately managed to reach the Mississippi.

The Kootenay Or Head Stream of the Columbia River
THE KOOTENAY OR HEAD STREAM OF THE COLUMBIA RIVER

This Columbia River had in reality been discovered at its sources, and traced down to the sea, between 1807 and 1811 by DAVID THOMPSON (once a Blue-coat boy in London; from 1784 to 1792 in the service of the Hudson's Bay Company, and after that one of the most famous of the Nor'-westers). The upper course of this river and its northern affluents were annexed as British by David Thompson; the lower course did not at once become the political property of the United States, but was considered vaguely to be the joint property of both nations, till the Oregon settlement of 1846. By the treaty of 1792, the southern boundary of central Canada was agreed upon as being the 49th degree of north latitude, but only between the Lake of the Woods and the Rocky Mountains. The agreement of 1846 continued the 49th degree boundary to the shore of the Pacific opposite Vancouver Island.

This Columbia River was actually discovered at its sources and traced to the sea between 1807 and 1811 by DAVID THOMPSON (who was once a Blue-coat boy in London, served in the Hudson's Bay Company from 1784 to 1792, and later became one of the most famous of the Nor'-westers). David Thompson annexed the upper course of this river and its northern tributaries for Britain; the lower course didn’t immediately become U.S. territory but was seen as jointly owned by both countries until the Oregon settlement of 1846. The treaty of 1792 established the southern boundary of central Canada as the 49th degree of north latitude, but only between the Lake of the Woods and the Rocky Mountains. The 1846 agreement extended the 49th degree boundary to the Pacific coast opposite Vancouver Island.

Prominent among the agents of the North-western Company who followed Sir Alexander Mackenzie as a pioneer towards the Pacific shores was ALEXANDER HENRY THE YOUNGER,[1] regarding whose journeys some extracts may be given.

Prominent among the agents of the North-western Company who followed Sir Alexander Mackenzie as a pioneer toward the Pacific shores was ALEXANDER HENRY THE YOUNGER,[1] about whose journeys some excerpts may be provided.

The first entry in his diary of 1799 is not particularly romantic, but shows some of the unexpected dangers attending the life of an adventurer in the far north-west. He had been riding through the Assiniboin country in the autumn of 1799, probably after one of the very indigestible meals which he describes here and there in his pages. Alone, and crossing an open plain swarming with wolves, he was seized suddenly with a violent colic, the pain of which was so terrible that he could not remain in the saddle. He dismounted, hobbled his horse, and threw himself on the grass, where he lay in agony for two hours, expecting every moment would be his last, till, quite exhausted, he fell asleep. He was awakened, however, by the howling of the wolves advancing to tear him to pieces; yet he was so weak that he was scarcely able to mount his horse, and then could only proceed at a slow walk, with the wolves snapping at his horse's heels.

The first entry in his diary from 1799 isn't particularly romantic, but it highlights some of the unexpected dangers of being an adventurer in the far northwest. He had been riding through the Assiniboin territory in the autumn of 1799, probably after one of the really heavy meals he mentions occasionally in his writings. Alone, while crossing an open plain full of wolves, he was suddenly hit with a severe colic, so painful that he couldn't stay in the saddle. He dismounted, hobbled his horse, and laid down on the grass, where he suffered in agony for two hours, thinking every moment might be his last, until he eventually fell asleep out of exhaustion. He was awakened, however, by the howling of the wolves closing in to attack him; yet he was so weak he could barely get back on his horse, and then could only move at a slow walk, with the wolves snapping at his horse's heels.

Near the site of the present city of Winnipeg, in the late summer of 1800, he and his expedition were much troubled by swarms of water snakes. They were harmless but not pleasant in their familiarity, for they entered the tents and took refuge in the explorers' beds; and as they apparently came from their breeding places in Amerindian graves which covered the remains of people who had died of smallpox in a recent epidemic, they were additionally loathsome.

Near what is now Winnipeg, in the late summer of 1800, he and his expedition were greatly troubled by swarms of water snakes. They were harmless but uncomfortable in their presence, as they slithered into the tents and took shelter in the explorers' beds. They seemed to come from breeding grounds in Indigenous graves, which held the remains of people who had died from a recent smallpox epidemic, making them even more repulsive.

Smallpox indeed played a very important part in the historical development of western North America. Prior to 1780 the Amerindian tribes between the upper Mississippi and the Rocky Mountains, and between the Saskatchewans and the Missouri, were numerous and warlike. At first, about 1765, they received in very friendly fashion the pioneer British traders and French Canadians who attempted to resume the fur trade where it had been dropped by the French monopolists in 1760. But fifteen years afterwards, enraged at the violence and wrongdoing of the British and Canadian traders, and maddened by strong drink, they were planning a universal massacre of the whites, when suddenly smallpox (introduced by the Spaniards into New Mexico) came on them as a scourge, which destroyed whole tribes, and depopulated much of western North America.

Smallpox played a crucial role in the history of western North America. Before 1780, the Native American tribes between the upper Mississippi and the Rocky Mountains, as well as between the Saskatchewans and the Missouri, were numerous and fierce. Initially, around 1765, they welcomed the British traders and French Canadians who tried to revive the fur trade that the French monopolists had abandoned in 1760. However, fifteen years later, after being outraged by the violence and wrongdoing of the British and Canadian traders and fueled by alcohol, they were planning to launch a widespread attack on the whites when smallpox, introduced by the Spaniards in New Mexico, struck them as a devastating plague, wiping out entire tribes and depopulating much of western North America.

Alexander Henry had many adventures with the bison of the plains. Here is one of them.

Alexander Henry had a lot of adventures with the bison on the plains. Here's one of them.

"Just as I came up to him at full speed and prepared to fire, my horse suddenly stopped. The bull had turned about to face my horse, which was naturally afraid of buffaloes, and startled at such a frightful object; he leaped to one side to avoid the bull. As I was not prepared for this I was pitched over his head, and fell within a few yards of the bull's nose; but fortunately for me he paid no more attention to my horse than to me. The grass was long, and I lay quiet until a favourable opportunity offered as he presented his placotte. I discharged both barrels of my double gun at him; he turned and made one plunge toward me, but had not time to repeat it before he fell, with his nose not more than three paces off.... I had to return on foot as my horse had bolted."

"Just as I was charging at him and getting ready to fire, my horse suddenly stopped. The bull had turned to face my horse, which was obviously scared of buffaloes and got spooked by such a terrifying sight; it jumped to the side to avoid the bull. I wasn't ready for this, so I was thrown over his head and landed just a few yards from the bull's nose; luckily for me, he ignored my horse as much as he ignored me. The grass was long, and I lay still until a good opportunity came up as he presented his side. I fired both barrels of my double gun at him; he turned and took one leap toward me, but didn't have time to do it again before he collapsed, with his nose not more than three paces away.... I had to walk back since my horse had bolted."

At this place—near the Red River (the season September)—the country swarmed with big game such as North America will never see any more: enormous numbers of bison, of wapiti or Canadian red deer, moose or elk, prong-buck, and of grizzly bears and black bears who followed the herds to attack them. The rivers swarmed with otters and beavers. The ground along the banks of the river was worn into a smooth, hard pavement by the hoofs of the thousands of buffaloes. Racoons, red foxes, wolves, and pumas frequented the bush country and the chumps of forest. A large white wolf, prowling rather imprudently, came within a few yards of Henry, and was shot dead. "We observed on the opposite beach no fewer than seven bears drinking all at the same time. Red deer were whistling in every direction, but our minds were not sufficiently at ease to enjoy our situation." Large flocks of swans (Cygnus columbianus) rose out of the Red River apparently in a state of alarm and confusion, possibly caused by the many herds of buffaloes rushing down to the river to drink. At night everything was quiet except the bellowing of buffaloes and the whistling of red deer. "I climbed up a tall oak at the entrance of the plain, from the top of which I had an extensive view of the country. Buffalo and red deer were everywhere in sight passing to and fro."

At this location—near the Red River in September—the area was filled with large game that North America will never see again: huge numbers of bison, wapiti or Canadian red deer, moose or elk, pronghorn, and both grizzly and black bears that followed the herds to hunt them. The rivers were full of otters and beavers. The ground along the riverbanks had been worn down to a smooth, hard surface by the hooves of thousands of buffalo. Raccoons, red foxes, wolves, and cougars roamed the brush and forest thickets. A large white wolf, acting quite boldly, came within a few yards of Henry and was shot dead. "We saw at least seven bears drinking at the same time on the opposite bank. Red deer were whistling in every direction, but we weren’t relaxed enough to enjoy our surroundings." Large flocks of swans (Cygnus columbianus) took off from the Red River, seemingly startled and confused, likely due to the many buffalo herds rushing to the river to drink. At night, everything was quiet except for the bellowing of buffaloes and the whistling of red deer. "I climbed a tall oak at the edge of the plain, from which I had a wide view of the area. Buffalo and red deer were everywhere in sight, moving back and forth."

But the prairie had its nuisances as well as its wonders of animal life. From the end of April to the end of July the woods and grass swarmed with ticks (Ixodes), which covered the clothes of the Europeans and entered their ears and there caused serious inflammations. They would in time get such a firm hold by the insertion of their heads into the skin that they could not be removed without pulling the body from the head, which caused a terrible itching lasting for months. If left alone they adhered to the flesh until they swelled to the size of a musket ball, when they fell off of themselves. In the summertime gadflies were exasperating in their attacks on men and cattle. Mosquitoes were a veritable plague, and midges also, between June and the end of September.

But the prairie had its annoyances alongside its amazing wildlife. From the end of April to the end of July, the woods and grass were full of ticks (Ixodes), which covered Europeans' clothes and crawled into their ears, causing serious inflammation. Over time, they would latch on so tightly by embedding their heads in the skin that they couldn't be removed without pulling the body off from the head, leading to a terrible itch that lasted for months. If left alone, they would attach to the flesh until they grew to the size of a musket ball, at which point they would fall off by themselves. In the summer, gadflies were incredibly annoying in their attacks on both people and livestock. Mosquitoes were a true plague, along with midges, from June until the end of September.

Not the least of the terrors of life in the far north-west in those days was the vermin that collected in the houses or huts built for a winter sojourn. It is frequently mentioned, in the records of the pioneers, how the lodges or tents of the Amerindians swarmed with fleas and lice. Henry notes on the 19th of April, 1803: "The men began to demolish our dwelling houses, which were built of bad wood, and to build new ones of oak. The nests of mice we found, and the swarms of fleas hopping in every direction, were astonishing."

Not the least of the horrors of life in the far northwest back then was the pests that gathered in the houses or huts built for winter stays. It's often noted in the records of the pioneers how the lodges or tents of the Native Americans were infested with fleas and lice. Henry writes on April 19, 1803: "The men started tearing down our houses, which were made of poor-quality wood, and began constructing new ones out of oak. The mouse nests we found, along with the swarms of fleas hopping everywhere, were incredible."

Henry reached the Pacific coast in 1814, by way of the Kootenay, Spokane, and Columbia River route, which had been discovered by David Thompson. He describes well the forests of remarkable trees on this portion of the Pacific coast, opposite the south end of Vancouver Island: the crooked oaks loaded with mistletoe, the tall wild cherry trees, the hazels with trunks thicker than a man's thigh, the evergreen arbutus, the bracken fern, blackberries, and black raspberries; and the game in these glades of trees and fern: small Columbian Mazama deer, large lynxes, bears, gluttons, wolves, foxes, racoons, and squirrels. Overhead soared huge Californian condors (Pseudogryphus).

Henry reached the Pacific coast in 1814, taking the Kootenay, Spokane, and Columbia River route, which had been discovered by David Thompson. He vividly describes the forests filled with remarkable trees in this area of the Pacific coast, near the southern tip of Vancouver Island: the twisted oaks heavy with mistletoe, the tall wild cherry trees, the hazels with trunks thicker than a man's thigh, the evergreen arbutus, bracken ferns, blackberries, and black raspberries; and the wildlife in these clearings of trees and ferns: small Columbian Mazama deer, large lynxes, bears, wolverines, wolves, foxes, raccoons, and squirrels. Above, massive Californian condors (Pseudogryphus) soared.

Henry was drowned in 1812 in the estuary of the Columbia River, through the capsizing of a boat.

Henry drowned in 1812 in the estuary of the Columbia River when a boat capsized.

The question of the identity of the great river flowing to the Pacific from near the headwaters of the Peace—the river which Mackenzie had discovered and been forced to leave—was finally decided by SIMON FRASER, one of the most celebrated among the North-west Company's pioneers. Like Mackenzie, he believed this stream to be the upper Columbia.

The question of the identity of the great river flowing to the Pacific from near the headwaters of the Peace—the river that Mackenzie discovered and was forced to leave—was finally resolved by SIMON FRASER, one of the most renowned pioneers of the North-west Company. Like Mackenzie, he believed this river to be the upper Columbia.

Accompanied by John Stuart and Jules Quesnel, he left the Fraser River at its junction with the Nechaco on May 22, 1807, and, keeping as near as he could to the course of the river, found himself in the country of the Atna tribe, Amerindians of a diminutive size but active appearance, from whom he obtained an invaluable guide and faithful interpreter, Little Fellow, but for whose bravery, wise advice, and clever diplomacy the journey must have ended in disaster or disappointment—a remark which might be made about nearly all the Amerindian guides of the pioneers.

Accompanied by John Stuart and Jules Quesnel, he left the Fraser River at its junction with the Nechaco on May 22, 1807. Staying as close as possible to the river's path, he entered the territory of the Atna tribe, Native Americans who were small in stature but had an energetic appearance. From them, he gained a priceless guide and loyal interpreter, Little Fellow. Without his courage, wise counsel, and skilled diplomacy, the journey would have likely ended in disaster or disappointment—a sentiment that could be said about nearly all the Native American guides of the pioneers.

The Atna Indians were dressed in skins with the hair outside, and were armed with bows and arrows. They besmeared their bodies with fish oil and red earth, and painted their faces in different colours. Bison were quite unknown to them, being very seldom found in those latitudes on the western side of the Rocky Mountains. The country of the Atna Indians on the upper Fraser abounded in elk, wapiti, reindeer, bighorn sheep, mountain goats,[2] and beaver.

The Atna Indians wore animal skins with the fur on the outside and carried bows and arrows. They covered their bodies in fish oil and red clay, and painted their faces in various colors. Bison were unfamiliar to them since they were rarely found in that area on the western side of the Rocky Mountains. The region inhabited by the Atna Indians along the upper Fraser was full of elk, wapiti, reindeer, bighorn sheep, mountain goats,[2] and beavers.

Here is a description by Fraser of some of the rapids in the upper part of the river named after him.

Here’s a description by Fraser of some of the rapids in the upper part of the river named after him.

"The channel contracts to about forty yards, and is enclosed by two precipices of immense height, which bending towards each other make it narrower above than below. The water which rolls down this extraordinary passage in tumultuous waves and with great velocity has a frightful appearance. However, it being impossible to carry canoes by land, all hands without hesitation embarked, as it were, à corps perdu upon the mercy of this awful tide. Once engaged, the die was cast. Our great difficulty consisted in keeping the canoes in the middle of the stream, that is, clear of the precipice on the one side, and of the gulfs formed by the waves on the other. Thus, skimming along as fast as lightning, the crews, cool and determined, followed each other in awful silence, and when we arrived at the end we stood gazing at each other in silent gratification at our narrow escape from total destruction.... I scarcely ever saw anything so dreary and dangerous in any country (such precipices, mountains, and rapids), and I still seem to see, whichever way I turn my eyes, mountains upon mountains whose summits are covered with eternal snow."

"The channel narrows to about forty yards and is flanked by two towering cliffs that curve toward each other, making it tighter at the top than at the bottom. The water rushing through this incredible passage is foamy and fast, giving it a terrifying look. However, since it was impossible to carry the canoes overland, everyone jumped in without hesitation, letting themselves be carried away by the dreadful current. Once we committed, there was no turning back. Our main challenge was keeping the canoes centered in the stream, away from the cliffs on one side and the churning waves on the other. As we sped along like lightning, the crews remained calm and focused, moving in eerie silence. When we finally reached the other side, we exchanged wordless looks of relief at having narrowly escaped disaster... I rarely encountered anything so bleak and perilous in any land, with such cliffs, mountains, and rapids. It still feels like wherever I look, I see mountains upon mountains topped with eternal snow."

A Hunter's 'shack' in British Columbia: After A Successful Shoot of Blue Grouse
A HUNTER'S 'SHACK' IN BRITISH COLUMBIA: AFTER A SUCCESSFUL SHOOT OF BLUE GROUSE

They had to take to these same mountains, the river being unnavigable. The Asketti Indians brought them different kinds of roots, especially wild onions boiled into a syrup, excellent dried salmon, and some berries. These Indians had visited the seacoast, and had seen ships of war come there with white men, "very well dressed, and very proud, for," continued the chief, getting up and clapping his two hands upon his hips, and then striding about the place with an air of importance, "this is the way they go". In this country of the Hakamaw and Asketti Indians, dogs were much in use for carrying purposes, and could draw from one hundred to one hundred and fifty pounds. They were considered by the French Canadians very good eating, though only the smaller kinds were eaten, the large dogs being of another race and having a rank taste. They also shaved these dogs in the summer time, and wove rugs from their hair. These rugs were striped in different colours, crossing at right angles, and resembling at a distance a Highland plaid.

They had to head into these same mountains since the river was impossible to navigate. The Asketti Indians brought them various types of roots, especially wild onions boiled into a syrup, excellent dried salmon, and some berries. These Indians had visited the coast and had seen warships come there with white men, "very well dressed, and very proud, for," the chief said, rising and placing his hands on his hips, then striding around with an air of importance, "this is how they walk." In the land of the Hakamaw and Asketti Indians, dogs were commonly used for carrying loads, able to pull between one hundred and one hundred fifty pounds. The French Canadians considered them a delicacy, although only the smaller breeds were consumed, as the larger dogs were a different breed and had a strong taste. They also shaved these dogs in the summer and wove rugs from their fur. These rugs were striped in various colors, crossing at right angles, and from a distance resembled a Highland plaid.

The tombs of the Indian villages on this western side of the Rocky Mountains were superior to anything that Fraser had ever seen amongst savages. They were about fifteen feet long, and of the form of a chest of drawers. Upon the boards and posts, beasts and birds were carved in a curious but crude manner, and pretty well proportioned. Returning to the river, when the worst of the rapids were passed, they descended it rapidly, helped by a strong current, and at length entered a lake where they saw seals, which showed that they had got near to the Pacific Ocean. They also beheld a round mountain, the now celebrated Mount Baker, which is visible from so much of the surrounding country of British Columbia and Vancouver Island. The trees were splendid, junipers thirty feet in circumference in their trunks and two or three hundred feet high. Mosquitoes, however, were in clouds. Nearer to the coast the Indians often appeared in the distance like white men, for the very literal reason that they had covered their skins with white paint. Their houses were built of cedar planks, and were six hundred and forty feet long by sixty feet broad, all under one roof, but of course separated into a great number of partitions for different families. On the outside the boards (as Mackenzie had noticed) were carved with figures of men, beasts, and birds as large as life. Simon Fraser, however, when he reached sea water, near the site of New Westminster, was greatly disappointed that any view of the main ocean should be obstructed by distant lands. He had believed all along that he was tracing the far-famed Columbia River to its entrance into the Pacific Ocean; and now that, instead of this, he had discovered an entirely new river, henceforth to be called after him but without so long a course as the Columbia, his vanity was hurt.

The tombs in the Indian villages on the western side of the Rocky Mountains were unlike anything Fraser had ever seen among savages. They were about fifteen feet long and resembled a chest of drawers. Beasts and birds were carved on the boards and posts in a strange but rough manner, and they were fairly well-proportioned. After navigating the toughest rapids, they quickly descended the river, aided by a strong current, and eventually reached a lake where they spotted seals, indicating they were close to the Pacific Ocean. They also saw a round mountain, now famously known as Mount Baker, which is visible from much of the surrounding areas in British Columbia and Vancouver Island. The trees were magnificent, with junipers that had trunks thirty feet in circumference and reached two or three hundred feet high. However, mosquitoes were swarming. Closer to the coast, the Indians often looked like white men in the distance because they had painted their skin white. Their houses were made of cedar planks, measuring six hundred and forty feet long by sixty feet wide, all under one roof but sectioned off for different families. On the outside, the boards (as Mackenzie had noted) were carved with life-sized figures of men, animals, and birds. When Simon Fraser finally reached the saltwater near what is now New Westminster, he was very disappointed that his view of the ocean was blocked by distant lands. He had believed he was tracing the famous Columbia River to its mouth in the Pacific Ocean, but instead, he had discovered an entirely new river, which would be named after him, though it didn’t have as long of a course as the Columbia, and his pride was hurt.

The Amerindians of the sea coast, opposite Vancouver Island, showed hostility to Fraser's party, as they had done farther north to Mackenzie. The Canadian voyageurs got alarmed, and told Fraser's assistant, John Stuart, that they had made up their minds to return by land across the Rocky Mountains. Fraser and the other officers of the expedition joined in arguing with them and recalling them to their senses. Finally each member of the party swore a solemn oath before Almighty God that they would sooner perish than forsake in distress any of the crew in the present voyage. After this ceremony was over all hands dressed in their best apparel, and each took charge of his own bundle. They therefore returned as much as possible by the Fraser River, and only took to the mountains when obliged by the rapids. They had to pass many difficult rocks, defiles, precipices, in which there was a beaten path made by the natives, and made possible by means of scaffolds, bridges, and ladders, so peculiarly constructed that it required no small degree of necessity, dexterity, and courage in strangers to undertake them. For instance, they had to ascend precipices by means of ladders composed of two long poles placed upright, with sticks tied crosswise with twigs; upon the end of these others were placed, and so on to any height; add to this that the ladders were often so slack that the smallest breeze put them in motion, swinging them against the rocks, while the steps leading from scaffold to scaffold were so narrow and irregular that they could scarcely be traced by the feet without the greatest care and circumspection; but the most perilous part was when another rock projected over the one they were clearing.

The Indigenous people along the coast opposite Vancouver Island were hostile towards Fraser's group, just as they had been further north to Mackenzie. The Canadian **voyageurs** got scared and told Fraser's assistant, John Stuart, that they were determined to head back over land through the Rocky Mountains. Fraser and the other leaders of the expedition tried to convince them otherwise and bring them back to their senses. Eventually, every member of the party swore a serious oath before Almighty God that they would rather perish than abandon any of their crew during this journey. Once the ceremony was finished, everyone put on their best clothes and took charge of their own supplies. They aimed to return mainly by the Fraser River and only ventured into the mountains when forced by the rapids. They had to navigate many challenging rocks, narrow paths, and steep cliffs, where the natives had created a beaten path with scaffolds, bridges, and ladders. These were built in such a way that they required a considerable amount of skill, bravery, and necessity for newcomers to use. For example, they had to climb steep areas using ladders made of two long poles placed upright, with sticks tied across them using twigs; additional poles were added to reach higher levels. Furthermore, the ladders were often so loose that even a slight breeze would shake them against the rocks, and the steps connecting scaffolds were so narrow and uneven that it took extreme caution to walk on them. The most dangerous part was when another rock jutted out over the one they were climbing over.

The Hakamaw Indians certainly deserved Fraser's grateful remembrance for their able assistance throughout these alarming situations. The descents were, if possible, still more difficult; in these places the white men were under the necessity of trusting their property to the Indians, even the precious guns were handed from one Indian to another; yet they thought nothing of it, they went up and down these wild places with the same agility as sailors do on a ship. After escaping innumerable perils in the course of the day, the party encamped about sunset, being supplied by the natives with plenty of dried fish.

The Hakamaw Indians definitely earned Fraser's gratitude for their incredible help during those nerve-wracking moments. The descents were even tougher if that was possible; in those areas, the white men had to entrust their belongings to the Indians, even their precious guns were passed from one Indian to another. Still, they were unfazed by it, moving through those rugged terrains with the same ease as sailors on a ship. After facing countless dangers throughout the day, the group set up camp around sunset, with the locals providing them plenty of dried fish.

Thus the main lines of the exploration of the great Canadian Dominion were completed. Alexander Mackenzie went to England in 1799 and received a knighthood for his remarkable achievements. On his return he first definitely created the New North-west or "X.Y." Company, and then brought about its fusion (after several years of bitter rivalry) with the old North-west Company; and it was this united and strengthened organization which, between 1804 and 1819, sent out so many bold pioneers to fill in the details of the map between the Columbia and Missouri on the south, and the Great Slave Lake and Liard River on the north. But during these years the energies of the Hudson's Bay Company were reviving under a strange personality—THOMAS DOUGLAS, EARL OF SELKIRK. Lord Selkirk conceived the idea of putting new life into the Hudson's Bay Company, reviving the monopolies of trading granted in its old charter, and turning its vague rights to land into the absolute ownership of the enormous area of North America north and west of the Canadian provinces. No regard of course was paid to any rights of the natives, who as a matter of fact were dying out rapidly from the effects of bad alcohol and epidemic diseases.

Thus, the main routes of exploration in the vast Canadian Dominion were completed. Alexander Mackenzie went to England in 1799, where he was honored with a knighthood for his remarkable accomplishments. Upon his return, he officially established the New North-west or "X.Y." Company, and after several years of intense competition, he facilitated its merger with the old North-west Company. It was this united and strengthened organization that, between 1804 and 1819, dispatched numerous daring pioneers to complete the mapping of the area between the Columbia and Missouri Rivers to the south and the Great Slave Lake and Liard River to the north. Meanwhile, the Hudson's Bay Company was revitalizing under an unusual figure—THOMAS DOUGLAS, EARL OF SELKIRK. Lord Selkirk envisioned breathing new life into the Hudson's Bay Company by reviving the trading monopolies granted in its original charter and transforming its ambiguous land rights into outright ownership of the vast territory in North America that lay north and west of the Canadian provinces. Naturally, no attention was given to the rights of the native peoples, who were, in fact, rapidly declining due to the detrimental effects of alcohol and devastating diseases.

His motive was to establish large colonies of stalwart Highlanders as the tenants of a Chartered Company. Alexander Mackenzie had already called the north-west country "New Caledonia". Lord Selkirk wished to make it so in its population.

His goal was to set up large settlements of strong Highlanders as the tenants of a Chartered Company. Alexander Mackenzie had already named the northwest region "New Caledonia." Lord Selkirk wanted to populate it that way.

Already he had been instrumental in establishing a Scottish colony on Prince Edward's Island,[3] which, after some difficulties at the beginning, had soon begun to prosper. Two or three years later he came to Montreal, and there collected all the information he could obtain from the partners in the North-west Company regarding the prospects of trade and colonization in the far west. In the year 1811 he had managed to acquire the greater part of the shares in the Hudson's Bay Company, and, placing himself at its head, he sent out his first hundred Highlanders and Irish to form a feudatory colony in the Red River district (the modern Manitoba). He also dispatched an official to govern what might be called the Middle West on behalf of the Hudson's Bay Company. This person, acting under instructions, claimed the whole region beyond the provinces of Upper and Lower Canada as the private property of the Hudson's Bay Company, on the strength of their antiquated charter issued by Charles II. The agents of the North-west Company were warned (as also the two or three thousand French Canadians and half-breeds in their pay) that henceforth they must not cut wood, fish or hunt, build or cultivate, save by the permission and as the tenants of the Hudson's Bay Company.

He had already played a key role in starting a Scottish colony on Prince Edward Island,[3] which, despite some initial challenges, quickly began to thrive. A couple of years later, he traveled to Montreal, where he gathered as much information as he could from the partners in the North-west Company about trade and colonization opportunities in the far west. By 1811, he had managed to acquire most of the shares in the Hudson's Bay Company, and, taking charge, he sent out his first hundred Highlanders and Irish to establish a tenant colony in the Red River area (now Manitoba). He also appointed an official to govern what could be called the Middle West on behalf of the Hudson's Bay Company. This official, acting on orders, claimed the entire region beyond the provinces of Upper and Lower Canada as the private property of the Hudson's Bay Company, based on their outdated charter from Charles II. The agents of the North-west Company were warned (along with the two or three thousand French Canadians and half-breeds under their employment) that from then on, they could not cut wood, fish, hunt, build, or farm without permission and as tenants of the Hudson's Bay Company.

It is not surprising that such an outrageous demand, when it was followed up by the use of armed force, soon provoked bloodshed and a state of civil war throughout the North-west Territories. Lord Selkirk himself took command on the Red River, with a small army of disciplined soldiers. At length, in 1817, the British Government intervened through the Governor-General of Canada, and in 1818 Lord Selkirk left North America disgusted, and two years afterwards died at Pau, in France, from an illness brought on by grief at the failure of his projects.

It’s not surprising that such an outrageous demand, when backed up by armed force, quickly led to bloodshed and civil war throughout the North-West Territories. Lord Selkirk took command on the Red River, leading a small army of trained soldiers. Eventually, in 1817, the British Government stepped in through the Governor-General of Canada, and in 1818, Lord Selkirk left North America in disappointment. Two years later, he died in Pau, France, from an illness caused by the grief over the failure of his plans.

Sir Alexander Mackenzie also died suddenly in 1820, in Scotland. For twelve years he had been member of parliament for Huntingdon, and since 1812 had been the determined opponent in England of Lord Selkirk's plans of forcible colonization. After his death, however, in 1821, a sudden movement for reconciliation took place between the two Companies. Thenceforth the Hudson's Bay Company ruled over the vast regions of British North America, beyond Newfoundland, New Brunswick, Nova Scotia, and the two Canadian provinces. Under their government the work of geographical exploration went on apace. In 1834 one of their officers, J. M'Leod, discovered the Stikine River in northern British Columbia, and by 1848 J. Bell and Robert Campbell had revealed the Porcupine and Yukon Rivers. By the time Thomas Simpson, Warren Dease, and Dr. John Rae, on behalf of the Hudson's Bay Company; and Franklin, Back, Parry, Richardson, and M'Clintock, for the Imperial Government, had completed the explorations mentioned in Chapter VI, all the main features of Canadian geography were made known. The next series of pioneers were to be those of the mining industry—it was the discovery of gold in 1856 which created British Columbia; of agriculture—the wheat-growers of the Red River region made the province of Manitoba; of the steamboat; and above all the railway. Developments of science scarcely yet dreamt of will demand in further time their pioneers, and these will not come from abroad, but will assuredly be found in this splendid Canadian people, the descendants of the men or of the types of men I have attempted to describe.

Sir Alexander Mackenzie also died suddenly in 1820 in Scotland. For twelve years, he had been a member of parliament for Huntingdon, and since 1812, he had been a fierce opponent in England of Lord Selkirk's plans for forced colonization. However, after his death in 1821, there was a sudden push for reconciliation between the two Companies. From then on, the Hudson's Bay Company controlled the vast regions of British North America, beyond Newfoundland, New Brunswick, Nova Scotia, and the two Canadian provinces. Under their administration, geographical exploration progressed rapidly. In 1834, one of their officers, J. M'Leod, discovered the Stikine River in northern British Columbia, and by 1848, J. Bell and Robert Campbell had uncovered the Porcupine and Yukon Rivers. By the time Thomas Simpson, Warren Dease, and Dr. John Rae, representing the Hudson's Bay Company, along with Franklin, Back, Parry, Richardson, and M'Clintock for the Imperial Government, completed the explorations mentioned in Chapter VI, all the major aspects of Canadian geography were known. The next wave of pioneers would come from the mining industry—the discovery of gold in 1856 led to the establishment of British Columbia; from agriculture, as the wheat-growers of the Red River region created the province of Manitoba; from the steamboat; and above all, from the railway. Future advancements in science, yet to be imagined, will require their pioneers, who will not come from abroad but will undoubtedly emerge from this remarkable Canadian population, the descendants of the men or the types of men I have attempted to describe.


1 The nephew of the Alexander Henry already mentioned as an explorer between 1761 and 1775.

1 The nephew of Alexander Henry, who was mentioned earlier as an explorer from 1761 to 1775.

2 This remarkable beast (Oreamnus) they called "Aspai", and wove from its white wool an excellent cloth for their clothing.

2 This amazing animal (Oreamnus) was referred to as "Aspai", and they made excellent fabric for their clothing from its white wool.

3 Prince Edward's Island is off the north coast of New Brunswick. It was named after Queen Victoria's father, the Duke of Kent.

3 Prince Edward Island is located off the north coast of New Brunswick. It was named after Queen Victoria's father, the Duke of Kent.


[TOP]

[__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]




Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!